This is a modern-English version of Children of the lens, originally written by Smith, E. E. (Edward Elmer).
It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling,
and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If
you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.
Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.

CHILDREN OF THE LENS
BY E. E. SMITH
Illustrated by Rogers
Art by Rogers
[Transcriber's Note: This etext was produced from
Astounding Science Fiction November, December 1947,
January, February 1948.
Extensive research did not uncover any evidence that
the U.S. copyright on this publication was renewed.]
[Transcriber's Note: This etext was produced from
Astounding Science Fiction November, December 1947,
January, February 1948.
Extensive research did not uncover any evidence that
the U.S. copyright on this publication was renewed.]

MESSAGE OF TRANSMITTAL
Transmittal Message
SUBJECT: The Conclusion of the Boskonian War; A Report:
SUBJECT: The Conclusion of the Boskonian War; A Report:
BY: Christopher Kinnison, L3, of Klovia:
BY: Christopher Kinnison, L3, of Klovia:
TO: The Entity Able to Obtain and to Read It.
TO: The Entity Capable of Accessing and Understanding It.
To you, the third-level intellect who has been guided to this imperishable container and who is able to break the Seal and to read this tape, and to your fellows, greetings:
To you, the third-level intellect who has been led to this timeless container and who can break the Seal and read this tape, and to your peers, greetings:
For reasons which will become obvious, this report will not be made available for an indefinite but very long time; perhaps ten million, perhaps ten million million Galactic-Standard years; my present visualization of the Cosmic All does not extend to the time at which such action will become necessary. Therefore it is desirable to review briefly the most pertinent facts of the earlier phases of Civilization's climatic conflict; information which, while widely known at present, will probably in that future time exist otherwise only in the memories of my descendants.
For reasons that will soon be clear, this report won’t be available for a very long time—maybe ten million years or even ten million million Galactic-Standard years. I can't envision a time when this action will be necessary. So, it’s important to briefly go over the key facts from the earlier stages of civilization's climate crisis; information that, while well-known now, will likely exist only in the memories of my descendants in the future.
In early Civilization law enforcement lagged behind crime because the police were limited in their spheres of action, while criminals were not. Each technological advance made that condition worse until finally, when Bergenholm so perfected the crude inertialess space-drive of Rodebush and Cleveland that commerce throughout the Galaxy became an actuality, crime began to threaten Civilization's very existence.
In the early days of Civilization, law enforcement struggled to keep up with crime because the police had limited powers, while criminals did not. Each technological breakthrough only made the situation worse until, eventually, when Bergenholm improved the basic inertialess space-drive developed by Rodebush and Cleveland to the point where commerce across the Galaxy became a reality, crime started to pose a serious threat to the very existence of Civilization.
Of course it was not then suspected that there was anything organized, coherent, or of large purpose about this crime. Centuries were to pass before my father, Kimball Kinnison of Tellus, now Galactic Co-ordinator, was to prove that Boskonia, an autocratic, dictatorial culture diametrically opposed to every ideal of Civilization—was, in fact, back of practically all of the pernicious activities of the First Galaxy. Even my father, however, has never had any inkling either of the existence and the doings of the Eddorians or of the fundamental raison d'etre of the Galactic Patrol—facts which can never be revealed to any mind not inherently stable at the third level of stress.
Of course, back then, no one suspected there was anything organized, coherent, or significant about this crime. It would take centuries before my father, Kimball Kinnison of Tellus, now the Galactic Coordinator, proved that Boskonia, an autocratic, dictatorial society completely opposed to every ideal of Civilization, was actually behind nearly all the harmful activities in the First Galaxy. Even my father never had any idea about the existence and actions of the Eddorians or the fundamental raison d'etre of the Galactic Patrol—facts that can never be shared with anyone who isn't inherently stable at the third level of stress.
Virgil Samms, then Chief of the Secret Service of the Triplanetary League, perceived the general situation and foresaw the shape of the inevitable. He realized that unless and until his organization could secure an identifying symbol which could not be counterfeited, police work would remain relatively ineffectual. Tellurian science had done its best in the golden meteors of Triplanetary's Secret Service, and its best was not good enough.
Virgil Samms, the Chief of the Secret Service of the Triplanetary League, understood the overall situation and predicted what was bound to happen. He knew that unless his organization could secure a unique symbol that couldn't be faked, law enforcement would continue to be fairly ineffective. Tellurian science had tried its hardest with the golden meteors of Triplanetary's Secret Service, but that effort just wasn’t enough.
Virgil Samms became the first wearer of Arisia's Lens, and during his life he began the rigid selection of those worthy of wearing it. For centuries the Patrol grew and spread. It became widely known that the Lens was a perfect telepath, that it glowed with colored light only when worn by the individual to whose ego it was attuned, that it killed any other living being who attempted to wear it. Whatever his race or shape, any wearer of the Lens was accepted as the embodiment of Civilization.
Virgil Samms was the first person to wear Arisia's Lens, and during his life, he started the strict process of choosing who was worthy of wearing it. For centuries, the Patrol expanded and spread. It became well-known that the Lens was a flawless telepath, that it glowed with different colors only when worn by the person whose ego it matched, and that it would kill anyone else who tried to wear it. Regardless of their race or form, anyone who wore the Lens was seen as the embodiment of Civilization.
Kimball Kinnison was the first entity of Civilization to suspect that the Boskonian organization existed. He was the first Lensman to realize that the Lens was more than identification and a telepath. He was thus the first Lensman to return to Arisia to take the second stage of Lensmanship—their treatment which only an exceptional brain can withstand, but which gives the Second-Stage Lensman any mental power which he needs and which he can both visualize and control.
Kimball Kinnison was the first person in Civilization to suspect that the Boskonian organization was real. He was the first Lensman to understand that the Lens was more than just an identification tool and a telepathic device. As a result, he was the first Lensman to return to Arisia to undergo the second stage of Lensmanship—training that only an extraordinary mind can handle, but which equips the Second-Stage Lensman with all the mental powers they need, which they can visualize and control.
Aided by Lensman Worsel of Velantia and Tregonsee of Rigel IV—the former a winged reptile, the latter a four-legged, barrel-shaped creature with the sense of perception instead of sight—Kimball Kinnison traced and surveyed Boskone's military organization in the First Galaxy. He helped plan the attack upon Grand Base, the headquarters of Helmuth, who "spoke for Boskone." By flooding the control dome of Grand Base with thionite, that deadly drug native to the peculiar planet Trenco, he made it possible for Civilization's Grand Fleet, under the command of Port Admiral Haynes—now retired—to reduce that Base. He personally killed Helmuth in hand-to-hand combat.
With the help of Lensman Worsel from Velantia and Tregonsee from Rigel IV—the first being a winged reptile and the latter a four-legged, barrel-shaped creature that perceives rather than sees—Kimball Kinnison mapped out Boskone's military structure in the First Galaxy. He assisted in devising the attack on Grand Base, the headquarters of Helmuth, who "represented Boskone." By flooding the control dome of Grand Base with thionite, a lethal drug from the unusual planet Trenco, he enabled Civilization’s Grand Fleet, commanded by the now-retired Port Admiral Haynes, to take down that Base. He personally killed Helmuth in hand-to-hand combat.
He was instrumental in the almost-complete destruction of the Overlords; those sadistic, life-eating reptiles native to the planet Delgon of the Velantian solar system, who were the first to employ against humanity the hyperspatial tube.
He played a key role in the near-total destruction of the Overlords, those cruel, life-devouring reptiles from the planet Delgon in the Velantian solar system, who were the first to use the hyperspatial tube against humanity.
He was wounded more than once; in one of his hospitalizations becoming acquainted with Surgeon General Lacy—now retired—and with Sector Chief Nurse Clarrissa MacDougall, who was later to become the widely-known "Red Lensman" and, still later, my mother.
He was injured multiple times; during one of his hospital stays, he got to know Surgeon General Lacy—who is now retired—and Sector Chief Nurse Clarrissa MacDougall, who later became the famous "Red Lensman" and, eventually, my mother.
In spite of the military defeat, however, Boskonia's real organization remained intact, and Kinnison's further search led into Lundmark's Nebula, thenceforth called the Second Galaxy. The planet Medon, being attacked by the Boskonians, was rescued from the enemy and was moved across intergalactic space to the First Galaxy. Medon made two notable contributions to Civilization: first, electrical insulation, conductors, and switches by whose means voltages and amperages theretofore undreamed-of could be handled; and, later, Phillips, a Posenian surgeon, was able there to complete the researches which made it possible for human bodies to grow anew any members or organs which had been lost.
In spite of the military defeat, Boskonia's real organization stayed intact, and Kinnison's ongoing search led into Lundmark's Nebula, which became known as the Second Galaxy. The planet Medon, under attack from the Boskonians, was saved from the enemy and relocated across intergalactic space to the First Galaxy. Medon contributed two significant advances to civilization: first, electrical insulation, conductors, and switches that allowed for voltages and amperages never before imagined; and later, a Posenian surgeon named Phillips was able to complete his research there, making it possible for human bodies to regenerate any lost limbs or organs.
Kinnison, deciding that the drug syndicate was the quickest and surest line to Boskone, became Wild Bill Williams the meteor miner, a hard-drinking, bentlam-eating, fast-shooting space-hellion. As Williams he traced the zwilnik line upward, step by step, to the planet Jarnevon in the Second Galaxy. Upon Jarnevon lived the Eich; frigid-blooded monsters more intelligent, more merciless, more truly Boskonian even than the Overlords of Delgon.
Kinnison, thinking that the drug syndicate was the fastest and most reliable way to get to Boskone, became Wild Bill Williams, the meteor miner—a heavy-drinking, bentham-eating, quick-shooting space outlaw. As Williams, he followed the zwilnik trail upward, step by step, to the planet Jarnevon in the Second Galaxy. On Jarnevon lived the Eich; cold-blooded creatures that were more intelligent, more ruthless, and more genuinely Boskonian than the Overlords of Delgon.
He and Worsel, Second-Stage Lensmen both, set out to investigate Jarnevon. He was captured, tortured, dismembered; but Worsel brought him back to Tellus with his mind and knowledge intact—the enormously important knowledge that Jarnevon was ruled by a Council of Nine of the Eich, a council named Boskone.
He and Worsel, both Second-Stage Lensmen, headed out to investigate Jarnevon. He was captured, tortured, and dismembered; but Worsel brought him back to Earth with his mind and knowledge intact—the incredibly important knowledge that Jarnevon was governed by a Council of Nine of the Eich, a council called Boskone.
Kinnison was given a Phillips treatment, and again Clarrissa MacDougall nursed him back to health. They loved each other, but they could not marry until the Gray Lensman's job was done; until Civilization had triumphed over Boskonia.
Kinnison underwent a Phillips treatment, and once more, Clarrissa MacDougall helped him recover. They were in love, but they couldn't get married until the Gray Lensman's mission was complete; until Civilization had conquered Boskonia.
The Galactic Patrol assembled its Grand Fleet, composed of millions of units, under the flagship Z9M9Z. It attacked. The planet of Jalte, Boskonia's Director of the First Galaxy, was consumed by a bomb of negative matter. Jarnevon was crushed between two colliding planets; positioned inertialess, then inerted especially for that crushing. Grand Fleet returned, triumphant.
The Galactic Patrol gathered its Grand Fleet, made up of millions of units, under the flagship Z9M9Z. It launched an attack. The planet of Jalte, under Boskonia's Director of the First Galaxy, was obliterated by a negative matter bomb. Jarnevon was caught between two colliding planets; initially positioned without inertia, then made inert specifically for that collision. The Grand Fleet returned victorious.
But Boskonia struck back, sending an immense fleet against Tellus through a hyperspatial tube instead of through normal space. This method of approach was not, however, unexpected. Survey ships and detectors were out; the scientists of the Patrol had been for months hard at work upon the "sunbeam"—a device to concentrate all the energy of the sun into one frightful beam. With this weapon reinforcing the already vast powers of Grand Fleet, the invaders were wiped out.
But Boskonia fought back, launching a massive fleet toward Tellus through a hyperspatial tube instead of regular space. This tactic wasn’t a surprise, though. Survey ships and detectors were deployed; the Patrol’s scientists had been diligently working on the "sunbeam" for months—a device designed to focus all the energy of the sun into one terrifying beam. With this weapon bolstering the already tremendous strength of the Grand Fleet, the invaders were eliminated.
Again Kinnison had to search for a high Boskonian; some authority higher than the Council of Boskone. Taking his personal superdreadnought, the Dauntless, which carried his indetectable, nonferrous speedster, he found a zwilnik trail and followed it to Dunstan's Region, an unexplored, virtually unknown, outlying spiral arm of the First Galaxy. It led to the planet Lyrane II, with its human matriarchy, ruled by Helen its queen.
Again, Kinnison had to look for a higher authority than the Council of Boskone. He took his personal superdreadnought, the Dauntless, which carried his undetectable, nonferrous speedster, and found a zwilnik trail that led him to Dunstan's Region, an unexplored and nearly unknown outer spiral arm of the First Galaxy. This path brought him to the planet Lyrane II, which was governed by its human matriarchy, ruled by Queen Helen.
There he found Illona Potter, the ex-Aldebaranian dancer; who, turning against her Boskonian kidnapers, told him all she knew of the Boskonian planet Lonabar, upon which she had spent most of her life. Lonabar was unknown to the Patrol and Illona knew nothing of its location in space. She did, however, know its unique jewelry—gems also completely unknown to Civilization.
There he found Illona Potter, the former Aldebaranian dancer, who, turning against her Boskonian kidnappers, shared everything she knew about the Boskonian planet Lonabar, where she had spent most of her life. Lonabar was a mystery to the Patrol, and Illona had no idea where it was located in space. However, she did know about its unique jewelry—gems that were completely unknown to Civilization.
Nadreck of Palain VII, a frigid-blooded Second-Stage Lensman, with one jewel as a clue, set out to find Lonabar; while Kinnison began to investigate Boskonian activities among the matriarchs.
Nadreck of Palain VII, a cold-blooded Second-Stage Lensman, with one jewel as a clue, set out to find Lonabar, while Kinnison started looking into Boskonian activities among the matriarchs.
The Lyranians, however, were fanatically nonco-operative. They hated all males; they despised and detested all nonhuman entities. Hence Kinnison, with the consent and assistance of Mentor of Arisia, made of Clarrissa MacDougall a Second-Stage Lensman and assigned to her the task of working Lyrane II.
The Lyranians, however, were extremely uncooperative. They hated all males and loathed all nonhuman beings. So, Kinnison, with the help and approval of the Mentor of Arisia, turned Clarrissa MacDougall into a Second-Stage Lensman and assigned her the job of working on Lyrane II.
Nadreck found and mapped Lonabar; and to build up an unimpeachable Boskonian identity Kinnison became Cartiff the jeweler; Cartiff the jewel thief and swindler; Cartiff the fence; Cartiff the murderer-outlaw; Cartiff the Boskonian Big Shot. He challenged and overthrew Menjo Bleeko, the dictator of Lonabar, and before killing him took from his mind everything he knew.
Nadreck discovered and charted Lonabar, and to establish a flawless Boskonian identity, Kinnison transformed into Cartiff the jeweler; Cartiff the jewel thief and con artist; Cartiff the fence; Cartiff the murderer-outlaw; Cartiff the Boskonian Big Shot. He confronted and defeated Menjo Bleeko, the dictator of Lonabar, and before killing him, extracted all the knowledge from his mind.
The Red Lensman secured information from which it was deduced that a cavern of the Overlords of Delgon existed upon Lyrane II. This cavern was raided and destroyed, the Patrolmen learning that the Eich themselves had a heavily-fortified base upon Lyrane III.
The Red Lensman gathered info that led to the conclusion that there was a cave of the Overlords of Delgon on Lyrane II. This cave was attacked and destroyed, and the Patrolmen discovered that the Eich themselves had a well-defended base on Lyrane III.
Nadreck, master psychologist, invaded that base tracelessly; learning that the Eich received orders from the Thrallian solar system in the Second Galaxy and that frigid-blooded Kandron of Onlo—Thrallis IX—was second in power only to human Alcon, the Tyrant of Thrale—Thrallis II.
Nadreck, master psychologist, infiltrated that base without leaving a trace; discovering that the Eich received orders from the Thrallian solar system in the Second Galaxy and that cold-blooded Kandron of Onlo—Thrallis IX—was second in command only to human Alcon, the Tyrant of Thrale—Thrallis II.
Kinnison went to Thrale, Nadreck to Onlo; the operations of both being covered by the Patrol's invasion of the Second Galaxy. In that invasion Boskonia's Grand Fleet was defeated and the planet Klovia was taken and fortified.
Kinnison headed to Thrale, while Nadreck went to Onlo; their missions were both supported by the Patrol's invasion of the Second Galaxy. During that invasion, Boskonia's Grand Fleet was defeated, and the planet Klovia was captured and fortified.
Assuming the personality of Traska Gannel, a Thralian, Kinnison worked his way upward in Alcon's military organization. Trapped in a hyperspatial tube, ejected into an unknown one of the infinity of parallel, coexistent, three-dimensional spaces which comprise the Cosmic All, he was rescued by Mentor, working through the brain of Sir Austin Cardynge, the Tellurian mathematician.
Assuming the identity of Traska Gannel, a Thralian, Kinnison climbed the ranks in Alcon's military. Trapped in a hyperspatial tube, he was shot into one of the countless parallel, coexisting three-dimensional spaces that make up the Cosmic All. He was rescued by Mentor, who was operating through the mind of Sir Austin Cardynge, the Earth mathematician.
Returning to Thrale, he fomented a revolution, in which he killed Alcon and took his place as the Tyrant of Thrale. He then discovered that his Prime Minister, Fossten, who concealed his true appearance by means of a zone of hypnosis, had been Alcon's superior instead of his adviser. Neither quite ready for an open break, but both supremely confident of victory when that break should come, subtle hostilities began.
Returning to Thrale, he sparked a revolution, in which he killed Alcon and took his place as the ruler of Thrale. He then found out that his Prime Minister, Fossten, who hid his true appearance with a hypnosis barrier, was actually Alcon's superior, not his adviser. Neither was quite ready for an open conflict, but both felt extremely confident that they would win when that conflict occurred, leading to subtle hostilities.
Tyrant and Prime Minister planned and launched an attack upon Klovia, but just before engagement the hostilities between the two Boskonian leaders flared into an open fight for supremacy. After a terrific mental struggle, during the course of which the entire crew of the flagship died, leaving the Boskonian fleet at the mercy of the Patrol, Kinnison won. He did not know, of course, and never will know, either that Fossten was in fact an Eddorian or that it was Mentor who in fact overcame Fossten. Kinnison thought, and Mentor encouraged him to believe, that the Prime Minister was an Arisian who had been insane since youth, and that Kinnison himself killed Fossten without assistance. It is a mere formality to emphasize at this point that none of this information must ever become available to any mind below the third level; since to any entity able either to obtain or to read this report it will be obvious that such revealment would produce an inferiority complex which must inevitably destroy both the Galactic Patrol and the Civilization whose instrument it is.
Tyrant and the Prime Minister planned and launched an attack on Klovia, but just before the battle began, the conflict between the two Boskonian leaders erupted into an open fight for control. After an intense mental struggle, during which the entire crew of the flagship perished, leaving the Boskonian fleet vulnerable to the Patrol, Kinnison emerged victorious. He didn’t know, nor will he ever know, that Fossten was actually an Eddorian or that it was Mentor who ultimately defeated Fossten. Kinnison believed, and Mentor encouraged him to think, that the Prime Minister was an Arisian who had been insane since childhood, and that Kinnison himself killed Fossten without any help. It’s important to stress that none of this information should ever be made available to anyone below the third level; because to anyone capable of accessing or reading this report, it would be clear that such a disclosure would create an inferiority complex that would inevitably destroy both the Galactic Patrol and the civilization it serves.
With Fossten dead and with Kinnison already the Tyrant of Thrale, it was comparatively easy for the Patrol to take over. Nadreck drove the Onlonian garrisons insane, so that all fought to the death among themselves; thus rendering Onlo's mighty armament completely useless.
With Fossten dead and Kinnison already the Tyrant of Thrale, it was relatively easy for the Patrol to take control. Nadreck drove the Onlonian garrisons crazy, causing them to fight to the death against one another, which made Onlo's powerful weapons completely ineffective.
Then, thinking that the Boskonian War was over—encouraged, in fact, by Mentor so to think—Kinnison married Clarrissa MacDougall, established his headquarters upon Klovia and assumed his duties as Galactic Co-ordinator.
Then, thinking that the Boskonian War was over—actually encouraged by Mentor to believe so—Kinnison married Clarrissa MacDougall, set up his headquarters on Klovia, and took on his responsibilities as Galactic Co-ordinator.
Kimball Kinnison, while not, strictly speaking, a mutant, was the penultimate product of a prodigiously long line of selective, controlled breeding. So was Clarrissa MacDougall. Just what course the science of Arisia took in making those two what they are I can deduce, but I do not as yet actually know. Nor, for the purpose of this record, does it matter. Port Admiral Haynes and Surgeon General Lacy thought that they brought them together and promoted their romance. Let them think so—as agents, they did. Whatever the method employed, the result was that the genes of those two uniquely complementary penultimates were precisely those necessary to produce the first, and at present the only Third-Stage Lensmen.
Kimball Kinnison, while not exactly a mutant, was the result of an incredibly long history of selective, controlled breeding. The same goes for Clarrissa MacDougall. I can guess how the science of Arisia shaped them into who they are, but I don’t actually know for sure. And for the purposes of this record, it doesn't really matter. Port Admiral Haynes and Surgeon General Lacy believed they brought them together and encouraged their romance. Let them think that—after all, they acted like agents. Whatever method was used, the outcome was that the genes of those two uniquely complementary individuals were exactly what was needed to create the first, and currently the only, Third-Stage Lensmen.
I was born upon Klovia, as were, three or four Galactic-Standard years later, my four sisters—two pairs of twins. I had little babyhood, no childhood. Fathered and mothered by Second-Stage Lensmen, accustomed from infancy to wide-open two-ways with such beings as Worsel of Velantia, Tregonsee of Rigel IV, and Nadreck of Palain VII, it would seem obvious that we did not go to school. We were not like other children of our age; but before I realized that it was anything unusual for a baby who could scarcely walk to be computing highly perturbed asteroidal orbits as "mental arithmetic," I knew that we would have to keep our abnormalities to ourselves, insofar as the bulk of mankind and of Civilization was concerned.
I was born on Klovia, and three or four Galactic-Standard years later, my four sisters were born—two sets of twins. I had almost no babyhood or childhood. Being raised by Second-Stage Lensmen and exposed from a young age to incredible beings like Worsel of Velantia, Tregonsee of Rigel IV, and Nadreck of Palain VII, it was clear that we didn’t go to school. We were different from other kids our age, but before I even realized it was odd for a baby who could barely walk to be calculating complicated asteroids' orbits as "mental math," I understood that we needed to keep our differences to ourselves, at least as far as most people and society were concerned.
I traveled much; sometimes with my father or mother or both, sometimes alone. At least once each year I went to Arisia for treatment. I took the last two years of Lensmanship, for physical reasons only, at Wentworth Hall upon Tellus instead of upon my native Klovia—because upon Tellus the name Kinnison is not at all uncommon, while upon Klovia the fact that "Kit" Kinnison was the son of the Co-ordinator could not have been concealed.
I traveled a lot; sometimes with my dad or mom or both, and sometimes by myself. At least once a year, I went to Arisia for treatment. I took the last two years of Lensmanship for physical reasons at Wentworth Hall on Tellus instead of my home planet, Klovia—because on Tellus, the name Kinnison is pretty common, while on Klovia, everyone would know that "Kit" Kinnison was the son of the Co-ordinator.
I graduated, and with my formal enlensment this record properly begins. Much has been told elsewhere, notably in Smith's "History of Civilization"; but all such works are, and of necessity must be, pitifully incomplete.
I graduated, and with my formal education, this record properly begins. A lot has been discussed elsewhere, especially in Smith's "History of Civilization"; but all such works are, and have to be, unfortunately incomplete.
I have recorded this material as impersonally as possible, realizing fully that my sisters and I did only the work for which we were specifically developed and trained; even as you who read this will do that for which you shall have been developed and are to be trained.
I’ve documented this material in the most objective way I could, understanding completely that my sisters and I only did the work we were specifically designed and trained for; just like you who read this will do the work for which you have been developed and trained.
Respectfully submitted,
Christopher Kinnison, L3, Klovia.
Respectfully submitted,
Christopher Kinnison, L3, Klovia.
I.
I.
Galactic Co-ordinator Kimball Kinnison finished his second cup of Tellurian coffee, got up from the breakfast table, and prowled about in black abstraction. Twenty-odd years had changed him but little. He weighed the same, or a few pounds less; although a little of his mass had shifted downward from his mighty chest and shoulders. His hair was still brown, his stern face was only faintly lined. He was mature, with a conscious maturity which no young man can know.
Galactic Coordinator Kimball Kinnison finished his second cup of Tellurian coffee, got up from the breakfast table, and wandered around in deep thought. About twenty years had changed him very little. He weighed the same, or maybe a few pounds less; although some of his muscle had shifted downward from his broad chest and shoulders. His hair was still brown, and his serious face had only a few faint lines. He was mature, with a level of maturity that no young man can truly understand.
"Since when, Kim, did you think that you could get away with blocking me out of your mind?" Clarrissa Kinnison directed the thought, quietly. The years had dealt as lightly with the Red Lensman as with the Gray. She had been gorgeous, she was now magnificent. "This room is shielded, you know, against even the girls."
"Since when, Kim, did you think you could get away with blocking me out of your mind?" Clarrissa Kinnison thought to herself, quietly. The years had treated the Red Lensman as gently as they had the Gray. She had been beautiful; now she was stunning. "This room is shielded, you know, even against the girls."
"Sorry, Chris—I didn't mean it that way."
"Sorry, Chris—I didn't mean it like that."
"I know," she laughed. "Automatic. But you've had that block up for two solid weeks, except when you force yourself to keep it down, and that means that you're 'way, 'way off the beam."
"I know," she laughed. "Automatic. But you've had that guard up for two whole weeks, except when you make yourself let it down, and that means you're really, really off track."
"I've been thinking, incredible as it may seem."
"I've been thinking, amazing as it might sound."
"I know it. Let's have it—cold."
"I know it. Let’s get it—chilled."
"QX—you asked for it. Queer things have been going on all over. Inexplicable things ... no apparent reason."
"QX—you wanted it. Strange things have been happening everywhere. Unexplainable things ... for no obvious reason."
"Such as?"
"Like what?"
"Almost any kind of insidious deviltry you care to name. Disaffections, psychoses, mass hysterias, hallucinations; pointing toward a Civilization-wide epidemic of revolutions and uprisings for which there seems to be no basis or justification whatever."
"Just about any type of sneaky wrongdoing you can think of. Discontent, mental disorders, mass hysteria, hallucinations; indicating a nationwide epidemic of revolts and uprisings that appear to have no reason or justification at all."
"Why, Kim! How could there be? I haven't heard of anything like that!"
"Wow, Kim! How could that even happen? I haven't heard anything like that!"
"It hasn't got around. Each solar system thinks that it's a purely local condition, but it isn't. As Galactic Co-ordinator, with a broad view of the entire picture, my office would, of course, see such a thing before anyone else could. We saw it, and set out to nip it in the bud ... but—" He shrugged his shoulders and grinned wryly.
"It hasn’t spread widely. Each solar system believes it’s just a local issue, but it’s not. As Galactic Coordinator, with a comprehensive view of the whole situation, my office would naturally notice something like this before anyone else. We recognized it, and tried to tackle it right away ... but—" He shrugged and smiled ruefully.
"But what?" Clarrissa persisted.
"But why?" Clarrissa persisted.
"It didn't nip. We sent Lensmen to investigate, but none of them got to the first check-station. Then I asked our Second-Stage Lensmen—Worsel, Nadreck, and Tregonsee—to drop whatever they were doing and solve it for me. They struck it and bounced. They followed, and are still following, leads and clues galore, but they haven't got a millo's worth of results so far."
"It didn't get tricky. We sent our Lensmen to look into it, but none of them made it to the first checkpoint. Then I asked our Second-Stage Lensmen—Worsel, Nadreck, and Tregonsee—to stop whatever they were doing and solve it for me. They took a shot at it and bounced back. They’re following up on tons of leads and clues, but so far they haven’t gotten any significant results."
"What? You mean to say it's a problem they can't solve?"
"What? Are you saying it's a problem they can't fix?"
"That they haven't, to date," he corrected, absently. "And that 'gives me furiously to think'."
"That they haven't, so far," he corrected, distractedly. "And that 'makes me think a lot'."
"It would," she conceded, "and it also would make you itch to join them. Think at me, and it'll help you correlate. You should have gone over the data with me right at first."
"It would," she admitted, "and it would also make you want to join them. Think about me, and it'll help you connect the dots. You should have gone over the data with me from the start."
"I had reasons not to, as you'll see. But I'm stumped now, so here goes. We'll have to go away back, to before we were married. First: Mentor told me, quote, only your descendants will be ready for that which you now so dimly grope, unquote. Second: you were the only being ever able to read my thoughts without the aid of the Lens. Third: Mentor told us, when we asked him if it was QX for us to go ahead that our marriage was necessary, a choice of phraseology which bothered you somewhat at the time, but which I then explained as being in accord with his visualization of the Cosmic All. Fourth: the Patrol formula is to send the man best fitted for any job to do that job, and if he can't swing it, to send the Number One graduate of the current class of Lensmen. Fifth: a Lensman has got to use everything and everybody available, no matter what or who it is. I used even you, you remember, in that Lyrane affair and others. Sixth: Sir Austin Cardynge believed to the day of his death that we were thrown out of that hyperspatial tube, and out of space, deliberately."
"I had my reasons not to, as you'll see. But I'm stuck now, so here it goes. We need to go way back, to before we got married. First: Mentor told me, quote, only your descendants will be ready for what you’re now feeling your way toward, unquote. Second: you were the only person who could ever read my thoughts without the Lens. Third: when we asked Mentor if it was okay for us to move forward, he said our marriage was necessary, a choice of words that bothered you a bit at the time, but I explained it as being in line with his view of the Cosmic All. Fourth: the Patrol formula is to send the best-suited person for any job to do that job, and if they can’t handle it, to send the top graduate from the current class of Lensmen. Fifth: a Lensman has to use everything and everyone available, no matter what or who it is. I even used you, remember, in that Lyrane situation and others. Sixth: Sir Austin Cardynge believed until the day he died that we were intentionally thrown out of that hyperspatial tube, and out of space."
"Well, go on. I don't see much, if any connection."
"Well, go ahead. I don't see much, if any connection."
"You will, if you think of those six points in connection with our present predicament. Kit graduates next month, and he'll rank Number One of all Civilization, for all the tea in China."
"You will, if you consider those six points in relation to our current situation. Kit graduates next month, and he'll be ranked Number One in all Civilization, worth all the tea in China."
"Of course. But after all, he's a Lensman. He will insist upon being assigned to some problem; why not to that one?"
"Of course. But after all, he's a Lensman. He'll want to be assigned to some issue; why not that one?"
"You don't yet see what that problem is. I've been adding two and two together for weeks, and can't get any other answer than four. And if two and two are four, Kit has got to tackle Boskone—the real Boskone; the one that I never did and very probably never can reach."
"You still don't see what that problem is. I've been putting two and two together for weeks, and the only answer I can come up with is four. And if two and two make four, Kit has to deal with Boskone—the real Boskone; the one that I never managed to reach and probably never will."
"No, Kim—no!" she almost shrieked. "Not Kit, Kim—he's just a boy!"
"No, Kim—no!" she nearly shouted. "Not Kit, Kim—he's just a kid!"
Kinnison waited, wordless.
Kinnison waited silently.
She got up, crossed the room to him. He put his arm around her in the old but ever new gesture.
She got up and walked across the room to him. He wrapped his arm around her in that classic yet always fresh gesture.
"Lensman's load, Chris," he said, quietly.
"Lensman's load, Chris," he said softly.
"Of course," she replied then, as quietly. "It was a shock at first, coming after all these years, but ... if it has to be, it must. But he doesn't ... surely we can help him, Kim?"
"Of course," she replied quietly. "It was a shock at first, coming after all these years, but ... if it has to be, it has to be. But he doesn't ... surely we can help him, Kim?"
"Surely." The man's arm tightened. "When he hits space I go back to work. So do Nadreck and Worsel and Tregonsee. So do you, if your kind of a job turns up. And with us Gray Lensmen to do the blocking, and with Kit to carry the ball—" His thought died away.
"Of course." The man's grip tightened. "When he reaches space, I get back to work. So do Nadreck, Worsel, and Tregonsee. You will too, if a job comes up for someone like you. And with us Gray Lensmen handling the blocking, and Kit to take the lead—" His thought trailed off.
"I'll say so," she breathed. Then: "But you won't call me, I know, unless you absolutely have to ... and to give up you and Kit both ... why did we have to be Lensmen, Kim?" she protested, rebelliously. "Why couldn't we have been ground-grippers? You used to growl that thought at me before I knew what a Lens really meant—"
"I'll say so," she said breathlessly. Then: "But I know you won't call me unless you really have to ... and to give up both you and Kit ... why did we have to be Lensmen, Kim?" she said, feeling defiant. "Why couldn't we have been ground-grippers? You used to grumble about that idea before I even knew what a Lens really was—"
"Vell, some of us has got be der first violiners in der orchestra," Kinnison misquoted, in an attempt at lightness. "Ve can't all push vind t'rough der trombone."
"Well, some of us have to be the first violins in the orchestra," Kinnison misquoted, trying to lighten the mood. "We can't all blow through the trombone."
"I suppose that's true." The Red Lensman's somber air deepened. "Well, we were going to start for Tellus today, anyway, to see Kit graduate. This doesn't change that."
"I guess that's true." The Red Lensman's serious demeanor grew more intense. "Anyway, we were planning to leave for Tellus today to watch Kit graduate. This doesn’t change that."
And in a distant room four tall, shapely, auburn-haired, startlingly identical girls stared at each other briefly, then went en rapport; for their mother had erred greatly in saying that the breakfast room was screened against their minds. Nothing was or could be screened against them: they could think above, below, or, by sufficient effort, straight through any thought-screen that had ever been designed. Nothing in which they were interested was safe from them, and they were interested in practically everything.
And in a faraway room, four tall, attractive girls with auburn hair looked at each other for a moment, then connected; because their mom had made a big mistake by saying that the breakfast room was protected from their thoughts. Nothing was or could be protected from them: they could think over, under, or, with enough effort, right through any barrier that had ever been created. Nothing that caught their interest was safe from them, and they were interested in almost everything.
"Kay, we've got ourselves a job!" Kathryn, older by minutes than Karen, excluded pointedly the younger twins, Camilla and Constance—"Cam" and "Con".
"Hey Kay, we've got a job!" Kathryn, who was older by just a few minutes than Karen, deliberately left out the younger twins, Camilla and Constance—"Cam" and "Con".
"At last!" Karen exclaimed. "I've been wondering what we were born for, with nine-tenths of our minds so deep down that nobody except Kit even knows they're there and so heavily blocked that we can't let even each other in without a conscious effort. This is it. We'll go places now, Kat, and really do things."
"Finally!" Karen shouted. "I've been thinking about what we were meant for, with so much of our minds buried so deep that only Kit even knows they exist and so blocked that we can't connect with each other without making a real effort. This is it. We're going to make progress now, Kat, and actually accomplish things."
"What do you mean you'll go places and do things?" Con demanded indignantly. "Do you think for a second that you've got jets enough to blast us out of all the fun?"
"What do you mean you'll go places and do things?" Con asked indignantly. "Do you really think you have what it takes to blast us out of all the fun?"
"Certainly," Kat said, equably. "You're too young."
"Of course," Kat said calmly. "You're too young."
"We'll let you know what we're doing, though," Kay conceded, magnanimously. "You might even conceivably contribute an idea that we could use."
"We'll keep you updated on what we're doing," Kay agreed, graciously. "You might even come up with an idea that we could use."
"Ideas—phooey!" Con jeered. "A real idea would crack both of your skulls. You haven't any more plan than a—"
"Ideas—whatever!" Con mocked. "A real idea would smash both of your heads. You don't have any more of a plan than a—"
"Hush—shut up, everybody!" Kat commanded. "This is too new for any of us to have any worth-while ideas on, yet. Tell you what let's do—we'll all think this over until we're aboard the Dauntless, halfway to Tellus; then we'll compare notes and work out parts for all of us."
"Hush—everyone be quiet!" Kat ordered. "This is too fresh for any of us to have any good ideas about yet. How about this—we'll all think it over until we're on the Dauntless, halfway to Tellus; then we can share what we've come up with and figure out our roles."
They left Klovia that afternoon. Kinnison's personal superdreadnought, the mighty Dauntless—the fourth to bear that name—bored through intergalactic space. Time passed. The four young redheads convened.
They left Klovia that afternoon. Kinnison's personal superdreadnought, the powerful Dauntless—the fourth ship to have that name—plowed through intergalactic space. Time went by. The four young redheads gathered.
"I've got it all worked out!" Kat burst out enthusiastically, forestalling the other three. "There will be four Second-Stage Lensmen at work and there are four of us. We'll circulate—percolate, you might say—around and throughout the Universe. We'll pick up ideas and facts and feed 'em to our Gray Lensmen; surreptitiously, sort of, so they'll think they got them themselves. I'll take Dad for my partner. Kay can have—"
"I've figured it all out!" Kat exclaimed excitedly, cutting off the other three. "There will be four Second-Stage Lensmen working, and there are four of us. We'll move around—and you could say, percolate—throughout the Universe. We'll gather ideas and facts and pass them on to our Gray Lensmen; kind of secretly, so they'll believe they discovered them on their own. I'll team up with Dad. Kay can have—"
"You'll do no such thing!" A general clamor rose, Con's thought being the most insistent. "If we aren't going to work with all, indiscriminately, we'll draw lots or throw dice to see who gets him, so there!"
"You won't do that at all!" A loud uproar erupted, with Con's opinion being the loudest. "If we're not going to collaborate with everyone, no matter what, we'll draw straws or roll dice to decide who gets him, so there!"
"Seal it, snake-hips, please," Kat requested, sweetly. "It is trite but true to say that infants should be seen, but not heard. This is serious business—"
"Seal it, snake-hips, please," Kat said sweetly. "It's a cliché, but it's true that babies should be seen and not heard. This is serious stuff—"
"Snake-hips! Infant!" Con interrupted, venomously. "Listen, my steatopygous and senile friend!" Constance measured perhaps a quarter of an inch less in gluteal circumference than did her oldest sister; she tipped the beam at one scant pound below her weight. "You and Kay are a year older than Cam and me, of course; a year ago your minds were stronger than ours. That condition, however, no longer exists. We, too are grown up. And to put that statement to test, what can you do that I can't?"
"Snake-hips! Baby!" Con interrupted sharply. "Listen, my curvy and ancient friend!" Constance was maybe a quarter of an inch shorter in hip circumference than her oldest sister; she tipped the scale at just one pound less than her weight. "You and Kay are a year older than Cam and me, of course; a year ago your minds were sharper than ours. That’s not the case anymore. We're adults too. So, to challenge that statement, what can you do that I can't?"
"This." Kathryn extended a bare arm, narrowed her eyes in concentration. A Lens materialized about her wrist; not attached to it by a metallic bracelet, but a bracelet in itself, clinging sentiently to the smooth, bronzed skin. "I felt that in this work there would be a need. I learned to satisfy it. Can you match that?"
"This." Kathryn extended her bare arm, narrowing her eyes in concentration. A Lens appeared around her wrist; not connected by a metallic bracelet, but a bracelet in itself, clinging intelligently to her smooth, bronzed skin. "I sensed that there would be a need for this in my work. I learned how to meet it. Can you match that?"
They could. In a matter of seconds the three others were similarly enlensed. They had not previously perceived the need, but after Kat had pointed it out to them by demonstrating the manner of its satisfaction, their acquisition of full knowledge had been virtually instantaneous.
They could. In just a few seconds, the other three were similarly equipped. They hadn't realized the need before, but after Kat highlighted it by showing them how it worked, their understanding was almost immediate.
"Or this, then." Kat's Lens disappeared.
"Or this, then." Kat's Lens vanished.
So did the other three. Each knew that no hint of this knowledge or of this power should ever be revealed; each knew that in any moment of stress the Lens of Civilization could be and would be hers.
So did the other three. Each one understood that no sign of this knowledge or this power should ever be shown; each one knew that in any moment of pressure, the Lens of Civilization could be and would be hers.
"Logic, then, and by reason, not by chance." Kat changed her tactics. "I still get Dad. Everybody knows who works best with whom. You, Con, have tagged around after Worsel all your life. You used to ride him instead of a horse—"
"Logic, then, and by reason, not by chance." Kat switched up her approach. "I still get Dad. Everyone knows who pairs well with whom. You, Con, have followed Worsel your whole life. You used to ride him instead of a horse—"
"She still does," Kay snickered. "He pretty nearly split her in two a while ago in a seven-gravity pull-out, and she almost broke a toe when she kicked him for it."
"She still does," Kay laughed. "He almost broke her in half a while ago in a seven-gravity pull-out, and she nearly broke a toe when she kicked him for it."
"Worsel is nice," Con defended herself vigorously. "He's more human than most people, and more fun, as well as having infinitely more brains. And you can't talk, Kay—what anyone can see in that Nadreck, so cold-blooded that he freezes you even through armor at twenty feet—you'll get as cold and hard as he is if you don't—"
"Worsel is great," Con defended herself passionately. "He's more human than most people and way more fun, plus he's way smarter. And you can't say anything, Kay—what could anyone possibly see in that Nadreck, who's so cold-blooded he can freeze you even through armor from twenty feet away—you'll end up as cold and hard as he is if you don't—"
"And every time Cam gets within five hundred parsecs of Tregonsee she goes into silences with him, contemplating raptly the whichnesses of the why," Kathryn interrupted, forestalling recriminations. "So you see, by the process of elimination, Dad has got to be mine."
"And every time Cam gets within five hundred parsecs of Tregonsee, she falls silent with him, deeply pondering the reasons behind everything," Kathryn interrupted, cutting off any potential blame. "So you see, through process of elimination, Dad has to be mine."
Since they could not all have him it was finally agreed that Kathryn's claim would be allowed and, after a great deal of discussion and argument, a tentative plan of action was developed. In due course, the Dauntless landed upon Tellus. The Kinnisons went to Wentworth Hall, the towering, chromium-and-glass home of the Tellurian cadets of the Galactic Patrol. They watched the impressive ceremonies of graduation. Then, as the new Lensmen marched out to the magnificent cadences of "Our Patrol," the Gray Lensman, leaving his wife and daughters to their own devices, made his way to his Tellurian office in Prime Base.
Since they couldn’t all have him, it was finally decided that Kathryn's claim would be accepted and, after a lot of discussion and debate, a tentative plan of action was formed. Eventually, the Dauntless landed on Tellus. The Kinnisons went to Wentworth Hall, the tall, chromium-and-glass home of the Tellurian cadets of the Galactic Patrol. They watched the impressive graduation ceremonies. Then, as the new Lensmen marched out to the stunning music of "Our Patrol," the Gray Lensman, leaving his wife and daughters to their own activities, headed to his Tellurian office at Prime Base.
"Lensman Kinnison, sir, by appointment," his secretary announced, and as Kit strode in Kinnison stood up and came to attention.
"Lensman Kinnison, sir, by appointment," his secretary announced, and as Kit walked in, Kinnison got up and stood at attention.

"Christopher Kinnison of Klovia, sir, reporting for duty." Kit saluted crisply.
"Christopher Kinnison from Klovia, sir, ready for duty." Kit saluted sharply.
The Co-ordinator returned the salute punctiliously. Then: "At rest, Kit. I'm proud of you, mighty proud. We all are. The women want to heroize you, but I had to see you first, to clear up a few things. An explanation, an apology, and, in a sense, commiseration."
The Coordinator returned the salute respectfully. Then: "At ease, Kit. I'm really proud of you, very proud. We all are. The women want to celebrate you, but I needed to talk to you first, to clear up a few things. An explanation, an apology, and, in a way, sympathy."
"An apology, sir?" Kit was dumfounded. "Why, that's unthinkable—"
"An apology, sir?" Kit was stunned. "Why, that's unimaginable—"
"For not graduating you in Gray. It has never been done, but that was not the reason. Your commandant, the Board of Examiners, and Port Admiral LaForge, all recommended it, agreeing that none of us is qualified to give you either orders or directions. I blocked it."
"For not graduating you in Gray. It's never happened before, but that wasn't the reason. Your commandant, the Board of Examiners, and Port Admiral LaForge all recommended it, agreeing that none of us is qualified to give you orders or directions. I blocked it."
"Of course. For the son of the Co-ordinator to be the first Lensman to graduate Unattached would smell—especially since the fewer who know of my peculiar characteristics the better. That can wait, sir."
"Of course. For the son of the Coordinator to be the first Lensman to graduate Unattached would raise eyebrows—especially since the fewer people who know about my unique traits, the better. That can wait, sir."
"Not too long, sir." Kinnison's smile was a trifle forced. "Here's your Release and your kit, and a request signed by the whole Galactic Council that you go to work on whatever it is that is going on. We rather think that it heads up somewhere in the Second Galaxy, but that is little more than a guess."
"Not too long, sir." Kinnison's smile was a bit strained. "Here's your Release and your kit, along with a request signed by the entire Galactic Council for you to start looking into whatever is happening. We suspect it might be originating from somewhere in the Second Galaxy, but that's really just a guess."
"I can start out from Klovia, then? Good—I can go home with you."
"I can leave from Klovia, right? Great—I can go home with you."
"That's the idea, and on the way there you can study the situation. For your information we have made up a series of tapes, carrying not only all the available data, but also our attempts at analysis and interpretation. Complete and up to date, except for one item which came in this morning.... I can't figure out whether it means anything or not, but it should be inserted—" Kinnison paced the room, scowling.
"That's the plan, and along the way, you can review the situation. Just so you know, we've created a set of recordings that include all the available data as well as our analysis and interpretation attempts. They're complete and current, except for one item that just came in this morning.... I can't tell if it means anything, but it should be included—" Kinnison paced the room, looking frustrated.
"Might as well tell me. I'll insert it when I scan the tape."
"Might as well just tell me. I'll add it when I go through the tape."
"QX. I don't suppose that you have heard much about the unusual shipping trouble we have been having, particularly in the Second Galaxy?"
"QX. I guess you haven't heard much about the strange shipping issues we've been experiencing, especially in the Second Galaxy?"
"Rumor—gossip only. I'd rather have it straight."
"Rumor—just gossip. I’d prefer to hear the truth."
"It's all on the tapes, so I'll give you the barest possible background. Losses are twenty-five percent above normal. A few highly peculiar derelicts have been found—peculiar in that they seem to have been wrecked by madmen. Not only wrecked, but gutted, and with every mark of identification obliterated. We can't determine even origin or destination, since the normal disappearances outnumber the abnormal ones by four to one. On the tapes this is lumped in with the other psychoses you'll learn about. But this morning they found another derelict, in which the chief pilot had scrawled 'WARE HELL HOLE IN SP' across a plate. Connection with the other derelicts, if any, is obscure. If the pilot was sane when he wrote that message, it means something—but nobody knows what. If he wasn't, it doesn't, any more than the dozens of obviously senseless—excuse me, I should say apparently senseless—messages which we have already recorded."
"It's all on the tapes, so I’ll give you the briefest background. Losses are twenty-five percent higher than normal. A few really strange derelicts have been found—strange in that they seem to have been wrecked by crazy people. Not just wrecked, but completely stripped, with every trace of identification removed. We can’t even figure out the origin or destination, since the normal disappearances outnumber the abnormal ones by four to one. On the tapes, this is grouped with other psychoses you'll learn about. But this morning, they found another derelict, where the chief pilot had scribbled 'WARE HELL HOLE IN SP' on a plate. The connection to the other derelicts, if there is one, is unclear. If the pilot was sane when he wrote that message, it means something—but nobody knows what. If he wasn’t, it doesn’t mean anything, just like the dozens of obviously nonsensical—excuse me, I should say apparently nonsensical—messages we've already recorded."
"Hm-m-m. Interesting. I'll bear it in mind and tape it in its place. But speaking of peculiar things, I've got one I wanted to discuss with you—getting my Release was such a shock that I almost forgot it. Reported it, but nobody thought it was anything important. Maybe ... probably ... it isn't. Tune your mind up to the top of the range ... there, did you ever hear of a race that thinks upon that band?"
"Hmm. Interesting. I'll keep that in mind and store it away. But since we're on the topic of strange things, there's something I wanted to talk about—getting my Release was such a surprise that I almost forgot about it. I reported it, but nobody considered it important. Maybe ... probably ... it isn't. Focus your thoughts to the highest level ... there, have you ever heard of a race that thinks within that frequency?"
"I never did—it's practically unreachable. Why—have you?"
"I never did—it's nearly impossible to reach. Why—have you?"
"Yes and no. Only once, and that only a touch. Or, rather, a burst; as though a hard-held mind-block had exploded, or the creature had just died a violent, instantaneous death. Not enough of it to trace, and I never found any more of it."
"Yeah and no. Just once, and even then, it was only a brief moment. Or, more like an explosion; as if a tightly held mental barrier had shattered, or the creature had suddenly met a violent death. There wasn’t enough to follow up on, and I never came across any more of it."
"Any characteristics? Bursts can be quite revealing at times."
"Any traits? Bursts can be pretty telling at times."
"A few. It was on my last break-in trip in the Second Galaxy, out beyond Thrale—about here." Kit marked the spot upon a mental chart. "Mentality very high—precisionist grade—possibly beyond social needs, as the planet was a bare desert. No thought of cities. Nor of water, although both may have existed without appearing in that burst of thought. The thing's bodily structure was RTSL, to four places. No gross digestive tract—atmosphere-nourished or an energy-converter, perhaps. The sun was a blue giant. No spectral data, of course, but at a rough guess I'd say somewhere around class B5 or A0. Although the temperature was normal for him, it was quite evident that the planet would be unbearably hot for us. That's all I could get."
"A few. It was during my last break-in trip in the Second Galaxy, out beyond Thrale—around here." Kit marked the spot on a mental map. "The intelligence level was very high—precisionist grade—possibly beyond social needs, since the planet was just a barren desert. No signs of cities. No water, although both might have existed without showing up in that thought burst. The physical structure was RTSL, to four decimal places. No visible digestive system—perhaps it was nourished by the atmosphere or was an energy-converter. The sun was a blue giant. No spectral data, of course, but I’d roughly estimate it around class B5 or A0. Even though the temperature was normal for him, it was clear that the planet would be unbearably hot for us. That’s all I could gather."
"That's a lot to get from one burst. It doesn't mean a thing to me right now—but I'll watch for a chance to fit it in somewhere."
"That's a lot to get from one burst. It doesn’t mean anything to me right now—but I’ll keep an eye out for a chance to use it somewhere."
How casually they dismissed as unimportant that cryptic burst of thought! But if they both, right then, together, had been authoritatively informed that the description fitted exactly the physical form forced upon its denizens in its summer by the accurately-described, simply hellish climatic conditions obtaining during that season on noxious planet Ploor, the information would still not have seemed important to either of them—then.
How casually they dismissed that mysterious thought as unimportant! But if they had both been told right then and there that the description perfectly matched the physical form imposed on its inhabitants during the brutal summer climate on the toxic planet Ploor, the information still wouldn’t have seemed significant to either of them—at that moment.
"Anything else we ought to discuss before night?" The older Lensman went on without a break.
"Is there anything else we should talk about before night?" The older Lensman continued without a pause.
"Not that I know of."
"Not that I know."
"You said your Release was a shock. Ready for another one?"
"You said your release was surprising. Ready for another one?"
"I can't think of a harder one. I'm braced—blast!"
"I can't think of a tougher one. I'm ready—damn!"
"I have turned the office over to Vice Co-ordinator Maitland for the duration. I am authorized to tell you that Worsel, Nadreck, Tregonsee, and I have resumed our Unattached status and, while conducting our own various investigations, will be holding ourselves ready at all times for your call."
"I’ve handed the office over to Vice Coordinator Maitland for now. I’m allowed to let you know that Worsel, Nadreck, Tregonsee, and I have gone back to our Unattached status and, while we’re handling our own investigations, we’ll always be ready for your call."
"That is a shock, sir. Thanks. I hadn't expected ... it's really overwhelming. And you said something about commiserating me?" Kit lifted his red-thatched head—all of Clarrissa's children had inherited her startling hair—and gray eyes stared level into eyes of gray.
"That is a shock, sir. Thanks. I didn't expect ... it's really overwhelming. And you mentioned something about commiserating with me?" Kit lifted his red hair—all of Clarrissa's children had inherited her striking hair—and gray eyes locked onto gray eyes.
"In a sense, yes. You'll understand later. Well, you'd better go hunt up Chris and the kids. After the festivities are over—"
"In a way, yes. You'll get it soon. Anyway, you should go find Chris and the kids. After the celebrations are done—"
"I'd better cut them, hadn't I?" Kit asked, eagerly. "Don't you think it'd be better for me to get started right away?"
"I should probably cut them, right?" Kit asked eagerly. "Don't you think it would be better for me to get started right away?"
"Not on your life!" Kinnison demurred, positively. "Do you think that I want that mob of strawberry blondes to snatch me bald-headed? You're in for a large day and evening of lionization, so take it like a man. As I was about to say, as soon as the brawl is over tonight we'll all board the Dauntless and do a flit for Klovia, where I'll fit you out with everything you want. Until then, son—" Two big hands gripped.
"Not a chance!" Kinnison replied firmly. "Do you really think I want that crowd of strawberry blondes to pull all my hair out? You're in for a full day and night of being celebrated, so just deal with it. As I was saying, once the fight is over tonight, we'll all get on the Dauntless and head out to Klovia, where I'll get you everything you need. Until then, buddy—" Two big hands clasped.
"But I'll be seeing you around the Hall!" Kit exclaimed. "You can't—"
"But I'll be seeing you around the Hall!" Kit exclaimed. "You can't—"
"No, I can't dodge the lionizing, either," Kinnison grinned, "but we won't be in a sealed and shielded room. So, son ... I'm proud of you."
"No, I can't avoid the praise, either," Kinnison grinned, "but we won't be in a sealed and protected room. So, son ... I'm proud of you."
"Right back at you, big fellow—and thanks a million." Kit strode out and, a few minutes later, the Co-ordinator did likewise.
"Right back at you, big guy—and thanks a ton." Kit walked out, and a few minutes later, the Co-ordinator did the same.
The "brawl," which was the gala event of the Tellurian social year, was duly enjoyed by all the Kinnisons. The Dauntless made an uneventful flight to Klovia. Arrangements were made. Plans, necessarily sketchy and elastic, were laid.
The "brawl," which was the highlight of the Tellurian social year, was thoroughly enjoyed by all the Kinnisons. The Dauntless had a smooth flight to Klovia. Arrangements were set up. Plans, somewhat vague and flexible, were made.
Two big, gray-clad Lensmen stood upon the deserted spacefield, between two blackly indetectable speedsters. Kinnison was massive, sure, calm with the poised calmness of maturity, experience, and power. Kit, with the broad shoulders and narrow waist of his years and training, was taut and tense, fiery, eager to come to grips with Civilization's foes.
Two large, gray-uniformed Lensmen stood on the empty spacefield, between two stealthy speedsters. Kinnison was big, confident, and steady with the composed calmness that comes from maturity, experience, and strength. Kit, with his broad shoulders and slim waist from his training, was tense and eager, ready to confront the enemies of Civilization.
"Remember, son," Kinnison said as the two gripped hands. "There are four of us old-timers, who have been through the mill, on call every second. If you can use any one of us or all of us, don't wait to be too sure—snap out a call."
"Remember, son," Kinnison said as they shook hands. "There are four of us veterans, who have been through a lot, ready to help at any moment. If you need any of us or all of us, don’t hesitate—just make the call."
"I know, Dad ... thanks. The four best, ablest Lensmen that ever lived. One of you may make a strike before I do. In fact, with the thousands of leads we have, and with no way of telling how many of them are false—deliberately or otherwise—and with your vastly greater experience and knowledge, you probably will. So remember that it cuts both ways. If any of you can use me at any time, I'll come at max."
"I know, Dad... thanks. The four best and most capable Lensmen there ever were. One of you might succeed before I do. In fact, considering all the leads we have, and the uncertainty about how many of them are false—on purpose or not—and given your much greater experience and knowledge, you likely will. So keep in mind that it goes both ways. If any of you ever need me, I'll be there right away."
"QX. We'll get in touch from time to time, anyway. Clear ether, Kit!"
"QX. We'll keep in touch every now and then, anyway. Clear skies, Kit!"
"Clear ether, Dad!" What a wealth of meaning there was in that low-voiced, simple exchange of the standard bon voyage!
"Clear skies, Dad!" What a depth of meaning lay in that quiet, simple exchange of the usual farewell!
For minutes, as his speedster flashed through space, Kinnison thought only of the boy. He knew exactly how he felt; he relived in memory the supremely ecstatic moments of his own first launching into space as a Gray Lensman. But Kit had the stuff—stuff which he, Kinnison, knew that he could know nothing about—and he had his own job to do. Therefore, methodically, like the old campaigner he was, he set about it.
For several minutes, as his fast ship zipped through space, Kinnison thought only about the boy. He remembered exactly how he felt; he recalled the incredibly joyful moments of his own first launch into space as a Gray Lensman. But Kit had what it took—something Kinnison knew he couldn't fully understand—and he had his own mission to focus on. So, methodically, like the experienced veteran he was, he got to work.
II.
II.
Worsel the Velantian, hard and durable and long-lived as Velantians are, had in twenty Tellurian years changed scarcely at all. As the first Lensman and the only Second-Stage Lensman of his race, the twenty years had been very fully occupied indeed.
Worsel the Velantian, tough and long-lasting like all Velantians, had barely changed at all in twenty Earth years. As the first Lensman and the only Second-Stage Lensman of his race, those twenty years had been quite busy for him.
He had solved the varied technological and administrative problems incident to the welding of Velantia into the structure of Civilization. He had worked at the many tasks which, in the opinion of the Galactic Council, fitted his peculiarly individual talents. In his "spare" time he had sought out in various parts of two galaxies, and had ruthlessly slain, widely-scattered groups of the Overlords of Delgon.
He had addressed the different technological and administrative challenges involved in integrating Velantia into the framework of Civilization. He had engaged in many tasks that, according to the Galactic Council, matched his uniquely individual skills. In his "free" time, he had traveled to various locations across two galaxies and had mercilessly eliminated widely-dispersed groups of the Overlords of Delgon.
Continuously, however, he had taken an intense sort of godfatherly interest in the Kinnison children, particularly in Kit and in the youngest daughter, Constance; finding in the girl a mentality surprisingly akin to his own.
Continuously, though, he had taken a strong, godfatherly interest in the Kinnison kids, especially in Kit and the youngest daughter, Constance; seeing in her a mindset surprisingly similar to his own.
When Kinnison's call came he answered it. He was now out in space; not in the Dauntless, but in a ship of his own, under his own command. And what a ship! The Velan was manned entirely by beings of his own race. It carried Velantian air, at Velantian temperature and pressure. Above all, it was built and powered for inert maneuvering at the atrocious accelerations employed by the Velantians in their daily lives; and Worsel loved it with enthusiasm and elan.
When Kinnison's call came through, he picked it up. He was now out in space; not aboard the Dauntless, but in his own ship, commanding it himself. And what a ship it was! The Velan was crewed entirely by members of his own race. It held Velantian air, at the right Velantian temperature and pressure. Most importantly, it was designed and equipped for smooth movements at the extreme accelerations that Velantians used in their everyday lives; and Worsel was absolutely thrilled with it.
He had worked conscientiously and well with Kinnison and with other entities of Civilization. He and they had all known, however, that he could work more efficiently alone or with others of his own kind. Hence, except in emergencies, he had done so; and hence, except in similar emergencies, he would so continue to do.
He had worked diligently and effectively with Kinnison and other groups in Civilization. However, he and they all knew that he could be more efficient on his own or with others like him. So, unless there were emergencies, he had chosen to work independently; and unless similar emergencies arose, he would keep doing the same.
Out in deep space, Worsel entwined himself, in a Velantian's idea of comfort, in an intricate series of figures-of-eight around a couple of parallel bars and relaxed in thought. There were insidious deviltries afoot, Kinnison had said. There were disaffections, psychoses, mass hysterias, and—Oh happy thought!—hallucinations. There were also certain revolutions and sundry uprisings, which might or might not be connected or associated with the disappearances of a considerable number of persons of note. In these latter, however, Worsel of Velantia was not interested. He knew without being told that Kinnison would pounce upon such blatant manifestations as those. He himself would work upon something much more to his taste.
Out in deep space, Worsel curled up in a Velantian's version of comfort, weaving himself in a complex series of figure-eights around a couple of parallel bars and relaxed in thought. There were sneaky problems brewing, Kinnison had said. There were discontent, psychological issues, mass hysteria, and—oh, what a delightful thought!—hallucinations. There were also some revolutions and various uprisings, which might or might not be connected to the disappearances of several notable individuals. In these cases, however, Worsel of Velantia wasn’t interested. He knew without being told that Kinnison would jump on such obvious issues. He preferred to focus on something much more suited to his interests.
Hallucination was Worsel's dish. He had been born among hallucinations, had been reared in an atmosphere of them. What he did not know about hallucinations could have been printed in pica upon the smallest one of his scales.
Hallucination was Worsel's specialty. He had grown up surrounded by hallucinations, raised in an environment filled with them. What he didn't know about hallucinations could be printed in large type on the tiniest one of his scales.
Therefore, isolating one section of his multicompartmented mind from all of the others and from any control over his physical self, he sensitized it to receive whatever hallucinatory influences might be abroad. Simultaneously he set two other parts of his mind to watch over the one to be victimized; to study and to analyze whatever figments of obtrusive mentality might be received and entertained.
Therefore, he separated one part of his complex mind from the rest and from any control over his body, making it sensitive to whatever hallucinations might be around. At the same time, he had two other parts of his mind keep an eye on the one that was vulnerable; to observe and analyze whatever intrusive thoughts might be accepted and entertained.
Then, using all of his naturally tremendous sensitivity and reach, all of his Arisian supertraining, and the full power of his Lens, he sent his mental receptors out into space. And then, although the thought is staggeringly incomprehensible to any Tellurian or near-human mind, he relaxed. For day after day, as the Velan hurtled randomly through the void, he hung blissfully slack upon his bars, most of his mind a welter of the indescribable thoughts in which it is a Velantian's joy to revel.
Then, using all of his incredible sensitivity and reach, all of his Arisian training, and the full power of his Lens, he extended his mental receptors out into space. And then, even though the idea is incomprehensibly overwhelming to any Earthling or near-human mind, he relaxed. Day after day, as the Velan sped randomly through the emptiness, he hung blissfully loose on his bars, most of his mind a jumble of indescribable thoughts that bring a Velantian joy.
Suddenly, after an unknown interval of time, a thought impinged: a thought under the impact of which Worsel's body tightened so convulsively as to pull the bars a foot out of true. Overlords! The unmistakable, the body- and mind-paralyzing hunting call of the Overlords of Delgon!
Suddenly, after an unknown amount of time, a thought hit him: a thought that made Worsel's body tighten so intensely that it pulled the bars a foot out of alignment. Overlords! The unmistakable, body- and mind-freezing hunting call of the Overlords of Delgon!
His crew had not felt it yet, of course; nor would they feel it. If they should, they would be worse than useless in the conflict to come; for they could not withstand that baneful influence. Worsel could. Worsel was the only Velantian who could.
His crew hadn’t felt it yet, of course; and they wouldn’t feel it. If they did, they would be worse than useless in the upcoming conflict; they couldn’t handle that toxic influence. Worsel could. Worsel was the only Velantian who could.
"Thought-screens all!" his commanding thought snapped out. Then, even before the order could be obeyed: "As you were!"
"Thought-screens all!" his commanding thought shot out. Then, even before the order could be followed: "As you were!"
For the impenetrably shielded chambers of his mind told him immediately that this was no ordinary Delgonian hunting call; or rather, that it was more than that. Much more.
For the completely protected areas of his mind told him right away that this was no ordinary Delgonian hunting call; or rather, that it was more than that. Much more.
Mixed with, superimposed upon the overwhelming compulsion which generations of Velantians had come to know so bitterly and so well, were the very things for which he had been searching—hallucinations! To shield his crew or, except in the subtlest possible fashion himself, simply would not do. Overlords everywhere knew that there was at least one Velantian Lensman who was mentally their master; and, while they hated this Lensman tremendously, they feared him even more. Therefore, even though a Velantian was any Overlord's choicest prey, at the first indication of an ability to disobey their commands the monsters would cease entirely to radiate; would withdraw at once every strand of their far-flung mental nets into the fastnesses of their superbly hidden and indetectably shielded cavern.
Mixed in with the overwhelming pressure that generations of Velantians had bitterly experienced were the very things he had been searching for—hallucinations! Protecting his crew, or himself in any subtle way, just wouldn’t be enough. Overlords everywhere knew there was at least one Velantian Lensman who mentally dominated them; and while they deeply hated this Lensman, they feared him even more. So, even though a Velantian was the ultimate target for any Overlord, the moment there was any sign of disobedience, these monsters would completely stop radiating; they would immediately pull back every strand of their extensive mental nets into the secure depths of their expertly hidden and undetectably shielded cavern.
Therefore Worsel allowed the inimical influence to take over, not only the total minds of his crew, but the unshielded portion of his own as well. And stealthily, so insidiously that no mind affected could discern the change, values gradually grew vague and reality began to alter.
Therefore, Worsel let the hostile influence take over, not just the entire minds of his crew, but also the unprotected part of his own mind. And quietly, so subtly that no affected mind could notice the change, values started to blur and reality began to shift.
Loyalty dimmed, and esprit de corps. Family ties and pride of race waned into meaninglessness. All concepts of Civilization, of the Galactic Patrol, degenerated into strengthless gossamer, into oblivion. And to replace those hitherto mighty motivations there crept in an overmastering need for, and the exact method of obtainment of, whatever it was that was each Velantian's deepest, most primal desire. Each crewman stared into an individual visiplate whose substance was to him as real and as solid as the metal of his ship had ever been; each saw upon that plate whatever it was that, consciously or unconsciously, he wanted to see. Noble or base, lofty or low, intellectual or physical, spiritual or carnal, it made no difference to the Overlords. Whatever each victim most wanted was there.
Loyalty faded, along with team spirit. Family bonds and racial pride lost their significance. All ideas of civilization and the Galactic Patrol fell apart into fragile nothingness. Instead of those once-powerful motivations, a dominating need for—and the exact ways to get—whatever each Velantian wanted most deeply took hold. Each crew member looked into a personal visiplate, which felt just as real and solid as the metal of his ship had ever been; each saw on that screen whatever he consciously or unconsciously wanted to see. Whether noble or low, lofty or base, intellectual or physical, spiritual or carnal, it didn’t matter to the Overlords. Whatever each victim desired most was right there.
No figment was, however, even to the Velantians, actual or tangible. It was a picture upon a plate, transmitted from a well-defined point in space. There, upon that planet, was the actuality, eagerly awaited; toward and to that planet must the Velan go at maximum blast. Into that line and at that blast, then, the pilots set their vessel without orders, and each of the crew saw upon his nonexistent plate that she had so been set. If she had not been, if the pilots had been able to offer any resistance, the crew would have slaughtered them out of hand. As it was, all was well.
No illusion was, however, even to the Velantians, real or tangible. It was an image on a screen, sent from a specific point in space. There, on that planet, was the reality, eagerly anticipated; to that planet the Velan must race at full speed. Into that trajectory and at that speed, then, the pilots directed their ship without orders, and each crew member saw on his non-existent screen that it had been set. If it hadn't been set, if the pilots had been able to resist, the crew would have taken them out immediately. As it was, everything was fine.
And Worsel, watching the affected portion of his mind accept these hallucinations as truths and admiring unreservedly the consummate artistry with which the work was being done, was well content. He knew that only a hard, solidly-driven, individually probing beam could force him to reveal the fact that a portion of his mind and all of his bodily control were being withheld; he knew that unless he made a slip no such investigation was to be expected. He would not slip.
And Worsel, watching the part of his mind accept these hallucinations as truths and admiring the incredible artistry with which it was all being done, felt satisfied. He knew that only a strong, focused beam could make him reveal that part of his mind and all of his bodily control were being kept hidden; he understood that unless he made a mistake, no such investigation was likely. He wouldn’t make a mistake.
No human or near-human mind can really understand how the mind of a Velantian works. A Tellurian can, by dint of training, learn to do two or more unrelated things simultaneously. But neither is done very well and both must be more or less routine in nature. To perform any original or difficult operation successfully he must concentrate upon it, and he can concentrate upon only one thing at a time. A Velantian, however, can and does concentrate upon half-a-dozen totally unrelated things at once; and, with his multiplicity of arms, hands, and eyes, he can perform simultaneously an astonishing number of completely independent operations.
No human or near-human mind can truly grasp how a Velantian's mind functions. A Tellurian can, with training, learn to do two or more unrelated tasks at the same time. But neither is done particularly well, and both tasks need to be somewhat routine. To execute any original or complex task successfully, he must focus on it, and he can only focus on one thing at a time. In contrast, a Velantian can and does focus on half a dozen completely unrelated things simultaneously; and with his multiple arms, hands, and eyes, he can perform an incredible number of independent operations at the same time.
The Velantian is, however, in no sense such a multiple personality as would exist if six or eight human heads were mounted upon one body. There is no joint tenancy about it. There is only one ego permeating all those pseudoindependent compartments; no contradictory orders are, or ordinarily can be, sent along the bundled nerves of the spinal cord. While individual in thought and in the control of certain actions, the mind-compartments are basically, fundamentally, one mind.
The Velantian is not a multiple personality in the way that it would be if six or eight human heads were attached to one body. There’s no shared ownership here. There’s only one ego that flows through all those seemingly independent parts; no conflicting commands are, or usually can be, sent through the bundled nerves of the spinal cord. While it has individual thoughts and controls certain actions, the mind compartments are essentially, fundamentally, one mind.
Worsel had progressed beyond his fellows. He was different; unique. In fact, the perception of the need of the ability to isolate certain compartments of his mind, to separate them completely from his real ego, was one of the things which had enabled him to become the only Second-Stage Lensman of his race.
Worsel had advanced further than his peers. He was different; one of a kind. In fact, his ability to isolate certain parts of his mind and completely separate them from his true self was one of the reasons he became the only Second-Stage Lensman of his race.
L2 Worsel, then, held himself aloof and observed appreciatively everything that went on. More, he did a little hallucinating of his own. Under the Overlords' compulsion he was supposed to remain motionless, staring raptly into an imaginary visiplate at an orgiastic saturnalia designed to make even his burly ego quail. Therefore, as far as the occupied portion of his mind and through it the Overlords were concerned, he did so. Actually, however, his body moved purposefully about, under the direction only of his own grim will; moved to make ready against the time of landing.
L2 Worsel kept his distance and watched everything that happened with appreciation. He even indulged in a bit of his own daydreaming. The Overlords had ordered him to stay still, staring intently at a nonexistent screen showing a wild celebration meant to intimidate even his strong ego. So, as far as the Overlords were concerned, he complied. But in reality, his body moved purposefully on its own, guided only by his determined will, preparing for the time of landing.
For Worsel knew that his opponents were not fools. He knew that they reduced their risks to the irreducible minimum. He knew that the mighty Velan, with her prodigious weaponry, would not be permitted to be within even extreme range of the cavern, if the Overlords could possibly prevent it, when that cavern's location was revealed. His was the task to see to it that she was not only within range, but was at the very portal.
For Worsel understood that his opponents were far from foolish. He realized that they minimized their risks to the smallest possible level. He was aware that the powerful Velan, with her incredible firepower, would not be allowed to get anywhere near the cave if the Overlords could help it, once its location was disclosed. His mission was to ensure that she was not just within range, but right at the entrance.
The speeding spaceship approached the planet—went inert—matched the planetary intrinsic—landed. Her air locks opened. Her crew rushed out headlong, sprang into the air, and arrowed away en masse. Then Worsel, Grand Master of Hallucinations, went blithely but intensely to work.
The speeding spaceship neared the planet—stopped—matched the planet's atmosphere—and landed. Her airlocks opened. The crew rushed out, leaped into the air, and shot off together. Then Worsel, Grand Master of Hallucinations, got to work cheerfully but with great focus.
Thus, although he stayed at the Velan's control board instead of joining the glamoured Velantians in their rush over the unfamiliar terrain, and although the huge spaceship lifted lightly into the air and followed them, neither the fiend-possessed part of Worsel's mind, nor any of his fellows, nor through them the many Overlords, knew that either of those two things was happening. To that part of his mind Worsel's body was, under full control, flying along upon tireless wings in the midst of the crowd; to it and to all of the other Velantians and hence to the Overlords the Velan lay motionless and deserted upon the rocks far below and behind them. They watched the vessel diminish in apparent size in the distance; they saw it vanish beyond the horizon!
Thus, even though he stayed at the Velan's control board instead of joining the enchanted Velantians in their rush over the unfamiliar terrain, and even though the massive spaceship lifted smoothly into the air and followed them, neither the demon-possessed part of Worsel's mind, nor any of his companions, nor through them the many Overlords, were aware that either of those things was happening. To that part of his mind, Worsel's body was fully controlled, flying effortlessly on tireless wings among the crowd; to it and to all the other Velantians and thus to the Overlords, the Velan appeared motionless and abandoned on the rocks far below and behind them. They watched the vessel shrink in size in the distance; they saw it disappear beyond the horizon!
This was eminently tricky work, necessitating as it did such nicety of synchronization with the Delgonian's own compulsions as to be indetectable even to the monsters themselves. Worsel was, however, an expert, one of the Universe's best; he went at the task not with any doubt whatever as to his ability to carry it through, but only with an uncontrollably shivering physical urge to come to grips with the hereditary enemies of his race.
This was extremely tricky work, requiring such precise synchronization with the Delgonian's own urges that it couldn't even be detected by the monsters themselves. However, Worsel was an expert, one of the best in the Universe; he approached the task without any doubt about his ability to succeed, but with an overwhelming physical urge to confront the hereditary enemies of his race.
The fliers shot downward, and as a boulder-camouflaged entrance yawned open in the mountain's side Worsel closed up and shot out a widely enveloping zone of thought-screen. The Overlords' control vanished. The Velantians, realizing instantaneously what had happened, flew madly back to their ship. They jammed through the air locks, flashed to their posts. The cavern's gates had closed by then, but the monsters had no screen fit to cope with the Velan's tremendous batteries. Down they went. Barriers, bastions, and a considerable portion of the mountain's face flamed away in fiery vapor or flowed away in molten streams. Through reeking atmosphere, over red-hot debris, the armored Velantians flew to the attack.
The fliers dove down, and as a boulder-covered entrance opened wide in the side of the mountain, Worsel closed up and released a broad zone of thought-screen. The Overlords' control disappeared. The Velantians, instantly realizing what had happened, raced back to their ship. They squeezed through the air locks and rushed to their posts. By then, the cavern's gates had closed, but the monsters had no defense strong enough to withstand the Velan's massive firepower. Down they went. Barriers, strongholds, and a large part of the mountain’s exterior disintegrated into fiery vapor or flowed away in molten streams. Through the toxic atmosphere and over the red-hot debris, the armored Velantians flew into the attack.
The Overlords had, however, learned. This cavern, as well as being hidden, was defended by physical, as well as mental, means. There were inner barriers of metal and of force, there were armed and armored defenders who, dominated completely by the monsters, fought with the callous fury of the robots which in effect they were. Nevertheless, against all opposition, the attackers bored relentlessly in. Heavy semiportables blazed, hand-to-hand combat raged in the narrow confines of that noisome tunnel. In the wavering, glaring light of the contending beams and screens, through the hot and rankly stinking steam billowing away from the reeking walls, the invaders fought their way. One by one and group by group the defenders died where they stood and the Velantians drove onward over their burned and dismembered bodies.
The Overlords had, however, figured things out. This cave, besides being hidden, was protected by both physical and mental defenses. There were inner barriers made of metal and energy, and there were armed and armored fighters who, completely controlled by the monsters, fought with the ruthless intensity of the robots they essentially were. Still, despite all the opposition, the attackers pressed on relentlessly. Heavy semiportables fired away, and hand-to-hand combat erupted in the cramped space of that foul tunnel. In the flickering, blinding light of the battling beams and screens, through the hot and foul-smelling steam rising from the disgusting walls, the invaders fought their way through. One by one and group by group, the defenders fell where they stood, and the Velantians pushed forward over their charred and mutilated bodies.
Into the cavern at last. To the Overlords. Overlords! They, who for ages had preyed upon generation after generation of helpless Velantians, torturing their bodies to the point of death and then devouring ghoulishly the life-forces which their mangled bodies could no longer retain!
Into the cave at last. To the Overlords. Overlords! They, who for ages had preyed upon generation after generation of helpless Velantians, torturing their bodies to the point of death and then ghoulishly devouring the life-forces that their mangled bodies could no longer hold!
Worsel and his crew threw away their DeLameters. Only when it is absolutely necessary does any Velantian use any artificial weapon against any Overlord of Delgon. He is too furious, too berserk, to do so. He is scared to the core of his being; the cold grue of a thousand fiendishly eaten ancestors has bred that fear into the innermost atoms of his chemistry. But against that fear, negating and surmounting it, is a hatred of such depth and violence as no human being has ever known; a starkly savage hatred which can be even partially assuaged only by the ultimate of violences—by rending his foe apart member by member; by actually feeling the Delgonian's life depart under gripping hands and tearing talons and constricting body and shearing tail.
Worsel and his crew tossed aside their DeLameters. A Velantian only resorts to using an artificial weapon against an Overlord of Delgon when absolutely necessary. They're too enraged, too wild, to do otherwise. Deep down, they're terrified; the cold fear of countless vengeful ancestors has embedded itself into the very atoms of their being. But against that fear, rising above it, is a hatred so deep and violent that no person has ever fully experienced it; a brutally primal rage that can only be somewhat eased through the ultimate violence—by tearing their enemy apart piece by piece; by actually feeling the Delgonian's life slip away under their grasping hands, ripping talons, constricting body, and shearing tail.
It is best, then, not to go into too fine detail as to this conflict. Since there were almost a hundred of the Delgonians—insensately vicious fighters when cornered—and since their physical make-up was very similar to the Velantians' own, many of Worsel's troopers died. But since the Velan carried over fifteen hundred and since less than half of her personnel could even get into the cavern, there were plenty of them left to operate and to fight the spaceship.
It’s better not to dive into too much detail about this conflict. With almost a hundred Delgonians—brutal fighters when they’re cornered—and given that they physically resembled the Velantians, many of Worsel’s soldiers lost their lives. However, since the Velan had over fifteen hundred crew members and less than half of them could even fit into the cavern, there were still plenty left to operate and fight the spaceship.
Worsel took great care that the opposing commander was not killed with his minions. The fighting over, the Velantians chained this sole survivor into one of his own racks and stretched him out into immobility. Then, restraining by main strength the terrific urge to put the machine then and there to its fullest ghastly use, Worsel cut his screen, threw a couple of turns of tail around a convenient anchorage, and faced the Boskonian almost nose to nose. Eight weirdly stalked eyes curled out as he drove a probing thought-beam against the monster's shield.
Worsel made sure that the opposing commander wasn’t killed along with his men. Once the fighting ended, the Velantians chained this last survivor to one of his own racks and stretched him out so he couldn't move. Then, fighting the intense urge to use the machine right then and there in a horrific way, Worsel cut his screen, wrapped a couple of turns of his tail around a nearby anchor, and positioned himself almost face to face with the Boskonian. Eight oddly stalked eyes emerged as he directed a probing thought-beam at the creature’s shield.
"I could use this—or this—or this," Worsel gloated. As he touched various wheels and levers the chains hummed slightly, sparks flashed, the rigid body twitched. "I am not going to, however—yet. While you are still sane I want to take and I shall take your total knowledge."
"I could use this—or this—or this," Worsel bragged. As he played with different wheels and levers, the chains buzzed a little, sparks flew, and the stiff body jerked. "I'm not going to, though—not yet. While you're still in your right mind, I want to take your entire knowledge, and I will."
And face to face, eye to eye, brain to brain, that silently and motionlessly cataclysmic battle was joined.
And face to face, eye to eye, brain to brain, that silent and still cataclysmic battle began.
As has been said, Worsel had hunted down and had destroyed many Overlords. He had hunted them, however, like vermin. He had destroyed them with duodec bombs and with primary or secondary beams; or, at closest hand, with talons, teeth, and tail. He had not engaged an Overlord mind to mind for over twenty Tellurian years; not since he and Nadreck of Palain VII had captured alive the leaders of those who had been preying upon Helen's matriarchs and warring upon Civilization from their cavern upon Lyrane II. Nor had he ever dueled one mentally to death without powerful support; Kinnison or some other Lensman had always been near by.
As mentioned, Worsel had tracked down and taken out many Overlords. However, he had hunted them like pests. He had destroyed them using duodec bombs and with primary or secondary beams; or, up close, with his claws, teeth, and tail. He hadn’t engaged in a mental battle with an Overlord for over twenty Earth years; not since he and Nadreck from Palain VII had captured alive the leaders of those who had been preying on Helen's matriarchs and waging war against Civilization from their cave on Lyrane II. Nor had he ever dueled one mentally to death without strong backup; Kinnison or some other Lensman had always been nearby.
But Worsel would need no help. He was not shivering in eagerness now. His body was as still as the solid rock upon which most of it lay; every chamber and every faculty of his mind was concentrated upon battering down or cutting through the Overlords' stubbornly-held shields.
But Worsel didn’t need any help. He wasn’t trembling with excitement now. His body was as motionless as the solid rock beneath him; every part of his mind was focused on breaking through or cutting past the Overlords' firmly held shields.
Brighter and brighter glowed the Velantian's Lens, flooding the gloomy cave with pulsating polychromatic light. Alert for any possible trickery, guarding intently against any possibility of riposte or of counterthrust, Worsel leveled bolt after bolt of mental force. He surrounded the monster's mind with a searing, constricting field. He squeezed; relentlessly and with appalling power.
Brighter and brighter glowed the Velantian's Lens, flooding the gloomy cave with pulsating polychromatic light. Alert for any possible trickery, guarding intently against any possibility of a counterattack, Worsel launched bolt after bolt of mental force. He surrounded the monster's mind with a searing, constricting field. He squeezed; relentlessly and with terrifying power.
The Overlord was beaten. He, who had never before encountered a foreign mind or a vital force stronger than his own, knew that he was beaten. He knew that at long last he had met that half-fabulous Velantian Lensman with whom not one of his monstrous race could cope. He knew starkly, with the chilling, numbing terror possible only to such a being in such a position, that he was doomed to die the same hideous and long-drawn-out death which he had dealt out to so many others. He did not read into the mind of the bitterly vengeful, the implacably ferocious Velantian any more mercy or any more compunction than was actually there. He knew perfectly that of either there was no slightest trace. Knowing these things with the blackly appalling certainty that was his, he quailed.
The Overlord was defeated. He had never faced a foreign mind or a force more powerful than his own, and now he understood he was defeated. He realized he had finally encountered that legendary Velantian Lensman whom none of his monstrous kind could handle. He was starkly aware, with the chilling and numbing fear only possible for someone in his position, that he was doomed to suffer the same horrific and prolonged death he had inflicted on so many others. He didn’t see any mercy or regret in the intensely vengeful, relentlessly fierce Velantian beyond what was truly there. He was fully aware that there was no trace of either. Knowing this with the darkly terrifying certainty that gripped him, he faltered.
There is an old but cogent saying that the brave man dies only once, the coward a thousand times. That Overlord, during that lethal combat, died more times than it is pleasant to contemplate. Nevertheless, he fought. A cornered rat will fight, and the Delgonian was not a rat—not exactly, that is, an ordinary rat. His mind was competent, keen, powerful, and utterly unscrupulous; and he brought to the defense of his beleaguered ego every resource of skill and of trickery and of sheer power at his command—in vain. Deeper and deeper, in spite of everything he could do, the relentless Lensman squeezed and smashed and cut and pried and bored; little by little the Overlord gave mental ground.
There’s an old saying that a brave person dies only once, while a coward dies a thousand times. That Overlord, during that deadly fight, died more times than anyone would want to think about. Still, he kept fighting. A trapped rat will fight back, and the Delgonian wasn’t a rat—not exactly a typical rat, anyway. His mind was sharp, capable, powerful, and completely ruthless; he called on every bit of skill, cunning, and raw power he had to defend his cornered pride—all in vain. No matter what he did, the relentless Lensman kept squeezing, smashing, slicing, prying, and boring deeper and deeper; little by little, the Overlord lost mental ground.
"This station is here ... this staff is here ... I am here, then ... to wreak damage ... all possible damage ... to the commerce ... and to the personnel of ... the Galactic Patrol ... and Civilization in every aspect—" the Overlord admitted haltingly as Worsel's pressure became intolerable; but such admissions, however unwillingly made or however revealing in substance, were not enough.
"This station is here ... this staff is here ... I am here, then ... to cause harm ... all possible harm ... to the commerce ... and to the personnel of ... the Galactic Patrol ... and Civilization in every way—" the Overlord confessed hesitantly as Worsel's pressure became unbearable; but such confessions, no matter how reluctantly given or how revealing in content, weren't enough.
Worsel wanted, and would be satisfied with nothing less than, his enemy's total knowledge. Hence he maintained his assault until, unable longer to withstand the frightful battering, the Overlord's barriers went completely down; until every convolution of his brain and every track of his mind lay open, helplessly exposed to Worsel's poignant scrutiny. Then, scarcely taking time to gloat over his victim, Worsel did scrutinize.
Worsel wanted nothing less than his enemy's complete understanding. So he kept his attack going until, unable to endure the intense pressure any longer, the Overlord's defenses finally crumbled; until every twist and turn of his brain and every path of his thoughts were laid bare, helplessly exposed to Worsel's sharp examination. Then, barely pausing to take satisfaction in his victory, Worsel did closely examine.
Period.
Period.
Hurtling through space, toward a definite objective now, Worsel studied and analyzed some of the things which he had just learned. Worsel was not surprised that this Overlord had not known any of his superior officers in things or enterprises Boskonian; that he did not consciously know even that he had been obeying orders or that he had superiors. That technique, by this time, was familiar enough. The Boskonian psychologists were able operators; to attempt to unravel the unknowable complexities of their subconscious compulsions would be a sheer waste of time.
Hurtling through space, heading toward a clear goal now, Worsel studied and analyzed some of the things he had just learned. Worsel wasn’t surprised that this Overlord didn’t recognize any of his superiors in Boskonian matters or activities; he wasn’t even aware that he had been following orders or that he had superiors. That technique was well-known by now. The Boskonian psychologists were skilled operators; trying to unravel the unknowable complexities of their subconscious impulses would be a complete waste of time.
What the Overlords had been doing, however, was clear enough. That outpost had indeed been wreaking havoc with Civilization's commerce. Ship after ship had been lured from its course; had been compelled to land upon this barren planet. Some of those vessels had been destroyed; some of them had been stripped and rifled as though by pirates of old; some of them had been set upon new courses with hulls, mechanical equipment, and cargoes untouched. No crewman or passenger, however, escaped unscathed; even though only ten percent of them died in the Overlordish fashion which Worsel knew so well.
What the Overlords were up to was pretty clear. That outpost had definitely been causing chaos for Civilization's trade. Ship after ship had been diverted from its path and forced to land on this desolate planet. Some of those vessels had been destroyed, others had been looted as if by pirates from the past, and some had been sent back on their way with their hulls, machinery, and cargo untouched. But no crew member or passenger escaped without some harm; even though only ten percent of them died in the Overlord way that Worsel was so familiar with.
The Overlord himself had wondered why they had not been able to kill them all. He knew that such forbearance was unnatural, was against all instinct and training. He knew that they wanted, intensely enough, to kill every one of their victims; that their greedy lust for life-force simply could not be sated as long as life-force was to be had. He knew only that something, none of them knew what, limited their actual killing to ten percent of the bag.
The Overlord himself had questioned why they couldn’t kill them all. He understood that this kind of restraint was unnatural, going against all instincts and training. He knew they desperately wanted to eliminate each of their victims; their intense craving for life-force could never be satisfied as long as life-force was available. All he knew was that, for reasons none of them understood, their actual killing was limited to ten percent of the total.
Worsel grinned wolfishly at that thought, even while he was admiring the quality of the psychology which could impress such a compulsion as that upon such rapacious hellions as those. That was the work of the Boskonian higher-ups, who knew that ten percent was the limit above which the deaths would have been too revealing to the statisticians of the Galactic Patrol.
Worsel grinned like a wolf at that thought, even as he admired the skill of the psychology that could impose such a compulsion on such greedy creatures. That was the work of the Boskonian higher-ups, who understood that ten percent was the threshold beyond which the deaths would have been too obvious to the statisticians of the Galactic Patrol.
The other ninety percent, however, the Delgonians had "played with"—a procedure which, although less satisfying to the Overlords than the ultimate treatment, was not very different in so far as the victims' egos were concerned. For none of them emerged from the ordeal with any memory of what had happened, or of what or who he had ever been. They were not all completely mad; some were only partially so. All had, however, been—altered. Changed; shockingly transformed. No two were alike. Each Overlord, it appeared, had striven with all of his ultra-hellish ingenuity to excel his fellows in the manufacture of an outrageous something whose like had never been seen in or upon any land or sea or air or throughout any reach of space.
The other ninety percent, however, the Delgonians had "played with"—a process that, while less satisfying to the Overlords than the final treatment, wasn't too different when it came to the victims' sense of self. None of them came out of the experience with any memory of what had happened or who they had ever been. They weren't all completely insane; some were just partially so. However, all had been—altered. Changed; shockingly transformed. No two were the same. Each Overlord, it seemed, had used all of their twisted creativity to outdo one another in creating a bizarre something unlike anything ever seen on land, sea, air, or anywhere in space.
These and many other facts and items Worsel had studied carefully. He was now heading for the region in which the Patrol's computers had figured that the "Hell Hole in Space" must lie. The planet he had just left, the Overlords he had just slain, were not the original Hell Hole; could have had nothing to do with it. Too far apart—they were not in the same possible volume of space.
These and many other facts and details Worsel had looked into carefully. He was now making his way to the area where the Patrol's computers had determined the "Hell Hole in Space" should be. The planet he had just left and the Overlords he had just defeated were not the original Hell Hole; they couldn't have had anything to do with it. They were too far apart—they weren't in the same possible volume of space.
Worsel knew now, though, what the Hell Hole in Space really was. It was a cavern of Overlords. It simply couldn't be anything else. And, in himself and his crew and his mighty Velan he, Worsel of Velantia, Overlord-slayer par excellence of two galaxies, had in ample measure everything it took to extirpate any number of Overlords. With what he had just learned and with what he was so calmly certain he could do, the Hell Hole in Space would take no more toll. Wherefore Worsel, coiled loosely around his hard bars, relaxed in happily planful thought. And in a couple of hours a solid, clear-cut thought impinged upon his Lens.
Worsel understood now what the Hell Hole in Space really was. It was a lair of Overlords. It couldn't be anything else. And with himself, his crew, and his powerful Velan, Worsel of Velantia, the ultimate Overlord-slayer of two galaxies, had everything he needed to eliminate any number of Overlords. With what he had just discovered and his calm confidence in what he could achieve, the Hell Hole in Space wouldn't take any more victims. So, Worsel, loosely coiled around his hard bars, relaxed in happy, strategic thought. In a couple of hours, a clear and solid idea struck his Lens.
"Worsel! Con calling. What goes on there, fellow old snake? You've stuck that sharp tail of yours into some of my business—I hope!"
"Worsel! What's up? What's going on over there, old friend? I hope you haven't gotten involved in my business with that sharp tail of yours!"
III.
III.
Each of the Second-Stage Lensmen had exactly the same facts, the same data, upon which to theorize and from which to draw conclusions. Each had shared his experiences, his findings, and his deductions and inductions with all of the others. They had discussed minutely, in wide-open four-ways, every phase of the Boskonian problem. Nevertheless the approach of each to that problem and the point of attack chosen by each was individual and characteristic.
Each of the Second-Stage Lensmen had exactly the same facts and data to theorize from and draw conclusions. They had all shared their experiences, findings, and deductions with one another. They had discussed every aspect of the Boskonian problem in detail, openly meeting in fours. Yet, each person’s approach to that problem and the point of attack they each chose were unique and reflected their individual characteristics.
Kimball Kinnison was by nature forthright; direct. As has been seen, he could use the approach circuitous if necessary, but he much preferred and upon every possible occasion employed the approach direct. He liked plain, unambiguous clues much better than obscure ones; the more obvious and factual the clue was, the better he liked it.
Kimball Kinnison was naturally straightforward and direct. As we've seen, he could take a roundabout approach if needed, but he preferred to be direct whenever he could. He liked clear, straightforward clues much more than vague ones; the more obvious and factual the clue was, the more he appreciated it.
He was now, therefore, heading for Antigan IV, the scene of the latest and apparently the most outrageous of a long series of crimes of violence. He didn't know much about it; the request had come in through regular channels, not via Lens, that he visit Antigan and take personal charge of the investigation of the supposed murder of the Planetary President.
He was now on his way to Antigan IV, the site of the most recent and seemingly the most shocking in a long string of violent crimes. He didn’t know much about it; the request had come through official channels, not via Lens, asking him to visit Antigan and take personal charge of the investigation into the alleged murder of the Planetary President.
As his speedster flashed through space the Gray Lensman mulled over in his mind the broad aspects of this crime wave. It was spreading far and wide, and the wider it spread and the intenser it became the more vividly one salient fact stuck out. Selectivity—distribution. The solar systems of Thrale, Velantia, Tellus, Klovia, and Palain had not been affected. Thrale, Tellus, and Klovia were full of Lensmen. Velantia, Rigel, Palain, and a good part of the time Klovia, were the working headquarters of Second-Stage Lensmen. It seemed, then, that the trouble was roughly in inverse ratio to the numbers or the abilities of the Lensmen in the neighborhood. Something, therefore, that Lensmen—particularly Second-Stage Lensmen—were bad for. That was true, of course, for all crime. Nevertheless, this seemed to be a special case.
As his high-speed ship zipped through space, the Gray Lensman reflected on the broad aspects of the crime wave. It was spreading everywhere, and the wider it got and the more intense it became, the more one clear fact stood out. Selectivity—distribution. The solar systems of Thrale, Velantia, Tellus, Klovia, and Palain hadn’t been affected. Thrale, Tellus, and Klovia were packed with Lensmen. Velantia, Rigel, Palain, and a good part of the time Klovia were the primary bases for Second-Stage Lensmen. It seemed that the trouble was roughly in inverse proportion to the numbers or abilities of the Lensmen in the area. This was something that Lensmen—especially Second-Stage Lensmen—were apparently a problem for. That was true for all crime, of course. However, this seemed to be a special case.

And when he reached his destination he found out that it was. The planet was seething. Its business and its everyday activities seemed to be almost paralyzed. Martial law had been declared; the streets were practically deserted except for thick-clustered groups of heavily-armed guards. What few people were abroad were furtive and sly; slinking hastily along with their fear-filled eyes trying to look in all directions at once.
And when he arrived at his destination, he discovered that it was. The planet was in turmoil. Its businesses and daily activities appeared almost frozen. Martial law had been imposed; the streets were nearly empty except for tightly clustered groups of heavily armed guards. The few people out were secretive and sly, hurriedly moving with fear in their eyes, trying to glance in every direction at once.
"QX, Wainwright, go ahead," Kinnison directed brusquely when, alone with the escorting Patrol officers in a shielded car, he was being taken to the Capitol grounds. "There's been too much secrecy—pussyfooting—about the whole affair. Spill it, please."
"QX, Wainwright, go ahead," Kinnison said sharply when, alone with the escorting Patrol officers in a protected car, he was being taken to the Capitol grounds. "There's been too much secrecy—tiptoeing—about this whole situation. Just tell me what's going on, please."
"Very well, sir," and Wainwright told his tale. Things had been happening for months. Little things, but disturbing. Then murders and kidnapings and unexplained disappearances had begun to increase. The police forces had been falling farther and farther behind. The usual cries of incompetence and corruption had been raised, only further to confuse the issue. Circulars—dodgers—hand-bills appeared all over the planet; from where nobody knew. The keenest detectives could find no clue to papermakers, printers, or distributors. The usual inflammatory, subversive propaganda—"Down with the Patrol!" "Give us back our freedom!" and so on—but, because of the high tension already prevailing, the stuff had been unusually effective in breaking down the morale of the citizenry as a whole.
"Alright, sir," Wainwright began his story. A lot had been going on for months. Small things, but unsettling. Then the murders, kidnappings, and mysterious disappearances started to rise. The police were becoming increasingly overwhelmed. The usual accusations of incompetence and corruption had emerged, only adding to the confusion. Flyers—handbills—popped up all over the planet; from sources unknown. The sharpest detectives couldn’t find any leads on the paper makers, printers, or distributors. The typical inflammatory, subversive messages—“Down with the Patrol!” “Give us back our freedom!” and so on—but due to the already high tension, this propaganda had been surprisingly effective at undermining the morale of the population as a whole.
"Then this last thing. For two solid weeks the whole world was literally plastered with the announcement that at midnight on the thirty-fourth of Dreel—you're familiar with our calendar, I think?—President Renwood would disappear. Two weeks warning—daring us." Wainwright got that far and stopped.
"Then this last thing. For two whole weeks, the entire world was literally covered with the announcement that at midnight on the thirty-fourth of Dreel—you're familiar with our calendar, I think?—President Renwood would vanish. Two weeks' notice—challenging us." Wainwright got that far and stopped.
"Well, go on. He disappeared, I know. How? What did you fellows do to prevent it? Why all the secrecy?"
"Well, go ahead. He vanished, I get it. How? What did you guys do to stop it? Why all the secrecy?"
"If you insist, I'll have to tell you, of course, but I'd rather not." Wainwright flushed uncomfortably. "You wouldn't believe it. Nobody could. I wouldn't believe it myself if I hadn't been there. I'd rather you'd wait, sir, and let the Vice President tell you, in the presence of the Treasurer and the others who were on duty that night."
"If you really want to know, I’ll tell you, but I’d prefer not to." Wainwright blushed, feeling uneasy. "You won’t believe it. No one would. I wouldn’t believe it myself if I hadn’t seen it. I’d rather you wait, sir, and let the Vice President explain it, along with the Treasurer and the others who were on duty that night."
"Um-m-m ... I see ... maybe." Kinnison's mind raced. "That's why nobody would give me details? Afraid I wouldn't believe it ... that I'd think they'd been—" He stopped. "Hypnotized" would have been the next word, but that would have been jumping at conclusions. Even if true, there was no sense in airing that hypothesis—yet.
"Um-m-m ... I see ... maybe." Kinnison's mind was racing. "Is that why no one would share the details? Afraid I wouldn't believe it ... that I'd think they’d been—" He paused. "Hypnotized" was going to be the next word, but that would have been jumping to conclusions. Even if it were true, there was no point in bringing up that theory—yet.
"Not afraid, sir. They knew that you wouldn't believe it."
"Not scared, sir. They knew you wouldn't believe it."
After entering Government Reservation they went, not to the president's private quarters, but into the Treasury and down into the subbasement housing the most massive, the most utterly impregnable vault of the planet. There the nation's most responsible officers told Kinnison, with their entire minds as well as their tongues, what had happened.
After entering Government Reservation, they didn't head to the president's private quarters but went to the Treasury and down into the subbasement that held the largest, most impenetrable vault on the planet. There, the nation’s top officials explained to Kinnison, with both their words and their full attention, what had happened.
Upon that black day business had been suspended. No visitors of any sort had been permitted to enter the Reservation. No one had been allowed to approach the president except old and trusted officers about whose loyalty there could be no question. Airships and spaceships had filled the sky. Troops, armed with semiportables or manning fixed-mount heavy stuff, had covered the grounds. At five minutes before midnight Renwood, accompanied by four secret service men, had entered the vault, which was thereupon locked by the treasurer. All the cabinet members saw them go in, as did the attendant corps of specially-selected guards. Nevertheless, when the treasurer opened the vault at five minutes after midnight, the five men were gone. No trace of any one of them had been found from that time on.
On that dark day, all business was put on hold. No visitors of any kind were allowed to enter the Reservation. Only trusted and long-serving officers, whose loyalty was unquestionable, were permitted to approach the president. Airships and spaceships filled the sky. Troops, armed with semi-portable weapons or operating heavy fixed-mounted guns, patrolled the grounds. At five minutes before midnight, Renwood, along with four secret service agents, entered the vault, which was then locked by the treasurer. All the cabinet members and the specially-chosen guards saw them go in. However, when the treasurer opened the vault at five minutes after midnight, the five men were gone. No trace of any of them has been found since that time.
"And that—every word of it—is TRUE!" the assembled minds yelled as one, all unconsciously, into the mind of the Lensman.
"And that—every word of it—is TRUE!" the gathered crowd shouted in unison, all unknowingly, into the mind of the Lensman.
During all this telling Kinnison had been searching mind after mind; inspecting each minutely for the telltale marks of mental surgery. He found none. No hypnosis. This thing had happened, exactly as they told it. Now, convinced of that fact, his eyes clouded with foreboding, he sent out his sense of perception and studied the vault itself. Millimeter by cubic millimeter he scanned the innermost details of its massive structure—the concrete, the neo-carballoy, the steel, the heat-conductors and the closely-spaced gas cells. He traced the intricate wiring of the networks of alarms. Everything was sound. Everything functioned. Nothing had been disturbed.
During all this storytelling, Kinnison had been probing one mind after another; examining each one closely for signs of mental manipulation. He found none. No hypnosis. What happened was exactly as they described. Now, convinced of this fact and filled with a sense of dread, he extended his perception and examined the vault itself. Millimeter by cubic millimeter, he scrutinized the smallest details of its massive structure—the concrete, the neo-carballoy, the steel, the heat conductors, and the closely spaced gas cells. He traced the complex wiring of the alarm networks. Everything was intact. Everything worked. Nothing had been tampered with.
The sun of this system, although rather on the small side, was intensely hot; this planet, Four, was a long way out. Pretty close to Cardynge's limit ... or the Boskonians had improved their technique—tightened up their controls. A tube, of course ... for all the tea in China it had to be a tube. Kinnison sagged; for the first time in his life the indomitable Gray Lensman showed his years and more.
The sun of this system, while on the smaller side, was extremely hot; this planet, Four, was far out. Pretty close to Cardynge's limit ... or maybe the Boskonians had gotten better at their technique—tightened their controls. A tube, of course ... it had to be a tube, no matter what. Kinnison slumped; for the first time in his life, the unstoppable Gray Lensman showed his age and more.
"I know that it happened." His voice was grim, quiet, as he spoke to the still protesting men. "I also know how it was done, but that's all."
"I know it happened." His voice was serious and soft as he spoke to the still protesting men. "I also know how it was done, but that's all."
"HOW?" they demanded, practically in one voice.
"HOW?" they asked, almost in unison.
"A hyperspatial tube," and Kinnison went on to explain, as well as he could, the functioning of a thing which could not be grasped intrinsically by any nonmathematical three-dimensional mind.
"A hyperspatial tube," Kinnison continued to explain, as best as he could, the workings of something that could not be fully understood by any nonmathematical three-dimensional mind.
"But what can we or you or anybody else do about it?" the treasurer asked, numbly.
"But what can we, you, or anyone else do about it?" the treasurer asked, feeling numb.
"Nothing whatever." Kinnison's voice was flat. "When it's gone, it's gone. Where does the light go when a lamp goes out? No more trace. No more way—no way whatever—of tracing it. Hundreds of millions of planets in this galaxy, as many in the Second. Millions and millions of galaxies. All that in one Universe—our own universe. And there are an infinite number—too many to be expressed, let alone to be grasped—of universes, side by side, like pages in a book except thinner, in the hyperdimension. So you can figure out for yourselves the chances of ever finding either President Renwood or the Boskonians who took him—so close to zero as to be indistinguishable from zero absolute."
"Nothing at all." Kinnison's voice was flat. "When it’s gone, it’s gone. Where does the light go when a lamp goes out? There's no trace left. No way—no way at all—to trace it. There are hundreds of millions of planets in this galaxy, just as many in the Second. Millions and millions of galaxies. All of this in one Universe—our own universe. And there are an infinite number—too many to count, let alone understand—of universes, side by side, like pages in a book but thinner, in the hyperdimension. So you can imagine the chances of ever finding either President Renwood or the Boskonians who took him—they're so close to zero that they’re practically indistinguishable from absolute zero."
The treasurer was crushed. "Do you mean to say that there is no protection at all from this thing? That they can keep on doing away with us just as they please? The nation is going mad, sir, day by day—one more such occurrence and we will be a planet of maniacs."
The treasurer was devastated. "Are you saying there’s absolutely no protection from this? That they can continue to eliminate us however they want? The nation is losing its mind, sir, day by day—one more incident like this and we'll be a world full of lunatics."
"Oh, no—I didn't say that." The tension lightened. "Just that we can't do anything about the president and his aides. The tube can be detected while it is in place, and anyone coming through it can be shot as soon as he can be seen. What you need is a couple of Rigellian Lensmen, or Ordoviks. I'll see to it that you get them. I don't think, with them here, that they will even try to repeat." He did not add what he knew somberly to be a fact, that the enemy would go elsewhere, to some other planet not protected by a Lensman able to perceive the intangible structure of a sphere of pure force.
"Oh, no—I didn't say that." The tension eased. "Just that we can't do anything about the president and his aides. The tube can be detected while it's in place, and anyone coming through it can be shot as soon as they can be seen. What you need is a couple of Rigellian Lensmen or Ordoviks. I'll make sure you get them. I don't think, with them here, that they'll even try to attempt it again." He didn't mention what he grimly knew to be true, that the enemy would just move on to another planet not protected by a Lensman who could detect the invisible shield of pure force.
Frustrated, the Lensman again took to space. It was terrible, this thing of having everything happening where he wasn't, and when he got there having nothing left to work on. Hit-and-run—stab-in-the-back—how could a man fight something that he couldn't see or sense or feel or find? But this chewing his fingernails to the elbow wasn't getting him anywhere, either; he'd have to find something that he could stick a tooth into. What?
Frustrated, the Lensman headed back to space. It was awful having everything happen when he wasn’t around, and when he arrived, there was nothing left for him to tackle. Hit-and-run—stab-in-the-back—how could someone battle against something they couldn’t see, sense, feel, or locate? But nervously chewing his fingernails wasn’t helping him either; he needed to find something he could sink his teeth into. What?
All former avenues of approach were blocked; he was sure of that. The Boskonians, who were now in charge of things, could really think. No underling would know anything about any one of them except at such times and places as the directors chose, and those conferences would be as nearly detection-proof as they could be made. What to do?
All previous approaches were blocked; he was sure of that. The Boskonians, now in control, were quite clever. No subordinate would know anything about any of them except during the times and places the directors decided, and those meetings would be as nearly undetectable as possible. What should he do?
Easy. Catch a big operator in the act. He grinned wryly to himself. Easy to say, but not—However, it wasn't impossible. The Boskonians were not supermen—they didn't have any more jets than he did. Put himself in the other fellow's place—what would he do if he were a Boskonian big shot? He had had quite a lot of experience in the role. Were there any specific groups of crimes which revealed techniques similar to those which he himself would use in like case?
Easy. Catch a big operator in the act. He smirked to himself. Easy to say, but not—However, it wasn't impossible. The Boskonians weren't superhuman—they didn’t have any more resources than he did. If he put himself in the other guy’s position—what would he do if he were a big shot from Boskonia? He had plenty of experience in that role. Were there any specific types of crimes that showed techniques similar to what he would use in a similar situation?
He, personally, preferred to work direct and to attack in force. At need, however, he had done a smooth job of boring from within. In the face of the Patrol's overwhelming superiority of armament, especially in the First Galaxy, they would have to bore from within. How? By what means? He was a Lensman; they were not. Jet back! Or were they, perhaps? How did he know that they weren't? Maybe they were, by this time. Fossten the renegade Arisian—No use kidding himself; Fossten might have known as much about the Lens as Mentor himself, and might have developed an organization that even Mentor didn't know anything about. Or Mentor might be figuring that it would be good for what ailed a certain fat-headed Gray Lensman to have to dope this out for himself. QX.
He personally preferred to work directly and attack forcefully. However, when necessary, he had skillfully undermined from within. Given the Patrol's overwhelming firepower, especially in the First Galaxy, they would have to create an internal breach. But how? By what means? He was a Lensman; they were not. Jet back! Or were they, perhaps? How could he be sure they weren't? Maybe they were by now. Fossten, the renegade Arisian—No use fooling himself; Fossten might know as much about the Lens as Mentor himself and might have built an organization that even Mentor didn't know about. Or Mentor might think it would be good for a certain thick-headed Gray Lensman to figure this out for himself. QX.
He shot a call to Vice Co-ordinator Maitland, who was now in complete charge of the office which Kinnison had temporarily abandoned.
He called Vice Coordinator Maitland, who was now fully in charge of the office that Kinnison had temporarily left.
"Cliff? Kim. Just gave birth to an idea." He explained rapidly what the idea was. "Maybe nothing to it, but we'd better get up on our toes and find out. You might suggest to the boys that they check up here and there, particularly around the rough spots. If any of them find any trace anywhere of off-color, sour, or even slightly rancid Lensmanship, with or without a Lens appearing in the picture, burn a hole in space getting it to me. QX?... Thanks."
"Cliff? It’s Kim. I just had an idea." He quickly explained what it was. "It might not mean much, but we should stay alert and investigate. You could let the guys know to check various places, especially around the rough areas. If any of them come across any signs of bad, off-color, or even slightly spoiled Lensmanship, whether or not a Lens is in the picture, send it my way as fast as you can. Got it?... Thanks."
Viewed in this new perspective, Renwood of Antigan IV might have been neither a patriot nor a victim, but a saboteur. The tube could have been a prop, used deliberately to cap the mysterious climax. The four honest and devoted guards were the real casualties. Renwood—or whoever he was—having accomplished his object of undermining and destroying the whole planet's morale, might simply have gone elsewhere to continue his nefarious activities. It was fiendishly clever. That spectacularly theatrical finale was certainly one for the book. The whole thing, though, was very much of a piece in quality of workmanship with what he had done in becoming the Tyrant of Thrale. Farfetched? No. He had already denied in his thoughts that the Boskonian operators were supermen. Conversely, he wasn't, either. He would have to admit that they might very well be as good as he was; to deny them the ability to do anything which he himself could do would be sheer stupidity.
Viewed from this new perspective, Renwood of Antigan IV might not have been a patriot or a victim, but rather a saboteur. The tube could have just been a prop, used intentionally to cap off the mysterious climax. The four honest and devoted guards were actually the real victims. Renwood—or whoever he really was—having achieved his goal of undermining and destroying the planet's morale, might have simply moved on to continue his wicked activities. It was diabolically clever. That spectacularly dramatic ending was definitely one for the books. However, the entire situation was very much on par in terms of quality with what he had done in becoming the Tyrant of Thrale. Far-fetched? No. He had already convinced himself that the Boskonian operators were not supermen. Conversely, he wasn't one either. He would have to acknowledge that they could very well be as capable as he was; denying them the ability to do anything he himself could do would be pure foolishness.
Where did that put him? On Radelix, by Klono's golden gills! A good-sized planet. Important enough, but not too much so. People human. Comparatively little hell being raised there—yet. Very few Lensmen, and Gerrond the top. Hm-m-m. Gerrond. Not too bright, as Lensmen went, and inclined to be a bit brass-hattish. To Radelix, by all means, next.
Where did that leave him? On Radelix, by Klono's golden gills! A decent-sized planet. Important enough, but not overly so. The inhabitants are human. There’s relatively little chaos happening there—so far. Very few Lensmen, and Gerrond is at the top. Hm-m-m. Gerrond. Not the sharpest, compared to other Lensmen, and a bit of a hardass. To Radelix, for sure, next.
He went to Radelix, but not in the Dauntless and not in gray. He was a passenger upon a luxury liner, a writer in search of local color for another saga of the spaceways. Sybly Whyte—one of the Patrol's most carefully-established figments—had a bulletproof past. His omnivorous interest and his uninhibited nosiness were the natural attributes of his profession—everything is grist which comes to an author's mill.
He went to Radelix, but not on the Dauntless and not dressed in gray. He was a passenger on a luxury cruise ship, a writer looking for local flavor for another space adventure. Sybly Whyte—one of the Patrol's most well-crafted creations—had a bulletproof history. His insatiable curiosity and unrestrained inquisitiveness were just part of his job—everything that comes to a writer is useful material.
Sybly Whyte then prowled about Radelix. Industriously and, to some observers, pointlessly. He and his red-leather notebook were apt to be seen anywhere at any time, day or night. He visited spaceports, he climbed through freighters, he lost small sums in playing various games of so-called chance in spacemen's dives. Upon the other hand, he truckled assiduously to the social elite and attended all functions into which he could wangle or could force his way. He made a pest of himself in the offices of politicians, bankers, merchant princes, tycoons of business and manufacture, and all other sorts of greats.
Sybly Whyte then roamed around Radelix. Diligently and, to some onlookers, uselessly. He and his red-leather notebook could be found anywhere at any time, day or night. He visited spaceports, crawled through freighters, and lost small amounts of money playing various games of so-called chance in spacemen's bars. On the other hand, he worked hard to get in with the social elite and attended every event he could manage to get into. He became a nuisance in the offices of politicians, bankers, wealthy business owners, and all other kinds of important people.
He was stopped one day in the outer office of an industrial potentate. "Get out and stay out," a peg-legged guard told him. "The boss hasn't read any of your stuff, but I have, and neither of us wants to talk to you. Data, huh? What do you need of data on atomic cats and bulldozers to write them space operas of yours? Why don't you get a roustabout job on a freighter and learn something about what you're trying to write about? Get yourself a real space tan instead of that imitation you got under a lamp; work some of that lard off of your carcass!" Whyte was definitely fatter than Kinnison had been; and, somehow, softer; he peered owlishly through heavy lenses which, fortunately, did not interfere with his sense of perception. "Then maybe some of your tripe will be half-fit to read—beat it!"
He was stopped one day in the outer office of a powerful industrialist. "Get out and stay out," a guard with a wooden leg told him. "The boss hasn't looked at any of your stuff, but I have, and neither of us wants to talk to you. Data, huh? What do you need data on atomic cats and bulldozers for to write those space operas of yours? Why don't you get a rough job on a freighter and actually learn something about what you're trying to write about? Get a real space tan instead of that fake one you got from a lamp; work off some of that extra weight!" Whyte was definitely heavier than Kinnison had been; and in some way, softer; he peered owlishly through thick lenses which, thankfully, did not interfere with his perception. "Then maybe some of your nonsense will be worth reading—beat it!"
"Yes, sir. Thank you, sir; very much, sir." Kinnison bobbed obsequiously and scurried out, writing industriously in his notebook the while. He had, however, found out what he wanted to know. The boss was nobody he was looking for.
"Sure thing, sir. Thank you so much, sir." Kinnison nodded eagerly and rushed out, jotting down notes in his notebook as he went. He had, however, figured out what he needed to know. The boss was not the person he was looking for.
Nor was an eminent statesman whom he buttonholed at a reception. "I fail to see, sir, entirely, any point in your interviewing me," that worthy informed him, frigidly. "I am not, I am ... uh ... sure, suitable material for any opus upon which you may be at work."
Nor was there a prominent politician whom he cornered at a reception. "I really don't see any reason for you to interview me," the politician coldly replied. "I'm not, uh... sure I'm the right person for anything you might be working on."
"Oh, you can't ever tell, sir," Kinnison said. "You see, I never know who or what is going to get into any of my stories until after I start to write it, and sometimes not even then." The statesman glared and Kinnison retreated in disorder.
"Oh, you can never tell, sir," Kinnison said. "You see, I never know who or what is going to show up in any of my stories until I begin writing, and sometimes not even then." The statesman glared, and Kinnison backed away in a fluster.
To stay in character Kinnison actually wrote a story while upon Radelix; a story which was later acclaimed as one of Sybly Whyte's best.
To stay in character, Kinnison actually wrote a story while on Radelix; a story that was later praised as one of Sybly Whyte's best.
"Qadgop the Mercotan slithered flatly around the after-bulge of the tranship. One claw dug into the meters-thick armor of pure neutronium, then another. Its terrible xmexlike snout locked on. Its zymolosely polydactile tongue crunched out, crashed down, rasped across. Slurp! Slurp! At each abrasive stroke the groove in the tranship's plating deepened and Qadgop leered more fiercely. Fools! Did they think that the airlessness of absolute space, the heatlessness of absolute zero, the yieldlessness of absolute neutronium, could stop QADGOP THE MERCOTAN? And the stowaway, that human wench Cynthia, cowering in helpless terror just beyond this thin and fragile wall—" Kinnison was tapping merrily and verbosely along, at a cento a word, when his first real clue developed.
Qadgop the Mercotan slithered flatly around the bulging part of the tranship. One claw dug into the meters-thick armor of pure neutronium, then another. Its terrifying snout locked on. Its oddly flexible, many-fingered tongue shot out, crashed down, and scraped across. Slurp! Slurp! With each rough stroke, the groove in the tranship's plating deepened, and Qadgop grinned even more menacingly. Idiots! Did they really think that the vacuum of space, the absolute cold of zero degrees, or the unyielding nature of neutronium could stop QADGOP THE MERCOTAN? And the stowaway, that human girl Cynthia, cowering in helpless fear just beyond this thin and fragile wall— Kinnison was tapping away happily and wordily, at a hefty price per word, when his first real clue emerged.
A yellow "attention" light gleamed upon his visiphone panel, a subdued chime gave notice that a message of importance was about to be broadcast to the world. Kinnison-Whyte flipped his switch and the stern face of the Provost Marshal appeared upon the screen.
A yellow "attention" light lit up on his visiphone panel, and a soft chime signaled that an important message was about to be broadcast to the world. Kinnison-Whyte switched it on, and the serious face of the Provost Marshal appeared on the screen.
"Attention, please," the image spoke. "Every citizen of Radelix is urged to be upon the lookout for the source of certain inflammatory and subversive literature which is beginning to appear in various cities of this planet. Our officers cannot be everywhere at once; you citizens are. It is hoped that by the aid of your vigilance this threat to our planetary peace and security can be removed before it becomes really serious; that we can avoid the imposition of martial law."
"Attention, everyone," the image said. "All citizens of Radelix are asked to keep an eye out for the source of some incendiary and subversive materials that are starting to show up in different cities across this planet. Our officers can’t be everywhere at once, but you can. We hope that with your vigilance, we can address this threat to our planetary peace and security before it escalates; we want to avoid having to impose martial law."
This message, while not of extreme or urgent import to most Radeligians, held for Kinnison a profound and unique meaning. He was right. He had deduced the thing one hundred percent. He knew what was going to happen next, and how; he knew that neither the law-enforcement officers of Radelix nor its massed citizenry could stop it. They could not even impede it. A force of Lensmen could stop it—but that would not get the Patrol anywhere unless they could capture or kill the beings really responsible for what was done. To alarm them would not do.
This message, although not extremely important or urgent for most Radeligians, had a deep and unique significance for Kinnison. He was correct. He had figured it out completely. He understood what was going to happen next and how it would unfold; he knew that neither Radelix's law enforcement officers nor its gathered citizens could prevent it. They couldn't even slow it down. A group of Lensmen could stop it—but that wouldn't help the Patrol unless they could capture or eliminate the beings truly responsible for what had happened. It wouldn’t help to alert them.
Whether or not he could do much of anything before the grand climax depended upon a lot of factors. Upon what that climax was; upon who was threatened with what; upon whether or not the threatened one was actually a Boskonian. A great deal of investigation was indicated.
Whether he could do much of anything before the big climax depended on a lot of factors. It depended on what that climax was, who was being threatened with what, and whether the one being threatened was actually a Boskonian. A lot of investigation was needed.
If the enemy were going to repeat, as seemed probable, the president would be the victim. If he, Kinnison, could not get a line upon the higher-ups before the plot came to a head, he would have to let it develop right up to the point of disappearance; and for Whyte to appear upon the scene at that time would be to attract undesirable attention. No—by that time he must already have been kicking around underfoot long enough to have become an unnoticeable fixture.
If the enemy was going to repeat their actions, which seemed likely, the president would be the target. If he, Kinnison, couldn't get a read on the higher-ups before the situation escalated, he would have to let it unfold until it reached the point of vanishing; and for Whyte to show up at that moment would draw unwanted attention. No—by then, he needed to have been around long enough to blend in and become an unnoticed part of the background.
Wherefore he moved into quarters as close to the Executive Offices as he could possibly get; and in those quarters he worked openly and wordily at the bringing of the affair of Qadgop and the beautiful-but-dumb Cynthia to a satisfactory conclusion.
Wherefore he moved into a space as close to the Executive Offices as he could manage; and in that space he worked openly and wordily to bring the situation with Qadgop and the beautiful-but-dumb Cynthia to a satisfactory conclusion.
IV.
IV.
In order to understand these and subsequent events it is necessary to cut back briefly some twenty-odd years, to the momentous interview upon chill, dark Onlo between monstrous Kandron and his superior in affairs Boskonian, the unspeakable Alcon, Tyrant of Thrale. At almost the end of that interview, when Kandron had suggested the possibility that his own base had perhaps been vulnerable to Star A Star's insidious manipulations:
In order to understand these and later events, it's necessary to briefly go back about twenty years to the significant meeting on the cold, dark Onlo between the imposing Kandron and his superior in affairs, Boskonian, the horrific Alcon, Tyrant of Thrale. Near the end of that meeting, when Kandron had proposed that his own base might have been vulnerable to Star A Star's sly manipulations:
"Do you mean to admit that you may have been invaded and searched—tracelessly?" Alcon fairly shrieked the thought.
"Are you saying that you might have been broken into and searched—without a trace?" Alcon almost screamed the idea.
"Certainly," Kandron replied, coldly. "While I do not believe that it has been done, the possibility must be conceded. What we could do we have done, but what science can do science can circumvent. It is a virtual certainty that it is not Onlo and I who are their prime objectives, but Thrale and you. Especially you."
"Of course," Kandron said coolly. "Even though I don't believe it's been done, we have to admit it's a possibility. We’ve done everything we can, but what science is capable of, science can also avoid. It's almost certain that Onlo and I aren’t their main targets, but Thrale and you. Especially you."
"You may be right. With no data whatever upon who or what Star A Star really is, with no tenable theory as to how he could have done what actually has been done, speculation is idle." Thus Alcon ended the conversation and, almost immediately, went back to Thrale.
"You might be right. With no information about who or what Star A Star really is, and no solid theory on how he could have accomplished what has actually happened, any speculation is pointless." With that, Alcon wrapped up the conversation and quickly returned to Thrale.
After the Tyrant's departure Kandron continued to think, and the more he thought the more uneasy he became. It was undoubtedly true that Alcon and Thrale were the Patrol's prime objectives. But, those objectives attained, was it reasonable to suppose that he and Onlo would be spared? It was not. Should he warn Alcon further? He should not. If the Tyrant, after all that had been said, could not see the danger he was in, he was not worth saving. If he preferred to stay and fight it out, that was his lookout. Kandron would take no chances with his own extremely valuable life.
After the Tyrant left, Kandron kept thinking, and the more he thought, the more anxious he became. It was definitely true that Alcon and Thrale were the main targets of the Patrol. But once those targets were taken care of, was it reasonable to think he and Onlo would be safe? It wasn’t. Should he warn Alcon again? He shouldn’t. If the Tyrant, after everything that had been said, couldn’t see the danger he was in, he wasn’t worth saving. If he wanted to stay and fight it out, that was his choice. Kandron wasn't going to risk his own extremely valuable life.
Should he warn his own men? How could he? They were able and hardened fighters all; no possible warning could make them defend their fortresses and their lives any more efficiently than they were already prepared to do; nothing he could say would be of any use in preparing them for a threat whose basic nature, even, was completely unknown. Furthermore, this hypothetical invasion probably had not happened and very well might not happen at all, and to flee from an imaginary foe would not rebound to his credit.
Should he warn his own men? How could he? They were all skilled and tough fighters; no warning he gave would make them defend their fortresses and their lives any better than they were already prepared to do. Nothing he said would be helpful in getting them ready for a threat whose very nature was still completely unknown. Moreover, this possible invasion probably hadn’t happened and might not happen at all, and running away from a made-up enemy wouldn’t reflect well on him.
No. As a personage of large affairs, not limited to Onlo, he would be called elsewhere. He would stay elsewhere until after whatever was going to happen had happened. If nothing happened during the ensuing few weeks, he would return from his official trip and all would be well.
No. As a person involved in significant matters, not just in Onlo, he would be called to other places. He would stay away until after whatever was supposed to happen had taken place. If nothing happened in the following weeks, he would come back from his official trip and everything would be fine.
He inspected Onlo thoroughly, he cautioned his officers repeatedly and insistently to keep alert against every conceivable emergency while he was so unavoidably absent. Then he departed, with a fleet of vessels manned by hand-picked crews, to a long-prepared and hitherto secret retreat.
He carefully examined Onlo, repeatedly warning his officers to stay vigilant for any possible emergencies while he was away. Then he left, with a fleet of ships crewed by selected teams, heading to a long-planned and previously secret hideout.
From that safe place he watched, through the eyes and the instruments of his skilled observers, everything that occurred. Thrale fell, and Onlo. The Patrol triumphed. Then, knowing the full measure of the disaster and accepting it with the grim passivity so characteristic of his breed, Kandron broadcast certain signals and one of his—and Alcon's—superiors got in touch with him. He reported concisely. They conferred. He was given orders which were to keep him busy for over twenty Tellurian years.
From that safe spot, he watched everything that happened through the eyes and tools of his skilled observers. Thrale fell, and Onlo. The Patrol won. Then, understanding the full extent of the disaster and accepting it with the grim acceptance typical of his kind, Kandron sent out some signals, and one of his—and Alcon's—superiors contacted him. He provided a brief report. They discussed the situation. He received orders that would keep him occupied for over twenty Earth years.
He knew now that Onlo had been invaded, tracelessly, by some feat of mentality beyond comprehension and almost beyond belief. He knew that Onlo had fallen without any of its defenders having energized a single one of their gigantic engines of war. The fall of Thrale, and the manner of that fall's accomplishment, were plain enough. Human stuff. The work, undoubtedly, of human Lensmen; perhaps the work of the human Lensman who was so frequently associated with Star A Star.
He now realized that Onlo had been invaded, quietly, by some mental feat that was beyond understanding and almost unbelievable. He understood that Onlo had fallen without any of its defenders ever activating a single one of their massive war machines. The fall of Thrale, and how that fall happened, were clear enough. Human involvement. It was undoubtedly the work of human Lensmen; maybe even the work of the human Lensman who was often linked with Star A Star.
But Onlo! Kandron himself had set those snares along those intricately zigzagged communications lines; he knew their capabilities. Kandron himself had installed Onlo's blocking and shielding screens; he knew their might. He knew, since no other path existed leading to Thrale, that those lines had been followed and those screens had been penetrated, and all without setting off a single alarm. Those things had actually happened. Hence Kandron set his stupendous mind to the task of envisaging what the being must be, mentally, who could do them; what the mind of this Star A Star—it could have been no one else—must in actuality be.
But Onlo! Kandron himself had set those traps along those complex zigzag communication routes; he understood their capabilities. Kandron personally had installed Onlo's blocking and shielding screens; he knew their power. He realized that since there was no other way to reach Thrale, those routes had been traced and those screens had been bypassed, all without triggering a single alarm. Those events had truly occurred. So, Kandron focused his incredible mind on imagining what kind of being could accomplish this; what the mind of this Star A Star—it had to be no one else—must actually be.
He succeeded. He deduced Nadreck of Palain VII, practically in toto; and for the Star A Star thus envisaged he set traps throughout both galaxies. They might or might not kill him. Killing him immediately, however, was not really of the essence; that matter could wait until he could give it his personal attention. The important thing was to see to it that Star A Star could never, by any possible chance, discover a true lead to any high Boskonian.
He succeeded. He figured out Nadreck of Palain VII, practically in toto; and for the Star A Star he envisioned, he set traps across both galaxies. They might or might not kill him. However, killing him right away wasn’t really the point; that could wait until he could focus on it personally. The key thing was to make sure that Star A Star could never, under any circumstances, find a true lead to any high Boskonian.
Sneeringly, gloatingly, Kandron issued orders; then flung himself with all his zeal and ability into the task of reorganizing the shattered fragments of the Boskonian Empire into a force capable of wrecking Civilization.
Sneering and gloating, Kandron gave orders; then he threw himself with all his energy and skill into the job of putting together the broken pieces of the Boskonian Empire into a force strong enough to destroy Civilization.
Thus it is not strange that for more than twenty years Nadreck of Palain VII made very little progress indeed. Time after time he grazed the hot edge of death. Indeed, it was only by the exertion of his every iota of skill, power, and callous efficiency that he managed to survive. He struck a few telling blows for Civilization, but most of the time he was strictly upon the defensive. Every clue that he followed, it seemed, led subtly into a trap; every course he pursued ended, always figuratively and all too often literally, in a cul-de-sac filled with semiportable projectors all agog to blast him out of the ether.
So it's not surprising that for more than twenty years, Nadreck of Palain VII made very little progress. Time and again, he came close to death. In fact, it was only through the use of every ounce of his skill, power, and ruthless efficiency that he managed to survive. He landed a few significant blows for Civilization, but most of the time, he was purely on the defensive. Every clue he followed seemed to lead him into a trap; every path he chose ended, always figuratively and too often literally, in a dead end packed with semi-portable projectors eager to blow him out of the ether.
Year by year he became more conscious of some imperceptible, indetectable, but potent foe, an individual enemy obstructing his every move and determined to make an end of him. And year by year, as material accumulated, it became more and more certain that the inimical entity was in fact Kandron, once of Onlo.
Year after year, he grew more aware of some invisible, undetectable, but powerful enemy, a personal adversary blocking his every move and hell-bent on ending him. And year after year, as he gathered more evidence, it became increasingly clear that this hostile force was actually Kandron, who was once from Onlo.
When Kit went into space, then, and Kinnison called Nadreck into consultation the usually reticent and unloquacious Palainian was ready to talk. He told the Gray Lensman everything he knew, everything he deduced or suspected about the ex-Onlonian chieftain.
When Kit went into space and Kinnison brought Nadreck in for discussion, the usually quiet and reserved Palainian was ready to speak. He shared with the Gray Lensman everything he knew, as well as everything he deduced or suspected about the former Onlonian chieftain.
"Kandron of Onlo!" Kinnison exploded, so violently as to sear the subether through which the thought passed. "Holy Klono's brazen bowels! And you can sit there on your spiny tokus and tell me that Kandron got away from you back there? And that you knew it, and not only didn't do a thing about it yourself, but didn't even tell me or anybody else about it, so that we could take steps?"
"Kandron of Onlo!" Kinnison shouted, so intensely that it cut through the subether with force. "Holy Klono's bold guts! And you can just sit there on your pointy butt and say that Kandron escaped from you back there? And you knew it, yet didn't do anything yourself, and didn't even tell me or anyone else about it, so we could take action?"
"Certainly. Why take steps before they become necessary?" Nadreck was entirely unmoved by the Tellurian's passion. "My powers are admittedly small, my intellect feeble. However, even to me it was clear then and it is clear now that Kandron was then of no importance. My assignment was to reduce Onlo. I reduced it. Whether or not Kandron was there at the time did not then have and cannot now have anything to do with that task. Kandron, personally, is another, an entirely distinct problem."
"Of course. Why act before it becomes necessary?" Nadreck was completely unfazed by the Tellurian's enthusiasm. "My abilities are limited, and my intelligence isn't great. Still, it was obvious to me then, and it’s obvious now, that Kandron wasn’t important at that time. My job was to reduce Onlo. I accomplished that. Whether Kandron was there or not didn’t matter then, and it doesn’t matter now in relation to that task. Kandron, as an individual, is a different issue altogether."
Kinnison swore a blistering deep-space oath; then, by main strength, shut himself up. Nadreck wasn't human; there was no use even trying to judge him by human or near-human standards. He was fundamentally, incomprehensibly, and radically different. And it was just as well for humanity that he was. For if his hellishly able race had possessed the characteristically human abilities, in addition to their own, Civilization would of necessity have been basically Palainian instead of basically human, as it now is. "QX, ace," he growled, finally. "Skip it."
Kinnison swore a fierce deep-space curse; then, with sheer force, he locked himself away. Nadreck wasn’t human; there was no point in trying to measure him by human or almost-human standards. He was fundamentally, incomprehensibly, and radically different. And it was just as well for humanity that he was. If his incredibly capable race had also had typical human abilities, in addition to their own, civilization would have inevitably been primarily Palainian instead of primarily human, as it is now. "QX, ace," he muttered, finally. "Forget it."
"But Kandron has been hampering my activities for years, and, now that you also have become interested in his operations against us, he has become a factor of which cognizance should be taken," Nadreck went imperturbably on. He could no more understand Kinnison's viewpoint than the Tellurian could understand his. "With your permission, therefore, I shall find—and slay—this Kandron."
"But Kandron has been interfering with my activities for years, and now that you’re also interested in his actions against us, he has become a factor we need to consider," Nadreck continued calmly. He couldn't understand Kinnison's perspective any more than the Tellurian could understand his. "With your permission, then, I will track down—and kill—this Kandron."
"Go to it, little chum," Kinnison sighed, bitingly and uselessly. "Clear ether."
"Go for it, buddy," Kinnison sighed, sarcastically and pointlessly. "Open sky."
While this conference was taking place, Kandron reclined in a bitterly cold, completely unlighted room of his headquarters and indulged in a little gloating concerning the predicament in which he was keeping Nadreck of Palain VII, who was, in all probability, the once-dreaded Star A Star of the Galactic Patrol. It was true that THE Lensman was still alive. He would probably, Kandron mused quite pleasurably, remain alive until he himself could find the time to attend to him in person. He was an able operator, but one presenting no real menace, now that he was known and understood. There were other things more pressing, just as there had been ever since the fall of Thrale. The revised Plan was going nicely, and as soon as he had resolved that human thing—The Ploorans had suggested ... could it be possible, after all, that Nadreck of Palain was not he who had been known so long only as Star A Star? That the human factor was actually—
While this conference was happening, Kandron lounged in a bitterly cold, completely dark room at his headquarters, relishing the situation he had created for Nadreck of Palain VII, who was probably the once-feared Star A Star of the Galactic Patrol. It was true that THE Lensman was still alive. Kandron thought with some satisfaction that he would likely stay alive until he could find the time to deal with him in person. He was capable, but he posed no real threat now that he was known and understood. There were more urgent matters, just as there had been ever since Thrale fell. The revised Plan was going well, and as soon as he figured out that human element—the Ploorans had suggested... could it really be that Nadreck of Palain was not the same as the Star A Star he had known for so long? That the human factor was actually—
Through the operation of some unknowable sense Kandron knew that it was time for his aide to be at hand to report upon those human affairs. He sent out a signal and another Onlonian scuttled in.
Through some mysterious instinct, Kandron knew it was time for his aide to be ready to report on human matters. He sent out a signal, and another Onlonian hurried in.
"That unknown human element," Kandron radiated harshly. "I assume that you are not reporting that it has been resolved?"
"That unknown human factor," Kandron said sharply. "I take it you're not saying that it's been sorted out?"
"Sorry, Supremacy, but your assumption is correct," the creature radiated back, in no very conciliatory fashion. "The trap at Antigan IV was set particularly for him; specifically to match the man whose mentality you computed and diagramed for us. Was it too obvious, think you, Supremacy? Or perhaps not quite obvious enough? Or, the Galaxy being large, is it perhaps that he simply did not learn of it in time? In the next attempt, what degree of obviousness should I employ and what degree of repetition is desirable?"
"Sorry, Supremacy, but you’re right," the creature responded, not very kindly. "The trap at Antigan IV was specifically designed for him; to target the man whose mindset you analyzed and mapped out for us. Was it too obvious, do you think, Supremacy? Or maybe not obvious enough? Or maybe, since the Galaxy is so vast, he just didn’t find out about it in time? In the next attempt, how obvious should I make it and how much repetition would be good?"
"The technique of the Antigan affair was flawless," Kandron decided. "He did not learn of it, as you suggest, or we should have caught him. He is a master workman, always concealed by his very obviousness until after he has done his work. Thus we can never, save by merest chance, catch him before the act; we must make him come to us. We must keep on trying until he does come to us. It is of no great moment, really, whether we catch him now or five years hence. This work must be done in any event—it is simply a fortunate coincidence that the necessary destruction of Civilization upon its own planets presents such a fine opportunity of trapping him.
"The strategy behind the Antigan affair was perfect," Kandron concluded. "He didn't find out about it, as you think, or we would have caught him. He's a master at his craft, always hidden in plain sight until after he's finished his job. So we can never, except by sheer luck, catch him before he acts; we need to make him come to us. We must keep trying until he does. It doesn’t really matter whether we catch him now or five years from now. This work has to get done regardless—it just happens to be a lucky coincidence that the necessary destruction of Civilization on its own planets gives us such a great chance to trap him."
"As to repeating the Antigan technique, we should not repeat it exactly ... or, hold! It might be best to do just that. To repeat a process is, of course, the mark of an inferior mind; but if that human can be made to believe that our minds are inferior, so much the better. Keep on trying; report as instructed. Remember that he must be taken alive, so that we can take from his living brain the secrets we have not yet been able to learn. Forget, in the instant of leaving this room, everything about me and about any connections between us until I force recollection upon you. Go."
"As for using the Antigan technique again, we shouldn't do it exactly the same way... or wait! Maybe it’s better to do just that. Repeating a process usually shows a lack of creativity; but if we can convince that person that our minds lack depth, then that's to our advantage. Keep trying; report back as instructed. Remember, he needs to be taken alive so we can extract the secrets from his living brain that we haven’t figured out yet. Once you leave this room, forget everything about me and any connections we have until I bring them back to your mind. Go."
The minion went, and Kandron set out to do more of the things which he could best do. He would have liked to take Nadreck's trail himself; he could catch and he could kill that evasive entity and the task would have been a pleasant one. He would have liked to supervise the trapping of that enigmatic human Lensman who might—or might not—be that frequently and copiously damned Star A Star. That, too, would be an eminently pleasant chore. There were, however, other matters more pressing by far. If the Great Plan were to succeed, and it absolutely must and would, every Boskonian must perform his assigned duties. Nadreck and his putative accomplice were side issues. Kandron's task was to set up and to direct certain psychoses and disorders; a ghastly train of mental ills of which he possessed such supreme mastery, and which were surely and safely helping to destroy the foundation upon which Galactic Civilization rested. That part was his, and he would do it to the best of his ability. The other things, the personal and nonessential matters, could wait.
The minion left, and Kandron set out to focus on the tasks he was best at. He would have liked to track down Nadreck himself; he could catch and eliminate that elusive being, and it would have been a satisfying job. He would have enjoyed overseeing the capture of that mysterious human Lensman who might—or might not—be the often-cursed Star A Star. That, too, would have been a highly enjoyable task. However, there were other, much more urgent matters at hand. If the Great Plan was to succeed—and it absolutely had to—every Boskonian needed to fulfill their assigned responsibilities. Nadreck and his suspected accomplice were secondary concerns. Kandron's job was to establish and manage certain psychoses and disorders; a horrifying array of mental illnesses that he expertly controlled, which were certainly and effectively undermining the very foundation of Galactic Civilization. That was his responsibility, and he would handle it to the best of his ability. The other personal and nonessential matters could wait.
Kandron set out then, and traveled fast and far; and wherever he went there spread still further abroad the already widespread blight. A disgusting, a horrible blight with which no human physician or psychiatrist, apparently, could cope; one of, perhaps the worst of, the corrosive blights which had been eating so long at Civilization's vitals.
Kandron set out then and traveled quickly and far; and everywhere he went, the already widespread blight spread even further. A disgusting, terrible blight that apparently no human doctor or psychiatrist could handle; one of, if not the worst of, the corrosive blights that had been gnawing at the very heart of Civilization for so long.
And L2 Nadreck, having decided to find and slay the ex-ruler of Onlo, went about it in his usual unhurried but eminently thorough fashion. He made no effort to locate him or to trace him personally. That would be bad—foolish. Worse, it would be inefficient. Worst, it would probably be impossible. No, he would find out where Kandron would be at some suitable future time, and wait for him in that place.
And L2 Nadreck, having decided to find and take down the former ruler of Onlo, approached it in his typical calm but highly thorough manner. He didn’t try to locate or track him down personally. That would be unwise—foolish, even. Worse, it would be inefficient. Even worse, it would likely be impossible. No, he would discover where Kandron would be at some appropriate future time and wait for him there.
To that end Nadreck collected a vast mass of data concerning the occurrences and phenomena which the Big Four had discussed so thoroughly. He analyzed each item, sorting out those which bore the characteristic stamp of the arch-foe whom by now he had come to know so well. The internal evidence of Kandron's craftsmanship was unmistakable; and, not now to his surprise, Nadreck discerned that the number of the Onlonian's dark deeds was legion.
To achieve this, Nadreck gathered a huge amount of information about the events and phenomena that the Big Four had talked about in detail. He analyzed each piece, separating those that clearly had the signature of the arch-enemy he had come to know so well. The unmistakable signs of Kandron's skills were present; and, no longer surprised, Nadreck realized that the count of the Onlonian's wicked actions was vast.
There was the affair of the Prime Minister of DeSilva III, who at a cabinet meeting shot and killed his sovereign and eleven chiefs of state before committing suicide. The President of Viridon, who at his press conference, ran amuck with a scimitar snatched from a wall, hewed unsuspecting reporters to gory bits until he was overpowered, and then swallowed poison.
There was the incident involving the Prime Minister of DeSilva III, who during a cabinet meeting shot and killed his ruler and eleven state leaders before taking his own life. The President of Viridon, at a press conference, went wild with a scimitar he grabbed off the wall, hacking unsuspecting reporters to bloody pieces until he was subdued, and then he swallowed poison.
A variant of the theme, but still plainly Kandron's doing, was the interesting episode in which Galactic Counselor Edmundson, while upon an ocean voyage, threw fifteen women passengers overboard, then leaped after them dressed only in a life jacket stuffed with lead. Another out of the same whimsical mold was that of Dillway, the highly respected Operations Chief of Central Spaceways. That potentate called his secretaries one by one into his sixtieth floor office and unconcernedly tossed them, one by one, out of the window. He danced a jig upon a coping before diving after them to the street.
A variation of the theme, but still clearly Kandron's work, was the intriguing moment when Galactic Counselor Edmundson, during an ocean cruise, threw fifteen female passengers overboard and then jumped in after them wearing just a life jacket filled with lead. Another example of the same whimsical style was Dillway, the highly regarded Operations Chief of Central Spaceways. This powerful figure called his secretaries into his sixtieth-floor office one by one and casually threw them out of the window. He even danced a little jig on the ledge before diving after them to the street.

A particularly juicy and entertaining bit, Nadreck thought, was the case of Narkor Base Hospital, in which four of the planet's most eminent surgeons decapitated every other person in the place—patients, nurses, orderlies, and all, with a fine disregard of age, sex, or condition—arranged the several heads, each upright and each facing due north, upon the tiled floor to spell the word "Revenge," and then hacked each other to death with scalpels.
A particularly juicy and entertaining piece, Nadreck thought, was the case of Narkor Base Hospital, where four of the planet's top surgeons decapitated everyone in the place—patients, nurses, orderlies, and all—completely ignoring age, gender, or condition. They arranged the heads, each standing upright and facing north, on the tiled floor to spell out the word "Revenge," and then killed each other with scalpels.

These, and a thousand or more other events of similar technique, Nadreck tabulated and subjected to statistical analysis. Scattered so widely throughout such a vast volume of space, they had created little or no general disturbance; indeed, they had scarcely been noticed by Civilization as a whole. Collected, they made a truly staggering, a revolting and appalling total. Nadreck, however, was inherently incapable of being staggered, revolted, or appalled. That repulsive summation, a thing which in its massed horror would have shaken to the core—shocked almost into paralysis—any being possessing any shred of sympathy or tenderness, was to Nadreck simply an interesting and not too difficult problem in psychology and mathematics.
These, along with a thousand or more other events of a similar nature, were compiled by Nadreck and analyzed statistically. Scattered so widely across such a vast area, they had caused little to no overall disruption; in fact, they had barely registered on the radar of Civilization as a whole. When brought together, they represented a truly staggering, repulsive, and horrifying total. However, Nadreck was inherently incapable of feeling staggered, revolted, or appalled. That disgusting summation, which in its massive horror would have shaken to the core—almost paralyzing with shock—any being with even a hint of sympathy or compassion, was to Nadreck merely an interesting, though not overly challenging, problem in psychology and mathematics.
He placed each episode in space and in time, correlating each with all of its fellows in a space-time matrix. He determined the locus of centers and derived the equations of its most probable motion. He extended it by extrapolation in accordance with that equation. Then, assuring himself that his margin of error was as small as he could make it, he set out for a planet which Kandron would most probably visit at a time far enough in the future to enable him to receive the Onlonian.
He mapped out each event in both space and time, linking each one to its counterparts in a space-time framework. He identified the central points and calculated the equations for its most likely movements. He expanded on this by projecting forward based on that equation. After making sure his margin of error was as minimal as possible, he headed toward a planet that Kandron was most likely to visit at a point far enough in the future for him to receive the Onlonian.
That planet, being inhabited by near-human beings, was warm, brightly sun-lit, and had an atmosphere rich in oxygen. Nadreck detested it, since his ideal of a planet was precisely the opposite. Fortunately, however, he would not have to land upon it until after Kandron's arrival—possibly not then—and the fact that his proposed quarry was, like himself, a frigid-blooded poison-breather, made the task of detection a simple one.
That planet, populated by almost human-like beings, was warm, brightly lit by the sun, and had an atmosphere full of oxygen. Nadreck hated it, since his idea of a perfect planet was just the opposite. Luckily, he wouldn’t have to land there until after Kandron arrived—maybe not even then—and the fact that his intended target was, like him, a cold-blooded poison-breather made finding him an easy task.
Nadreck set his indetectable speedster into a circular orbit around the planet, far enough out to be comfortable, and sent out course after course of delicate, extremely sensitive screen. Precision of pattern-analysis was, of course, needless. The probability was that all legitimate movement of personnel to and from the planet would be composed of warm-blooded oxygen-breathers; that any visitor not so classified would be Kandron. Any frigid-blooded visitor had at least to be investigated, hence his analytical screens had to be capable only of differentiating between two types of beings as far apart as the galactic poles in practically every respect. Nadreck knew that no supervision would be necessary to perform such an open-and-shut separation as that; he would have nothing more to do until his electronic announcers should warn him of Kandron's approach—or until the passage of time should inform him that the Onlonian was not coming to this particular planet.
Nadreck set his undetectable speedster into a circular orbit around the planet, far enough out to be comfortable, and sent out a series of delicate, extremely sensitive screens. There was no need for precise pattern analysis. The likelihood was that any legitimate movement of people to and from the planet would consist of warm-blooded oxygen-breathers, and any visitor who didn't fit that category would be Kandron. Any cold-blooded visitor needed to be investigated, so his analytical screens had to be able to distinguish between two types of beings that were as different as the galactic poles in nearly every way. Nadreck knew that no supervision would be needed for such a straightforward separation; he wouldn't need to do anything more until his electronic announcers alerted him to Kandron's approach—or until enough time passed to indicate that the Onlonian wasn't coming to this specific planet.
Being a mathematician, Nadreck knew that any datum secured by extrapolation is of doubtful value. He thus knew that the actual probability of Kandron's coming was less, by some indeterminable amount, than the mathematical one. Nevertheless, having done all that he could do, he waited with the monstrous, unhuman patience known only to such races as his.
Being a mathematician, Nadreck understood that any data obtained through extrapolation is questionable. He also realized that the real probability of Kandron's arrival was less, by an unknown degree, than the mathematical one. Still, having done everything he could, he waited with the immense, almost inhuman patience that only his kind possesses.
Day by day, week by week, the speedster circled the planet and its big, hot sun; and as it circled, the lone voyager studied. He analyzed more data more precisely; he drew deeper and deeper upon his store of knowledge to determine what steps next to take in the event that this attempt should end, as so many previous ones had ended, in failure.
Day by day, week by week, the speedster went around the planet and its big, hot sun; and as it traveled, the lone traveler studied. He examined more data with greater accuracy; he relied more and more on his knowledge to figure out what steps to take next if this attempt ended, like so many before it, in failure.
V.
V.
Kinnison, the author, toiled manfully at his epic of space whenever he was under any sort of observation, and enough at other times to avert any suspicion. Indeed, he worked as much as Sybly Whyte, an advertisedly temperamental writer, had ever worked. Besides interviewing the high and the low, and taking notes everywhere, he attended authors' teas, at which he cursed his characters fluently and bitterly for their failure to co-operate with him. With short-haired women and long-haired men he bemoaned the perversity of a public which compelled them to prostitute the real genius of which each was the unique possessor. He sympathized particularly with a fat woman writer of whodunits, whose extremely unrealistic yet amazingly popular Gray Lensman hero had lived through ten full-length novels and twenty million copies.
Kinnison, the author, worked hard on his space epic whenever he was being watched, and enough at other times to avoid raising any suspicion. In fact, he put in as much effort as Sybly Whyte, a supposedly temperamental writer, had ever done. Besides interviewing people from all walks of life and taking notes everywhere, he went to authors' teas, where he vented his frustrations about his characters for not cooperating with him. Alongside short-haired women and long-haired men, he lamented the unfairness of a public that forced them to compromise their true genius, which each of them uniquely possessed. He particularly sympathized with a plus-sized woman writer of whodunits, whose incredibly unrealistic yet surprisingly popular Gray Lensman hero had starred in ten full-length novels and sold twenty million copies.
Even though her real field was the drama, she wasn't writing the kind of detective tripe that most of these crank-turners ground out, she confided to Kinnison. She had known lots of Gray Lensmen very intimately, and her stories were drawn from real life in every particular!
Even though her true passion was drama, she wasn’t writing the typical detective junk that most of these hack writers churned out, she confided to Kinnison. She had known plenty of Gray Lensmen very closely, and her stories were based on real life in every detail!
Thus Kinnison remained in character; and thus he was enabled to work completely unnoticed at his real job of finding out what was going on, how the Boskonians were operating to ruin Radelix as they had ruined Antigan IV.
Thus Kinnison stayed in character; and this allowed him to work entirely unnoticed on his real task of figuring out what was happening, how the Boskonians were trying to destroy Radelix just like they had destroyed Antigan IV.
His first care was to investigate the planet's president. That took doing, but he did it. He examined that mind line by line and channel by channel, with no results whatever. No scars, no sign of tampering. Calling in assistance, he searched the president's past even more rigidly than Fossten had searched that of Traska Gannel. Still no soap. Everything checked, even to widely distributed boyhood pictures. Boring from within, then, was out. His first hypothesis was wrong; this invasion and this sabotage were being done from without. How?
His first priority was to look into the planet's president. It took some effort, but he managed to do it. He analyzed that mind line by line and channel by channel, but found nothing at all. No scars, no signs of interference. Bringing in help, he examined the president's past even more thoroughly than Fossten had investigated Traska Gannel's. Still no luck. Everything was verified, even widely available childhood photos. So, coming from within was ruled out. His first theory was incorrect; this invasion and sabotage were happening from the outside. But how?
Those first leaflets were followed by others, each batch more vitriolic in tone than the preceding one. Apparently they came from empty stratosphere; at least, no ships were to be detected in the neighborhood after any shower of the hand-bills had appeared. But that was not surprising. With its inertialess drive any spaceship could have been parsecs away before the papers touched atmosphere. Or they could have been bombed in from almost any distance. Or, as Kinnison thought most reasonable, they could have been simply dumped out of the mouth of a hyperspatial tube. In any event the method was immaterial. The results only were important; and those results, the Lensman discovered, were entirely disproportionate to the ostensible causes. The subversive literature had some effect, of course, but essentially it must be a blind. No possible tonnage of anonymous printing could cause that much sheer demoralization.
Those first leaflets were followed by more, each group even more aggressive than the last. They seemed to come from nowhere; at least, no ships were spotted in the area after a shower of the flyers appeared. But that wasn’t surprising. With its advanced drive, any spaceship could have been light-years away before the papers even touched the atmosphere. Or they could have been dropped from pretty much any distance. Or, as Kinnison thought was most likely, they could have just been released from a hyperspatial tunnel. In any case, the method didn’t matter. The results were what counted; and those results, the Lensman discovered, were completely out of proportion to the apparent causes. The subversive literature had some effect, of course, but it essentially had to be a cover-up. No amount of anonymous printing could create that level of widespread demoralization.
Crackpot societies of all kinds sprang up everywhere, advocating everything from absolutism to anarchy. Queer cults arose, preaching free love, the imminent end of the world, and almost every other conceivable departure from the norm of thought. The Authors' League, of course, was affected more than any other organization of its size, because of its relatively large content of strong and intensely opinionated minds. Instead of becoming one radical group it split into a dozen.
Crackpot groups of all sorts popped up everywhere, promoting everything from absolutism to anarchy. Strange cults emerged, preaching free love, the imminent apocalypse, and nearly every other possible deviation from conventional thinking. The Authors' League, naturally, was impacted more than any other organization of its size due to its relatively large number of strong and fiercely opinionated individuals. Instead of becoming one radical group, it fractured into a dozen.
Kinnison joined one of those "Down with Everything!" groups, not as a leader, but as a follower. Not too sheeplike a follower, but just inconspicuous enough to retain his invisibly average status; and from his place of concealment in the middle of the front rank he studied the minds of each of his fellow anarchists. He watched those minds change, he found out who was doing the changing. When Kinnison's turn came he was all set for trouble. He expected to battle a powerful mentality. He would not have been overly surprised to encounter another mad Arisian, hiding behind a zone of hypnotic compulsion. He expected anything, in fact, except what he found—which was a very ordinary Radeligian therapist. The guy was a clever enough operator, of course, but he could not work against even the feeblest opposition. Hence the Gray Lensman had no trouble at all, either in learning everything the fellow knew or, upon leaving him, in implanting within his mind the knowledge that he had made Sybly Whyte into exactly the type of anarchist desired.
Kinnison joined one of those "Down with Everything!" groups, not as a leader, but as a follower. Not a blindly obedient follower, but just inconspicuous enough to keep his unnoticeably average status; and from his spot hiding in the middle of the front row, he studied the minds of each of his fellow anarchists. He observed how their thoughts shifted and figured out who was initiating the changes. When it was Kinnison's turn, he was prepared for trouble. He anticipated facing a strong intellect. He wouldn't have been too shocked to come across another crazy Arisian hiding behind a layer of hypnotic influence. He was ready for anything, in fact, except what he actually encountered—which was a very ordinary Radeligian therapist. The guy was skilled enough, of course, but he couldn't handle even the slightest opposition. Thus, the Gray Lensman had no trouble at all either in discovering everything the guy knew or, when leaving him, in implanting the idea in his mind that he had transformed Sybly Whyte into exactly the kind of anarchist they wanted.
The trouble was that the therapist didn't know a thing. This not entirely unexpected development posed Kinnison three questions. Did the higher-ups ever communicate with such small fry, or did they just give them one set of orders and cut them loose? Should he stay in this Radeligian's mind until he found out? If he was in control of the therapist when a big shot took over, did he have jets enough to keep from being found out? Risky business; better scout around first, anyway. He'd do a flit.
The issue was that the therapist didn’t know anything. This not-so-surprising situation presented Kinnison with three questions. Did the higher-ups ever talk to someone like this, or did they just give them one round of instructions and let them go? Should he stay in this Radeligian's mind until he figured it out? If he had control over the therapist when a powerful person stepped in, would he have enough skills to avoid getting caught? It was a risky situation; he should definitely check things out first. He’d make a quick exit.
He drove his black speedster a million miles. He covered Radelix like a blanket, around the equator and from pole to pole. Everywhere he found the same state of things. The planet was literally riddled with the agitators; he found so many that he was forced to a black conclusion. There could be no connection or communication between such numbers of saboteurs and any higher authority. They must have been sent with one set of do-or-die instructions—whether they did or died was immaterial. Experimentally, Kinnison had a few of the ringleaders taken into custody. As each was arrested another took his place.
He drove his black speedster for a million miles. He covered Radelix like a blanket, circling the equator and going from pole to pole. No matter where he looked, he found the same situation. The planet was literally filled with agitators; there were so many that he reached a grim conclusion. There couldn’t be any connection or communication between this many saboteurs and any higher authority. They must have been sent with one set of do-or-die orders—whether they succeeded or failed didn’t matter. Experimentally, Kinnison had a few of the ringleaders taken into custody. As soon as one was arrested, another took their place.
Martial law was finally declared, but this measure succeeded only in driving the conspirators underground. What the subversive societies lost in numbers they more than made up in desperation and violence. Crime raged unchecked and uncheckable, murder became an everyday commonplace, insanity waxed rife. And Kinnison, knowing now that no channel to important prey would be opened until the climax, watched grimly while the rape of the planet went on.
Martial law was finally declared, but this move only pushed the conspirators into hiding. Though the subversive groups lost members, they gained desperation and resorted to violence. Crime surged without control, murders became a daily occurrence, and madness spread. Kinnison, now realizing that there would be no way to reach significant targets until the climax, watched grimly as the planet was devastated.
The president of Radelix and Lensman Gerrond sent message after message to Prime Base and to Klovia, imploring help. The replies to these pleas were all alike. The matter had been referred to the Galactic Council and to the Co-ordinator. Everything that could be done was being done. Neither office would say anything else, except that, with the galaxy in such a disturbed condition, each planet must do its best to solve its own problems.
The president of Radelix and Lensman Gerrond sent countless messages to Prime Base and Klovia, urging them for help. The responses to these requests were all the same. The issue had been passed on to the Galactic Council and the Coordinator. Everything possible was being done. Neither office could provide any other information, except to state that, with the galaxy in such turmoil, each planet needed to do its part to tackle its own issues.
The thing built up toward its atrocious finale. Gerrond invited the president to a conference in a downtown hotel room, and there, eyes glancing from moment to moment at the dials of a complete little test-kit held open upon his lap:
The situation was heading toward its terrible conclusion. Gerrond asked the president to a meeting in a hotel room downtown, and there, his eyes flicked from time to time to the dials of a neat little test-kit resting in his lap:
"I have just had some startling news, sir," Gerrond said, abruptly. "Kinnison has been here on Radelix for weeks."
"I just got some shocking news, sir," Gerrond said suddenly. "Kinnison has been here on Radelix for weeks."
"What? Kinnison? Where is he? Why didn't he—?"
"What? Kinnison? Where is he? Why didn't he—?"
"Yes, Kinnison. Kinnison of Klovia. The Co-ordinator himself. I don't know where he is, or was. I didn't ask him." The Lensman smiled fleetingly. "One doesn't, you know. He discussed the situation with me at length. I am still amazed—"
"Yeah, Kinnison. Kinnison from Klovia. The Co-ordinator himself. I don’t know where he is, or was. I didn’t ask him." The Lensman smiled briefly. "You don’t really ask, you know. He talked about the situation with me for a long time. I am still amazed—"
"Why doesn't he stop it, then?" the president demanded. "Or can't he stop it?"
"Why doesn't he stop it, then?" the president asked. "Or can't he stop it?"
"That's what I've got to explain to you. He can, but the time won't be ripe until the last act."
"That's what I need to explain to you. He can do it, but the timing won't be right until the last act."
"Why not? I tell you, if this thing can be stopped it's got to be stopped, and no matter what has to be done it's got to be—"
"Why not? I tell you, if this thing can be stopped it has to be stopped, and no matter what needs to be done it has to be—"
"Just a minute!" Gerrond snapped. "I know that you're out of control—I don't like to see Radelix torn apart any better than you do—but you ought to know by this time that Galactic Co-ordinator Kimball Kinnison is in a better position to know what to do than any other man in the universe. Furthermore, his word is the last word. What he says, goes."
"Just a minute!" Gerrond snapped. "I know you’re freaking out—I don't like seeing Radelix destroyed any more than you do—but you should realize by now that Galactic Coordinator Kimball Kinnison knows better than anyone what to do. Plus, his decision is final. What he says, goes."
"Of course," the president apologized. "I am overwrought ... but to see our entire world pulled down around us and upon us, our institutions, the work of centuries, destroyed, millions of lives lost ... all needlessly—"
"Of course," the president said apologetically. "I’m overwhelmed ... but watching our entire world crumble around us, our institutions, the work of centuries destroyed, millions of lives lost ... it’s all so unnecessary—"
"It won't come to that, he says, if we all do our parts. And you, sir, are very much in the picture."
"It won't come to that, he says, if we all do our parts. And you, sir, are definitely involved."
"I? How?"
"Me? How?"
"Are you familiar with exactly what happened upon Antigan IV?"
"Do you know exactly what happened on Antigan IV?"
"Why, no. They had some trouble over there, I recall, but—"
"Why, no. They had some issues over there, I remember, but—"
"That's it. That's why this must go on. No planet cares particularly about what happens to any other planet, but the Co-ordinator cares about them all, as a whole. If this trouble is headed off now, it will simply spread to other planets; if it is allowed to come to a climax there is a good chance that we can put an end to the whole trouble, for good."
"That's it. That's why this has to continue. No planet really cares about what happens to any other planet, but the Co-ordinator cares about them all, as a whole. If we deal with this issue now, it will just extend to other planets; if we let it reach a breaking point, there's a good chance we can finally end all this trouble for good."
"But what has that to do with me? What can I, personally, do?"
"But what does that have to do with me? What can I do, personally?"
"Much. The last act upon Antigan IV, the thing that made it a planet of maniacs, was the kidnaping of Planetary President Renwood. It is supposed that he was murdered, since no trace of him has ever been found."
"Much. The final event on Antigan IV, the one that turned it into a planet of crazies, was the kidnapping of Planetary President Renwood. It’s assumed that he was killed, as no evidence of him has ever been discovered."
"Oh." The older man's hands clenched, then loosened. "I am willing ... provided—Is the Co-ordinator fairly certain that my death will enable him—"
"Oh." The older man’s hands clenched and then relaxed. "I’m willing ... as long as—Is the Co-ordinator pretty sure that my death will allow him—"
"It won't get that far, sir. He intends to stop it just before that. He and his associates—I don't know who they are—have been listing every enemy agent they can find, and they will all be taken care of at once. He believes that Boskone will publish in advance a definite time at which they will take you away from us. That was the way it went at Antigan."
"It won't get that far, sir. He plans to stop it right before that. He and his associates—I don't know who they are—have been tracking every enemy agent they can find, and they will all be dealt with at the same time. He thinks that Boskone will announce a specific time when they will take you away from us. That’s how it happened at Antigan."
"Even from the Patrol?"
"Even from the Patrol?"
"From Base itself. Co-ordinator Kinnison is pretty sure that they can do it, except for something that he can bring into play only at the last moment. Incidentally, that is why we are having this meeting here, with this detector which he gave me. He is afraid that Base is porous."
"From Base itself. Coordinator Kinnison is pretty confident that they can do it, except for something he can only use at the last minute. By the way, that's why we're having this meeting here, with this detector he gave me. He's worried that Base is vulnerable."
"In that case ... what can he—" The president fell silent.
"In that case ... what can he—" The president stopped speaking.
"All that I know is that we are to dress you in a certain suit of armor and have you in my private office in Base a few minutes before the time they set. We and the guards leave the office at minus two minutes and walk down the corridor, just fast enough so that at minus one minute we are exactly in front of Room Twenty-four. We are to rehearse it until our timing is perfect. I have no idea what is going to happen then, but I know that something will. We are not to discuss this again, even via Lens, as he is pretty sure that you will very shortly be under surveillance every minute."
"All I know is that we need to dress you in a specific suit of armor and have you in my private office at Base a few minutes before the scheduled time. The guards and I will leave the office two minutes before and walk down the hallway at a quick pace so that we arrive exactly in front of Room Twenty-four one minute before. We need to practice until our timing is perfect. I don’t have a clue what will happen then, but I know something will. We aren’t supposed to talk about this again, even through Lens, since he’s pretty sure you’ll be under constant surveillance very soon."
Time passed; the Boskonian infiltration progressed strictly according to plan. Upon the surface it appeared that Radelix was going in almost the same fashion in which Antigan IV had gone. Below the surface, however, there was one great difference. Every ship, whether liner or freighter or tramp, which docked at any spaceport of Radelix, brought at least one man who did not leave. Some of these visitors were tall and lithe, some were short and fat. Some were old, some were young. Some were pale, some were burned to the complexion of ancient leather by the fervent rays of space. They were alike only in the "look of eagles" in their steady, quiet eyes. Each landed and went about his ostensible business, interesting himself not at all in any of the others.
Time passed, and the Boskonian infiltration was going exactly as planned. On the surface, it seemed like Radelix was following the same pattern as Antigan IV. However, beneath the surface, there was one major difference. Every ship, whether it was a liner, freighter, or tramp, that docked at any spaceport on Radelix brought at least one man who did not leave. Some of these visitors were tall and slender, while others were short and stocky. Some were old, some were young. Some had pale skin, while others were tanned to the color of ancient leather by the intense rays of space. The only thing they had in common was the "look of eagles" in their calm, steady eyes. Each one landed and went about their apparent business, showing no interest in anyone else.
Again the Boskonians declared their contempt of the Patrol by setting the exact time at which the president was to be taken. Again the appointed hour was midnight.
Again, the Boskonians showed their disdain for the Patrol by specifying the exact time when the president was to be taken. Once more, the chosen hour was midnight.
Vice Admiral Lensman Gerrond was, as Kinnison had intimated frequently, somewhat of a brass hat. He did not, he simply could not believe that his Base was as pregnable as the Co-ordinator had assumed it to be. Kinnison, knowing that all ordinary defenses would be useless, had not even mentioned them. Gerrond, unable to believe that his hitherto invincible and invulnerable weapons and defenses were all of a sudden useless, mustered them of his own volition.
Vice Admiral Lensman Gerrond was, as Kinnison had often suggested, somewhat of a big shot. He just couldn't accept that his Base was as vulnerable as the Co-ordinator had claimed. Kinnison, aware that all standard defenses would be ineffective, hadn't even brought them up. Gerrond, unable to accept that his previously unbeatable and impenetrable weapons and defenses were suddenly useless, gathered them on his own initiative.
All leaves had been canceled. Every detector, every beam, every device of defense and of offense was fully manned. Every man was keyed up and alert. And Gerrond, while the least bit apprehensive that something was about to happen which was not in the book, was pretty sure in his stout old war-dog's soul that he and his men had stuff enough.
All leaves had been canceled. Every detector, every beam, every defense and offense device was fully staffed. Everyone was energized and on high alert. Gerrond, while a little worried that something unexpected was about to occur, felt pretty confident in his seasoned war-hardened instincts that he and his team were ready enough.
At two minutes before midnight the armored president and his escorts left Gerrond's private office. One minute later they were passing the door of the specified room. A bomb exploded shatteringly behind them, armored men rushed yelling out of a branch corridor in their rear. Everybody stopped and turned to look. So, the hidden Kinnison assured himself, did an unseen observer in an invisibly hovering, three-dimensional hypercircle.
At two minutes to midnight, the armored president and his security detail exited Gerrond's private office. One minute later, they were passing the door of the designated room. A bomb detonated explosively behind them, and armored men rushed out, shouting from a side corridor behind them. Everyone froze and turned to look. So, the hidden Kinnison confirmed to himself, did an unseen observer in an invisibly hovering, three-dimensional hypercircle.
Kinnison threw the door open, flashed an explanatory thought at the president, yanked him into the room and into the midst of a corps of Lensmen armed with devices not usually encountered even in Patrol bases. The door snapped shut and Kinnison stood where the president had stood an instant before, clad in armor identical with that which the president had worn. The exchange had required less than one second: it had been observed by no one.
Kinnison burst through the door, shot an explanatory look at the president, pulled him into the room, and right into a group of Lensmen equipped with gear that you don’t usually find even in Patrol bases. The door slammed shut, and Kinnison took the spot where the president had just been, dressed in armor exactly like the president's. The whole exchange took less than a second: no one had noticed it.
"QX, Gerrond and you fellows!" Kinnison drove the thought. "The president is safe—I'm taking over. Double time straight ahead—hipe! Get into the clear—give us a chance to use our stuff!"
"QX, Gerrond and you guys!" Kinnison pushed the thought forward. "The president is safe—I'm taking control. Let's move fast—hurry up! Get to safety—give us a chance to use our gear!"
The unarmored men broke into a run, and as they did so the door of Room Twenty-four swung open and stayed open. Weapons snouted out, shoved by armored men. Armored men and heavy weapons erupted from other doors and from more branch corridors. The hypercircle, which was, in fact, the terminus of a hyperspatial tube, began to thicken toward visibility.
The unarmored men took off running, and as they did, the door to Room Twenty-four swung open and remained open. Weapons poked out, pushed by armored soldiers. More armored men and heavy weapons burst out from other doors and side corridors. The hypercircle, which was actually the end of a hyperspatial tube, started to become visible.
It did not, however, materialize. Only by the intensest effort of vision could it be discerned as the sheerest wisp, more tenuous than the thinnest fog. The men within the ship, if ship it was, were visible only as striations in air are visible, and no more to be made out in detail. Instead of a full materialization, the only thing that was or became solid or tangible was a dead-black thing which reached purposefully outward and downward toward Kinnison, a thing combined of tongs and coarse-meshed, heavy net.
It didn’t, however, take shape. Only with the utmost effort of focus could it be seen as the faintest trace, thinner than the lightest fog. The men inside the ship, if that’s what it really was, were visible only as distortions in the air, and nothing more could be made out in detail. Instead of a complete appearance, the only thing that became solid or real was a pitch-black object that reached purposefully out and down toward Kinnison, a mix of tongs and a rough, heavy net.
Kinnison's DeLameters flamed at maximum intensity and minimum aperture. Useless. The stuff was dureum; that unbelievably dense and ultimately refractory synthetic which, saturated with pure force, is the only known substance which can exist as an actuality both in normal space and in that pseudospace which composes the hyperspatial tube. The Lensman flicked on his neutralizer and shot away inertialess; but that maneuver, too, had been foreseen. The Boskonian engineers matched every move he made, within a split second after he made it; the tong-net gripped and closed.
Kinnison's DeLameters blazed at full power and the smallest opening. Useless. It was dureum; that incredibly dense and ultimately unyielding synthetic material which, filled with pure energy, is the only known substance that can exist both in normal space and in that pseudospace that makes up the hyperspatial tube. The Lensman activated his neutralizer and took off without inertia; but that move had also been anticipated. The Boskonian engineers countered every action he took, within a split second after he made it; the tong-net tightened and closed.
Semiportables flamed then—heavy stuff—but they might just as well have remained cold. Their beams could not cut the dureum linkages; they slid harmlessly past—not through—the wraithlike, figmental invaders at whom they were timed. Kinnison was hauled aboard the Boskonian vessel; its structure and its furnishings and its crew becoming ever firmer and more substantial to his senses as he went from normal into pseudospace.
Semiportables ignited then—heavy equipment—but they might as well have stayed cold. Their beams couldn’t cut through the dureum linkages; they slid harmlessly past—not through—the ghostly, imagined invaders they were aimed at. Kinnison was pulled aboard the Boskonian ship; its structure, its furnishings, and its crew became increasingly solid and real to him as he transitioned from normal space into pseudospace.
As the pseudoworld became real, the reality of the base behind him thinned into unreality. In seconds it disappeared utterly, and Kinnison knew that to the senses of his fellow human beings he had vanished without leaving a trace. This ship, though, was real enough. So were his captors.
As the fake world became real, the reality of the base behind him faded into nothingness. In just a few seconds, it completely disappeared, and Kinnison realized that to the senses of the people around him, he had vanished without a trace. This ship, however, was definitely real. So were his captors.
The net opened, dumping the Lensman ignominiously to the floor. Tractor beams wrenched his blazing DeLameters out of his grasp—whether or not hands and arms came with them was entirely his own lookout. Tractors and pressors jerked him upright, slammed him against the steel wall of the room, held him motionless against it.
The net opened, throwing the Lensman unceremoniously to the floor. Tractor beams yanked his blazing DeLameters out of his hands—whether or not his hands and arms came with them was up to him. Tractors and pressors pulled him upright, slammed him against the steel wall of the room, and kept him pinned there.
Furiously he launched his ultimately lethal weapon, the Worsel-designed, Thorndyke-built, mind-controlled projector of thought-borne vibrations which decomposed the molecules without which thought and life itself could not exist. Nothing happened. He explored, finding that even his sense of perception was stopped a full foot away from every part of every one of those humanoid bodies. He settled down then and thought. A great light dawned; a shock struck sickeningly home.
Furiously, he unleashed his ultimate weapon—the Worsel-designed, Thorndyke-built, mind-controlled projector that emitted thought-based vibrations, capable of breaking down the molecules essential for thought and life itself. Nothing happened. He searched, realizing that even his sense of perception was blocked a whole foot away from every part of those humanoid bodies. He then sat down and pondered. A great realization hit him; a shock struck deeply and unsettlingly.
No such elaborate and super-powered preparations would have been made for the capture of any civilian. Presidents were old men, physically weak and with no extraordinary powers of mind. No—this whole chain of events had been according to plan—a high Boskonian's plan. Ruining a planet was, of course, a highly desirable feature in itself, but it could not have been the main feature.
No such complicated and supercharged preparations would have been made for capturing any civilian. Presidents were old men, physically weak and without any extraordinary mental powers. No—this entire series of events had followed a plan—a high Boskonian's plan. Destroying a planet was, of course, a highly desirable outcome in itself, but it couldn't have been the main focus.
Somebody with a real brain was out after the four Second-Stage Lensmen and he wasn't fooling. And if Nadreck, Worsel, Tregonsee and himself were all to disappear, the Patrol would know that it had been nudged. But jet back—which of the four other than himself would have taken that particular bait? Not one of them. Weren't they out after them, too? Sure they were—they must be. Oh, if he could only warn them—but after all, what good would it do? They had all warned each other repeatedly to watch out for traps; all four had been constantly on guard. What possible foresight could have avoided a snare set so perfectly to match every detail of a man's physical and mental make-up?
Someone with real smarts was after the four Second-Stage Lensmen, and they meant business. If Nadreck, Worsel, Tregonsee, and he all went missing, the Patrol would realize something was up. But seriously—out of the four, who besides him would have fallen for that trap? Not a single one of them. Weren't they also hunting for them? Of course they were—they had to be. Oh, if he could only warn them—but really, what good would that do? They had all reminded each other over and over to stay alert for traps; all four of them were always on guard. What kind of foresight could have prevented a snare so expertly designed to fit every aspect of a person's physical and mental traits?
But he wasn't licked yet. They had to know what he knew, how he had done what he had done, whether or not he had any superiors and who they were. Therefore they had had to take him alive, just as he had had to take various Boskonian chiefs. And they'd find out that as long as he was alive he'd be a dangerous buzzsaw to monkey with.
But he wasn't finished yet. They had to figure out what he knew, how he had accomplished what he did, whether he had any higher-ups and who they were. So they had to capture him alive, just like he had to take down several Boskonian leaders. And they'd discover that as long as he was alive, he would be a serious threat to deal with.
The captain, or whoever was in charge, would send for him; that was a foregone conclusion. He would have to find out what it was that he had caught; he would have to make a preliminary report of some kind. And somebody would slip. One hundred percent vigilance was impossible, and Kinnison would be on his toes to take advantage of that slip, whatever or however slight it might be.
The captain, or whoever was in charge, would call for him; that was a given. He would need to find out what it was that he had caught; he would have to make some sort of preliminary report. And someone would make a mistake. There was no way to maintain complete vigilance, and Kinnison would be ready to take advantage of that mistake, no matter how small it might be.
But the captors did not take Kinnison to the captain. Instead, accompanied by half-a-dozen armored men, that worthy came to Kinnison.
But the captors didn't take Kinnison to the captain. Instead, he came to Kinnison, accompanied by half a dozen armored men.
"Start talking, fellow, and talk fast," the Boskonian directed crisply in the lingua franca of deep space as the armored soldiers strode out. "I want to know who you are, what you are, what you've done, and everything about you and the Patrol. So talk—or do you want me to pull you apart with these tractors, armor and all?"
"Start talking, buddy, and talk fast," the Boskonian said sharply in the common language of deep space as the armored soldiers walked out. "I want to know who you are, what you are, what you've done, and everything about you and the Patrol. So talk—or do you want me to tear you apart with these tractors, armor and all?"
Kinnison paid no attention, but drove at the commander with his every mental force and weapon. Blocked. This ape too had a full-body, full-coverage screen.
Kinnison ignored him and focused all his mental energy and weapons against the commander. Blocked. This guy also had a full-body, full-coverage screen.
There was a switch, at the captain's hip, handy for finger-tip control. If he could only move! It would be so easy to flip that switch! Or if he could throw something, or make one of those other fellows brush against him just right, or if the guy happened to sit down a little too close to the arm of a chair, or if there were a pet animal of any kind around, or a spider or a worm or even a gnat—
There was a switch on the captain's hip, perfect for fingertip control. If he could just move! It would be so simple to flip that switch! Or if he could throw something, or make one of those other guys bump into him just right, or if the guy happened to sit down a little too close to the arm of a chair, or if there was a pet animal of any kind around, or a spider or a worm or even a gnat—
VI.
VI.
Second-Stage Lensman Tregonsee of Rigel IV did not rush madly out into space in quest of something or anything Boskonian in response to Kinnison's call. To hurry was not Tregonsee's way. He could move fast upon occasion, but before he would move at all he had to know exactly how, where, and why he should move.
Second-Stage Lensman Tregonsee of Rigel IV didn’t rush out into space frantically searching for something Boskonian in response to Kinnison's call. Rushing wasn't Tregonsee's style. He could move quickly when needed, but before he took any action, he had to be clear on how, where, and why he should act.
He conferred with his three fellows, he furnished them with all the data he possessed, he helped integrate the totaled facts into one composite. That composite pleased the others well enough so that they went to work, each in his own fashion, but it did not please Tregonsee. He could not visualize any coherent whole from the available parts. Therefore, while Kinnison was investigating the fall of Antigan IV, Tregonsee was sitting—or rather, standing—still and thinking. He was still standing still and thinking when Kinnison went to Radelix.
He met with his three colleagues, shared all the information he had, and helped combine the gathered facts into one unified piece. That mixture satisfied the others enough for them to start working, each in their own way, but it didn't satisfy Tregonsee. He couldn't see how the separate parts fit together into a coherent whole. So, while Kinnison was looking into the fall of Antigan IV, Tregonsee was sitting—or rather, standing—still and thinking. He was still standing still and thinking when Kinnison went to Radelix.
Finally he called in an assistant to help him think. He had more respect for the opinions of Camilla Kinnison than for those of any other entity, outside of Arisia, of the two galaxies. He had helped train all five of the Kinnison children, and in Cam he had found a kindred soul. Possessing a truer sense of values than any of his fellows, he alone realized that the pupils had long since passed their tutors; and it is a measure of his quality that the realization brought into Tregonsee's tranquil soul no tinge of rancor, but only wonder. What those incredible Children of the Lens had he did not know, but he knew that they—particularly Camilla—had extraordinary gifts.
Finally, he brought in an assistant to help him think. He respected Camilla Kinnison’s opinions more than anyone else's, apart from those from Arisia, across the two galaxies. He had helped train all five of the Kinnison kids, and he found a kindred spirit in Cam. With a deeper sense of values than any of his peers, he alone recognized that the students had surpassed their teachers long ago; and it speaks to his character that this realization brought no bitterness to Tregonsee’s calm soul, only a sense of awe. He didn’t know what those amazing Children of the Lens possessed, but he knew that they—especially Camilla—had remarkable abilities.
In the mind of this scarcely grown woman he perceived depths which he could not plumb, extensions and vistas the meanings of which he could not even vaguely grasp. He did not try either to plumb the abysses or to survey the expanses; he made no slightest effort, ever, to take from any of the children anything which the child did not first offer to reveal. In his own mind he tried to classify theirs; but, realizing in the end that that task was and always would be beyond his power, he accepted that fact as calmly as he accepted the numberless others of Nature's inexplicable facts. Tregonsee came the closest of any Second-Stage Lensman to the real truth, but even he never did suspect the existence of the Eddorians.
In the mind of this barely grown woman, he sensed depths he couldn't understand, along with possibilities and perspectives whose meanings were beyond his grasp. He didn’t try to explore those depths or examine the expanses; he never made even the slightest effort to take anything from any of the children that they didn’t first choose to show him. In his own mind, he tried to categorize theirs, but ultimately realized that he was and always would be incapable of that task. He accepted this fact as calmly as he accepted countless other mysterious truths of Nature. Tregonsee came closer than any other Second-Stage Lensman to the real truth, but even he never suspected the existence of the Eddorians.
Camilla, as quiet as her twin sister Constance was boisterous, parked her speedster in one of the capacious holds of the Rigellian's spaceship and joined him in the control room.
Camilla, as quiet as her twin sister Constance was loud, parked her sports car in one of the spacious bays of the Rigellian's spaceship and joined him in the control room.
"You believe, I take it, that Dad's logic is faulty, his deductions erroneous?" the girl thought; after a casual greeting. "I'm not surprised. So do I. He jumped at conclusions. But then, he does that, you know."
"You think, I guess, that Dad's reasoning is flawed, his conclusions wrong?" the girl mused after a casual greeting. "I'm not surprised. I feel the same way. He jumps to conclusions. But then again, that's just how he is, you know."
"Oh, I wouldn't say that, exactly. However, it seems to me," Tregonsee replied carefully, "that he did not have sufficient basis in fact to form any definite conclusion as to whether or not Renwood of Antigan was a Boskonian operative. It is that point which I wish to discuss with you first."
"Oh, I wouldn't put it that way. However, it seems to me," Tregonsee replied cautiously, "that he didn't have enough facts to draw any solid conclusion about whether or not Renwood of Antigan was a Boskonian operative. That's the point I want to discuss with you first."
Cam concentrated. "I don't see that it makes any difference, fundamentally, whether he was or not," she decided, finally. "A difference in method only, not in motivation. Interesting, perhaps, but immaterial. It is virtually certain in either case that Kandron of Onlo or some other entity is the motive force and is the one who must be destroyed."
Cam focused. "I don't think it really matters, in the end, whether he was or wasn't," she concluded after a moment. "It's just a difference in approach, not in purpose. It's intriguing, maybe, but irrelevant. In either case, it's almost certain that Kandron of Onlo or some other being is the driving force and needs to be eliminated."
"Of course, my dear, but that is only the first differential. How about the second, and the third? Method governs. Nadreck, concerning himself only with Kandron, tabulated and studied only the Kandronesque manifestations. He may—probably will—eliminate Kandron. It is by no means assured, however, that that step will be enough. In fact, from my preliminary study, I would risk a small wager that the larger and worse aspects would remain untouched. I would, therefore, suggest that we ignore, for the time being, Nadreck's findings and examine anew all the data available."
"Sure, my friend, but that’s just the first difference. What about the second and the third? Method matters. Nadreck, focused solely on Kandron, only looked at the Kandronesque signs. He might—most likely will—remove Kandron. However, it’s not guaranteed that this will solve everything. In fact, from my initial research, I’d bet a little that the bigger and more serious issues will still be there. So, I suggest we set aside Nadreck's findings for now and take another look at all the data we have."
"I wouldn't bet you a millo on that." Camilla caught her lower lip between white, even teeth. "Check. The probability is that Renwood was a loyal citizen. Let us consider every possible argument for and against that assumption—"
"I wouldn't bet you a dime on that." Camilla bit her lower lip with her white, even teeth. "Okay. The chances are that Renwood was a loyal citizen. Let's think about every possible argument for and against that assumption—"
They went into a contact of minds so close that the separate thoughts simply could not be resolved into terms of speech. They remained that way, not for the period of a few minutes which would have exhausted any ordinary brain, but for four solid hours; and at the end of that conference they had arrived at a few tentative conclusions.
They exchanged ideas so intensely that their individual thoughts couldn't be put into words. They stayed in that state, not for a few minutes, which would have overwhelmed any normal mind, but for a full four hours; and by the end of that discussion, they had come to some preliminary conclusions.
Kinnison had said that there was no possibility of tracing a hyperspatial tube after it had ceased to exist. There were millions of planets in the two galaxies. There was an indefinite, quite possibly an infinite number of coexistent parallel spaces, into any one of which the tube might have led. Knowing these things, Kinnison had decided that the probability was infinitesimally small that any successful investigation could be made along those lines.
Kinnison had stated that there was no way to track a hyperspatial tube after it had vanished. There were millions of planets in the two galaxies. There was an indefinite, and possibly infinite, number of parallel spaces coexisting, any of which the tube might have led to. Understanding this, Kinnison concluded that the chances of conducting a successful investigation in that direction were extremely small.
Tregonsee and Camilla, starting with the same facts, arrived at entirely different results. There were many spaces, true, but the inhabitants of any one space belonged to that space and would not be interested in the conquest or the permanent taking over of any other. Foreign spaces, then, need not be considered. Civilization had only one significant enemy: Boskonia. Boskonia, then, captained possibly by Kandron of Onlo, was the attacker. The tube itself could not be traced and there were millions of planets, yes, but those facts were not pertinent.
Tregonsee and Camilla, starting with the same facts, reached completely different conclusions. There were plenty of areas, true, but the people in any one area belonged to that area and wouldn't care about conquering or permanently taking over any others. Foreign areas didn't need to be considered. Civilization only had one major enemy: Boskonia. Boskonia, possibly led by Kandron of Onlo, was the aggressor. The tube itself couldn't be tracked and there were millions of planets, yes, but those details weren't relevant.
Why not? Because "X," who might or might not be Kandron, was not operating from a fixed headquarters, receiving reports from subordinates who did the work. A rigid philosophical analysis, of which few other minds would have been capable, showed that "X" was doing the work himself, and was moving from solar system to solar system to do it. Those mass psychoses in which entire garrisons went mad all at once, those mass hysterias in which vast groups of civilians went reasonably out of control, could not have been brought about by any ordinary mind. Of all Civilization, only Nadreck of Palain VII had the requisite ability; was it reasonable to suppose that Boskonia had many such minds? No. "X" was either singular or a small integer.
Why not? Because "X," who might or might not be Kandron, wasn’t operating from a fixed base, getting reports from subordinates who did the work. A strict philosophical analysis, which few other thinkers could have managed, revealed that "X" was doing the work himself and traveling from solar system to solar system to accomplish it. Those mass psychoses where entire garrisons went mad all at once, those mass hysterias where large groups of civilians lost control, couldn’t have been caused by any ordinary mind. Of all Civilization, only Nadreck of Palain VII had the necessary capability; was it reasonable to think that Boskonia had many minds like that? No. "X" was either unique or a small number.
Which? Could they decide the point? With some additional data, they could. Their linked minds went en rapport with Worsel, with Nadreck, with Kinnison, and with the principal statistician at Prime Base.
Which? Could they settle the matter? With a bit more information, they could. Their connected thoughts synced up with Worsel, Nadreck, Kinnison, and the lead statistician at Prime Base.
In addition to Nadreck's locus, they determined two more—one of all inimical manifestations, the other of those which Nadreck had not used in his computations. Their final exhaustive analysis showed that there were at least two, and very probably only two, prime intelligences directing those Boskonian activities. They made no attempt to identify either of them. They communicated to Nadreck their results and their conclusions.
In addition to Nadreck's location, they identified two more—one representing all hostile manifestations, and the other comprising those that Nadreck hadn't included in his calculations. Their thorough final analysis revealed that there were at least two, and likely only two, main intelligences guiding those Boskonian actions. They did not try to identify either of them. They shared their findings and conclusions with Nadreck.
"I am working on Kandron," the Palainian replied, flatly. "I made no assumptions as to whether or not there were other prime movers at work, since the point has no bearing. Your information is very interesting, and may perhaps prove valuable, and I thank you for it—but my present assignment is to find and to kill Kandron of Onlo."
"I’m focused on Kandron," the Palainian said bluntly. "I didn’t assume there were any other major players involved, since that doesn’t matter. Your insight is quite intriguing and could be useful, so thank you for sharing it—but right now, my job is to locate and eliminate Kandron of Onlo."
Tregonsee and Camilla, then, set out to find "X"; not any definite actual or deduced entity, but the perpetrator of certain closely related and highly characteristic phenomena, viz., mass psychoses and mass hysterias. Nor did they extrapolate. They visited the last few planets which had been affected, in the order in which the attacks had occurred. They studied every phase of every situation. They worked slowly, but—they hoped and they believed—surely. Neither of them had any idea then that behind "X" lay Ploor, and beyond Ploor, Eddore.
Tregonsee and Camilla set out to find "X"; not a specific entity, but the cause behind certain closely related and highly distinctive phenomena, like mass psychoses and mass hysterias. They didn’t make assumptions. They visited the last few planets that had been impacted, following the sequence of the attacks. They examined every detail of each situation. They worked slowly, but—they hoped and believed—surely. Neither of them had any idea at that moment that "X" was tied to Ploor, and beyond Ploor, Eddore.
Having examined the planet latest to be stricken, they made no effort to pick out definitely the one next to be attacked. It might be any one of ten worlds, or possibly even twelve. Hence, neglecting entirely the mathematical and logical probabilities involved, they watched them all, each taking six. Each flitted from world to world, with senses alert to perceive the first sign of subversive activity. Tregonsee was a retired magnate, spending his declining years in seeing the galaxy; Camilla was a Tellurian business girl on vacation.
Having looked at the most recent planet to be hit, they didn’t try to identify which one would be attacked next. It could be any of ten worlds, or maybe even twelve. So, ignoring all the math and logic involved, they watched them all, each taking six. Each moved from world to world, fully alert to catch the first hint of trouble. Tregonsee was a retired tycoon enjoying his later years by exploring the galaxy; Camilla was a Tellurian businesswoman on vacation.

Young, beautiful, innocent-looking girls who traveled alone were, then as ever, regarded as fair game by the Don Juan of any given human world. Scarcely had Camilla registered at the Hotel Grande when a well-groomed, self-satisfied man-about-town made an approach.
Young, beautiful, innocent-looking girls who were traveling alone were, as always, seen as easy targets by the Don Juan of any society. Hardly had Camilla checked into the Hotel Grande when a well-groomed, self-satisfied man about town approached her.
"Hel-lo, Beautiful! Remember me, don't you—old Tom Thomas? What say we split a bottle of fayalin, to renew old—" He broke off, for the red-headed eyeful's reaction was in no sense orthodox. She was not coldly unaware of his presence. She was neither coy nor angry, neither fearful nor scornful. She was only and vastly amused.
"Hey there, beautiful! You remember me, right—old Tom Thomas? How about we share a bottle of fayalin to catch up on old times—" He stopped short, because the redhead's reaction was anything but ordinary. She wasn’t coldly ignoring him. She wasn’t being shy or angry, nor was she scared or dismissive. She was simply and completely amused.
"You think, then, that I am human and desirable?" Her smile was devastating. "Did you ever hear of the Canthrips of Ollenole?" She had never heard of them either, before that instant, but this small implied mendacity did not bother her.
"You think, then, that I’m human and attractive?" Her smile was stunning. "Have you ever heard of the Canthrips of Ollenole?" She had never heard of them either, until that moment, but this little white lie didn’t bother her.
"No, I can't say that I have." The man, while very evidently taken aback by this new line of resistance, persevered. "What kind of a brush-off do you think you're trying to give me?"
"No, I can't say that I have." The man, clearly surprised by this unexpected pushback, pressed on. "What kind of rejection do you think you're trying to hand me?"
"Brush-off? See me as I am, you beast, and thank whatever gods you recognize that I am not hungry, having eaten just last night." In his sight her green eyes darkened to a jetty black, the flecks of gold in them scintillated and began to emit sparks. Her hair turned into a mass of horribly clutching tentacles. Her teeth became fangs, her fingers talons, her strong, splendidly proportioned body a monstrosity out of Hell's grisliest depths.
"Brush-off? Look at me for who I really am, you monster, and be grateful to whatever gods you believe in that I'm not hungry since I ate just last night." In his gaze, her green eyes transformed into a deep black, the golden flecks in them shimmering and starting to spark. Her hair morphed into a tangled mass of terrifying tentacles. Her teeth turned into fangs, her fingers became talons, and her strong, beautifully shaped body twisted into a hideous creature straight from the worst horrors of Hell.
After a moment she allowed the frightful picture to fade back into her charming self, keeping the Romeo from fainting by the power of her will.
After a moment, she let the scary image fade back into her charming self, keeping Romeo from passing out with the strength of her will.
"Call the manager if you like. He has been watching and has seen nothing except that you are pale and sweating. I, a friend of yours, have been giving you some bad news, perhaps. Tell your stupid police all about me, if you wish to spend the rest of your life in a padded cell. I'll see you again in a day or two, I hope. I'll be hungry again by that time." She walked away, serenely confident that the fellow would never willingly come within sight of her again.
"Feel free to call the manager if you want. He’s been watching and hasn’t noticed anything except that you look pale and sweaty. I, a friend of yours, might have been giving you some bad news. Go ahead and tell your clueless cops all about me if you want to spend the rest of your life in a padded room. I hope to see you again in a day or two; I’ll be hungry by then." She walked away, fully confident that he would never willingly come into her sight again.
She had not damaged his ego permanently—he was not a neurotic type—but she had given him a jolt which he never would forget. Camilla Kinnison nor any of her sisters had anything to fear from any male or males infesting any planet or roaming any depths of space.
She hadn't permanently damaged his ego—he wasn't the sensitive type—but she had given him a shock he would never forget. Camilla Kinnison or any of her sisters had nothing to worry about regarding any man or men lingering on any planet or wandering through space.
The expected and awaited trouble developed. Tregonsee and Camilla landed and began their hunt. The League for Planetary Purity, it appeared, was the primary focal point; hence the two attended a meeting of that crusading body. That was a mistake; Tregonsee should have stayed out in deep space, concealed behind a solid thought-screen.
The expected trouble finally arrived. Tregonsee and Camilla landed and started their search. The League for Planetary Purity seemed to be the main focus; so, the two decided to attend a meeting of that activist group. That was a mistake; Tregonsee should have remained hidden in deep space, behind a solid thought-screen.
For Camilla was an unknown. Furthermore, her mind was inherently stable at the third level of stress; no lesser mind could penetrate her screens or, having failed to do so, could recognize the fact of failure. Tregonsee, however, was known throughout all civilized space. He was not wearing his Lens, of course, but his very shape made him suspect. Worse, he could not hide from any mind as powerful as that of "X" the fact that his mind was very decidedly not that of a retired Rigellian gentleman.
For Camilla was a mystery. Plus, her mind was naturally stable at the third level of stress; no lesser intellect could get through her defenses, or if they failed, they wouldn't even realize it. Tregonsee, on the other hand, was well-known across all civilized space. He wasn't wearing his Lens, of course, but his very appearance raised suspicion. Even worse, he couldn't hide from any mind as strong as "X" that his thoughts were definitely not those of a retired Rigellian gentleman.
Thus Camilla had known that the procedure was a mistake. She intimated as much, but she could not sway the unswerving Tregonsee from his determined course without revealing things which must forever remain hidden from him. She acquiesced, therefore, but she knew what to expect.
Thus, Camilla knew that the procedure was a mistake. She hinted at it, but she couldn't steer the unwavering Tregonsee away from his determined path without revealing things that must forever stay hidden from him. So she went along with it, but she knew what to expect.
Hence, when the invading intelligence blanketed the assemblage lightly, only to be withdrawn instantly upon detecting the emanations of a mind of real power, Cam had a bare moment of time in which to act. She synchronized with the intruding thought, began to analyze it and to trace it back to its source. She did not have time enough to succeed fully in either endeavor, but she did get a line. When the foreign influence vanished she shot a message to Tregonsee and they sped away.
Hence, when the invading intelligence covered the group briefly, only to pull back immediately upon sensing the presence of a truly powerful mind, Cam had just a moment to act. She connected with the intruding thought, started to analyze it, and tried to trace it back to its origin. She didn’t have enough time to fully succeed in either task, but she did manage to get a lead. When the foreign influence disappeared, she sent a message to Tregonsee and they took off quickly.
Hurtling through space along the established line, Tregonsee's mind was a turmoil of thought; thoughts as plain as print to Camilla. She flushed uncomfortably—she could, of course, blush at will.
Hurtling through space along the established line, Tregonsee's mind was a whirlwind of thoughts; thoughts as clear as day to Camilla. She felt a wave of embarrassment—she could, of course, blush whenever she wanted.
"I'm not half the superman whose picture you are painting," she said. That was true enough; no one this side of Arisia could have been. "You're so famous, you know, and I'm not—while he was examining you I had a fraction of a second to work in. You didn't."
"I'm not even close to the superhero you're making me out to be," she said. That was true; no one around here could be. "You're so well-known, and I'm not—while he was checking you out, I had just a moment to chip in. You didn’t."
"That may be true." Although Tregonsee had no eyes, the girl knew that he was staring at her; scanning, but not intruding, with his highly developed sense of perception. She lowered her barriers so far that he thought they were completely down. "You have, however, extraordinary and completely inexplicable powers ... but, being the daughter of Kimball and Clarrissa Kinnison—"
"That might be true." Although Tregonsee had no eyes, the girl could tell he was looking at her; observing, but not invading, with his highly tuned sense of perception. She lowered her defenses so much that he thought they were totally gone. "You have, however, remarkable and completely mysterious abilities ... but, being the daughter of Kimball and Clarrissa Kinnison—"
"That's it, I think." She paused, then, in a burst of girlish confidence, went on: "I've got something, I really do think, but the trouble is that I don't know what it is or what to do with it. Maybe in fifty years or so I will."
"That's it, I think." She paused, then, with a burst of girl-like confidence, continued: "I have something, I really do think, but the problem is that I don't know what it is or what to do with it. Maybe in fifty years or so I will."
This also was close enough to the truth, and it did serve to restore to Tregonsee his wonted poise. "Be that as it may, I will take your advice next time, if you will offer it."
This was still pretty close to the truth, and it helped Tregonsee regain his usual calm. "Anyway, I'll take your advice next time, if you're willing to give it."
"Try and stop me—I love to give advice." She laughed unaffectedly. "It might not have turned out any differently this time, though, and it may not be any better next time."
"Go ahead and try to stop me—I love giving advice." She laughed without a care. "It might not have ended any differently this time, though, and it might not be any better next time."
Then, further to quiet the shrewd Rigellian's suspicions, she strode over to the control panel and checked the course. Having done so, she fanned out detectors, centering upon that course, to the fullest range of their power. She swaggered a little when she speared with the CRX tracer a distant vessel in a highly satisfactory location. That act would cut her down to size in Tregonsee's mind.
Then, to ease the clever Rigellian's doubts, she walked over to the control panel and checked the course. Once she did that, she spread out the detectors, focusing on that course, to their maximum range. She walked with a bit of confidence when she spotted a distant ship in a really good spot with the CRX tracer. That move would definitely humble her in Tregonsee's view.
"You think, then, that 'X' is in that ship?" he asked, quietly.
"You really think that 'X' is on that ship?" he asked softly.
"Probably not." She could not afford to act too dumb—she could fool a Second-Stage Lensman a little, but nobody could fool one very much. "It may, however, give us a lead."
"Probably not." She couldn’t afford to play too clueless—she could trick a Second-Stage Lensman a bit, but no one could really fool one for long. "It might, however, give us a clue."
"It is practically certain that 'X' is not in that vessel," Tregonsee thought. "In fact, it may be a trap. We must, however, make the customary arrangements to take it into custody."
"It’s almost certain that 'X' isn't in that vessel," Tregonsee thought. "Actually, it might be a trap. We still need to make the usual arrangements to take it into custody."
Cam nodded and the Rigellian communications officers energized their long-range beams. Far ahead of the fleeing vessel, centering upon its line of flight, fast cruisers of the Galactic Patrol began to form a gigantic cup. Hours passed, and—a not unexpected circumstance—Tregonsee's superdreadnought gained rapidly upon the supposed Boskonian.
Cam nodded, and the Rigellian communications officers powered up their long-range beams. Up ahead of the escaping ship, focusing on its path, fast cruisers from the Galactic Patrol started to create a massive cup shape. Hours went by, and, as expected, Tregonsee's superdreadnought quickly closed in on the supposed Boskonian.
The quarry did not swerve or dodge. Straight into the mouth of the cup it sped. Tractors and pressors reached out, locked on, and were neither repulsed nor cut. The strange ship did not go inert, did not put out a single course of screen, did not fire a beam. She did not reply to signals. Spy rays combed her from needle nose to driving jets, searching every compartment. There was no sign of life aboard.
The quarry didn't swerve or dodge. It sped straight into the mouth of the cup. Tractors and pressors reached out, locked on, and were neither pushed away nor cut off. The strange ship didn't go inert, didn't activate any shields, and didn't fire a beam. It didn't respond to signals. Spy rays scanned it from nose to tail, searching every compartment. There was no sign of life on board.
Spots of pink appeared upon Camilla's deliciously smooth cheeks, her eyes flashed. "We've been had, Uncle Trig—how we've been had!" she exclaimed, and her chagrin was not all assumed. She had not quite anticipated such a complete fiasco as this.
Spots of pink appeared on Camilla's beautifully smooth cheeks, her eyes sparkled. "We've been tricked, Uncle Trig—how we've been tricked!" she exclaimed, and her disappointment was real. She hadn’t expected such a total failure as this.
"Score one for 'X,'" Tregonsee said. He not only seemed to be, but actually was, calm and unmoved. "We will now go back and pick up where we left off."
"One point for 'X,'" Tregonsee said. He not only appeared to be, but really was, calm and unaffected. "Now let's go back and continue from where we stopped."
They did not discuss the thing at all, nor did they wonder how "X" had escaped them. After the fact, they both knew. There had been at least two vessels; at least one of them had been inherently indetectable and screened against thought. In one of these latter "X" had taken a course at some indeterminable angle to the one which they had followed.
They didn't talk about it at all, nor did they think about how "X" had gotten away from them. Afterward, they both understood. There had been at least two ships; at least one of them was completely undetectable and blocked against thought. On one of these, "X" had taken a path at some unclear angle compared to the one they had followed.
"X" was now at a safe distance.
"X" was now at a safe distance.
"X" was nobody's fool.
"X" wasn't anyone's fool.
VII.
VII.
Kathryn Kinnison, trim and taut in black glamourette, strolled into the breakfast nook humming a lilting song. Pausing before a full-length mirror, she adjusted her cocky little black toque at an even more piquant angle over her left eye. She made a couple of passes at her riot of curls and gazed at her reflected self in high approval as, putting both hands upon her smoothly rounded hips, she—"wriggled" is the only possible term for it—in the sheer joy of being alive.
Kathryn Kinnison, sleek and stylish in black glamourette, walked into the breakfast nook humming a cheerful tune. Pausing in front of a full-length mirror, she adjusted her playful little black hat at an even more striking angle over her left eye. She ran her hands through her wild curls and admired her reflection with high approval as, placing both hands on her smoothly rounded hips, she—“wriggled” is the only fitting word for it—celebrated the sheer joy of being alive.
"Kathryn—" Clarrissa Kinnison chided gently, "don't be exhibitionistic, dear." Except in times of stress the Kinnison women used spoken language, "to keep in practice," as they said.
"Kathryn—" Clarrissa Kinnison gently scolded, "don't be so flashy, dear." Unless they were under stress, the Kinnison women spoke to each other, "to keep in practice," as they put it.
"Why not? It's fun." The tall girl bent over and kissed her mother upon the lobe of an ear. "You're sweet, Mums, you know that? You're the most precious thing—Ha! Bacon and eggs? Goody!"
"Why not? It's fun." The tall girl leaned down and kissed her mother on the ear. "You're awesome, Mom, you know that? You're the most precious thing—Ha! Bacon and eggs? Yum!"
The older woman watched half-enviously as her eldest daughter ate with the carefree abandon of one who has no cares whatever either for her digestion or for her figure. She had no more understood her children, ever, than a hen can understand the brood of ducklings she has so unwittingly hatched out, and that comparison was more strikingly apt than Clarrissa Kinnison ever would know. She now knew, more than a little ruefully, that she never would understand them.
The older woman watched with a bit of envy as her eldest daughter ate with the carefree joy of someone who doesn’t worry at all about her digestion or her figure. She never really understood her children any more than a hen can understand the brood of ducklings she has unintentionally hatched, and that comparison was more fitting than Clarrissa Kinnison would ever realize. She now understood, with a touch of regret, that she would never grasp them.
She had not protested openly at the rigor of the regime to which her son Christopher had been subjected from birth. That, she knew, was necessary. It was inconceivable that Kit should not be a Lensman, and for a man to become a Lensman he had to be given everything which he could possibly take. She was deeply glad, however, that her four other babies had been girls. Her daughters were not going to be Lensmen. She, who had known so long and so heavily the weight of Lensman's load, would see to that. Herself a womanly, feminine woman, she had fought with every resource at her command to make her girl babies grow up into replicas of herself. She had failed.
She hadn't openly protested the strict environment her son Christopher had been raised in since birth. She understood it was necessary. It was unthinkable for Kit not to be a Lensman, and for a man to become a Lensman, he had to be given everything he could possibly handle. However, she was really glad that her four other children were girls. Her daughters were not going to be Lensmen. She, who had long felt the heavy burden of being a Lensman, would make sure of that. As a distinctly feminine woman, she had fought with everything she had to make her daughters grow up to be just like her. She had failed.
They simply would not play with dolls, nor play house with other little girls. Instead, they insisted upon "intruding," as she considered it, upon Lensmen; preferably upon Second-Stage Lensmen, if any one of the four chanced to be anywhere within reach. Instead of with toys, they played with atomic engines and flitters; and, later, with speedsters and spaceships. Instead of primers, they read Galactic charts. One of them might be at home, as now, or all of them; or none. She never did know what to expect.
They just wouldn’t play with dolls or house with the other girls. Instead, they insisted on “intruding,” as she called it, on the Lensmen; preferably on Second-Stage Lensmen, if any of the four happened to be nearby. Instead of playing with toys, they played with atomic engines and flitters; and later, with speedsters and spaceships. Instead of basic readers, they studied Galactic charts. One of them might be home, like now, or all of them; or none at all. She never knew what to expect.
But they were in no sense disloyal. They loved their mother with a depth of affection which no other mother, anywhere, has ever known. They tried their very best to keep her from worrying about them. They kept in touch with her wherever they went—which might be at whim to Tellus or to Thrale or to Alsakan or to any unplumbed cranny of intergalactic space—and they informed her, apparently without reservation, as to everything they did. They loved their father and their brother and each other and themselves with the same whole-hearted fervor they bestowed upon her. They behaved always in exemplary fashion. None of them had ever shown or felt the slightest interest in any one of numerous boys and men; and this trait, if the truth is to be told, Clarrissa could understand least of all.
But they were by no means disloyal. They loved their mother with a depth of affection that no other mother anywhere has ever experienced. They did their best to keep her from worrying about them. They kept in touch with her wherever they went—whether that was to Tellus, Thrale, Alsakan, or any unexplored corner of intergalactic space—and they shared everything they did with her, seemingly without holding anything back. They loved their father, their brother, each other, and themselves with the same wholehearted intensity they showed her. They always behaved in an exemplary manner. None of them had ever shown or felt the slightest interest in any of the numerous boys and men around them; and to be honest, this trait was the one Clarrissa understood the least.
No. The only thing basically wrong with them was the fact, made abundantly clear since they first toddled, that they should not be and could not be subjected to any jot or tittle of any form of control, however applied.
No. The only real issue with them was the fact, made very clear since they first started walking, that they shouldn’t and couldn’t be subjected to any tiny bit of control, no matter how it was applied.
Kathryn finished eating finally and gave her mother a bright, quick grin. "Sorry, Mums, you'll just have to give us up as hard cases, I guess." Her fine eyes, so like Clarrissa's except in color, clouded as she went on: "I am sorry, Mother, really, that we can't be what you so want us to be. We've tried so hard, but we just can't. It's something here, and here—" She tapped one temple and prodded her midsection with a pink forefinger. "Call it fatalism or anything you please, but I think that we're slated to do a job of some kind, some day, even though none of us has any idea what that job is going to be."
Kathryn finally finished her meal and flashed her mother a quick, bright grin. "Sorry, Mom, I guess you’ll just have to accept that we’re tough cases." Her beautiful eyes, so similar to Clarrissa's except for their color, became clouded as she continued: "I am really sorry, Mom, that we can't be what you want us to be. We've tried so hard, but we just can’t. It’s something here, and here—" She tapped her temple and pointed to her stomach with a pink finger. "Call it fatalism or whatever you want, but I think we’re meant to do something someday, even if none of us knows what that something is going to be."
Clarrissa paled. "I have been thinking just that for years, dear ... I have been afraid to say it, or even to think it. You are Kim's children, and mine. If there ever was a perfect, a predestined marriage, it is ours. And Mentor said that our marriage was necessary—" She paused, and in that instant she almost perceived the truth. She was closer to it than she had ever been before or ever would be again. But that truth was far too vast for her mind to grasp. She went on: "But I'd do it over again, Kathryn, knowing everything I know now. 'Vast rewards,' you know—"
Clarrissa went pale. "I've been thinking that for years, dear... I've been too scared to say it, or even to think it. You are Kim's children, and mine. If there was ever a perfect, destined marriage, it’s ours. And Mentor said that our marriage was essential—" She paused, and in that moment, she almost understood the truth. She was closer to it than she had ever been before or would ever be again. But that truth was too immense for her to fully comprehend. She continued: "But I’d choose to do it all over again, Kathryn, knowing everything I know now. 'Vast rewards,' you know—"
"Of course you would," Kat interrupted. "Any girl would be a fool not to. The minute I meet a man like Dad I'm going to marry him, if I have to scratch Kay's eyes out and snatch Cam and Con bald-headed to get him. But speaking of Dad, just what do you think of l'affaire Radelix?"
"Of course you would," Kat interrupted. "Any girl would be crazy not to. The second I meet a guy like Dad, I'm going to marry him, even if I have to scratch Kay's eyes out and pull Cam and Con's hair out to make it happen. But speaking of Dad, what do you think about the whole Radelix situation?"
Gone every trace of levity, both women stood up. Gold-flecked tawny eyes stared deeply into gold-flecked eyes of dark and velvety green.
Gone was every trace of lightheartedness; both women stood up. Gold-specked brown eyes gazed deeply into gold-specked dark green eyes.
"I don't know." Clarrissa spoke slowly, meaningfully. "Do you?"
"I don't know," Clarrissa said slowly, with intention. "Do you?"
"No. I wish that I did." Kathryn's was not the voice of a girl, but that of an avenging angel. "As Kit says, I'd give four front teeth and my right leg to the knee joint to know who or what is back of that, but I don't. I feel very much in the mood to do a flit out that way."
"No. I wish I did." Kathryn's voice wasn't that of a girl, but that of an avenging angel. "As Kit says, I’d give up four front teeth and my right leg up to the knee to know who or what is behind that, but I don’t. I definitely feel like making a move out that way."
"Do you?" Clarrissa paused. "I'm glad. I'd go myself, in spite of everything he says, except that I know I couldn't do anything. If that should be the job you were talking about—Oh, do anything you can, dear; anything to make sure that he comes back to me!"
"Do you?" Clarrissa paused. "I'm really glad. I'd go myself, despite everything he says, but I know I wouldn't be able to do anything. If that’s the job you were mentioning—Oh, please, do whatever you can, dear; anything to make sure he comes back to me!"
"Of course, Mums." Kathryn broke away almost by force from her mother's emotion. "I don't think it is; at least, I haven't got any cosmic hunch to that effect. And don't worry; it puts wrinkles in the girlish complexion. I'll do just a little look-see, stick around long enough to find out what's what, and let you know all about it. 'Bye."
"Of course, Mom." Kathryn pulled away from her mother’s feelings. "I don’t think it is; at least, I don’t have any strong feeling about it. And don’t worry; it’ll give you wrinkles. I’ll take a quick look, hang around long enough to figure things out, and let you know everything. Bye."
At high velocity Kathryn drove her indetectable speedster to Radelix, and around and upon that planet she conducted invisible investigations. She learned a part of the true state of affairs, she deduced more of it, but she could not see, even dimly, the picture as a whole. This part, though, was clear enough.
At high speed, Kathryn drove her stealthy speedster to Radelix, and on that planet, she carried out hidden investigations. She discovered some of the real situation, pieced together more of it, but she couldn’t make out, even vaguely, the complete picture. However, this part was clear enough.
An interdimensional expert, she did not have to be at the one apparent mouth of a hyperspatial tube in order to enter it; she knew that while communication was impossible either through such a tube from space to space or from the interior of the tube to either space, the quality of the tube was not the barrier. The interface was. Wherefore, knowing what to expect immediately and working diligently to solve the whole problem, she waited.
An interdimensional expert, she didn’t need to be at the one visible entrance of a hyperspatial tube to access it; she understood that even though communication was impossible either through the tube from one space to another or from inside the tube to either space, the nature of the tube wasn’t the issue. The interface was. So, knowing what to expect right away and working hard to tackle the entire problem, she waited.
She watched Kinnison's abduction. There was nothing she could do about that. She could not interfere then without setting up repercussions which might very well shatter the entire structure of the Galactic Patrol. When the Boskonian ship had disappeared, however, she tapped the tube and followed it. Almost nose to tail she pressed it, tensely alert to do some helpful deed which could be ascribed to accident or to luck. For she knew starkly that Kinnison's present captors would not slip and that his every ability had been discounted in advance.
She saw Kinnison get abducted. There was nothing she could do about it. If she interfered then, it could cause consequences that might completely destroy the Galactic Patrol. However, when the Boskonian ship vanished, she tapped the tube and tracked it. Almost right behind it, she followed, ready to do something helpful that could be attributed to chance or luck. She understood clearly that Kinnison's current captors wouldn't make mistakes and that they had already dismissed all his abilities.
Thus she was ready, when Kinnison's attention concentrated upon the switch controlling the Boskonian captain's thought-screen generator. There were no pets or spiders or worms, or even gnats, but the captain could sit down. Around his screen, then, she drove a solid beam of thought, upon a channel which neither the pirate nor the Lensman knew existed. She took over in a trice the fellow's entire mind. He sat down, as Kinnison had so earnestly hoped that he would do, the merest fraction of an inch too close to the chair's arm. The switch-handle flipped over and Kathryn snatched her mind away. She was sure that her father would not suspect that that bit of luck was anything except purely fortuitous. She was equally sure that the thing was safe, for a time at least, in Kinnison's highly capable hands. She slowed down, allowed the distance between the two vessels to increase. But she kept within range, for it was more than probable that one or two more seemingly lucky accidents would have to happen before very long.
Thus she was ready when Kinnison focused on the switch that controlled the Boskonian captain's thought-screen generator. There weren’t any pets, spiders, worms, or even gnats, but the captain could sit down. Surrounding his screen, she projected a strong beam of thought along a channel that neither the pirate nor the Lensman knew existed. In an instant, she took over the guy’s entire mind. He sat down, just as Kinnison had fervently hoped he would, a mere fraction of an inch too close to the edge of the chair's arm. The switch flipped over, and Kathryn quickly pulled her mind back. She was certain her father wouldn’t suspect that the bit of luck was anything but pure chance. She was also confident that it was safe, at least for a while, in Kinnison's highly capable hands. She slowed down and let the distance between the two ships widen, but she stayed within range, as it was likely that one or two more seemingly lucky accidents would need to happen soon.
In the instant of the flicking of the switch the captain's mind became Kinnison's. He was going to issue orders, to take the ship over in an orderly way, but his first contact with the subjugated mind made him change his plans. Instead of uttering orders, the captain leaped out of the chair toward the beam-controllers.
In the moment the switch was flipped, the captain's mind merged with Kinnison's. He intended to give orders and take control of the ship smoothly, but his initial connection with the subdued mind caused him to reconsider. Rather than issuing commands, the captain jumped out of the chair toward the beam controllers.
And not an instant too soon. Others had seen what had happened, had heard that telltale click. All had been warned against that and many other contingencies. As the captain leaped, one of his fellows drew a bullet-projector and calmly shot him through the head.
And not a moment too late. Others had witnessed what occurred, had heard that telltale click. Everyone had been cautioned about that and many other possibilities. As the captain jumped, one of his comrades pulled out a gun and coolly shot him in the head.
The shock of that bullet, the death of the mind in his own mind's grasp, jarred the Gray Lensman to the core. It was almost the same as though he himself had been killed. Nevertheless, by sheer force of will he held on, by sheer power of will he made that dead body take those last three steps and forced those dead hands to cut the master circuit of the beams which were holding him helpless.
The shock of that bullet, the death of his mind in his own mind's grasp, shook the Gray Lensman to the core. It was almost like he had been killed himself. Nevertheless, through sheer willpower he held on; with sheer determination, he made that lifeless body take those last three steps and forced those dead hands to cut the master circuit of the beams that had him trapped.
Freed, he leaped forward; but not alone. The others leaped, too, and for the same switch. Kinnison got there first—just barely first—and as he came he swung his armored fist.
Freed, he jumped forward; but not alone. The others jumped, too, all aiming for the same switch. Kinnison arrived first—just barely—and as he approached, he swung his armored fist.
What a dureum-inlaid glove, driven by all the brawn of Kimball Kinnison's mighty right arm and powerful torso backed by all the momentum of body- and armor-mass, will do to a human head met in direct central impact is nothing to dwell upon here. Simply, that head splashed. Pivoting nimbly, considering his encumbering armor, he swung a terrific leg. His massive steel boot sank calf-deep into the abdomen of the foe next in line. Two more utterly irresistible blows disposed of two more of the Boskonians; the last two turned and, frantically, ran. But the Lensman by that time had the juice back on; and when a man has been smacked against a solid armor-plate bulkhead by the full power of a D2P pressor, all that remains to be done must be accomplished with a scraper and a mop—or a sponge.
What a glove inlaid with dureum, powered by all the strength of Kimball Kinnison's powerful right arm and torso, combined with the momentum of his body and armor, will do to a human head upon direct impact is not something to focus on here. Simply put, that head splattered. Nimbly pivoting, despite the cumbersome armor, he delivered a powerful kick. His massive steel boot sank deep into the abdomen of the next opponent in line. Two more unstoppable blows took care of two more Boskonians; the last two turned and ran in a panic. But by that time, the Lensman had the power back on; and when a guy has been slammed against a solid armor-plate bulkhead by the full force of a D2P pressor, all that's left to do is clean up with a scraper and a mop—or a sponge.
Kinnison picked up his DeLameters, reconnected them, and took stock. So far, so good. But there were other men aboard this heap—how many, he'd better find out—and at least some of them wore dureum-inlaid armor as capable as his own.
Kinnison grabbed his DeLameters, reconnected them, and assessed the situation. Things were fine for now. But there were other guys on this junk—he should figure out how many—and at least some of them had dureum-inlaid armor just as strong as his.
And in her speedster, concluding that this wasn't going to be so bad, after all, Kathryn glowed with pride in her father's prowess. She was no shrinking violet, this Third-Stage Lensman; she held no ruth whatever for Civilization's foes. She herself would have driven that beam as mercilessly as had the Gray Lensman. She could have told Kinnison what next to do; could even have inserted the knowledge stealthily into his mind; but, heroically, she refrained. She would let him handle this in his own fashion as long as he possibly could do so.
And in her fast car, realizing that this wasn't going to be so bad after all, Kathryn beamed with pride in her father's skills. She was no wallflower, this Third-Stage Lensman; she felt no pity for the enemies of Civilization. She could have shot that beam as ruthlessly as the Gray Lensman. She could have told Kinnison what to do next; she could even have secretly planted the knowledge in his mind; but, in a show of heroism, she held back. She wanted him to manage this his own way for as long as he could.
The Gray Lensman sent his sense of perception abroad. Twenty more of them—the ship wasn't very big. Ten aft, armored. Six forward, also armored. Four, unarmored, in the control room. That control room was poison; he'd go aft first. He searched around—surely they'd have dureum space-axes? Oh, yes, there they were. He hefted them, selected one of the correct weight and balance. He strode down the companionway to the wardroom. He flung the door open and stepped inside.
The Gray Lensman stretched out his senses. There were twenty more of them—the ship wasn't very big. Ten at the back, armored. Six at the front, also armored. Four unarmored in the control room. That control room was a trap; he’d go to the back first. He looked around—surely they had dureum space axes? Oh, there they were. He picked them up and selected one that felt right in weight and balance. He walked down the hallway to the wardroom. He threw the door open and stepped inside.
His first care was to blast the communicator panels with his DeLameters. That would delay the mustering of reinforcements. The control room couldn't guess, at least for a time, that one man was setting out to capture their ship single-handed. His second, ignoring the beams of hand-weapons splashing refulgently from his screens, was to weld the steel door solidly to the jamb. Then, sheathing his projectors, he swung up his ax and went grimly to work. He thought fleetingly of how nice it would be to have VanBuskirk, that dean of all ax-men, at his back; but he wasn't too old or too fat to swing a pretty mean ax himself. And, fortunately, these Boskonians, here in their quarters, didn't have axes. They were heavy, clumsy, and for emergency use only; they were not a part of the regular uniform, as upon Valeria.
His first priority was to blast the communicator panels with his DeLameters. That would slow down the gathering of reinforcements. The control room wouldn’t be able to guess, at least for a while, that one person was setting out to capture their ship alone. His second move, ignoring the beams from hand weapons brilliantly reflecting off his screens, was to weld the steel door firmly to the frame. Then, putting away his projectors, he lifted his ax and got to work with a determined look. He briefly thought about how great it would be to have VanBuskirk, the best ax-man around, backing him up; but he wasn’t too old or too out of shape to swing a pretty decent ax himself. And luckily, these Boskonians, here in their quarters, didn’t have axes. They were heavy, awkward, and meant only for emergencies; they weren’t part of the regular uniform, unlike on Valeria.
The space-ax! Formerly that weapon had been forged from the hardest and toughest of alloy steels. For years, however, it had been made universally from dureum. A deceptive little thing, truly! A dainty-looking affair a little larger than a broad-hatchet. Unlike a hatchet, however, it had a mass of some twenty pounds and was equipped with a yard-long, double-gripped shaft. A sharply tapered spear-end for thrusting, gouging, and stabbing; a wickedly curved, needle-pointed beak for rending and tearing; a flatly rounded, razor-sharp blade capable of shearing through neo-carballoy as cleanly as a scalpel through butter.
The space-ax! This weapon used to be made from the hardest and toughest alloy steels. However, for years now, it has been made entirely from dureum. It's a surprisingly deceptive little thing! It looks delicate, a bit larger than a broad hatchet. But unlike a hatchet, it weighs about twenty pounds and has a yard-long, double-gripped handle. It features a sharply tapered spear-end for thrusting, gouging, and stabbing; a wickedly curved, needle-pointed beak for ripping and tearing; and a flat, rounded, razor-sharp blade that can slice through neo-carballoy as easily as a scalpel cuts through butter.
The first foe swung up his DeLameter involuntarily as Kinnison's ax swept down. When the curved blade, driven as viciously as the Lensman's strength could drive it, struck the ray-gun it did not even pause. Through it it sliced, the severed halves falling to the floor.
The first enemy raised his DeLameter reflexively as Kinnison’s axe came crashing down. When the curved blade, driven with all the force the Lensman could muster, hit the ray gun, it didn’t even hesitate. It sliced right through, and the two halves dropped to the ground.
The dureum inlay of the glove held, and glove and ax smashed together against the helmet. The Boskonian went down with a crash; but, beyond a broken arm or some such trifle, he wasn't hurt much. And no armor that a man had to carry around could be made of solid dureum. Hence, Kinnison reversed his weapon and swung again, aiming carefully at a point between the inlay strips. The ax's wicked beak tore through steel and skull and brain, stopping only with the sharply ringing impact of dureum shaft against dureum stripping.
The dureum inlay of the glove held up, and the glove and ax smashed together against the helmet. The Boskonian went down with a loud crash; but aside from a broken arm or something minor, he wasn’t hurt much. And no armor a person had to carry could be made of solid dureum. So, Kinnison flipped his weapon around and swung again, carefully aiming for a spot between the inlay strips. The ax’s savage beak sliced through steel, skull, and brain, stopping only when the dureum shaft hit the dureum stripping with a sharp ringing sound.
They were coming at him now, not only with DeLameters, but with whatever of steel bars and spanners and bludgeons they could find. QX—his armor could take oodles of that. They might dent it, but they couldn't possibly get through. Planting one boot solidly upon his victim's helmet, he wrenched his ax out through flesh and bone and metal—no fear of breakage; not even a Valerian's full savage strength could break that small, fragile-looking tool—and struck again. And struck—and struck.
They were coming at him now, not just with DeLameters, but with any steel bars, wrenches, and heavy objects they could find. QX—his armor could handle all that. They might leave dents in it, but there was no way they could break through. Planting one boot firmly on his victim's helmet, he yanked his ax out through flesh, bone, and metal—no worry about it breaking; not even a Valerian's full savage strength could break that small, delicate-looking tool—and struck again. And struck—and struck.
He fought his way to the door—two of the survivors were trying to unseal it and to get away. They failed; and, in failing, died. A couple of the remaining enemies shrieked and ran in blind panic, and tried to hide; the others battled desperately on. But whether they ran or fought there was only one possible end, if the Patrolman were to survive. No enemy must or could be left alive behind him, to bring to bear upon his back some semiportable weapon with whose energies his armor's screens could not cope.
He pushed his way to the door—two of the survivors were trying to pry it open and escape. They didn’t succeed, and in failing, they died. A few of the remaining enemies screamed and fled in blind panic, trying to find a place to hide; the others fought back fiercely. But whether they ran or fought, there was only one possible outcome if the Patrolman was going to make it out alive. No enemy could be left behind him to use some portable weapon that his armor couldn't defend against.
When the grisly business was over Kinnison, panting, rested briefly. This was the first real brawl he had been in for twenty years; and for a veteran—a white-collar man, a Co-ordinator to boot—he hadn't done so bad, he thought. That was hard work and, while he was maybe a hair short on wind, he hadn't weakened a particle. To here, QX.
When the brutal fight was finally over, Kinnison, out of breath, took a short break. This was the first real fight he had been in for twenty years, and for a veteran—especially a white-collar guy and a Coordinator at that—he thought he hadn't done too badly. It was tough work, and while he might have been slightly short on stamina, he hadn’t weakened at all. To here, QX.
And lovely Kathryn, far enough back but not too far and reading imperceptibly his every thought, agreed with him enthusiastically. She did not have a father complex, but in common with her sisters she knew exactly what her father was. With equal exactitude she knew what other men were. Knowing them, and knowing however imperfectly herself, each of the Kinnison girls knew that it would be a physical and psychological impossibility for her to become even mildly interested in any man not at least her father's equal. They each had dreamed of a man who would be her own equal, physically and mentally, but it had not yet occurred to any of them that one such man already existed.
And lovely Kathryn, standing far enough back but not too far and picking up on his every thought without him realizing it, agreed with him enthusiastically. She didn’t have a father complex, but like her sisters, she knew exactly who her father was. She also distinctly understood what other men were like. Knowing them, and understanding herself—even if imperfectly—each of the Kinnison girls was aware that it would be physically and psychologically impossible for her to be even mildly interested in any man who wasn’t at least as good as her father. Each had dreamed of a man who would be her equal, both physically and mentally, but none of them had yet realized that one such man already existed.
Kinnison cut the door away and again sent out his sense of perception. With it fanning out ahead of him he retraced his previous path. The apes in the control room had done something; he didn't know just what. Two of them were tinkering with a communicator panel; probably the one to the ward room. They probably thought that the trouble was at their end. Or did they? Why hadn't they reconnoitered? He dismissed that problem as being of no pressing importance. The other two were doing something at another panel. What? He couldn't make head or tail of it—hang those full-coverage screens! And Nadreck's fancy drill, even if he had had one along, wouldn't work unless the screen were absolutely steady. Well, it didn't make much, if any, difference. They had called the men back from up forward, and here they came. He'd rather meet them in the corridor than in an open room, anyway, he could handle them a lot easier.
Kinnison sliced the door away and sent out his perception again. With it spreading out ahead of him, he retraced his previous path. The apes in the control room had done something; he wasn't sure exactly what. Two of them were fiddling with a communicator panel, probably the one for the ward room. They likely thought the issue was on their side. Or did they? Why hadn’t they checked? He pushed that thought aside as it wasn't a priority. The other two were working on another panel. What were they doing? He couldn't figure it out—those full-coverage screens were a hassle! And Nadreck’s fancy drill, even if he had one, wouldn't work unless the screen was perfectly still. Well, it didn’t really matter. They had called the men back from up front, and here they came. He’d prefer to meet them in the corridor rather than in an open room; it would be much easier to handle them that way.
But tensely watching Kathryn gnawed her lip. Should she tell him, or control him, or not? No. She wouldn't—she couldn't—yet. Dad could figure out that pilot room trap without her help—and she herself, with all her power of brain, could not visualize with any degree of clarity the menace which was—which must be—at the tube's end or even now rushing along it to meet that Boskonian ship.
But she was anxiously watching Kathryn, biting her lip. Should she tell him, or control him, or do nothing? No. She wouldn't—she couldn't—yet. Dad could figure out that pilot room trap on his own—and she, with all her brainpower, couldn’t see clearly what the threat was—which had to be—at the end of the tube or even now speeding toward that Boskonian ship.
Kinnison met the oncoming six and vanquished them. By no means as easily as he had conquered the others, since they had been warned and since they also now bore space-axes, but just as finally. Kinnison did not consider it remarkable that he escaped practically unscathed—his armor was battered and dinged up, cut and torn, but he had only a couple of superficial wounds. He had met the enemy where they could come at him only one at a time; he was still the master of any weapon known to space warfare; it had been at no time evident that any outside influence was interfering with the normally rapid functioning of the Boskonians' minds.
Kinnison faced the six attackers and defeated them. It wasn't as easy as defeating the others, since they had been warned and now carried space-axes, but he ultimately triumphed. Kinnison didn’t find it surprising that he came out mostly unhurt—his armor was battered and damaged, cut and torn, but he only had a couple of surface wounds. He had confronted the enemy in a way that allowed him to take them on one at a time; he still proved to be the master of any weapon used in space combat; there had been no indication that any outside force was disrupting the usually quick thinking of the Boskonians.
He was full of confidence, full of fight, and far from spent when he faced about to consider what he should do about that control room. There was plenty of stuff in there—tougher stuff than he had met up with so far.
He was brimming with confidence, ready for a challenge, and far from worn out when he turned to think about what to do regarding the control room. There was a lot of equipment in there—tougher than anything he had dealt with so far.
Kathryn in her speedster gritted her strong white teeth and clenched her shapely hands into hard little fists. This was bad—very, very bad—and it was going to get worse. Closing up fast, she uttered a bitter and exceedingly unladylike expletive.
Kathryn in her speedster gritted her strong white teeth and clenched her shapely hands into tight little fists. This was bad—really, really bad—and it was about to get worse. Closing in quickly, she let out a bitter and very unladylike curse.
Couldn't Dad see—couldn't the dumb darling sense—that he was apt to run out of time almost any minute now?
Couldn't Dad see—couldn't the silly dear sense—that he was about to run out of time any minute now?
She fairly writhed in an agony of indecision; and indecision, in a Third-Stage Lensman, is a rare phenomenon indeed. She wanted intensely to take over, but if she did, was there any way this side of Palain's purple hells that she could cover up her tracks?
She was really struggling with an intense feeling of indecision, which is quite rare for a Third-Stage Lensman. She desperately wanted to take control, but if she did, was there any way she could hide her actions?
There was none—yet.
Not yet.


VIII.
VIII.
But Kinnison's mind, while slower than his daughter's and in many respects less able, was sure. The four Boskonians in the control room were screened against his every mental force and it was idle even to hope for another such lucky break as he had just had. One was QX and to be received thankfully, but coincidences simply did not happen. They were armored by this time and they had both machine rifles and semiportable projectors. They were entrenched; evidently intending to fight a delaying and defensive battle, knowing that if they could keep the aggressor at bay until the pseudospace of the tube had been traversed, the Lensman would not have a chance. Armed with all they could use of the most powerful mobile weapons aboard and being four to one, they undoubtedly thought that they could win easily enough.
But Kinnison's mind, although slower than his daughter's and not as capable in many ways, was reliable. The four Boskonians in the control room were defending against every mental force he could muster, and it was pointless to hope for another stroke of luck like the one he’d just experienced. One victory was good to have, but coincidences just didn’t occur. By this time, they were equipped with armor, machine rifles, and semi-portable projectors. They had taken positions, clearly planning to fight a delaying and defensive battle, knowing that if they could keep the aggressors at bay until they had gone through the pseudospace of the tube, the Lensman wouldn’t stand a chance. Armed with everything they could use from the most powerful mobile weapons on board and outnumbering Kinnison four to one, they certainly believed they could win easily.
Kinnison thought otherwise. Since he could not use his mind against them he would use whatever he could find, and this ship, having come upon such a mission, would be carrying plenty of weapons—and those four men certainly hadn't had time to tamper with them all. He might even find some negative-matter bombs.
Kinnison thought differently. Since he couldn’t use his mind against them, he would make use of whatever he could find, and this ship, having come across such a mission, would be loaded with weapons—and those four men definitely hadn’t had time to mess with all of them. He might even come across some negative-matter bombs.
Setting up a spy-ray block, he proceeded to rummage. They couldn't see him, and, if any one of them had a sense of perception and cut his screen for even a fraction of a second to use it, the battle would end then and there. And, if they decided to rush him, so much the better. They remained, however, forted up, as he had thought that they would, and he rummaged in peace. Various death-dealing implements, invitingly set up, he ignored after one cursory glance into their interiors. He knew weapons—these had been fixed. He went on to the armory.
Setting up a spy-ray block, he started searching through the area. They couldn't see him, and if any of them had any awareness and interrupted their screen for even a brief moment to check it, the fight would be over right away. And if they chose to rush him, that would be even better. However, they stayed holed up, just as he expected, allowing him to search in peace. He gave a quick look at various deadly weapons that were displayed but quickly dismissed them. He knew weapons—these were already set up. He moved on to the armory.
He did not find any negabombs, but he found plenty of untouched weapons like those now emplaced in the control room. The rifles were beauties, high-caliber, water-cooled things, each with a heavy dureum shield-plate and a single-ply screen. Each had also a beam, but machine-rifle beams weren't so hot. Conversely, the semiportables had lots of screen, but very little dureum. Kinnison lugged one rifle and two semiportables, by easy stages, into the room next to the control room; so placing them that the control panels would be well out of the line of fire.
He didn’t find any negabombs, but he found plenty of untouched weapons like the ones now positioned in the control room. The rifles were stunning, high-caliber, water-cooled pieces, each with a heavy dureum shield plate and a single-ply screen. Each also had a beam, but machine-rifle beams weren’t very effective. On the other hand, the semi-portables had plenty of screens, but very little dureum. Kinnison carried one rifle and two semi-portables, in easy stages, into the room next to the control room, placing them so that the control panels would be well out of the line of fire.
What gave Kinnison his chance was the fact that the enemies' weapons were set to cover the door. Apparently they had not considered the possibility that the Lensman would attempt to flank them by blasting through an inch and a half of alloy. Kinnison did not know whether he could do it fast enough to mow them down from the side before they could reset their magnetic clamps, or not; but he'd give it the good old college try. It was bound to be a mighty near thing, and the Lensman grinned wolfishly behind the guard plates of his helmet as he arranged his weapons to save every possible fractional second of time.
What gave Kinnison his opportunity was that the enemies' weapons were aimed at the door. They apparently hadn’t considered that the Lensman might try to outmaneuver them by blasting through an inch and a half of alloy. Kinnison wasn’t sure if he could take them out from the side fast enough before they could reset their magnetic clamps, but he was going to give it his best shot. It was definitely going to be a close call, and the Lensman grinned wickedly behind the guard plates of his helmet as he readied his weapons to save every possible fraction of a second.
Aiming one at a spot some three feet above the floor, the other a little lower, Kinnison cut in the full power of his semiportables and left them on. He energized the rifle's beam—every little bit helped—set the defensive screens at "full", and crouched down into the saddle behind the dureum shield. He had checked the feeds long since; he had plenty of rounds.
Aiming one at a spot about three feet off the ground and the other a bit lower, Kinnison turned on the full power of his semi-portables and kept them running. He activated the rifle’s beam—every little bit helped—set the defensive screens to "full," and crouched down into the saddle behind the dureum shield. He had checked the feeds long ago; he had plenty of ammo.
Two large spots and a small one smoked briefly, grew red. They turned bright red, then yellow, merged into one blinding spot. Metal melted, sluggishly at first, then thinly, then flaring, blowing out in raging coruscations of sparks as the fiercely-driven beams ate in. Through!
Two large spots and a small one glowed briefly, turning red. They became bright red, then yellow, merging into a single blinding spot. Metal melted, slowly at first, then more fluid, before exploding into wild bursts of sparks as the powerful beams drilled in. Through!
The first small opening appeared directly in line between the muzzle of Kinnison's rifle and one of the guns of the enemy, and in the moment of its appearance the Patrolman's weapon began its stuttering, shattering roar. The Boskonians had seen the hot spot upon the wall, had known instantly what it meant, and were working frantically to swing their gun mounts around so as to interpose their dureum shields and to bring their own rifles to bear. They had almost succeeded. Kinnison caught just the bulge of one suit of armor in his sights, but that was enough. The kinetic energy of the stream of metal tore him out of the saddle; he was literally riddled while still in air. Two savage bursts took care of the semiportables and their operators—as has been intimated, the shields of the semis were not designed to withstand the type of artillery Kinnison was using.
The first small opening appeared directly in line between the muzzle of Kinnison's rifle and one of the enemy's guns, and the moment it showed up, the Patrolman's weapon started its stuttering, explosive roar. The Boskonians saw the hot spot on the wall, instantly understood what it meant, and frantically tried to turn their gun mounts to block their dureum shields and aim their own rifles. They almost succeeded. Kinnison managed to catch a glimpse of one suit of armor in his sights, but that was enough. The kinetic energy from the metal stream knocked him off his saddle; he was literally shot through while still in the air. Two fierce bursts took out the semiportables and their operators—as mentioned, the shields of the semis weren't built to withstand the type of artillery Kinnison was using.
That made it cannon to cannon, one to one; and the Lensman knew that those two identical rifles could hammer at each other's defenses for an hour without doing any serious damage. He had, however, one big advantage. Being closer to the bulkhead he could depress his line of fire more than could the Boskonian. He did so, aiming at the clamps, which were not built to take very much of that sort of punishment. One front clamp let go, then the other, and the Lensman knew what to do about the rear pair, which he could not reach. He directed his fire against the upper edge of the dureum plate. Under the awful thrust of that terrific storm of steel the useless front clamps lifted from the floor. The gun mount, restrained from sliding by the unbreakable grip of the rear clamps, reared up. Over it went, straight backward, exposing the gunner to the full blast of Kinnison's fire. That, definitely, was that.
That made it a standoff, one-on-one; and the Lensman knew that those two identical rifles could shoot at each other's defenses for an hour without causing serious damage. He had, however, one big advantage. Being closer to the bulkhead, he could angle his shot lower than the Boskonian could. He did just that, aiming at the clamps, which weren't designed to handle that kind of punishment. One front clamp released, then the other, and the Lensman knew how to deal with the rear pair, which he couldn't reach. He aimed his fire at the top edge of the dureum plate. Under the incredible force of that massive storm of steel, the useless front clamps lifted off the floor. The gun mount, held in place by the unbreakable grip of the rear clamps, tipped backward. Over it went, exposing the gunner to the full force of Kinnison's fire. That, for sure, was it.
Kathryn heaved a sigh of relief; as far as she could "see", the tube was still empty. "That's my Pop!" she applauded inaudibly to herself. "Now," she breathed, "if the darling has just got jets enough to figure out what may be coming at him down this tube—and sense enough to run back home before it can catch him!"
Kathryn let out a sigh of relief; as far as she could tell, the tube was still empty. "That's my dad!" she cheered silently to herself. "Now," she whispered, "if only the sweetheart has enough sense to realize what might be coming towards him through this tube—and the smarts to run back home before it can catch him!"
Kinnison had no suspicion at all that any danger to himself might lie within the tube. He had no desire, however, to land alone in a strange and possibly half-crippled enemy ship in the exact center of an enemy base, and no intention whatever of doing so. Moreover, he had once come altogether too close to permanent immolation in a foreign space because of the discontinuance of a hyperspatial tube while he was in it, and once was once too many. Also, he had just got done leading with his chin, and once of that, too, was once too many. Therefore, his sole thought was to get back into his own space as fast as he could get there, so as soon as the opposition was silenced he hurried into the control room and reversed the vessel's drive.
Kinnison had no idea that any danger to himself might be hidden inside the tube. He definitely didn’t want to land alone on some random, possibly damaged enemy ship right in the heart of an enemy base, and he wasn’t about to do that. Plus, he had once come way too close to being permanently trapped in a foreign space because a hyperspatial tube shut down while he was inside it, and once was more than enough. He had just finished taking a big risk, and once of that was also more than enough. So, his only thought was to get back to his own space as quickly as he could. As soon as the opposition was taken care of, he rushed into the control room and reversed the vessel's drive.
Behind him, Kathryn flipped her speedster end for end and led the retreat. She left the tube before—"before" is an extremely loose and inaccurate word in this connection, but it conveys the idea better than any other ordinary term—she got back to Base. She caused an officer to broadcast an "evacuation" warning, then hung poised high above Base, watching intently. She knew that Kinnison could not leave the tube except at its terminus, hence would have to materialize inside Base itself. She had heard of what happened when two dense, hard solids attempted to occupy the same three-dimensional space at the same time; but to view that occurrence was not her purpose in lingering. She did not actually know whether there was anything in the tube or not; but she did know that if there were, and if it or they should follow her father out into normal space, even she would have need of every jet she could muster.
Behind him, Kathryn flipped her speedster around and led the retreat. She left the tube before—"before" is a very loose and inaccurate word here, but it gets the point across better than any other ordinary term—she got back to Base. She had an officer broadcast an "evacuation" warning, then hovered high above Base, watching closely. She knew that Kinnison couldn’t leave the tube except at its end, so he would have to materialize inside Base itself. She had heard about what happens when two dense, hard objects try to occupy the same three-dimensional space at the same time; but watching that happen wasn't why she stayed. She didn't actually know whether there was anything in the tube or not; but she did know that if there was, and if it or they followed her father into normal space, even she would need every bit of thrust she could get.
Kinnison, maneuvering his Boskonian cruiser to a halt just at the barest perceptible threshold of normal space, in the intermediate zone in which nothing except dureum was solid in either space or pseudospace, had already given a great deal of thought to the problem of disembarkation. The ship was small, as spaceships go, but even so it was a lot bigger than any corridor of Base. Those corridor walls and floors were thick and contained a lot of steel; the ship's walls were solid alloy. He had never seen metal materialize within metal and, frankly, he didn't want to be around, even inside D-armor, when it happened. Also, there were a lot of explosives aboard, and atomic power plants, and the chance of touching off a loose atomic vortex in the very middle of Base and within a few feet of himself was not one to be taken lightly.
Kinnison brought his Boskonian cruiser to a stop right at the faint edge of normal space, in the middle zone where nothing except dureum was solid in either space or pseudospace. He had already thought a lot about the issue of disembarkation. The ship was small for a spaceship, but it was still much bigger than any corridor in the Base. The corridor walls and floors were thick and full of steel, while the ship's walls were solid alloy. He had never seen metal appear within metal, and honestly, he didn’t want to be around, even inside D-armor, when it happened. Plus, there were a lot of explosives onboard, as well as atomic power plants, and the risk of triggering a loose atomic vortex right in the middle of the Base and just a few feet away from him was not something to take lightly.
He had already rigged a line to a master switch. Power off, with the ship's dureum catwalk as close to the floor of the corridor as the dimensions of the tube permitted, he reversed the controls and poised himself for the running headlong dive. He could not feel Radeligian gravitation, of course, but he was pretty sure that he could leap far enough to get through the interface. He took a short run, jerked the line, and hurled himself through the spaceship's immaterial wall. The ship disappeared.
He had already set up a line to a main switch. With the power off and the ship's dureum catwalk as close to the corridor floor as the tube allowed, he reversed the controls and got ready for a headlong dive. He couldn't feel the Radeligian gravity, but he was fairly certain he could jump far enough to get through the interface. He took a quick run, tugged the line, and launched himself through the spaceship's intangible wall. The ship vanished.
Going through that interface was more of a shock than the Lensman had anticipated. Even taken very slowly, as it customarily is, interdimensional acceleration brings malaise to which no one has ever become accustomed, and taking it so rapidly fairly turned Kinnison inside out. He was going to land with the rolling impact which constitutes perfect technique in such armored maneuvering. As it was, he never did know how he landed, except that he made a boiler-shop racket and that he brought up against the far wall of the corridor with a climactic clang. Beyond the addition of a few more bruises and contusions to his already abundant collection, however, he was not harmed.
Going through that interface was more of a shock than the Lensman had expected. Even when done slowly, like it usually is, interdimensional acceleration causes discomfort that nobody ever really gets used to, and going through it so quickly nearly flipped Kinnison inside out. He was supposed to land with the smooth roll that perfect technique requires in such armored maneuvers. As it turned out, he still didn’t know how he landed, except that he made a loud crashing noise and ended up slamming against the far wall of the corridor with a dramatic bang. Aside from adding a few more bruises and scrapes to his already impressive collection, he was fine.
As soon as he could collect himself he leaped to his feet and rapped out orders. "Tractors—pressors—shears! Heavy stuff, to anchor, not to clamp! Hipe!" He knew what he was up against now, and, if they'd just come back, he'd yank them out of that tube so fast it'd break their neck!
As soon as he got a grip on himself, he jumped to his feet and shouted orders. "Tractors—pressors—shears! Heavy equipment, to anchor, not to clamp! Hipe!" He understood what he was dealing with now, and if they just returned, he'd pull them out of that tube so quickly it would snap their necks!
And Kathryn, still watching intently, smiled. Her Dad was a pretty smart old duck, but he wasn't using his noggin now—he was cockeyed as Trenco's ether in thinking that they might come back. If anything at all erupted from that hypercircle, it would be something against which the stuff he was mustering would be precisely as effective as so much thin air. And she still had no concrete idea of what she so feared. It would not be essentially physical, she was pretty sure. It would almost have to be mental. But who or what could possibly put it across? And how? And above all, what could she do about it if they did?
And Kathryn, still watching closely, smiled. Her dad was a pretty smart guy, but he wasn’t thinking straight now—he was as out of touch as Trenco’s ether if he thought they might return. If anything came out of that hypercircle, it would be something against which the resources he was gathering would be as useful as thin air. And she still had no clear idea of what she was so afraid of. It wasn’t likely to be something physical; she was pretty sure of that. It would almost have to be something mental. But who or what could possibly deliver it? And how? And most importantly, what could she do about it if they did?
Eyes narrowed, brow furrowed in concentration, she thought as she had never thought before; and the harder she thought the more clouded the picture became. For the first time in her triumphant life she felt small—weak—impotent. It was in that hour that Kathryn Kinnison really grew up.
Eyes narrowed, brow furrowed in concentration, she thought like she never had before; and the harder she thought, the more unclear the picture became. For the first time in her successful life, she felt small—weak—helpless. It was in that moment that Kathryn Kinnison truly grew up.
The tube vanished; she heaved a tremendous sigh of relief. They, whoever they were, having failed to bring Kinnison to them—this time—were not coming after him—this time. Not an important enough game to play to the end? No, that wasn't it. Maybe they weren't ready. But the next time—
The tube disappeared; she let out a huge sigh of relief. They, whoever they were, having failed to bring Kinnison to them—this time—weren't coming after him—this time. Not a big enough game to finish? No, that wasn't it. Maybe they weren't prepared. But next time—
Mentor the Arisian had told her bluntly, the last time she had seen him, to come to him again when she had found out that she did not know everything there was to be known. Deep down, she had believed that that day would never come. Now, however, it had. This escape—if it had been an escape—had taught her much.
Mentor the Arisian had told her straightforwardly, the last time she had seen him, to come back to him once she realized that she didn’t know everything there was to know. Deep down, she had thought that day would never arrive. Now, however, it had. This escape—if it had really been an escape—had taught her a lot.
"Mother!" She shot a call to distant Klovia. "I'm on Radelix. Everything's on the green. Dad has just knocked a flock of Boskonians into an outside loop and come through QX. I've got to do a little flit, though, before I come home. 'Bye."
"Mom!" She called out to faraway Klovia. "I'm on Radelix. Everything's looking good. Dad just sent a group of Boskonians into an outside loop and came through QX. I need to make a quick detour before I come home. Bye."
Kinnison stood intermittent guard over Base for four days after the hyperspatial tube had disappeared before he gave up; before he did any very serious thinking upon what he should do next.
Kinnison took turns guarding the Base for four days after the hyperspatial tube vanished before he decided to give up; before he really started to think about what to do next.
Could he and should he keep on as Sybly Whyte? He could and he should, he decided. He hadn't been gone long enough for Whyte's absence to have been noticed; nothing whatever connected Whyte with Kinnison. If he really knew what he was doing, a more specific alias might be better; but as long as he was merely smelling around, Whyte's was the best identity to use. He could go anywhere, do anything, ask anything of anybody, and all with a perfectly good excuse.
Could he and should he continue as Sybly Whyte? He could and he should, he decided. He hadn't been gone long enough for anyone to notice Whyte's absence; there was nothing linking Whyte to Kinnison. If he really knew what he was doing, a more specific alias could be better; but as long as he was just exploring, Whyte was the best identity to use. He could go anywhere, do anything, ask anything of anybody, and all with a perfectly valid excuse.
And as Sybly Whyte, then, for days that stretched into weeks, he roamed—finding, as he had been afraid that he would find, nothing whatever. It seemed as though all Boskonian activity of the type in which he was most interested had ceased with his return from the hyperspatial tube. Just what that meant he did not know. It was unthinkable that they had given up on him—much more probably they were hatching something brand new. And the frustration of inaction and the trying to figure out what was coming next was driving him not-so-slowly nuts.
And as Sybly Whyte, for days that turned into weeks, he wandered—discovering, as he had feared, absolutely nothing. It felt like all Boskonian activity related to his interests had stopped since he returned from the hyperspatial tube. He had no idea what that meant. It was unimaginable that they had abandoned him—more likely, they were working on something completely new. The frustration of doing nothing and trying to figure out what was coming next was driving him pretty close to madness.
Then, striking through the doldrums, came a call from Maitland.
Then, breaking through the boredom, came a call from Maitland.
"Kim? You told me to Lens you immediately about any off-color work. Don't know whether this is or not. The guy may be—probably is—crazy. Conklin, who reported him, couldn't decide—neither can I, from Conklin's report. Do you want to send somebody special, take over yourself, or what?"
"Kim? You told me to let you know right away about any inappropriate work. I’m not sure if this qualifies. The guy might be—most likely is—crazy. Conklin, who reported him, couldn’t figure it out—neither can I, based on Conklin's report. Do you want to send someone to handle it, take it over yourself, or what?"
"I'll take over," Kinnison decided instantly. If neither Conklin nor the Vice Co-ordinator, Gray Lensmen both, could decide, there was no point in sending anyone else. "Where and who?"
"I'll handle it," Kinnison decided right away. If neither Conklin nor the Vice Coordinator, both Gray Lensmen, could make a decision, there was no reason to bring in anyone else. "Where and who?"
"Planet, Meneas II, not too far from where you are now. City, Meneateles; 116-3-29, 45-22-17. Place, Jack's Haven, a meteor miner's hangout at the corner of Gold and Sapphire Streets. Person, a man called 'Eddie'."
"Planet, Meneas II, not too far from where you are now. City, Meneateles; 116-3-29, 45-22-17. Place, Jack's Haven, a meteor miner's hangout at the corner of Gold and Sapphire Streets. Person, a man called 'Eddie'."
"Thanks. I'll check." Maitland did not send, and Kinnison did not want, any additional information. Both knew that since the Co-ordinator was going to investigate this thing himself, he should get his facts, and particularly his impressions, unprejudiced and at first hand.
"Thanks. I'll check." Maitland didn't send, and Kinnison didn’t want, any extra information. Both knew that since the Coordinator was going to look into this matter himself, he should get his facts, especially his impressions, without bias and directly.
To Meneas II, then, and to Jack's Haven, Sybly Whyte went, notebook very much in evidence. An ordinary enough space-dive Jack's turned out to be—higher-toned than that Radeligian space-dock saloon of Bominger's; much less flamboyant than notorious Miners' Rest on far Euphrosyne.
To Meneas II and Jack's Haven, Sybly Whyte went, her notebook clearly visible. Jack's was an ordinary enough space dive—classier than that Radeligian space-dock bar at Bominger's; much less showy than the infamous Miners' Rest on far Euphrosyne.
"I wish to interview a person named Eddie," he announced, as he bought a bottle of wine. "I have been informed that he has had deep-space adventures worthy of incorporation into one of my novels."
"I want to interview someone named Eddie," he said as he bought a bottle of wine. "I've heard that he has some amazing deep-space adventures that would be great for one of my novels."
"Eddie? Haw!" The barkeeper laughed raucously. "That space-louse? Somebody's been kidding you, mister. He's nothing but a broken-down meteor miner—you know what a space-louse is, don't you?—that we let clean cuspidors and do such-like odd jobs for his keep. We don't throw him out, like we do the others, because he's kind of funny in one way. Every hour or so he throws a fit, and that amuses people."
"Eddie? Ha!" The bartender laughed loudly. "That space loser? Someone's been playing a joke on you, man. He's just a washed-up meteor miner—you know what a space loser is, right?—who we let clean spittoons and do other odd jobs to get by. We don't kick him out like we do the others because he’s kind of funny in a way. Every hour or so, he has a meltdown, and that entertains people."
Whyte's eager-beaver attitude did not change; his face reflected nothing of what Kinnison thought of this callous speech. For Kinnison did know exactly what a space-louse was. More, he knew exactly what turned a man into one. Ex-meteor miner himself, he knew what the awesome depths of space, the ever-present dangers, the privations, the solitude, the frustrations, did to any mind not adequately integrated. He knew that only the strong survived; that the many weak succumbed. From sickening memory he knew just what pitiful wrecks those many became. Nevertheless, and despite the fact that the information was not necessary:
Whyte's super enthusiastic attitude didn't change; his face showed nothing of what Kinnison thought about this harsh speech. Kinnison knew exactly what a space-louse was. More importantly, he understood what could turn someone into one. Being an ex-meteor miner himself, he was aware of how the vastness of space, the constant dangers, the hardships, the isolation, and the frustrations affected any mind that wasn't strong enough. He knew that only the strong survived, while many weak ones fell by the wayside. From painful memories, he remembered just how pitiful those weak ones became. Still, even though the information wasn't necessary:
"Where is this Eddie now?"
"Where's Eddie now?"
"That's him, over there in the corner. By the way he's acting, he'll have another fit pretty quick now."
"That's him, over there in the corner. The way he's behaving, he'll have another episode pretty soon."
The shambling travesty of a man accepted avidly the invitation to table and downed at a gulp the proffered drink. Then, as though the mild potion had been a trigger, his wracked body tensed and his features began to writhe.
The awkward mess of a man eagerly accepted the invitation to sit down and gulped the offered drink. Then, as if the mild beverage had triggered something, his battered body tensed up, and his face began to twist.
"Cateagles!" he screamed; eyes rolling, breath coming in hard, frantic gasps. "Gangs of cateagles! Thousands! They're clawing me to bits! And the Lensman! He's sicking them on! OW!! Yow!!!" He burst into unintelligible screams and threw himself to the floor. There, rolling convulsively over and over, he tried the impossible feat of covering simultaneously with his two clawlike hands his eyes, ears, nose, mouth, and throat.
"Cateagles!" he shouted, his eyes wide and breath coming in fast, desperate gasps. "Groups of cateagles! Thousands! They're tearing me apart! And the Lensman! He’s sending them after me! OW!! Yow!!!" He erupted into incoherent screams and collapsed onto the floor. There, rolling frantically back and forth, he attempted the impossible task of covering his eyes, ears, nose, mouth, and throat at the same time with his two claw-like hands.
Ignoring the crowding spectators, Kinnison invaded the helpless mind before him. He winced mentally as he photographed upon his own brain the whole atrocious enormity of what was there. Then, while Whyte busily scribbled notes, he shot a thought to distant Klovia.
Ignoring the crowd of onlookers, Kinnison entered the defenseless mind in front of him. He recoiled internally as he imprinted the entire horrific reality of what he found onto his own mind. Then, while Whyte rapidly took notes, he sent a thought to far-off Klovia.
"Cliff! I'm here in Jack's Haven, and I've got Eddie's data. What did you and Conklin make of it? You agree, of course, that the Lensman is the crux."
"Cliff! I'm here in Jack's Haven, and I have Eddie's data. What did you and Conklin think of it? You agree, of course, that the Lensman is the key point."
"Definitely. Everything else is hop-happy space-drift. The fact that there are not—there can't be—any such Lensman as Eddie imagined, makes him space-drift, too, in our opinion. We called you in on the millionth chance—sorry that we sent you out on a false alarm, but you said we had to be sure."
"Definitely. Everything else is just random space wandering. The fact that there are not—there can't be—any Lensman like Eddie imagined makes him drift in space as well, in our opinion. We brought you in on the millionth chance—sorry we sent you out on a false alarm, but you said we had to be sure."
"You needn't be sorry." Kinnison's thought was the grimmest Clifford Maitland had ever felt. "Eddie isn't an ordinary space-louse. You see, I happen to know one thing that you and Conklin don't, since you've never been there. Did you happen to notice a woman in the picture? Very faint; decidedly in the background?"
"You don't need to apologize." Kinnison's thought was the darkest Clifford Maitland had ever experienced. "Eddie isn't just any ordinary space pest. You see, I know something that you and Conklin don’t because you've never been there. Did you happen to notice a woman in the picture? Very faint; definitely in the background?"
"Now that you mention her—yes, there was one. So far in the background and so faint that it never occurred to either Conklin or me that she could be connected. How can she possibly have any bearing, Kim? Most every spaceman has a woman—or a lot of different ones—more or less on his mind all the time, you know. Definitely immaterial and not germane, I'd say."
"Now that you mention her—yeah, there was one. She was so much in the background and so faint that neither Conklin nor I ever thought she could be connected. How could she possibly matter, Kim? Most spacemen have a woman—or several—on their minds all the time, you know? I'd say she's definitely irrelevant and not related to this."
"So would I, maybe, except for the fact that she isn't really a woman at all, but a Lyranian—"
"So would I, maybe, except for the fact that she isn’t really a woman at all, but a Lyranian—"
"A LYRANIAN!" Maitland interrupted. Kinnison could feel the racing of his assistant's thoughts. "That complicates things. But how in Palain's purple hells, Kim, could Eddie ever have got to Lyrane—and if he did, how did he get away alive?"
"A LYRANIAN!" Maitland interrupted. Kinnison could sense the whirlwind of his assistant's thoughts. "That makes things more complicated. But how in Palain's purple hells, Kim, could Eddie have ever gotten to Lyrane—and if he did, how did he manage to get away alive?"
"I don't know, Cliff." Kinnison's mind, too, was working fast. "But you haven't got all the dope yet. Not only is she a Lyranian, but I know her personally—she's that airport manager who tried her level best to kill me all the time I was on Lyrane II."
"I don't know, Cliff." Kinnison's mind was racing too. "But you don't have all the information yet. Not only is she a Lyranian, but I know her personally—she's that airport manager who did everything she could to kill me while I was on Lyrane II."
"Hm-m-m." Maitland tried to digest that undigestible bit. Tried, and failed. "That would seem to make the Lensman real, too, then—real enough, at least, to investigate—much as I hate to think of the possibility of a Lensman going that far off the beam." Maitland's convictions died hard. "Unless—could there be any possibility of coincidence?"
"Hmm." Maitland tried to process that impossible idea. He tried, but it didn't work. "That would mean the Lensman is real too—real enough, at least, to look into this—though I really hate to think about a Lensman straying that far off course." Maitland's beliefs were hard to shake. "Unless—could there be a chance of coincidence?"
"Coincidence is out. Don't think it's a trap, either—hasn't got the right earmarks."
"Coincidence is not a thing anymore. Don't see it as a trap, either—it doesn’t have the right signs."
"You'll handle this yourself, then?"
"Are you going to handle this yourself?"
"Check. At least, I'll help. There may be people better qualified than I am to do the heavy work. I'll get them at it. Thanks, Cliff—clear ether."
"Got it. At least I'll lend a hand. There might be people more qualified than I am to handle the tough tasks. I'll get them started. Thanks, Cliff—clear skies."
He lined a thought to his wife; and after a short, warmly intimate contact, he told her everything that had happened.
He shared his thoughts with his wife, and after a brief, warm moment together, he told her everything that had happened.
"So you see, Beautiful," he concluded, "your wish is coming true. I couldn't keep you out of this if I wanted to. So check with the girls, put on your Lens, take off your clothes, and go to work."
"So you see, Beautiful," he finished, "your wish is coming true. I couldn't keep you out of this even if I tried. So check in with the girls, put on your Lens, take off your clothes, and get to work."
"I'll do that." Clarrissa laughed and her soaring spirit flooded his mind. "Thanks, my dear."
"I'll do that." Clarrissa laughed, and her uplifting energy filled his thoughts. "Thanks, my dear."

Then and only then did Kimball Kinnison, master therapist, pay any further attention to that which lay contorted upon the floor. But when Whyte folded up his notebook and left the place, the derelict was resting quietly; and in a space of time long enough so that the putative writer of space operas would not be connected with the cure, those fits would end. Moreover, Eddie would return, whole, to the void: he would become what he had never before been—a successful meteor miner.
Then and only then did Kimball Kinnison, master therapist, pay any more attention to what was twisted on the floor. But when Whyte closed his notebook and left, the derelict was resting peacefully; and after enough time passed so that the supposed writer of space operas wouldn’t be linked to the recovery, those fits would stop. Furthermore, Eddie would come back, complete, to the emptiness: he would become what he had never been before—a successful meteor miner.
Lensmen pay their debts; even to spiders and to worms.
Lensmen settle their debts; even to spiders and worms.
IX.
IX.
Her adventure in the hyperspatial tube had taught Kathryn Kinnison much. Realizing her inadequacy and knowing what to do about it, she drove her speedster at high velocity to Arisia. Unlike the Second-Stage Lensmen, she did not even slow down as she approached the planet's barrier; but, as one sure of her welcome, merely threw out ahead of her an identifying thought.
Her adventure in the hyperspatial tube had taught Kathryn Kinnison a lot. Understanding her limitations and knowing how to address them, she raced her speedster at high speeds to Arisia. Unlike the Second-Stage Lensmen, she didn't even slow down as she got close to the planet's barrier; instead, confident of her welcome, she simply projected an identifying thought ahead of her.
"Ah, daughter Kathryn, again you are in time." Was there, or was there not, a trace of emotion—of welcome, even of affection?—in that usually utterly emotionless thought? "Land as usual."
"Ah, daughter Kathryn, you're right on time again." Was there, or was there not, a hint of emotion—of welcome, maybe even affection?—in that usually completely emotionless remark? "Land as usual."

She neutralized her controls as she felt the mighty beams of the landing engine take hold of her little ship. Upon previous visits she had questioned nothing—this time she was questioning everything. Was she landing, or not? Directing her every force inwardly, she probed her own mind to its profoundest depths. Definitely, she was her own mistress throughout—no conceivable mind could take hers over so tracelessly. As definitely, then, she was actually landing.
She neutralized her controls as she felt the powerful beams of the landing engine grab hold of her small ship. In her past visits, she had questioned nothing—this time, she was questioning everything. Was she really landing or not? Focusing all her energy inward, she examined her mind's deepest corners. She was definitely in control—no other mind could take hers over so completely. So, she was indeed landing.
She landed. The ground upon which she stepped was real. So was the automatic flier—neither plane nor helicopter—which whisked her from the spaceport to her familiar destination, an unpretentious residence upon the grounds of an immense hospital. The graveled walk, the flowering shrubs, and the indescribably sweet and pungent perfume were real; as were the tiny pain and the drop of blood which resulted when a needle-sharp thorn pierced her incautious finger.
She landed. The ground she stepped on was real. So was the automatic flier—neither a plane nor a helicopter—that took her from the spaceport to her familiar destination, a simple home on the grounds of a huge hospital. The gravel path, the flowering bushes, and the indescribably sweet and strong scent were real; so was the tiny pain and the drop of blood that came when a needle-sharp thorn pricked her careless finger.
Through automatically opening doors she made her way into the familiar, comfortable, book-lined room which she knew was Mentor's study. And there, at his big desk, unchanged, sat Mentor. A lot like her father, but older—much older. About ninety, she had always thought, even though he didn't look over sixty. This time, however, she drove a probe—and got the shock of her life. Her thought was stopped—cold—not by superior mental force, which she could have taken unmoved, but by a seemingly ordinary thought-screen; and her fast-disintegrating morale began visibly to crack.
Through the automatically opening doors, she entered the familiar, cozy, book-filled room that she knew was Mentor's study. And there, at his large desk, unchanged, sat Mentor. A lot like her father, but older—much older. She had always thought he was about ninety, even though he didn't look over sixty. This time, however, she probed—and got the shock of her life. Her thought came to a sudden halt—not because of a superior mental force, which she could have brushed off, but by what appeared to be an ordinary thought-screen; and her rapidly fading morale began to visibly crack.
"Is all this ... are you ... real, or not?" she burst out, finally. "If it isn't, I'll go mad!"
"Is all this ... are you ... real, or not?" she exclaimed, finally. "If it isn't, I'm going to lose my mind!"
"That which you have tested—and I—are real, for the moment and as you understand reality. Your mind in its present state of advancement cannot be deceived concerning such elementary matters."
"What's been tested by you—and me—is real, as far as you understand reality at this moment. Your mind, with its current level of development, can't be fooled about these basic issues."
"But it all wasn't, before? Or don't you want to answer that?"
"But it wasn't all like that before, was it? Or do you not want to answer that?"
"Since the sure knowledge will affect your growth, I will answer. It was not. This is the first time that your speedster has landed physically upon Arisia."
"Since knowing for sure will impact your growth, I’ll respond. It didn’t happen. This is the first time your speedster has physically set foot on Arisia."
The girl shrank, appalled. "You told me to come to you again when I had learned that I did not know everything there was to know," she finally forced herself to say. "I learned that in the tube; but I did not realize until just now that I don't know anything. Do you really think, Mentor, that there is any use at all in going on with me?" she concluded, bitterly.
The girl shrank back, shocked. "You told me to come to you again when I realized that I didn’t know everything," she finally managed to say. "I learned that in the tube; but I just now understood that I don’t know anything. Do you really think, Mentor, that there's any point in continuing with me?" she finished, bitterly.
"Much," he assured her. "Your development has been eminently satisfactory, and your present mental condition is both necessary and sufficient."
"Absolutely," he assured her. "Your growth has been very impressive, and your current mental state is both essential and adequate."
"Well, I'll be a spr—" Kathryn bit off the expletive and frowned. "What were you doing to me before, then, when I thought I got everything?"
"Well, I'll be a spr—" Kathryn cut off the curse and frowned. "What were you doing to me earlier, then, when I thought I had everything?"
"Power of mind," he informed her. "Sheer power, and penetration, and control. Depth, and speed, and all the other factors with which you are already familiar."
"Mind power," he told her. "Pure power, and insight, and control. Depth, and speed, and all the other aspects you already know about."
"But what is left? I know there is—lots of it—but I can't imagine what."
"But what’s left? I know there’s a lot, but I can’t picture what it is."
"Scope," Mentor replied, gravely. "Each of those qualities and characteristics must be expanded to encompass the full sphere of thought. Neither words nor thoughts can give any adequate concept of what it means; a practically wide-open two-way will be necessary. This cannot be accomplished, daughter, in the adolescent confines of your present mind; therefore enter fully into mine."
"Scope," Mentor said seriously. "Each of those qualities and characteristics needs to be broadened to include the complete range of thought. Words or thoughts alone can't capture what it truly means; a practically open two-way understanding will be essential. You can't achieve this, daughter, with the limited perspective of your current mind; so fully engage with mine."
She did so: and after less than a minute of that awful contact slumped to the floor.
She did it: and after less than a minute of that awful connection, she collapsed to the floor.
The Arisian, unchanged, unmoved, unmoving, gazed at her until finally she began to stir.
The Arisian, unchanged, unmoved, and still, looked at her until she finally started to move.
"That ... father Mentor, that was—" she blinked, shook her head savagely, fought her way back to full consciousness. "That was a shock."
"That ... father Mentor, that was—" she blinked, shook her head hard, and struggled to fully wake up. "That was a shock."
"It was," he agreed. "More so than you think. Of all the entities of your Civilization, your brother and now you are the only ones it would not kill instantly. You now know what the word 'scope' means, and are ready for your last treatment, in the course of which I shall take your mind as far along the road of knowledge as mine is capable of going."
"It was," he agreed. "More than you realize. Out of all the beings in your Civilization, your brother and now you are the only ones it wouldn’t eliminate right away. You now understand what the word 'scope' means, and you’re prepared for your final treatment, during which I'll take your mind as far along the path of knowledge as mine can go."
"But that would mean ... you're implying—But my mind can't be superior to yours, Mentor! Nothing could be, possibly—it's sheerly, starkly unthinkable!"
"But that would mean ... you're implying—But my mind can't be better than yours, Mentor! Nothing could be, possibly—it's just completely unthinkable!"
"But true, daughter, nevertheless. While you are recovering your strength from that which was but the beginning of your education, I will explain certain matters previously obscure. You have long known, of course, that you five children are not like any others. You have always known many things without having learned them. You think upon all possible bands of thought. Your senses of perception, of sight, of hearing, of touch, are so perfectly merged into one sense that you perceive at will any possible manifestation upon any possible plane or dimension of vibration. Also, although this may not have occurred to you as extraordinary, since it is not obvious, you differ physically from your fellows in some important respects. You have never experienced the slightest symptom of physical illness; not even a headache or a decayed tooth. You do not really require sleep. Vaccinations and inoculations do not 'take'. No pathogenic organism, however virulent; no poison, however potent—"
"But it's true, daughter. While you're regaining your strength from what was just the start of your education, I will clarify some things that were previously unclear. You've known for a long time that you five children are not like anyone else. You've always understood many things without actually learning them. You explore all kinds of ideas. Your senses of perception—sight, hearing, touch—are so completely integrated that you can perceive any possible manifestation across any possible plane or dimension of vibration at will. Also, even if you haven't thought it was extraordinary since it isn't obvious, you are physically different from your peers in some significant ways. You've never experienced even the slightest symptom of physical illness; not even a headache or a cavity. You don't really need sleep. Vaccinations and inoculations don't 'work' for you. No pathogenic organism, no matter how harmful; no poison, no matter how potent—"
"Stop, Mentor!" Kathryn gasped, turning white. "I can't take it ... you really mean, then, that we aren't human at all?"
"Stop, Mentor!" Kathryn gasped, going pale. "I can’t handle this... you really mean that we aren’t human at all?"
"Yes and no. A partial explanation, while long, may be in order. Many cycles of time ago it became apparent to our more advanced thinkers that the rise and fall of Civilizations was too rhythmic to be accidental. They studied this rhythm, but life was too short. They set out, then, deliberately to prolong their lives. Fewer and fewer in numbers, they lived longer and longer; and the longer each lived, the more he learned. Their visualizations of the Cosmic All became less tenuous, more complete. It became evident that there was some inimical force at work; a force implacably opposed to that which we know as Civilization. Like a mouse in the power of a torturing cat, any Civilization could go just so far, but no farther. For instance, that of Atlantis, upon your father's native planet, Tellus. I was personally concerned in that, and could not stop its fall." The Arisian was showing emotion now; his thought was bleak and bitter.
"Yes and no. A partial explanation, while lengthy, might be necessary. A long time ago, it became clear to our more advanced thinkers that the rise and fall of civilizations was too rhythmic to be random. They studied this pattern, but life was too short. So, they intentionally set out to extend their lives. With fewer and fewer people, they lived longer and longer; and the longer each person lived, the more they learned. Their understanding of the Cosmic All became less vague and more complete. It became obvious that there was some opposing force at work; a force relentlessly against what we call Civilization. Like a mouse in the grip of a torturing cat, any civilization could only go so far, but no further. For example, that of Atlantis, on your father's native planet, Tellus. I was personally involved in that, and I couldn't prevent its fall." The Arisian was showing emotion now; his thoughts were bleak and bitter.
"Four of us were assigned to the problem of this opposing force. We learned that its final abatement would necessitate the development of a race superior to ours in every respect. We, therefore, selected blood lines in each of the four strongest races of the galaxy and began to eliminate as many as possible of their weaknesses and to concentrate all of their strengths. From your knowledge of genetics you realize the magnitude of the task; you know that it would take much time uselessly to go into the details of its accomplishment. Your father and your mother were the penultimates of long—very long—lines of matings; their procreative cells were such that in their fusion practically every gene carrying any trait of weakness was rejected. Conversely, you carry the genes of every trait of strength ever known to any member of your human race. Therefore, while in outward seeming you are human, in every factor of importance you are not; you are even less human than am I myself."
"Four of us were assigned to tackle this opposing force. We realized that overcoming it would require creating a race superior to ours in every way. So, we chose bloodlines from the four strongest races in the galaxy and focused on eliminating their weaknesses while enhancing their strengths. With your knowledge of genetics, you understand the scale of this task; it would be pointless to delve into the specifics of how we achieved it. Your father and mother were the penultimate results of very long lines of selective breeding; their reproductive cells were such that when they fused, nearly every gene linked to weakness was discarded. On the other hand, you inherit the genes for every known strength from any member of your human race. So, while you may look human on the outside, in every essential aspect, you’re not; you are even less human than I am."
"And just how human is that?" Kathryn flared, and again her most penetrant probe of force flattened out against the Arisian's screen.
"And just how human is that?" Kathryn snapped, and once again her sharpest probe of force pressed against the Arisian's shield.
"Later, daughter, not now. That knowledge will come at the end of your education, not at its beginning."
"Later, sweetheart, not right now. You'll learn that at the end of your education, not at the start."
"I was afraid so." She stared at the Arisian, her eyes wide and hopeless; brimming, in spite of her efforts at control, with tears. "You're a monster, and I am ... or am going to be ... a worse one. A monster ... and I'll have to live a million years ... alone ... why? Why, Mentor, did you have to do this to me?"
"I was afraid so." She looked at the Arisian, her eyes wide and hopeless, filled with tears despite her attempts to hold it together. "You're a monster, and I am... or I’m going to be... an even worse one. A monster... and I'll have to live a million years... alone... why? Why, Mentor, did you have to do this to me?"
"Calm yourself, daughter. The shock, while severe, will pass. You have lost nothing, have gained much."
"Calm down, sweetheart. The shock, though intense, will fade. You haven't lost anything; you've gained a lot."
"Gained? Bah!" The girl's thought was loaded with bitterness and scorn. "I've lost my parents—I'll still be a girl long after they have died. I've lost every possibility of ever really living. I want love ... and a husband ... and children ... and I can't have any of them, ever. Even without this, I've never seen a man I wanted, and now I can't ever love anybody. I don't want to live a million years, Mentor—especially alone!" The thought was a veritable wail of despair.
"Gained? Whatever!" The girl's thoughts were filled with bitterness and contempt. "I've lost my parents—I’ll still be just a girl long after they're gone. I’ve lost all chance of truly living. I want love ... and a husband ... and kids ... and I can’t have any of that, ever. Even without this, I’ve never seen a man I wanted, and now I can’t ever love anyone. I don’t want to live a million years, Mentor—especially not alone!" The thought was a genuine cry of despair.
"The time has come to stop this childish thinking." Mentor's thought, however, was only mildly reproving. "Such a reaction is only natural, but your conclusions are entirely erroneous. One single clear thought will show you that you have no present psychic, intellectual, emotional, or physical need of a complement."
"The time has come to stop this childish thinking." Mentor thought, though his tone was only slightly disapproving. "It's completely natural to feel this way, but your conclusions are totally wrong. One clear thought will reveal that you have no current need—psychic, intellectual, emotional, or physical—for a partner."
"That's true—But other girls of my age—"
"That's true—but other girls my age—"
"Exactly," came Mentor's dry rejoinder. "Thinking of yourself as an adult Homo sapien, you were judging yourself by false standards. As a matter of fact, you are an adolescent, not an adult. In due time you will come to love a man, and he you, with a fervor and depth which you at present cannot even dimly understand."
"Exactly," replied Mentor dryly. "Thinking of yourself as an adult human, you were judging yourself by false standards. The truth is, you are an adolescent, not an adult. In time, you will come to love a man, and he will love you back, with a passion and depth that you can’t even begin to understand right now."
"But that still leaves my parents," Kathryn felt much better. "I can apparently age, of course, as easily as I can put on a hat ... but I really do love them, you know, and it will simply break mother's heart to have all her daughters turn out to be—as she thinks—spinsters."
"But that still leaves my parents," Kathryn felt much better. "I can apparently age, of course, as easily as I can put on a hat... but I really do love them, you know, and it will simply break Mom's heart to have all her daughters turn out to be—as she thinks—spinsters."
"On that point, too, you may rest at ease. I am taking care of that. Kimball and Clarrissa both know, without knowing how they know it, that your life cycle is tremendously longer than theirs. They both know that they will not live to see their grandchildren. Be assured, daughter, that before they pass from this cycle of existence into the next—about which I know nothing—they shall know that all is to be supremely well with their line; even though, to Civilization at large, it shall apparently end with you Five."
"On that point, too, you can relax. I'm handling that. Kimball and Clarrissa both sense, without understanding how they know, that your lifespan is significantly longer than theirs. They both realize that they won't live to see their grandchildren. Rest assured, daughter, that before they move from this life to the next—about which I have no knowledge—they will understand that everything will be perfectly fine with their legacy; even though, to the larger world, it may seem to end with you Five."
"End with us? What do you mean?"
"End with us? What do you mean by that?"
"You have a destiny, the nature of which your mind is not yet qualified to receive. In due time the knowledge shall be yours. Suffice it now to say that the next forty or fifty years will be but a fleeting moment in the span of life which is to be yours. But time, at the moment, presses. You are now fully recovered and we must get on with this, your last period of study with me, at the end of which you will be able to bear the fullest, closest impact of my mind as easily as you have heretofore borne full contact with your sisters'. Let us proceed with the work."
"You have a destiny that you’re not yet ready to understand. In time, this knowledge will be yours. For now, just know that the next forty or fifty years will pass quickly in the grand scheme of your life. But time is of the essence right now. You’ve fully recovered, and we need to move forward with this last phase of your study with me. By the end, you’ll be able to handle the full intensity of my thoughts just as easily as you’ve handled the thoughts of your sisters. Let’s get started with the work."
Work it was, and it went on for weeks. Kathryn took and survived those shattering treatments, one after another; emerging finally with a mind whose power and scope can no more be explained to any mind below the third level than can the general theory of relativity be explained to a chimpanzee.
Work it was, and it went on for weeks. Kathryn went through and came out of those intense treatments, one after another; finally emerging with a mind whose power and scope can no longer be explained to anyone below a third-level understanding than the general theory of relativity can be explained to a chimpanzee.
"It was forced, not natural, yes," the Arisian said, gravely, as the girl was about to leave. "You are many millions of your years ahead of your natural time. You realize, however, the necessity of that forcing. You also realize that I can give you no more formal instruction. I will be with you or on call at all times; I will be of aid in crises; but in larger matters your further development is in your own hands."
"It was forced, not natural, yes," the Arisian said seriously as the girl was about to leave. "You are millions of years ahead of your natural timeline. However, you understand the need for that forcing. You also know I can't give you any more formal training. I will be here for you or available whenever you need me; I will help you in emergencies; but in bigger matters, your continued growth is in your own hands."
Kathryn shivered. "I realize that, and it scares me clear through—especially this coming conflict, at which you hint so vaguely. I wish that you would tell me at least something about it, so that I could get ready for it!"
Kathryn shivered. "I get that, and it scares me to my core—especially with this upcoming conflict you're hinting at so vaguely. I wish you would at least tell me something about it, so I could prepare for it!"
"Daughter, I can't." For the first time in Kathryn's experience, Mentor the Arisian was unsure. "It is certain that we have been on time; but since the Eddorians have minds of power little, if any, inferior to our own, there are many details which we cannot derive with certainty, and to advise you wrongly would be to do you irreparable harm. All I can say is that if my visualization in that respect is sound, and I am practically sure that it is, sufficient warning will be given by your learning, with no specific effort on your part and from some source other than myself, that there does in fact exist a planet named 'Ploor'—a name which to you is now only a meaningless symbol. Go now, daughter Kathryn, and work."
"Daughter, I can't." For the first time in Kathryn's experience, Mentor the Arisian felt uncertain. "We have definitely been on time; however, since the Eddorians have minds that are not much weaker than ours, there are many details we can’t determine with certainty, and giving you the wrong advice could cause you serious harm. All I can say is that if my vision in that regard is accurate—and I’m pretty sure it is—you will receive sufficient warning through your own learning, without any specific effort on your part, and from a source other than me, that there is indeed a planet named 'Ploor'—a name that is currently just a meaningless symbol to you. Now go, daughter Kathryn, and act."
Kathryn went; knowing that the Arisian had said all that he would say. In truth, he had told her vastly more than she had expected him to divulge; and it chilled her to the marrow to think that she, who had always looked up to the Arisians as demigods of sorts, would from now on be expected to act as their equal—in some ways, perhaps, as their superior! As her speedster tore through space toward distant Klovia she wrestled with herself, trying to shake her new self down into a personality as well integrated as her old one had been. She had not quite succeeded when she felt a thought.
Kathryn left, knowing that the Arisian had shared everything he intended to. Honestly, he had revealed much more than she thought he would, and it sent a chill through her to realize that she, who had always admired the Arisians as if they were demigods, would now be expected to behave as their equal—in some ways, maybe even as their superior! As her speedster zipped through space toward distant Klovia, she struggled with herself, trying to reconcile her new identity with the personality she had before. She hadn’t completely managed it when she felt a thought.
"Help! I am in difficulty with this, my ship. Will any entity receiving my call and possessing the tools of a mechanic please come to my assistance? Or, lacking such tools, possessing a vessel of power sufficient to tow mine to the place where I must immediately go?"
"Help! I'm having trouble with my ship. Can anyone who's hearing my call and has mechanical skills please come help me? If you don't have the tools, but you have a powerful boat that can tow mine to where I need to go immediately, that would be great too."
Kathryn was startled out of her introspective trance. That thought was on a terrifically high band; one so high that she knew of no race using it, so high that an ordinary human mind could not possibly have either sent or received it. Its phraseology, while peculiar, was utterly precise in definition—the mind behind it was certainly of precisionist grade. She acknowledged upon the stranger's wave, and sent out a locator. Good—he wasn't far away. She flashed toward the derelict, matched intrinsics at a safe distance, and began scanning, only to encounter a screen around the whole vessel! To her it was porous enough—but if the creature thought that his screen was tight, let him keep on thinking so. It was his move.
Kathryn was jolted out of her deep thoughts. That signal was on an incredibly high frequency; one so high that she knew of no species using it, so high that a regular human mind couldn’t have either sent or received it. Its wording, while unusual, was completely clear in its meaning—the mind behind it was definitely precise. She acknowledged the stranger's wave and sent out a locator. Good—he wasn't far away. She moved toward the derelict, matched her settings at a safe distance, and began scanning, only to find a barrier around the entire ship! To her, it was permeable enough—but if the creature believed that his barrier was solid, he could keep on believing that. It was his turn.
"Well, what are you waiting for?" The thought fairly snapped. "Come closer, so that I may bring you in."
"Well, what are you waiting for?" The thought snapped sharply. "Come closer, so I can bring you in."
"Not yet," Kathryn snapped back. "Cut your screen so that I can see what you are like. I carry equipment for many environments, but I must know what yours is and equip for it before I can come aboard. You will note that my screens are down."
"Not yet," Kathryn snapped back. "Cut your screen so I can see what you’re like. I have gear for various environments, but I need to know what yours is and prepare for it before I can come aboard. You’ll notice that my screens are down."
"Of course. Excuse me—I supposed that you were one of our own"—there came the thought of an unspellable and unpronounceable name—"since none of the lower orders can receive our thoughts direct. Can you equip yourself to come aboard with your tools?"
"Of course. Sorry—I thought you were one of us"—the thought of an unspellable and unpronounceable name crossed my mind—"since none of the lower orders can pick up our thoughts directly. Can you get ready to come on board with your tools?"
"Yes." The stranger's light was fierce stuff; ninety-eight percent of its energy being beyond the visible. His lamps were beam-held atomics, nothing less, but there was very little gamma and few neutrons. She could handle it easily enough, she decided, as she finished donning her heat-armor and a helmet of practically opaque, diamond-hard plastic.
"Yes." The stranger's light was intense; ninety-eight percent of its energy was out of the visible spectrum. His lights were advanced atomic beams, nothing less, but there was very little gamma radiation and few neutrons. She figured she could manage it without any trouble as she finished putting on her heat-resistant suit and a helmet made of nearly opaque, diamond-hard plastic.
As she was wafted gently across the intervening space upon a pencil of force, Kathryn took her first good look at the precisionist himself—or herself. She—it—looked something like a Dhilian, she thought at first. There was the squat, powerful, elephantine body with its four stocky legs; the tremendous double shoulders and enormous arms; the domed, almost immobile head. But there the resemblance ended. There was only the one head—the thinking head, and that one had no eyes and was not covered with bone. There was no feeding head—the thing could neither eat nor breathe. There was no trunk. And what a skin!
As she was gently carried across the space by a beam of energy, Kathryn took her first good look at the precisionist, or at least what she assumed was the precisionist. At first, she thought it resembled a Dhilian. It had the thick, powerful, elephant-like body with its four sturdy legs, the massive shoulders, and huge arms; the rounded, almost motionless head. But that’s where the similarity ended. There was only one head—the thinking head, and it had no eyes and wasn’t covered by bone. There wasn’t a feeding head—the creature could neither eat nor breathe. There wasn’t a trunk. And what a skin!
It was worse than a hide, really—worse even than a Martian's. The girl had never seen anything like it. It was incredibly thick, dry, pliable; filled minutely with cells of a liquid-gaseous something which she knew to be a more perfect insulator even than the fibers of the tegument itself.
It was worse than a hide, really—worse even than a Martian's. The girl had never seen anything like it. It was incredibly thick, dry, and flexible; filled with tiny cells of a liquid-gaseous substance that she knew was an even better insulator than the fibers of the skin itself.
"R-T-S-L-Q-P." She classified the creature readily enough to six places, then stopped and wrinkled her forehead. "Seventh place—that incredible skin—what? S? R? T? It would have to be R."
"R-T-S-L-Q-P." She easily classified the creature into six categories but then paused and furrowed her brow. "Seventh category—that amazing skin—what? S? R? T? It has to be R."
"You have the requisite tools, I perceive," the creature greeted Kathryn as she entered the central compartment of the strange speedster, no larger than her own. "I can tell you what to do, if—"
"You have the right tools, I see," the creature greeted Kathryn as she stepped into the main part of the strange speedster, which was no bigger than her own. "I can guide you on what to do, if—"
"I know what to do." She unbolted a cover, wrought briefly with pliers and splicer, and in ten minutes was done. "It doesn't seem to make sense to me that a person of your obvious intelligence, manifestly knowing enough to make such minor repairs yourself, would go so far from home, alone in such a small ship, without any tools. Burnouts and shorts are apt to happen any time, you know."
"I know what to do." She unfastened a cover, quickly worked on it with pliers and a splicer, and finished in ten minutes. "It doesn’t make sense to me that someone as clearly intelligent as you, who definitely knows enough to handle these minor repairs yourself, would travel so far from home, alone in such a small ship, without any tools. Burnouts and short circuits can happen anytime, you know."
"Not in vessels of the—." Again Kathryn felt that unpronounceable symbol. She also felt the stranger stiffen in offended dignity. "We of the higher orders, you should know, do not perform labor. We think. We direct. Others work, and do their work well, or suffer accordingly. This is the first time in nine full four-cycle periods that such a thing has happened, and it will be the last. The punishment which I shall mete out to the guilty mechanic will insure that. I shall, at end, have his life."
"Not in vessels of the—." Once more, Kathryn sensed that inexplicable symbol. She also noticed the stranger tense up, clearly offended. "We of the higher orders, as you should know, do not do manual labor. We think. We lead. Others work, and they do their jobs well, or face the consequences. This is the first time in nine complete four-cycle periods that something like this has occurred, and it will be the last. The punishment I will impose on the guilty mechanic will guarantee that. In the end, I will have his life."
"Oh, come, now!" Kathryn protested. "Surely it's no life-and-death mat—"
"Oh, come on!" Kathryn protested. "It can't be that serious—"
"Silence!" came curt command. "It is intolerable that one of the lower orders should attempt to—"
"Silence!" came the sharp command. "It's unacceptable that someone from the lower classes should try to—"
"Silence yourself!" At the fierce power of the riposte the creature winced, physically and mentally. "I did this bit of dirty work for you because you apparently couldn't do it for yourself. I did not object to the matter-of-course way you accepted it, because some races are made that way and can't help it. But if you insist on keeping yourself placed five rungs above me on any ladder you can think of, I'll stop being a lady—or even a good Girl Scout—and start doing things about it, and I'll start at any signal you care to call. Get ready, and say when!"
"Shut up!" At the intensity of the comeback, the creature flinched, both physically and mentally. "I took care of this dirty work for you because it seemed like you couldn't handle it yourself. I didn't mind the way you just accepted it like it was no big deal, because some people are just wired that way and can't help it. But if you keep insisting on putting yourself five steps above me on whatever scale you want to use, I'll stop being polite—or even a good Girl Scout—and I'll take action. I'll start whenever you're ready, just say the word!"
The stranger, taken fully aback, threw out a lightning tentacle of thought; a feeler which was stopped cold a full foot from the girl's radiant armor. This was a human female—or was it? It was not. No human being had ever had, nor ever would have, a mind like that. Therefore:
The stranger, completely surprised, shot out a quick thought; a probe that was halted abruptly a foot away from the girl's glowing armor. This was a human female—or was she? She wasn't. No human ever had, nor would ever have, a mind like that. Therefore:
"I have made a grave error," the thing apologized handsomely, "in thinking that you are not at least my equal. Will you grant me pardon, please?"
"I made a serious mistake," the creature said sincerely, "in thinking that you aren't at least my equal. Will you please forgive me?"
"Certainly—if you don't repeat it. But I still don't like the idea of your having that mechanic skinned alive." She thought intensely, lip caught between strong white teeth. "Perhaps there is a way. Where are you going, and when do you want to get there?"
"Sure—if you don’t say it again. But I still don’t like the idea of you having that mechanic skinned alive." She thought hard, her lip caught between strong white teeth. "Maybe there’s a way. Where are you going, and when do you want to arrive?"
"To my home planet," pointing out, mentally, its location in the Galaxy. "I must be there in two hundred of your G-P hours."
"To my home planet," I pointed out, mentally noting its location in the galaxy. "I need to be there in two hundred of your G-P hours."
"I see." Kathryn nodded her head. "You can—if you promise that you will do nothing whatever to punish your mechanic. And remember that I can tell whether you really mean it or not."
"I get it." Kathryn nodded. "You can—if you promise not to do anything to punish your mechanic. And keep in mind that I can tell if you're really sincere about it."
"As I promise, so I do. But suppose that I do not promise?"
"As I promise, so I will. But what if I don't promise?"
"In that case you'll get there in about a hundred thousand G-P years, frozen stiff. For I shall fuse your Bergenholm down so that it can't ever be fixed; then, after welding your ports solidly to the outer shell, I'll attach to your plating the generator of a screen through which you cannot think. Since you have no tools, I'll leave the rest to your imagination. Decide, now, what you wish to do."
"In that case, you'll get there in about a hundred thousand G-P years, completely frozen. I'll make sure to fuse your Bergenholm so that it can't be repaired; then, after sealing your ports securely to the outer shell, I'll attach a generator to your plating that creates a screen you can't think through. Since you don't have any tools, I'll leave the rest to your imagination. Now, decide what you want to do."
"I promise not to harm the mechanic in any way." He surrendered stiffly, and made no undue protest at Kathryn's entrance into his mind to make sure that the promise would be kept.
"I promise not to hurt the mechanic in any way." He gave in stiffly and didn’t resist Kathryn entering his mind to ensure that the promise would be upheld.
Flushed by her easy conquest of a mind which she would previously have been unable to touch, and engrossed in the problem of setting her own tremendously enlarged mind to rights, why should it have occurred to the girl that there was anything worthy of investigation concealed in the depths of that chance-met stranger's mentality?
Flushed by her easy victory over a mind she would have previously found unreachable, and focused on the challenge of organizing her own vastly expanded thoughts, why would it have crossed the girl's mind that there was anything worth exploring hidden in the depths of that chance encounter with a stranger's mentality?
Returning to her own speedster, she shed her armor and shot away; and it was just as well for her peace of mind that she was not aware of the tight-beamed thought even then speeding from the flitter so far behind her to dread and distant Ploor.
Returning to her own speedster, she took off her armor and sped away; and it was a relief for her peace of mind that she didn't know about the focused thought racing from the flitter far behind her to the dreaded and distant Ploor.
"... but it was very definitely not a human female. I could not touch it. It may very well have been one of the accursed Arisians themselves. But since I did nothing to arouse its suspicions, I got rid of it easily enough. Spread the warning!"
"... but it was clearly not a human female. I couldn't touch it. It might have been one of the damned Arisians themselves. But since I did nothing to raise its suspicions, I got rid of it without much trouble. Spread the warning!"
X.
X.
While Kathryn Kinnison was working with her father in the hyperspatial tube and with Mentor of Arisia, and while Camilla and Tregonsee were sleuthing the inscrutable "X", Constance was also at work. Although she lay flat upon her back, not moving a muscle, she was working as she had never worked before. Long since she had put her indetectable speedster into the control of a director-by-chance. Now, knowing nothing and caring less of where she and her vessel might be or might go, physically completely relaxed, she drove her "sensories" out to the full limit of their prodigious range and held them there for hour after hour. Worsel-like, she was not consciously listening for any particular thing; she was merely increasing her already incredibly vast store of knowledge. One hundred percent receptive, attached to and concerned with only the brain of her physical body, her mind sped at large sampling, testing, analyzing, cataloguing every item with which its most tenuous fringe came in contact. Through thousands of solar systems that mind went; millions upon millions of entities either did or did not contribute something worth while.
While Kathryn Kinnison was working with her father in the hyperspatial tube and with the Mentor of Arisia, and while Camilla and Tregonsee were investigating the mysterious "X," Constance was also busy. Although she lay flat on her back, not moving a muscle, she was working harder than ever before. Long ago, she had put her undetectable speedster in the control of a random director. Now, completely unaware and caring even less about where she and her craft might be or where they might go, she relaxed her body completely while pushing her “sensories” to the maximum limit of their impressive range and keeping them there for hours on end. Like Worsel, she wasn't consciously listening for anything specific; she was simply expanding her already vast knowledge. A hundred percent receptive, focused only on the brain of her physical body, her mind roamed freely, sampling, testing, analyzing, and cataloguing every bit of information it encountered. Her mind traveled through thousands of solar systems; millions upon millions of entities either added something valuable or didn’t.
Suddenly there came something that jarred her into physical movement—a burst of thought upon a band so high that it was practically always vacant. She shook herself, got up, lighted an Alsakanite cigarette, and made herself a pot of coffee.
Suddenly, something jolted her into action—a rush of thoughts on a level so high that it was almost always empty. She shook herself, got up, lit an Alsakanite cigarette, and brewed a pot of coffee.
"This is important, I think," she mused. "I'd better get to work on it while it's fresh."
"This is important, I think," she reflected. "I'd better get started on it while it's still fresh."
She sent out a thought tuned to Worsel, and was surprised when it went unanswered. She investigated, finding that the Velantian's screens were full up and held hard—he was fighting Overlords so savagely that he had not felt her thought. Should she take a hand in this brawl? She should not, she decided, and grinned fleetingly. Her erstwhile tutor would need no help in that comparatively minor chore. She would wait, rest up a bit, and eat, before she called him.
She sent out a thought directed at Worsel and was surprised when she didn’t get a response. She checked and saw that the Velantian's screens were completely full and locked in—he was fighting the Overlords so fiercely that he hadn't noticed her thought. Should she get involved in this fight? She decided not to, grinning briefly. Her former mentor didn’t need any help with that relatively small task. She would wait, relax a bit, and eat before she reached out to him.
"Worsel! Con calling. What goes on there, fellow old snake?" She finally launched her thought. "You've stuck that sharp tail of yours into some of my business—I hope."
"Worsel! Come here. What’s happening, you old snake?" She finally shared her thought. "I hope you haven't gotten your sharp tail into any of my business."
"I hope so," Worsel sent back. "Been quite a while since I saw you close up—how about coming aboard?"
"I hope so," Worsel replied. "It's been quite a while since I saw you in person—how about coming on board?"
"Coming at max," and she did.
"Coming at full speed," and she did.
Before entering the Velan, however, she put on a personal gravity damper, set at nine hundred eighty centimeters. Strong, tough, and supple as she was she did not relish the thought of the atrocious accelerations used and enjoyed by Velantians everywhere.
Before entering the Velan, though, she put on a personal gravity damper, adjusted to nine hundred eighty centimeters. Strong, tough, and flexible as she was, she did not like the idea of the brutal accelerations that Velantians everywhere used and enjoyed.
"What did you make of that burst of thought?" she asked by way of greeting. "Or were you having so much fun that you missed it?"
"What did you think of that burst of thought?" she asked in greeting. "Or were you having so much fun that you didn't notice it?"
"What burst?" Then, after Constance had explained, "I was busy—but not having fun."
"What burst?" Then, after Constance explained, "I was busy—but not having fun."
"Somebody who didn't know you might believe that," the girl derided. "This thought was important, I think—much more so than dilly-dallying with Overlords, as you were doing. It was 'way up—on this band here." She illustrated.
"Someone who didn't know you might think that," the girl mocked. "I believe this idea was significant—much more than wasting time with Overlords, like you were doing. It was right up—on this band here." She showed.
"So?" Worsel came as near to whistling as one of his inarticulate race could come. "What were they like? Tell me all that you can."
"So?" Worsel came as close to whistling as one of his speech-challenged kind could. "What were they like? Tell me everything you can."
"VWZY, to four places." Con concentrated. "Multilegged—not exactly carapaceous, but pretty nearly. Spiny, too, I believe. The world was cold, dismal, barren; but not frigid, but he ... it ... didn't seem exactly like an oxygen-breather—more like what a warm-blooded Palainian would perhaps look like, if you can imagine such a thing. Mentality very high—precisionist grade—no thought of cities as such. The sun was a typical yellow dwarf. Does any of this ring a bell in your mind?"
"VWZY, to four decimal places." Con focused. "It's a multi-legged creature—not exactly having a hard shell, but pretty close. It's spiny too, I think. The environment was cold, dull, and barren; but not freezing, and it ... it ... didn’t seem like it breathed oxygen—not quite like what a warm-blooded Palainian might look like, if you can picture that. Its intelligence is very high—precisionist level—no concept of cities as we know them. The sun was a typical yellow dwarf. Does any of this sound familiar to you?"
"No." Worsel thought intensely for minutes. So did Constance. Neither had any idea then that the girl was describing the form assumed in their autumn by the dread inhabitants of the planet Ploor!
"No." Worsel thought hard for several minutes. So did Constance. Neither of them had any clue that the girl was talking about the shape taken on in their autumn by the terrifying residents of the planet Ploor!
"This may indeed be important," Worsel broke the mental silence. "Shall we explore together?"
"This might really matter," Worsel interrupted the silence. "Should we check it out together?"
"We shall." They tuned to the desired band. "Give it plenty of shove, too. Go!"
"We will." They switched to the right frequency. "Give it a good push, too. Go!"
Out and out and out the twinned receptors sped; to encounter finally a tenuous, weak, and utterly cryptic vibration. One touch—the merest possible contact—and it disappeared. It vanished before even Con's electronics-fast reactions could get more than a hint of directional alignment; and neither of the observers could read any part of it.
Out and out and out the paired receptors sped; to finally encounter a faint, weak, and completely mysterious vibration. One touch—the slightest possible contact—and it was gone. It disappeared before Con's super-fast electronic reactions could pick up more than a hint of direction; and neither of the observers could make sense of any part of it.
Both of these developments were starkly incredible, and Worsel's long body tightened convulsively, rock-hard, in the violence of the mental force now driving his exploring mind. Finding nothing, he finally relaxed.
Both of these developments were incredibly intense, and Worsel's long body tightened rigidly in the force of the mental energy now pushing his exploring mind. After finding nothing, he finally loosened up.
"Any Lensman, anywhere, can read and understand any thought, however garbled or scrambled, or however expressed," he thought at Constance. "Also, I have always been able to get an exact line on anything I could perceive, but all I know about this one is that it seemed to come mostly from somewhere over that way. Did you do any better?"
"Any Lensman, anywhere, can read and understand any thought, no matter how jumbled or mixed up it is, or however it's expressed," he thought at Constance. "Also, I’ve always been able to get a clear read on anything I could sense, but all I know about this one is that it mostly seemed to come from over there. Did you get anything clearer?"
"Not much, if any." If the thing was surprising to Worsel, it was sheerly astounding to his companion. She, knowing the measure of her power, thought to herself—not to the Velantian: "Girl, file this one carefully away in the big black book!"
"Not much, if any." If it surprised Worsel, it completely blew his companion away. She, aware of her own strength, thought to herself—not to the Velantian: "Girl, make sure to note this one carefully in the big black book!"
Slight as were the directional leads, the Velan tore along the indicated line at maximum blast. Day after day she sped, a wide-flung mental net out far ahead and out farther still on all sides. They did not find what they sought, but they did find—something.
Slight as the directional cues were, the Velan raced down the marked path at full throttle. Day after day, she zoomed ahead, casting a wide mental net far in front and even farther on all sides. They didn’t find what they were looking for, but they did discover—something.
"What is it?" Worsel demanded of the quivering telepath who had made the report.
"What is it?" Worsel asked the trembling telepath who had delivered the report.
"I don't know, sir. Not on that ultra-band, but well below it—there. Not an Overlord, certainly, but something perhaps equally unfriendly."
"I don't know, sir. Not on that ultra-band, but way below it—there. Not an Overlord, for sure, but something possibly just as hostile."
"An Eich!" Both Worsel and Con exclaimed the thought, and the girl went on, "It was practically certain that we couldn't get them all on Jarnevon, of course, but none have been reported before. Where are they, anyway? Get me a chart, somebody. It's Novena, and they're on the ninth planet out—Novena IX. Tune up your heavy artillery, Worsel—it'd be nice if we could take the head man alive, but that much luck probably isn't in the cards."
"An Eich!" Both Worsel and Con blurted out the thought, and the girl continued, "It was pretty much guaranteed that we couldn't get them all on Jarnevon, but none have been reported before. Where are they, anyway? Someone, get me a chart. It's Novena, and they're on the ninth planet out—Novena IX. Get your heavy artillery ready, Worsel—it’d be great if we could bring the leader back alive, but that much luck probably isn't in our favor."
The Velantian, even though he had issued instantaneously the order to drive at full blast toward the indicated planet, was momentarily at a loss. Kinnison's daughter entertained no doubts as to the outcome of the encounter she was proposing—but she had never seen an Eich close up. He had. So had her father. Kinnison had come out a very poor second in that affair, and Worsel knew that he could have done no better, if as well. However, that had been upon Jarnevon, actually inside one of its strongest citadels, and neither he nor Kinnison had been prepared.
The Velantian, although he had quickly given the order to speed toward the specified planet, was briefly unsure. Kinnison's daughter had no doubts about how the encounter she was suggesting would turn out—but she had never faced an Eich up close. He had. So had her father. Kinnison had come out on the losing side in that situation, and Worsel knew he wouldn't have fared any better, if he could manage as well. However, that had happened on Jarnevon, actually inside one of its strongest fortifications, and neither he nor Kinnison had been ready.
"What's the plan, Worsel?" Con demanded, vibrantly. "How're you figuring on taking 'em?"
"What's the plan, Worsel?" Con asked brightly. "How are you planning to take them?"
"Depends on how strong they are. If it's a long-established base, we'll simply have to report it to LaForge and go on about our business. If, as seems more probable from the fact that it hasn't been reported before, it is a new establishment of refugees from Jarnevon—or possibly only a grounded spaceship so far—we'll go to work on them ourselves. We'll soon be close enough to find out."
"Depends on how strong they are. If it’s a long-established base, we’ll just have to report it to LaForge and continue with our work. If, as seems more likely since it hasn’t been reported before, it’s a new settlement of refugees from Jarnevon—or maybe just a parked spaceship for now—we’ll handle it ourselves. We’ll be close enough to find out soon."
"QX," and a fleeting grin passed over Con's vivacious face. For a long time she had been working with Mentor the Arisian, specifically to develop the ability to "out-Worsel Worsel", and now was the best time she ever would have to put her hard schooling to test.
"QX," and a quick smile appeared on Con's lively face. For a long time, she had been training with Mentor the Arisian, specifically to develop the skill to "out-Worsel Worsel," and now was the best opportunity she would ever have to put her intense training to the test.
Hence, Master of Hallucination though he was, the Velantian had no hint of realization when his Klovian companion, working through a channel which he did not even know existed, took control of every compartment of his mind. Nor did the crew, in particular or en masse, suspect anything amiss when she performed the infinitely easier task of taking over theirs. Nor did the unlucky Eich, when the flying Velan had approached their planet closely enough to make it clear that their establishment was indeed a new one, being built around the nucleus of a crippled Boskonian battleship. Except for their commanding officer they died then and there—and Con was to regret bitterly, later, that she had made this engagement such a one-girl affair.
Hence, even though he was a Master of Hallucination, the Velantian had no clue when his Klovian companion, tapping into a channel he didn’t even know was there, took control of every part of his mind. The crew, both individually and collectively, didn’t suspect anything was wrong when she easily took over theirs. The unlucky Eich, when the flying Velan got close enough to their planet to reveal that their base was indeed new and built around a damaged Boskonian battleship, didn’t get a chance. Except for their commanding officer, they all died right then and there—and Con was going to regret bitterly later that she had turned this engagement into a one-woman job.
The battleship apparently was not in shape to meet the Velan in open space, since it did not; but it could have operated and to all seeming did operate as a formidable fortress indeed from its fixed position on the ground. Under the fierce impact of its offensive beams the Velantians saw their very wall shields flame violet. In return they saw their mighty secondary beams stopped cold by the Boskonian's inner screens, and had to bring into play the inconceivable energies of their primaries before the enemy's spaceship-fortress could be knocked out. And this much of the battle was real. Instrument- and recorder-tapes could be and were being doctored to fit; but spent primary shells could not be simulated. Nor was it thinkable that this tremendous ship and its incipient Base should be allowed to survive.
The battleship clearly wasn't ready to take on the Velan in open space, which is why it didn't; however, it could and, seemingly, did operate effectively as a powerful fortress from its stationary position on the ground. Under the intense force of its offensive beams, the Velantians watched their wall shields ignite in violet flames. In response, they saw their powerful secondary beams completely halted by the Boskonian's inner defenses and had to unleash the unimaginable power of their primary weapons to take down the enemy's spaceship-fortress. This part of the battle was genuine. While instrument and recorder tapes could be manipulated, the spent primary shells could not be faked. It was also unthinkable that this massive ship and its emerging Base would be allowed to survive.
Hence, after the dreadful primaries had quieted the Eich's main batteries and had reduced the groundworks to flaming pools of lava, needle-beamers went to work on every minor and secondary control board. Then, the great vessel definitely helpless as a fighting unit, Worsel and his hard-bitten crew thought that they went—thought-screened, full-armored, armed with semiportables and DeLameters—joyously into the hand-to-hand combat which each so craved. Worsel and two of his strongest henchmen attacked the armed and armored Boskonian captain. After a satisfying terrific struggle, in the course of which all three of the Velantians—and some others—were appropriately burned and wounded, they overpowered him and carried him bodily into the control room of the Velan. This part of the episode, too, was real; as was the complete melting down of the Boskonian vessel which occurred while the transfer was being made.
Hence, after the terrible primaries had silenced the Eich's main batteries and turned the ground into fiery pools of lava, needle-beamers got to work on every minor and secondary control board. Then, with the great vessel completely defenseless as a fighting unit, Worsel and his tough crew thought they charged joyfully into the hand-to-hand combat they all craved—fully armored and armed with semi-portables and DeLameters. Worsel and two of his strongest henchmen attacked the heavily armed Boskonian captain. After a satisfying and intense struggle, during which all three Velantians—and some others—sustained appropriate burns and wounds, they overpowered him and carried him into the control room of the Velan. This part of the episode was also real; as was the complete destruction of the Boskonian vessel that happened while they were making the transfer.
Then, while Con was engaged in the exceedingly delicate task of withdrawing her mind from Worsel's without leaving any detectable trace that she had ever been in it, there happened the completely unexpected; the one thing for which she was utterly unprepared. The mind of the captive captain was wrenched from her control as palpably as a loosely-held stick is snatched from a physical hand; and at the same time there was hurled against her impenetrable barriers an attack which could not possibly have stemmed from any Eichian mind!
Then, while Con was focused on the incredibly delicate task of pulling her mind out of Worsel's without leaving any sign that she had ever been there, something completely unexpected happened—the one thing she was totally unprepared for. The mind of the captive captain was yanked from her control as clearly as a loosely-held stick is grabbed from a physical hand; and at the same time, an unbreakable attack was launched against her defenses that definitely couldn't have come from any Eichian mind!
If her mind had been free, she could have coped with the situation, but it was not. She had to hold Worsel—she knew with cold certainty what would ensue if she did not. The crew? They could be blocked out temporarily—unlike the Velantian Lensman, no one of them could even suspect that he had been in a stasis unless it were long enough to be noticeable upon such timepieces as clocks. The procedure, however, occupied a millisecond or so of precious time; and a considerably longer interval was required to withdraw with the required tracelessness from Worsel's mind. Thus, before she could do anything except protect herself and the Velantian from that surprisingly powerful invading intelligence, all trace of it disappeared and all that remained of their captive was a dead body.
If her mind had been clear, she could have handled the situation, but it wasn’t. She had to keep Worsel safe—she knew with chilling certainty what would happen if she didn’t. The crew? They could be blocked out for a while—unlike the Velantian Lensman, none of them would even guess he had been in stasis unless it lasted long enough to show on things like clocks. The procedure, though, took a millisecond or so of valuable time; and a much longer period was needed to withdraw silently from Worsel's mind. So, before she could do anything other than protect herself and the Velantian from that unexpectedly strong invading intelligence, all trace of it vanished, and all that was left of their captive was a lifeless body.
Worsel and Constance stared at each other, wordless, for seconds. The Velantian had a completely and accurately detailed memory of everything that had happened up to that instant, the only matter not quite clear being the fact that their hard-won captive was dead; the girl's mind was racing to fabricate a bulletproof explanation of that startling fact. Worsel saved her the trouble.
Worsel and Constance stared at each other in silence for a few seconds. The Velantian had a perfectly clear memory of everything that had happened up to that moment, the only thing not quite clear being that their hard-won captive was dead; the girl's mind was racing to come up with a solid explanation for that shocking fact. Worsel saved her the trouble.
"It is, of course, true," he thought at her finally, "that any mind of sufficient power can destroy by force of will alone the entity of flesh in which it resides. I never thought about this matter before in connection with the Eich, but no detail of the experience your father and I had with them on Jarnevon would support any contention that they do not have minds of the requisite power, and today's battle, being purely physical, would not throw any light on the subject. I wonder if a thing like that could be stopped? That is, if we had been on time—?"
"It’s true," he thought as he looked at her, "that any mind with enough power can destroy the physical body it exists in just through sheer will. I never considered this before in relation to the Eich, but there’s no part of the experience your father and I had with them on Jarnevon that suggests they lack the necessary mental strength. Today’s battle, being purely physical, won’t shed any light on the issue. I wonder if something like that could be prevented? That is, if we had arrived on time—?"
"That's it, I think." Con put on her most disarming, most engaging grin in preparation for the most outrageous series of lies of her long career. "And I don't think it can be stopped—at least I couldn't stop him. You see, I got into him a fraction of a second before you did, and in that instant, just like that," in spite of the fact that Worsel could not hear, she snapped her finger ringingly, "Faster even than that, he was gone. I didn't think of it until you brought it up, but you are as right as can be—he killed himself to keep us from finding out whatever it was that he knew about what is left of Boskonia."
"That's it, I think." Con flashed her most charming, engaging smile, gearing up for the most outrageous string of lies in her long career. "And I don't think it can be stopped—at least I couldn't stop him. You see, I got to him just a split second before you did, and in that instant, just like that," even though Worsel couldn't hear, she snapped her fingers sharply, "Faster than that, he was gone. I didn't realize it until you mentioned it, but you are absolutely right—he killed himself to keep us from discovering whatever it was he knew about what’s left of Boskonia."
Worsel stared at her with six eyes now instead of one, gimlet probes which glanced imperceptibly off her shield. He was not consciously trying to break down her barriers—to his fullest perception they were already down; no barriers were there. He was not consciously trying to integrate or reintegrate any detail or phase of the episode just past—no iota or trace of falsity had appeared at any point or instant. Nevertheless, deep down within those extra reaches that made Worsel of Velantia what he was, a vague disquiet refused to down. It was too ... too—Worsel's consciousness could not supply the adjective.
Worsel stared at her with six eyes instead of one, sharp probes that subtly bounced off her shield. He wasn’t actively trying to break down her defenses—to him, they were already nonexistent; there were no barriers at all. He wasn’t trying to piece together any detail or moment from the recent past—no hint or sign of dishonesty had shown up at any time. Still, deep inside those extra dimensions that made Worsel from Velantia who he was, a vague unease wouldn’t fade. It was too ... too—Worsel's mind couldn't find the right word.
Had it been too easy? Very decidedly it had not. His utterly worn-out, battered and wounded crew refuted that thought. So did his own body, slashed and burned, as well as did the litter of primary shells and the heaps of smoking slag which had once been an enemy stronghold.
Had it been too easy? Definitely not. His completely exhausted, battered, and injured crew disproved that idea. So did his own body, cut and burned, along with the remnants of primary shells and the piles of smoking debris that had once been an enemy stronghold.
Also, even though he had not theretofore thought that he and his crew possessed enough force to do what had just been done, it was starkly unthinkable that anyone, even an Arisian, could have helped him do anything without his knowledge. Particularly how could this girl, daughter of Kimball Kinnison although she was, possibly have stuff enough to play unperceived the part of guardian angel to him, Worsel of Velantia?
Also, even though he hadn’t previously thought that he and his crew had enough strength to achieve what had just happened, it was completely unimaginable that anyone, even an Arisian, could have assisted him without his awareness. How could this girl, despite being Kimball Kinnison’s daughter, possibly have had the ability to act unnoticed as his guardian angel, Worsel of Velantia?
Least able of all the Second-Stage Lensmen to appreciate what the Children of the Lens really were, he did not, then or ever, have any inkling of the real truth. But Constance, far behind her cheerfully innocent mask, shivered as she read exactly his disturbed and disturbing thoughts. For, conversely, an unresolved enigma would affect him more than it would any of his fellow L2's. He would work on it until he did resolve it, one way or another. This thing had to be settled, now. And there was a way—a good way.
Least able of all the Second-Stage Lensmen to understand what the Children of the Lens truly were, he never had any idea of the real truth. But Constance, hidden behind her cheerful facade, trembled as she read his troubled and unsettling thoughts. An unresolved mystery would impact him more than any of his fellow L2s. He would keep at it until he figured it out, one way or another. This had to be resolved, now. And there was a way—a good way.
"But I did help you, you big lug!" she stormed, stamping her booted foot in emphasis. "I was in there every second, slugging away with everything I had. Didn't you even feel me, you dope?" She allowed a thought to become evident; widened her eyes in startled incredulity. "You didn't!" she accused, hotly. "You were reveling so repulsively in the thrill of body-to-body fighting, just like you were back there in that cavern of Overlords, that you couldn't have felt a thought if it was driven into you with a D2P pressor! And I'll bet credits to millos that I did help you, too—that if I hadn't been in there pitching, dulling their edges here and there at critical moments, you'd've had a time getting them at all! I'm going to flit right now, and I hope I never see you again as long as I live!"
"But I did help you, you big lug!" she yelled, stomping her booted foot for emphasis. "I was in there every second, giving it my all. Didn’t you even feel me, you fool?" She let a thought show on her face; her eyes widened in shocked disbelief. "You didn't!" she accused, angrily. "You were so caught up in the thrill of fighting up close, just like back in that cavern of Overlords, that you couldn't have felt a thing even if it hit you in the face! And I bet all my credits that I did help you—that if I hadn't been there, stepping in at just the right moments, you would have had a hard time dealing with them at all! I’m leaving now, and I hope I never see you again as long as I live!"
This vicious counterattack, completely mendacious though it was, fitted the facts so exactly that Worsel's inchoate doubts vanished. Moreover, he was even less well equipped than are human men to cope with the peculiarly feminine weapons Constance was using so effectively. Wherefore the Velantian capitulated, almost abjectly, and the girl allowed herself to be coaxed down from her high horse and to become her usual sunny and impish self.
This brutal counterattack, though completely untrue, matched the facts so perfectly that Worsel's vague doubts disappeared. Additionally, he was even less prepared than human men to deal with the uniquely feminine tactics Constance was using so effectively. As a result, the Velantian gave in, almost submissively, and the girl let herself be persuaded to come down from her high horse and return to her usual cheerful and mischievous self.
But when the Velan was once more on course and she had retired to her cabin, it was not to sleep. Instead, she thought. Was this intellect of the same race as the one whose burst of thought she had caught such a short time before, or not? She could not decide—not enough data. The first thought had been unconscious and quite revealing; this one simply a lethal weapon, driven with a power the very memory of which made her gasp again. They could, however, be the same—the mind with which she had been en rapport could very well be capable of generating the force she had felt. If they were the same, they were something that should be studied, intensively and at once; and she herself had kicked away her only chance to make that study. She had better tell somebody about this, even if it meant confessing her own bird-brained part, and get some competent advice. Who?
But when the Velan was back on course and she had gone to her cabin, it wasn’t to sleep. Instead, she was deep in thought. Was this intellect from the same origin as the burst of insight she had sensed not long ago, or was it different? She couldn’t decide—not enough information. The initial thought had been unconscious and quite revealing; this one felt like a deadly weapon, powered by a force that made her catch her breath again. However, they could be the same—the mind she had been en rapport with could definitely produce the force she had experienced. If they were indeed the same, they were something that needed to be studied urgently; yet she had just missed her only opportunity to do so. She should probably talk to someone about this, even if it meant admitting her own foolishness, and get some solid advice. Who?
Kit? No. Not because he would smack her down—she ought to be smacked down!—but because his brain wasn't enough better than her own to do any good. In fact, it wasn't a bit better than hers.
Kit? No. Not because he would put her in her place—she should be put in her place!—but because his mind wasn't any smarter than hers to make a difference. In fact, it was just as clueless as hers.
Mentor? At the very thought she shuddered, mentally and physically. She would call him in, fast enough, regardless of consequences to herself, if it would do any good, but it wouldn't. She was starkly certain of that. He wouldn't smack her down, like Kit would, but he wouldn't help her, either. He'd just sit there and sneer at her while she stewed, hotter and hotter, in her own juice.
Mentor? Just thinking about it made her shiver, both in her mind and her body. She would reach out to him quickly, no matter the consequences for herself, if she thought it would actually help, but she knew it wouldn’t. She was absolutely sure of that. He might not belittle her like Kit would, but he wouldn’t support her either. He’d just sit there and mock her while she simmered, getting angrier and angrier, in her own frustration.
"In a childish, perverted, and grossly exaggerated way, Daughter Constance, you are right," the Arisian's thought rolled sonorously into her astounded mind. "You got yourself into this—get yourself out. One promising fact, however, I perceive—although seldom and late—you at last begin really to think."
"In a childish, twisted, and wildly exaggerated way, Daughter Constance, you’re right," the Arisian's thought echoed deeply in her shocked mind. "You got yourself into this—now figure out how to get out. One encouraging fact, though it’s rare and delayed—I see that you’re finally starting to think for yourself."
In that hour Constance Kinnison grew up.
In that hour, Constance Kinnison matured.
XI.
XI.
Any human or near-human Lensman would have been appalled by the sheer loneliness of Nadreck's long vigil. Almost any one of them would have cursed, fluently and bitterly, when the time came at which he was forced to concede that the being for whom he lay in wait was not going to visit that particular planet.
Any human or near-human Lensman would have been horrified by the sheer loneliness of Nadreck's long watch. Almost any one of them would have cursed, fluently and bitterly, when the moment came that he had to admit the being he was waiting for wasn’t going to show up on that particular planet.
But utterly unhuman Nadreck was not lonely. In fact, there was no word in the vocabulary of his race even remotely resembling the term in definition, connotation, or implication. From his Galaxy-wide study he had a dim, imperfect idea of what such an emotion or feeling might be, but he could not begin to understand it. Nor was he in the least disturbed by the fact that Kandron did not appear. Instead, he held his orbit until the minute arrived at which the mathematical probability became point nine nine eight that his proposed quarry was not going to appear. Then, as matter-of-factly as though he had merely taken half an hour out for lunch, he abandoned his position and set out upon the course so carefully planned for exactly this event.
But completely unhuman, Nadreck was not lonely. In fact, there wasn’t a word in his race's vocabulary that even remotely matched the term in definition, connotation, or implication. From his Galaxy-wide research, he had a vague, incomplete idea of what such an emotion or feeling might be, but he couldn’t begin to grasp it. He wasn’t at all bothered by the fact that Kandron didn’t show up. Instead, he maintained his orbit until the moment arrived when the mathematical probability became point nine nine eight that his intended quarry would not appear. Then, as casually as if he had simply taken half an hour for lunch, he left his position and set off on the course he had meticulously planned for just this situation.
The search for further clues was long and uneventful; but monstrously, unhumanly patient Nadreck stuck to it until he found one. True, it was so slight as to be practically nonexistent—a mere fragment of a whisper of zwilnik instruction—but it bore Kandron's unmistakable imprint. The Palainian had expected no more. Kandron would not slip. Momentary leakages from faulty machines would have to occur from time to time, but Kandron's machines would not be at fault either often or long at a time.
The search for more clues was drawn out and uneventful; but monstrously, unhumanly patient Nadreck stuck with it until he found one. True, it was so slight that it was practically nonexistent—a mere fragment of a whisper of zwilnik instruction—but it had Kandron's unmistakable mark. The Palainian hadn’t expected anything more. Kandron wouldn’t let anything slip. Occasionally, there would be minor leaks from faulty machines, but Kandron's machines wouldn’t be at fault often or for long.
Nadreck, however, had been ready. Course after course of the most delicate spotting screen ever devised had been out for weeks. So had tracers, radiation absorbers, and every other insidious locating device known to the science of the age. The standard detectors remained blank, of course—no more so than his own conveyance would that of the Onlonian be detectable by any ordinary instruments. And as the Palainian speedster shot away along the most probable course, some fifty delicate instruments in its bow began stabbing that entire region of space with a pattern of needles of force through which a Terrestrial barrel could not have floated untouched.
Nadreck, however, had been prepared. For weeks, he had deployed course after course of the most advanced spotting screen ever created. He also used tracers, radiation absorbers, and every other sneaky locating device known to modern science. The standard detectors remained unresponsive, just like his own vehicle would be undetectable by any regular instruments. As the Palainian speedster zoomed along the most likely route, around fifty delicate instruments in its front began probing that entire area of space with a pattern of force that no terrestrial barrel could have passed through unscathed.
Thus the Boskonian craft—an inherently indetectable speedster—was located; and in that instant was speared by three modified CRX tracers. Nadreck then went inert and began to plot the other speedster's course. He soon learned that that course was unpredictable; that the vessel was being operated statistically, completely at random. This too, then, was a trap.
Thus, the Boskonian ship—an inherently undetectable speedster—was found; and in that moment, it was hit by three modified CRX tracers. Nadreck then went inert and started to track the other speedster's path. He quickly discovered that the course was unpredictable; the vessel was being operated randomly, entirely at chance. This too, then, was a trap.
This knowledge disturbed Nadreck no more than had any more-or-less-similar event of the previous twenty-odd years. He had realized fully that the leakage could as well have been deliberate as accidental. He had at no time underestimated Kandron's ability; the future alone would reveal whether or not Kandron would at any time underestimate his. He would follow through—there might be a way in which this particular trap could be used against its setter.
This knowledge bothered Nadreck no more than any other similar event from the past twenty or so years. He fully understood that the leak could have been intentional or accidental. He never underestimated Kandron’s capabilities; only time would tell if Kandron would ever underestimate his. He would follow through—there might be a way to turn this particular trap against the one who set it.
Leg after leg of meaningless course Nadreck followed, until there came about that which the Palainian knew would happen in time—the speedster held a straight course for more parsecs than six-sigma limits of probability could ascribe to pure randomness. Nadreck knew what that meant. The speedster was returning to its base for servicing, which was precisely the event for which he had been waiting. It was the base he wanted, not the speedster; and that base would never, under any conceivable conditions, emit any detectable quantity of traceable radiation. To its base, then, Nadreck followed the little spaceship, and to say that he was on the alert as he approached that base is a gross understatement indeed. He expected to set off at least one, and probably many blasts of force. That would almost certainly be necessary in order to secure sufficient information concerning the enemy's defensive screens. It was unnecessary—but when those blasts arrived Nadreck was elsewhere, calmly analyzing the data secured by his instruments during the brief contact which had triggered the Boskonian projectors into action.
Leg after leg of pointless journey, Nadreck followed, until the Palainian knew what would eventually happen—the speedster maintained a straight course for more parsecs than the six-sigma limit of randomness could explain. Nadreck understood what this meant. The speedster was heading back to its base for maintenance, which was exactly what he had been waiting for. He wanted the base, not the speedster; and that base would never, under any circumstances, emit any detectable traceable radiation. So, Nadreck followed the little spaceship to its base, and to say he was on high alert as he neared that base is an understatement. He anticipated triggering at least one, and likely multiple, force blasts. This would almost certainly be needed to gather enough information about the enemy's defensive systems. It turned out to be unnecessary—but when those blasts occurred, Nadreck was elsewhere, calmly analyzing the data collected by his instruments during the brief contact that had activated the Boskonian projectors.
So light, so fleeting, and so unorthodox had been Nadreck's touch that the personnel of the now doomed base could not have known with any certainty that any visitor had actually been there. If there had been, the logical supposition would have been that he and his vessel had been resolved into their component atoms. Nevertheless Nadreck waited—as has been shown, he was good at waiting—until the burst of extra vigilance set up by the occurrence would have subsided into ordinary watchfulness. Then he began to act.
So light, so brief, and so unconventional had been Nadreck's touch that the staff of the now doomed base could not have known for sure that any visitor had actually been there. If there had been, the obvious conclusion would have been that he and his ship had been broken down into their basic atoms. Still, Nadreck waited—he was good at waiting—as the heightened alert caused by the event faded into regular watchfulness. Then he started to take action.
At first this action was in ultra-slow motion. One millimeter per hour his drill advanced. Drill was synchronized precisely with screen, and so guarded as to give an alarm at a level of interference far below that necessary to energize any probable detector at the generators of the screen being attacked.
At first, this action was moving in ultra-slow motion. His drill advanced at one millimeter per hour. The drill was perfectly synced with the screen and was set up to trigger an alarm if there was any interference that was much lower than what would be needed to activate any likely detector at the generators of the screen being targeted.
Through defense after defense Nadreck made his cautious, indetectable way into the dome. It was a small base, as such things go; manned, as expected, by escapees from Onlo. Scum, too, for the most part; creatures of even baser and more violent passions than those upon whom he had worked in Kandron's Onlonian stronghold. To keep those intractable entities in line during their brutally long tours of duty, a psychological therapist had been given authority second only to that of the Base Commander. That knowledge, and the fact that there was only one populated dome, made the Palainian come as close to grinning as one of his unsmiling race can.
Through defense after defense, Nadreck carefully navigated his way into the dome. It was a small base by any standard; manned, as expected, by escapees from Onlo. Mostly lowlifes; beings with even more primitive and violent impulses than those he had dealt with in Kandron's Onlonian stronghold. To keep those difficult individuals in check during their long and brutal tours of duty, a psychological therapist had been granted authority only second to that of the Base Commander. That knowledge, along with the fact that there was only one populated dome, brought Nadreck as close to grinning as one of his unsmiling kind could manage.
The psychologist wore a multiplex thought-screen, of course, as did everyone else; but that did not bother Nadreck. Kinnison had opened such screens many times; not only by means of his own hands, but also at various times by the use of a dog's jaws, a spider's legs and mandibles, and even a worm's sinuous body. Wherefore, through the agency of a quasi-fourth-dimensional life-form literally indescribable to three-dimensional man, Nadreck's ego was soon comfortably ensconced in the mind of the Onlonian.
The psychologist wore a multi-layered thought shield, just like everyone else; but that didn’t faze Nadreck. Kinnison had opened such shields many times; not just with his own hands, but also through a dog's jaws, a spider's legs and mandibles, and even a worm's flexible body. Thus, with the help of a sort of fourth-dimensional life form that couldn't really be described in three-dimensional terms, Nadreck's consciousness was soon comfortably settled into the mind of the Onlonian.
That entity knew in detail every weakness of each of his personnel. It was his duty to watch those weaknesses, to keep them down, to condition each of his wards in such fashion that friction and strife would be minimized. Now, however, he proceeded to do exactly the opposite. One hated another. That hate became a searing obsession, requiring the concentration of every effort upon ways and means of destroying its object. One feared another. That fear ate in, searing as it went, destroying every normality of outlook and of reason. Many were jealous of their superiors. This emotion, requiring as it does nothing except its own substance upon which to feed, became a fantastically-spreading, caustically corrosive blight.
That entity knew every weakness of each of his team members in detail. It was his job to monitor those weaknesses, to keep them in check, and to train each of his charges in a way that minimized conflict and tension. Now, though, he was doing the exact opposite. One person hated another. That hate turned into a burning obsession, forcing them to focus all their energy on ways to destroy its target. One person feared another. That fear consumed them, burning as it spread, destroying every sense of normalcy and reason. Many were jealous of their bosses. This feeling, needing nothing but its own essence to thrive, grew into a wildly spreading, corrosively damaging plague.
To name each ugly, noisome passion or trait resident in that dome is to call the complete roster of the vile; and calmly, mercilessly, unmovedly, ultra-efficiently, Nadreck worked upon them all. As though he were playing a Satanic organ he touched a nerve here, a synapse there, a channel somewhere else, bringing the whole group, with the lone exception of the commander, simultaneously to the point of explosion. Nor was any sign of this perfect work evident externally; for everyone there, having lived so long under the iron code of Boskonia, knew exactly the consequences of any infraction of that code.
To identify each ugly, repulsive passion or trait lurking in that space is to list all the disgusting aspects; and calmly, ruthlessly, unflinchingly, super-effectively, Nadreck worked on them all. It was as if he were playing a wicked instrument, touching a nerve here, a synapse there, a channel elsewhere, pushing the whole group, except for the commander, to the brink of explosion all at once. There was no sign of this flawless work on the outside; everyone present, having endured so long under the strict rules of Boskonia, fully understood the consequences of breaking that code.
The moment came when passion overmastered sense. One of the monsters stumbled, jostling another. That nudge became, in its recipient's seething mind, a lethal attack by his bitterest enemy. A forbidden projector flamed viciously—the offended one was sating his lust so insensately that he scarcely noticed the bolt that in turn rived away his own life. Detonated by this incident, the personnel of the Base exploded as one. Blasters raved briefly; knives and swords bit and slashed; improvised bludgeons crashed against pre-selected targets; hard-taloned appendages gouged and tore. And Nadreck, who had long since withdrawn from the mind of the psychologist, timed with a stop watch the duration of the whole grizzly affair, from the instant of the first stumble to the death of the last Onlonian outside the Commander's locked and armored sanctum. Ninety-eight and three tenths seconds. Good—a nice job.
The moment arrived when passion overwhelmed reason. One of the monsters tripped, bumping into another. That nudge turned, in the agitated recipient's mind, into a deadly attack from his fiercest enemy. A forbidden projector flared up violently—the offended one was indulging his desires so recklessly that he hardly noticed the blow that ended his own life. Triggered by this incident, the personnel at the Base erupted as one. Blasters fired wildly for a moment; knives and swords pierced and sliced; makeshift weapons crashed into their chosen targets; sharp claws gouged and ripped. And Nadreck, who had long since tuned out the psychologist’s thoughts, timed the entire grisly event with a stopwatch, from the moment of the first stumble to the death of the last Onlonian outside the Commander's locked and armored refuge. Ninety-eight point three seconds. Good—a job well done.
The Base Commander, as soon as it was safe to do so, rushed out of his guarded room to investigate. Amazed, disgruntled, dismayed by the to him completely inexplicable phenomenon he had just witnessed, he fell an easy prey to the Palainian Lensman. Nadreck invaded his mind and explored it, channel by channel; finding—not entirely unexpectedly—that this Number One knew nothing whatever of interest.
The Base Commander, as soon as it was safe, rushed out of his secured room to check things out. In shock, frustrated, and confused by the completely baffling event he had just seen, he quickly became an easy target for the Palainian Lensman. Nadreck penetrated his mind and examined it, channel by channel; discovering—not entirely surprisingly—that this Number One had absolutely nothing of interest.
Nadreck did not destroy the base. Instead, after setting up a small instrument in the Commander's office, he took that unfortunate wight aboard his speedster and drove off into space. He immobilized his captive, not by loading him with manacles, but by deftly severing a few essential nerve trunks. Then he really studied the Onlonian's mind—line by line, this time; almost cell by cell. A master—almost certainly Kandron himself—had operated here. There was not the slightest trace of tampering; no leads to or indications of what the activating stimulus would have to be; all that the fellow now knew was that it was his job to hold his Base inviolate against any and every form of intrusion and to keep that speedster flitting around all over space on a director-by-chance as much as possible of the time, leaking slightly a certain signal now and then.
Nadreck didn't destroy the base. Instead, after setting up a small device in the Commander's office, he took that unfortunate person aboard his speedster and headed off into space. He immobilized his captive, not by putting him in handcuffs, but by skillfully cutting a few vital nerve connections. Then he really examined the Onlonian's mind—line by line, almost cell by cell. A master—most likely Kandron himself—had been at work here. There was not the slightest hint of tampering; no clues or indications of what the trigger might be; all this guy knew was that it was his job to keep the Base secure against any form of intrusion and to maintain that speedster darting around space on a random directive as much as possible, occasionally leaking a certain signal here and there.

Even under this microscopic re-examination, he knew nothing whatever of Kandron; nothing of Onlo or of Thrale; nothing of any Boskonian organization, activity, or thing; and Nadreck, although baffled still, remained undisturbed. This trap, he thought, could almost certainly be used against the trapper. Until a certain call came through his relay in the Base, he would investigate the planets of this system.
Even under this close examination, he still knew nothing about Kandron; nothing about Onlo or Thrale; nothing about any Boskonian organization, activity, or anything else; and Nadreck, although still puzzled, remained calm. He thought this trap could definitely be used against the trapper. Until a certain call came through his relay at the Base, he would look into the planets of this system.
During the investigation a thought impinged upon his Lens from Karen Kinnison, one of the very few warm-blooded beings for whom he had any real liking or respect.
During the investigation, a thought struck him from Karen Kinnison, one of the very few warm-blooded beings he genuinely liked or respected.
"Busy, Nadreck?" she asked, as casually as though she had seen him hours, instead of weeks before.
"Busy, Nadreck?" she asked, as casually as if she had seen him hours, instead of weeks, ago.
"In large, yes—in detail and at the moment, no. Is there any small problem in which I can be of assistance?"
"In general, yes—but not in detail or right now. Is there any small issue I can help you with?"
"Not small—big. I just got the funniest distress call I ever heard or heard of. On a high band—'way, 'way up—there. Do you know of any race that thinks on that band?"
"Not small—big. I just got the funniest distress call I've ever heard or heard about. On a high band—way, way up—there. Do you know of any race that operates on that band?"
"I do not believe so." He thought for a moment. "Definitely, no."
"I don't think so." He paused for a moment. "Definitely not."
"Neither do I. It wasn't broadcast, either, but was directed at any member of a special race or tribe—very special. Classification, straight Z's to ten or twelve places, she ... or it ... seemed to be trying to specify."
"Me neither. It wasn't broadcast either, but it was aimed at any member of a unique race or tribe—very unique. Classification, straight Z's to ten or twelve places, she ... or it ... seemed to be trying to specify."
"A frigid race of extreme type, adapted to an environment having a temperature of only a few degrees absolute."
"A cold species of extreme type, suited to an environment with a temperature of just a few degrees above absolute zero."
"Yes. Like you, only more so." Kay paused, trying to put into intelligible thought a picture inherently incapable of reception or recognition by her as yet strictly three-dimensional intelligence. "Something like the Eich, too, but not much. Their visible aspect was obscure, fluid ... amorphous ... indefinite? ... skip it—I couldn't really perceive it, let alone describe it. I wish you had caught that thought."
"Yeah. Just like you, but more intense." Kay paused, attempting to translate into clear thoughts an image that her strictly three-dimensional mind couldn't grasp or recognize. "It was somewhat like the Eich, but not really. Their visible form was unclear, fluid... shapeless... vague? ... never mind—I couldn't really see it, let alone explain it. I wish you'd picked up on that thought."
"I wish so, too—it is extremely interesting. But tell me—if the thought was directed, not broadcast, how could you have received it?"
"I wish the same—it’s really interesting. But tell me—if the thought was focused, not spread out, how could you have picked it up?"
"That's the funniest part of the whole thing." Nadreck could feel the girl frown in concentration. "It came at me from all sides at once—never felt anything like it. Naturally I started feeling around for the source—particularly since it was a distress signal—but before I could get even a general direction of the origin it ... it ... well, it didn't really disappear or really weaken, but something happened to it. I couldn't read it any more—and that really did throw me for a loss." She paused, then went on. "It didn't so much go away as go down, some way or other. Then it vanished completely, without really going anywhere. I know that I'm not making myself clear—I simply can't—but have I given you enough leads so that you can make any sense at all out of any part of it?"
"That's the funniest part of the whole thing." Nadreck could sense the girl frowning in concentration. "It hit me from all sides at once—I’ve never felt anything like it. Naturally, I started searching for the source—especially since it was a distress signal—but before I could even get a general idea of where it was coming from, it ... it ... well, it didn’t really disappear or weaken, but something changed about it. I couldn't decipher it anymore—and that really threw me off." She paused, then continued. "It didn’t exactly go away, but rather went down, somehow. Then it completely vanished, without really going anywhere. I know I'm not being clear—I just can’t—but have I given you enough clues so you can make any sense of any part of it?"
"I'm very sorry to say that I can not."
"I'm really sorry to say that I can't."
Nor could he, ever, for excellent reasons. That girl had a mind whose power, scope, depth, and range she herself did not, could not even dimly understand; a mind to be fully comprehended only by an adult of her own third level. That mind had in fact received in toto a purely fourth-dimensional thought. If Nadreck had received it, he would have understood it and recognized it for what it was only because of his advanced Arisian training—no other Palainian could have done so—and it would have been sheerly unthinkable to him that any warm-blooded and, therefore, strictly three-dimensional entity could by any possibility receive such a thought; or, having received it, could understand any figment of it. Nevertheless, if he had really concentrated the full powers of his mind upon the girl's attempted description, he might very well have recognized in it the clearest possible three-dimensional delineation of such a thought; and from that point he could have gone on to a full understanding of the Children of the Lens.
Nor could he, ever, for very good reasons. That girl had a mind whose power, scope, depth, and range she herself didn't, and couldn't, even begin to comprehend; a mind that could only be fully understood by an adult at her own level. In fact, that mind had received a thought that was purely fourth-dimensional. If Nadreck had received it, he would have understood and recognized it for what it was only because of his advanced Arisian training—no other Palainian could have done so—and it would have been completely unimaginable to him that any warm-blooded, and therefore strictly three-dimensional, being could possibly receive such a thought; or, having received it, could grasp any part of it. Nevertheless, if he had truly concentrated all his mental powers on the girl's attempted description, he might have recognized in it the clearest possible three-dimensional representation of such a thought; and from there, he could have reached a full understanding of the Children of the Lens.
However, he did not so concentrate. It was constitutionally impossible for him to devote real mental effort to any matter not immediately pertaining to the particular task in hand. Therefore neither he nor Karen Kinnison were to know until much later that she had been en rapport with one of Civilization's bitterest, most implacable foes; that she had seen with clairvoyant and telepathic accuracy the intrinsically three-dimensionally-indescribable form assumed in their winter by the horrid, the monstrous inhabitants of that viciously hostile world, the unspeakable planet Ploor!
However, he wasn't really focused. It was basically impossible for him to put any genuine mental effort into anything that wasn't directly related to the task at hand. So, neither he nor Karen Kinnison would realize until much later that she had been en rapport with one of Civilization's hardest, most relentless enemies; that she had perceived with clairvoyant and telepathic precision the incomprehensibly three-dimensional shape taken on in winter by the terrifying, monstrous inhabitants of that viciously hostile world, the unspeakable planet Ploor!
"I was afraid you couldn't." Kay's thought came clear. "That makes it all the more important—important enough for you to drop whatever it is that you're doing now and join me in getting to the bottom of it, if you could be made to see it, which, of course, you can't."
"I was afraid you couldn't." Kay's thoughts were clear. "That makes it even more important—important enough for you to stop whatever you're doing right now and help me figure this out, if only you could see it that way, which, of course, you can't."
"I am about to take Kandron, and nothing in the Universe can be as important as that," Nadreck stated quietly, as a simple matter of fact. "You have observed this that lies here?"
"I’m about to take Kandron, and nothing in the Universe is more important than that," Nadreck said quietly, as if it were just a fact. "Have you seen what’s here?"
"Yes." Karen, en rapport with Nadreck, was, of course, cognizant of the captive, but it had not occurred to her to mention the monster. When dealing with Nadreck she, against all the tenets of her sex, exhibited as little curiosity as did the coldly emotionless Lensman himself. "Since you bid so obviously for the question, why are you keeping it alive—or rather, not dead?"
"Yes." Karen, in sync with Nadreck, was, of course, aware of the captive, but it hadn't crossed her mind to bring up the monster. While interacting with Nadreck, she, against all the norms for her gender, showed as little curiosity as the emotionless Lensman himself. "Since you clearly want to ask, why are you keeping it alive—or rather, not dead?"
"Because he is my sure link to Kandron." If Nadreck of Palain ever was known to gloat, it was then. "He is Kandron's creature, placed by Kandron personally as an agency of my destruction. Kandron's brain alone holds the key compulsion which will restore his memories. At some future time—perhaps a second from now, perhaps a cycle of years—Kandron will use that key to learn how his minion fares. Kandron's thought will energize my re-transmitter in the dome; the compulsion will be forwarded to this still-living brain. The brain, however, will be in my speedster, not in that undamaged fortress. You now understand why I cannot stray far from this being's base; you should see that you should join me instead of me joining you."
"Because he is my direct link to Kandron." If Nadreck of Palain ever had a moment of triumph, it was then. "He is Kandron's pawn, placed by Kandron himself as a means of my undoing. Only Kandron's mind holds the key compulsion that will bring back his memories. At some point—maybe in a second, maybe in years—Kandron will use that key to find out how his minion is doing. Kandron's thoughts will activate my re-transmitter in the dome; the compulsion will be sent to this still-living brain. However, the brain will be in my speedster, not in that intact fortress. You now see why I can't stray too far from this being's base; you should realize that you should join me instead of me joining you."
"No; not definite enough," Karen countered, decisively. "I can't see myself passing up a thing like this for the opportunity of spending the next ten years floating around in an orbit, doing nothing. However, I check you to a certain extent—when and if anything really happens, shoot me a thought and I'll rally 'round."
"No, that's not specific enough," Karen replied firmly. "I can't imagine giving up something like this for the chance to spend the next ten years just drifting in orbit, doing nothing. But I’ll keep you in the loop to some degree—when something actually happens, send me a message and I'll be there."
The linkage broke without formal adieus. Nadreck went his way, Karen went hers. She did not, however, go far along the way she had had in mind. She was still precisely nowhere in her quest when she felt a thought, of a type that only her brother or an Arisian could send. It was Kit.
The connection ended abruptly without any real goodbyes. Nadreck went off in one direction, and Karen went in another. However, she didn't get very far on the path she had planned. She was still exactly nowhere in her search when she felt a thought, one that only her brother or an Arisian could send. It was Kit.
"Hi, Kay!" A warm, brotherly contact. "How'r'ya doing, Sis? Are you growing up?"
"Hey, Kay!" A friendly touch. "How are you, Sis? Are you growing up?"
"I'm grown up! What a question!"
"I'm all grown up! What a question!"
"Don't get stiff, Kay, there's method in this. Got to be sure." All trace of levity gone, he probed her unmercifully. "Not too bad, at that, for a kid. As Dad would express it, if he could feel you this way, you're twenty-nine numbers Brinnell harder than a diamond drill. Plenty of jets for this job, and by the time the real one comes, you'll probably be ready."
"Don't tense up, Kay, there's a reason for this. We need to be certain." All signs of humor vanished as he questioned her relentlessly. "Not too shabby, considering you're just a kid. As Dad would say, if he could feel you like this, you're twenty-nine times tougher than a diamond drill. There are plenty of options for this job, and by the time the real one arrives, you'll likely be ready."
"Cut the rigmarole, Kit!" she snapped, and hurled a vicious bolt of her own. If Kit did not counter it as easily as he had handled her earlier efforts, he did not reveal the fact. "What job? What d'you think you're talking about? I'm on a job now that I wouldn't drop for Nadreck, and I don't think that I'll drop it for you."
"Cut the nonsense, Kit!" she snapped, and threw back a sharp retort of her own. If Kit didn’t counter it as effortlessly as he had dealt with her earlier attempts, he didn’t show it. "What job? What are you talking about? I’m working on a project right now that I wouldn't give up for Nadreck, and I don’t think I’ll give it up for you."
"You'll have to." Kit's thought was grim. "Mother is going to have to go to work on Lyrane II. The probability is pretty certain that there is or will be something there that she can't handle. Remote control is out, or I'd do it myself, but I can't work on Lyrane II in person. Here's the whole picture—look it over. You can see, Sis, that you're elected, so hop to it."
"You'll have to." Kit thought grimly. "Mom's going to have to work on Lyrane II. It's pretty likely there’s or will be something there that she can't deal with. Remote control is not an option, or I'd do it myself, but I can't work on Lyrane II in person. Here’s the whole situation—check it out. You can see, Sis, that you’re chosen, so get to it."
"I won't!" she stormed. "I can't—I'm too busy. How about asking Con, or Kat, or Cam?"
"I won't!" she shouted. "I can't—I'm really busy. Why not ask Con, or Kat, or Cam?"
"They don't fit the picture," he explained patiently—for him. "In this case hardness is indicated, as you can see for yourself."
"They don't fit the picture," he explained patiently—considering how he usually was. "In this case, hardness is what's indicated, as you can see for yourself."
"Hardness, phooey!" she jeered. "To handle Ladora of Lyrane? She thinks she's a hard-boiled egg, I know, but—"
"Hardness, please!" she scoffed. "To deal with Ladora of Lyrane? She believes she's tough, I get it, but—"
"Listen, you bird-brained knot-head!" Kit cut in, venomously. "You're fogging the issue deliberately—stop it! I spread you the whole picture—you know as well as I do that while there's nothing definite as yet, the thing needs covering and you're the one to cover it. But no—just because I'm the one to suggest or ask anything of you, you've always got to go into that mulish act of yours."
"Listen up, you clueless idiot!" Kit interrupted sharply. "You're completely missing the point on purpose—cut it out! I laid out the whole situation for you—you know as well as I do that even though nothing's set in stone yet, this needs to be addressed, and you're the one who should handle it. But no—just because I’m the one suggesting or asking anything of you, you always have to pull that stubborn routine."
"Be silent, children, and attend!" Both flushed violently as Mentor came between them. "Some of the weaker thinkers here are beginning to despair of you, but my visualization of your development is still clear. To mold such characters as yours sufficiently, and yet not too much, is a delicate task indeed; but one which must and shall be done. Christopher, come to me at once, in person. Karen, I would suggest that you go to Lyrane and do there whatever you find necessary to do."
"Be quiet, kids, and listen up!" Both of them flushed with embarrassment as Mentor stepped between them. "Some of the less confident people here are starting to lose hope in you, but I can still clearly see your potential. Shaping characters like yours just right, not too much or too little, is a tricky job, but it’s one that must be done. Christopher, come to me right now, in person. Karen, I suggest you go to Lyrane and take care of whatever you need to do there."
"I won't—I've still got this job here to do!" Karen defied even the ancient Arisian sage.
"I won't—I’ve still got this job here to do!" Karen stood her ground against the ancient Arisian sage.
"That, Daughter, can and should wait. I tell you solemnly, as a fact, that if you do not go to Lyrane you will never get the faintest clue to that which you now seek."
"That can wait, Daughter. I’m telling you seriously, as a fact, that if you don’t go to Lyrane, you’ll never get the slightest hint of what you’re looking for."
XII.
XII.
Christopher Kinnison drove toward Arisia, seething. Why couldn't those sisters of his have sense to match their brains—or why couldn't he have had some brothers? Especially—right now—Kay. If she had the sense of a Zabriskan fontema, she'd know that this job was important and would snap into it, instead of wild-goose-chasing all over space. If he were Mentor, he'd straighten her out. He had decided to straighten her out once himself, and he grinned wryly to himself at the memory of what had happened. What Mentor had done to him, before he even got started, was really rugged. What he would like to do, next time he got within reach of her, was to shake her until her teeth rattled.
Christopher Kinnison drove toward Arisia, fuming. Why couldn't his sisters be smart enough to use their brains—or why couldn't he have had some brothers? Especially right now—Kay. If she had any common sense, she'd realize that this job was important and would get on with it instead of running around all over space. If he were Mentor, he'd set her straight. He had once tried to straighten her out himself, and he smirked at the memory of what had happened. What Mentor had done to him before he even got started was pretty brutal. What he wanted to do next time he got close to her was to shake her until her teeth rattled.
Or would he? Uh-uh. By no stretch of the imagination could he picture himself hurting any one of them. They were swell kids—in fact, the finest people he had ever known. He had rough-housed and wrestled with them plenty of times, of course—he liked it, and so did they. He could handle any one of them—he surveyed without his usual complacence his two-hundred-plus pounds of meat, bone, and gristle—he ought to be able to, since he outweighed them by fifty or sixty pounds; but it wasn't easy. Worse than Valerians—just like taking on a combination of boa constrictor and cateagle—and when Kat and Con ganged up on him that time they mauled him to a pulp in nothing flat.
Or would he? Nope. There was no way he could imagine hurting any of them. They were great kids—in fact, the best people he had ever known. He had played and wrestled with them plenty of times, and he enjoyed it, just as they did. He could handle any one of them—he looked over his two-hundred-plus pounds of muscle, bone, and stubbornness—he should be able to, since he outweighed them by fifty or sixty pounds; but it wasn't easy. They were tougher than Valerians—like taking on a mix between a boa constrictor and a cat. And when Kat and Con teamed up against him that time, they took him down in no time.
But jet back! Weight wasn't it, except maybe among themselves. He had never met a Valerian yet whose shoulders he couldn't pin flat to the mat in a hundred seconds, and the very smallest of them outweighed him two to one. Conversely, although he had never thought of it before, what his sisters had taken from him, without even a bruise, would have broken any ordinary woman up into a mess of compound fractures. They were—they must be—made of different stuff.
But wait a second! It wasn't really about weight, at least not when it came to them. He had never encountered a Valerian he couldn't pin flat to the mat in under a minute, and even the smallest of them weighed double what he did. On the other hand, although he had never considered it before, what his sisters took from him, without leaving a scratch, would have shattered any regular woman into a bunch of broken bones. They were—they had to be—made of tougher material.
His thoughts took a new tack. The kids were special in another way, too, he had noticed lately, without paying it any particular attention. It might tie in. They didn't feel like other girls. After dancing with one of them, other girls felt like robots made out of putty. Their flesh was different. It was firmer, finer, infinitely more responsive. Each individual cell seemed to be endowed with a flashing, sparkling life; a life which, interlinking with that of one of his own cells, made their bodies as intimately one as were their perfectly synchronized minds.
His thoughts shifted. He had recently noticed that the kids were special in another way, though he hadn’t really focused on it. It might connect. They didn’t feel like other girls. After dancing with one of them, other girls felt like robots made of putty. Their skin was different. It was firmer, finer, and way more responsive. Each individual cell seemed to be filled with a vibrant, sparking energy; a life that, when combined with one of his own cells, made their bodies as connected as their perfectly synchronized minds.
But what did all this have to do with their lack of sense? QX, they were nice people. QX, he couldn't beat their brains out, either physically or mentally. But there ought to be some way of driving some ordinary common sense through their fine-grained, thick, hard, tough skulls!
But what did all this have to do with their lack of common sense? QX, they were good people. QX, he couldn't knock some sense into them, either physically or mentally. But there should be some way to get some basic common sense into their fine, thick, tough skulls!
Thus it was that Kit approached Arisia in a decidedly mixed frame of mind. He shot through the barrier without slowing down and without notification. Inerting his ship, he fought her into an orbit around the planet. The shape of the orbit was immaterial, as long as its every inch was well inside Arisia's innermost screen. For young Kinnison knew precisely what those screens were and exactly what they were for. He knew that distance of itself meant nothing—Mentor could give anyone either basic or advanced treatments just as well from a distance of a thousand million parsecs as at hand to hand. The reason for the screens and for the personal visits was the existence of the Eddorians, who had minds probably as capable as the Arisians' own. And throughout all the infinite reaches of the macrocosmic Universe, only within these highly special screens was there certainty of privacy from the spying senses of the ultimate foe.
So it was that Kit approached Arisia with a mix of thoughts and feelings. He shot through the barrier without slowing down or giving any notice. He put his ship into a stable orbit around the planet. The shape of the orbit didn’t matter, as long as every part of it was well within Arisia's innermost shield. Young Kinnison understood perfectly what those shields were and exactly what their purpose was. He realized that distance meant nothing—Mentor could provide anyone with basic or advanced treatments just as effectively from a thousand million parsecs away as he could up close. The reason for the shields and for the personal visits was the existence of the Eddorians, who likely had minds just as powerful as the Arisians'. And throughout all the vastness of the macrocosmic Universe, only within these highly specialized shields was there certainty of privacy from the watchful senses of the ultimate enemy.
"The time has come, Christopher, for the last treatment I am able to give you," Mentor announced without preamble, as soon as Kit had checked his orbit.
"The time has come, Christopher, for the last treatment I can give you," Mentor said directly, as soon as Kit had checked his orbit.
"Oh—so soon? I thought you were pulling me in to pin my ears back for fighting with Kay—the dim-wit!"
"Oh—so soon? I thought you were going to call me out for arguing with Kay—the airhead!"
"That, while a minor matter, is worthy of passing mention, since it is illustrative of the difficulties inherent in the project of developing, without over-controlling, such minds as yours. En route here, you made a masterly summation of the situation, with one outstanding omission."
"Although it's a small issue, it's worth mentioning because it highlights the challenges involved in nurturing minds like yours without being overly controlling. On your way here, you gave a brilliant summary of the situation, with one significant omission."
"Huh? What omission? I covered it like a blanket!"
"Huh? What did I leave out? I covered it completely!"
"You assumed throughout, and still assume, as you always do in dealing with your sisters, that you are unassailably right; that your conclusion is the only tenable one; that they are always wrong."
"You have always believed, and still believe, as you do with your sisters, that you are completely right; that your conclusion is the only one that makes sense; that they are always wrong."
"But they are! That's why you sent Kay to Lyrane!"
"But they are! That's why you sent Kay to Lyrane!"
"In these conflicts with your sisters, you have been right in approximately half of the cases," Mentor informed him.
"In these arguments with your sisters, you've been right about half the time," Mentor told him.
"But how about their fights with each other?"
"But what about the way they argue with each other?"
"Do you know of any such?"
"Do you know of any like that?"
"Why ... uh ... can't say that I do." Kit's surprise was plain. "But since they fight with me so much, they must—"
"Why ... uh ... I can't say that I do." Kit's surprise was clear. "But since they argue with me so much, they must—"
"That does not follow, and for a very good reason. We may as well discuss that reason now, as it is a necessary part of the education which you are about to receive. You already know that your sisters are very different, each from the other. Know now, that each was specifically developed to be so completely different that there is no possible point which could be made an issue between any two of them."
"That doesn't make sense, and there's a good reason for it. We might as well talk about that reason now, since it's an essential part of the education you’re about to receive. You already know that your sisters are very different from one another. Understand now that each one was specifically designed to be so distinct that there’s no possible issue that could arise between any two of them."
It took some time for Kit to digest that news. "Then where do I come in that they all fight with me at the drop of a hat?"
It took Kit a while to process that news. "So where do I fit in that they all argue with me at the slightest provocation?"
"That, too, while regrettable, is inevitable. Each of your sisters, as you may have suspected, is to play a tremendous part in that which is to come. The Lensmen, we of Arisia, all will contribute, but upon you Children of the Lens—especially upon the girls—will fall the greater share of the load. Your individual task will be that of co-ordinating the whole; a duty which no Arisian is or ever can be qualified to perform. You will have to direct the efforts of your sisters; reinforcing every heavily-attacked point with your own incomparable force and drive; keeping them smoothly in mesh and in place. As a side issue, you will also have to co-ordinate the feebler efforts of us of Arisia, the Lensmen, the Patrol, and whatever other minor forces we may be able to employ."
"That, too, while unfortunate, is unavoidable. Each of your sisters, as you might have guessed, is going to play a significant role in what’s coming. The Lensmen, we from Arisia, will all contribute, but the greater part of the responsibility will rest on you Children of the Lens—especially the girls. Your individual task will be to coordinate everything; a responsibility that no Arisian is or ever can be qualified to handle. You will need to guide your sisters' efforts, reinforcing every heavily-attacked area with your own unmatched strength and energy, ensuring they work together smoothly. Additionally, you will have to coordinate the weaker efforts of us from Arisia, the Lensmen, the Patrol, and any other minor forces we might be able to use."
"Holy ... Klono's ... claws!" Kit was gasping like a fish. "Just where, Mentor, do you figure I'm going to pick up the jets to swing that load? And as to co-ordinating the kids—that's out. I'd make just one suggestion to any one of them and she'd forget all about the battle and tear into me ... no, I'll take that back. The stickier the going, the closer they rally 'round."
"Holy ... Klono's ... claws!" Kit was panting like a fish out of water. "So where, Mentor, do you think I’m going to find the energy to handle that load? And coordinating the kids—that's impossible. If I make even one suggestion to any of them, they'll forget all about the battle and come after me ... wait, I take that back. The tougher things get, the more they stick together."
"Right. It will always be so. Now, youth, that you have these facts, explain these matters to me, as a sort of preliminary exercise."
"Okay. It will always be this way. Now, young one, since you have these facts, explain these issues to me as a kind of warm-up exercise."
"I think I see." Kit thought intensely. "The kids don't fight with each other because they don't overlap. They fight with me because my central field overlaps them all. They have no occasion to fight with anybody else, nor have I, because with anybody else our viewpoint is always right and the other fellow knows it—except for Palainians and such, who think along different lines than we do. Thus, Kay never fights with Nadreck. When he goes off the beam, she simply ignores him and goes on about her business. But with them and me—we'll have to learn to arbitrate, or something, I suppose—" his thought trailed off.
"I think I get it," Kit thought hard. "The kids don’t argue with each other because their interests don’t overlap. They argue with me because my role intersects with all of them. They have no reason to fight with anyone else, and neither do I, because with anyone else our perspective is always right and the other person knows it—except for Palainians and others, who think differently than we do. So, Kay never argues with Nadreck. When he goes off track, she just ignores him and moves on with her life. But with them and me—we’ll need to figure out how to settle things or something, I guess—" his thoughts faded away.
"Manifestations of adolescence; with adulthood, now coming fast, they will pass. Let us get on with the work."
"Expressions of being a teenager; with adulthood approaching quickly, they will fade. Let's get on with the work."
"But wait a minute!" Kit protested. "About this co-ordinator thing. I can't do it. I'm too much of a kid. I won't be ready for a job like that for a thousand years!"
"But hold on a second!" Kit protested. "About this coordinator role. I can't handle it. I'm way too much of a kid. I won't be ready for a job like that for ages!"
"You must be ready," Mentor's thought was inexorable. "And, when the time comes, you shall be. Now, come fully into my mind."
"You have to be ready," Mentor's thought was unyielding. "And when the time comes, you will be. Now, come completely into my mind."
There is no use in repeating in detail the progress of an Arisian supereducation, especially since the most accurate possible description of the most important of those details would be intrinsically meaningless. When, after a few weeks of it, Kit was ready to leave Arisia, he looked much older and more mature than before; he felt immensely older than he looked. The concluding conversation of that visit, however, is worth recording.
There’s no point in going over the specifics of an Arisian supereducation in detail, especially since a precise description of the most significant aspects wouldn’t really matter. After a few weeks of it, when Kit was ready to leave Arisia, he looked much older and more mature than before; he felt way older than he appeared. Still, the final conversation from that visit is worth noting.
"You now know, Kinnison," Mentor mused, "what you children are and how you came to be. You are the accomplishment of long lifetimes of work. It is with most profound satisfaction that I now perceive clearly that those lifetimes have not been spent in vain."
"You understand now, Kinnison," Mentor reflected, "what you children are and how you came to be. You are the result of many lifetimes of effort. It’s with deep satisfaction that I can now see clearly that those lifetimes have not been wasted."
"Yours, you mean." Kit was embarrassed, but one point still bothered him. "Dad met and married mother, yes, but how about the others? Tregonsee, Worsel, and Nadreck? They and the corresponding females were also penultimates, of lines as long as ours. Your Council decided that the human stock was best, so none of the other Second-Stage Lensmen ever met their female complements. Not that it could make any difference to them, of course, but I should think that three of your fellow students wouldn't feel so good."
"Yours, you mean." Kit felt awkward, but one thing still troubled him. "Dad met and married Mom, sure, but what about the others? Tregonsee, Worsel, and Nadreck? They and their matches were also second to last, from family lines just as long as ours. Your Council decided that humans were the best choice, so none of the other Second-Stage Lensmen ever met their female counterparts. Not that it would matter to them, of course, but I would think that three of your classmates wouldn't feel great about it."
"I am very glad indeed that you mention the point." The Arisian's thought was positively gleeful. "You have at no time, then, detected anything peculiar about this that you know as Mentor of Arisia?"
"I’m really glad you brought that up." The Arisian's thought was almost joyful. "So, you’ve never noticed anything strange about this thing you call Mentor of Arisia?"
"Why, of course not. How could I? Or, rather, why should I?"
"Of course not. How could I? Or, more importantly, why would I?"
"Any lapse on our part, however slight, from practically perfect synchronization would have revealed to such a mentality as yours that I, whom you know as Mentor, am not an individual, but four. While we each worked as individuals upon all of the experimental lines, whenever we dealt with any one of the penultimates or ultimates we did so as a fusion. This was necessary, not only for your fullest possible development, but also to be sure that each of us had complete data upon every minute facet of the truth. While it was in no sense important to the work itself to keep you in ignorance of Mentor's plurality, the fact that we could keep you ignorant of it, particularly now that you have become adult, showed that our work was being done in a really workmanlike fashion."
"Any slight mistake on our part in achieving perfect synchronization would have shown someone like you that I, known as Mentor, am not just one person, but four. While we each focused as individuals on different experimental lines, when it came to any of the penultimate or ultimate issues, we worked together as one. This was necessary, not only for your complete development but also to ensure that each of us had thorough data on every small detail of the truth. While it wasn't crucial for the work itself to keep you unaware of Mentor's plurality, the fact that we could keep it from you, especially now that you're an adult, indicated that we were doing our job in a really professional manner."
Kit whistled; a long, low whistle which was tribute enough to those who knew what it meant. He knew what he meant, but there were not enough words or thoughts to express it.
Kit whistled; a long, low whistle that was meaningful enough for those who understood what it signified. He knew what he was conveying, but there weren't enough words or thoughts to articulate it.
"But you're going to keep on being Mentor, aren't you?" he asked.
"But you're still going to be Mentor, right?" he asked.
"I am. The real task, as you know, lies ahead."
"I am. The real challenge, as you know, is still to come."
"QX. You say that I'm adult. I'm not. You imply that I'm more than several notches above you in qualifications. I could laugh myself silly about that one, if it wasn't so serious. Why, any one of you Arisians has forgotten more than I know, and could tie me up into bowknots!"
"QX. You say that I'm an adult. I'm not. You suggest that I'm way more qualified than you. I could laugh at that if it wasn't so serious. Honestly, any one of you Arisians has forgotten more than I know and could easily tie me in knots!"
"There are elements of truth in your thought. That you can now be called adult, however, does not mean that you have attained your full power; only that you are able to use effectively the powers you have and are able to acquire other and larger powers."
"There are aspects of truth in your thinking. Just because you can now be called an adult doesn’t mean you've reached your full potential; it only means you can effectively use the skills you have and can gain new and greater abilities."
"But what are those powers?" Kit demanded. "You've hinted on that same theme a thousand times, and I don't know what you mean any better than I did before!"
"But what are those powers?" Kit asked. "You've hinted at that same thing a thousand times, and I still don't understand what you mean any better than I did before!"
"You must develop your own powers." Mentor's thought was as final as fate. "Your mind is potentially far abler than mine. You will in time come to know my mind in full; I never will be able to know yours. For the lesser, but full mind to attempt to instruct in methodology the greater, although emptier one, is to set that greater mind in an under-sized mold and thus to do it irreparable harm. You have the abilities and the powers. You will have to develop them yourself, by the perfection of techniques concerning which I can give you no instructions whatever."
"You need to develop your own abilities." The mentor's thought was as definite as fate. "Your mind has the potential to be much more capable than mine. In time, you will fully understand my thoughts; I will never fully understand yours. For a lesser, yet complete mind to try to teach the greater, even if it's less developed, is to force that greater mind into a small mold and cause it irreparable harm. You have the skills and the potential. You will need to develop them on your own, mastering techniques that I can't instruct you on at all."
"But surely you can give me some kind of a hint!" Kit pleaded. "I'm just a kid, I tell you—I don't even know how or where to begin!"
"But you have to give me some kind of a hint!" Kit begged. "I’m just a kid, I swear—I don't even know how or where to start!"
Under Kit's startled mental gaze, Mentor split suddenly into four parts, laced together by a pattern of thoughts so intricate and so rapid as to be unrecognizable. The parts fused and again Mentor spoke.
Under Kit's surprised mental view, Mentor suddenly divided into four parts, connected by a pattern of thoughts so complex and fast that it was unrecognizable. The parts merged, and Mentor spoke again.
"I can point the way in only the broadest, most general terms. It has been decided, however, that I can give you one hint—or, more properly, one illustration. The surest test of knowledge known to us is the visualization of the Cosmic All. All science is, as you know, one. The true key to power lies in the knowledge of the underlying reasons for the succession of events. If it is pure causation—that is, if any given state of things follows as an inevitable consequence because of the state existing an infinitesimal instant before—then the entire course of the macrocosmic universe was set for the duration of all eternity in the instant of its coming into being. This well-known concept, the stumbling block upon which many early thinkers came to grief, we now know to be false. On the other hand, if pure randomness were to govern, natural laws as we know them could not exist. Thus neither pure causation nor pure randomness alone can govern the succession of events.
"I can only provide guidance in the broadest, most general terms. However, it's been decided that I can give you one hint—or rather, one example. The most reliable test of knowledge we have is the ability to visualize the Cosmic All. As you know, all science is interconnected. The true key to power lies in understanding the fundamental reasons behind the sequence of events. If it is purely causation—that is, if a specific state of things inevitably follows from the state that existed just an incredibly small moment before—then the entire trajectory of the universe was determined for all time at the moment it was created. This well-known idea, which caused many early thinkers to struggle, we now understand to be incorrect. On the other hand, if pure randomness were to take over, the natural laws we understand could not exist. Therefore, neither pure causation nor pure randomness alone can dictate the progression of events."
"The truth, then, must lie somewhere in between. In the macro-cosmos, causation prevails; in the micro-, randomness; both in accord with the mathematical laws of probability. It is in the region between them—the intermediate zone, or the interface, so to speak—that the greatest problems lie. The test of validity of any theory, as you know, is the accuracy of the predictions which are made possible by its use, and our greatest thinkers have shown that the completeness and fidelity of any visualization of the Cosmic All are linear functions of the clarity of definition of the components of that interface. Full knowledge of that indeterminate zone would mean infinite power and a statistically perfect visualization. None of these things, however, will ever be realized; for the acquirement of that full knowledge would require infinite time.
"The truth must be somewhere in the middle. In the macro-level, causation rules; in the micro-level, randomness does; both in line with the mathematical laws of probability. It’s in the space between them—the intermediate zone, or the interface, so to speak—that the biggest problems exist. The test of any theory’s validity, as you know, is how accurate the predictions it enables are, and our greatest thinkers have shown that the completeness and accuracy of any visualization of the Cosmic All are directly dependent on how clearly the components of that interface are defined. Having full knowledge of that undefined zone would mean limitless power and a statistically perfect visualization. However, none of this will ever be achieved, because gaining that complete knowledge would require infinite time."
"That is all I can tell you. It will, properly studied, be enough. I have built within you a solid foundation; yours alone is the task of erecting upon that foundation a structure strong enough to withstand the forces which will be thrown against it.
"That's all I can share with you. If you study it properly, it will be enough. I've given you a solid foundation; it's your job to build a structure on that foundation that's strong enough to handle the challenges that will come your way."
"It is perhaps natural, in view of what you have recently gone through, that you should regard the problem of the Eddorians as one of insuperable difficulty. Actually, however, it is not, as you will perceive when you have spent a few weeks in re-integrating yourself. You must not, you shall not, and in my clear visualization you do not, fail."
"It’s understandable, considering what you’ve just been through, that you would see the Eddorians’ problem as nearly impossible. But in reality, it’s not, as you’ll realize once you’ve spent a few weeks getting yourself back together. You must not, you will not, and I clearly see that you do not, fail."
Communication ceased. Kit made his way groggily to his control board, went free, and lined out for Klovia. For a guy whose education was supposed to be complete, he felt remarkably like a total loss with no insurance. He had asked for advice and had got—what? A dissertation on philosophy, mathematics, and physics—good enough stuff, probably, if he could see what Mentor was driving at, but not of much immediate use. He did have a brainful of new stuff, though—didn't know yet what half of it was—he'd better be getting it licked into shape. He'd "sleep" on it.
Communication stopped. Kit groggily made his way to his control panel, freed himself, and set a course for Klovia. For someone whose education was supposed to be complete, he felt incredibly lost and unprepared. He had asked for advice and received—what? A detailed lecture on philosophy, mathematics, and physics—valuable information, maybe, if he could understand what Mentor was getting at, but not really useful right now. He did have a lot of new information in his head, though—didn't even know what half of it was—so he’d better figure it out. He'd "sleep" on it.
He did so, and as he lay quiescent in his bunk the tiny pieces of an incredibly complex jig saw puzzle began to click into place. The ordinary zwilniks—all the small fry fitted in well enough. The Overlords of Delgon. The Kalonians ... hm-m-m ... he'd better check with Dad on that angle. The Eich—under control. Kandron of Onlo, ditto. "X" was in safe hands; Cam had already been alerted to watch her step. Some planet named Ploor—what in all the purple hells of Palain had Mentor meant by that crack? Anyway, that piece didn't fit anywhere—yet. That left Eddore—and at the thought a series of cold waves raced up and down the young Lensman's spine. Nevertheless, Eddore was his oyster—his, and nobody else's. Mentor had made that plain enough. Everything the Arisians had done for umpteen million years had been aimed at the Eddorians. They had picked him out to emcee the show—and how could a man co-ordinate an attack against something about which he knew nothing? And the only way to get acquainted with Eddore and its denizens was to go there. Should he call in the kids? He should not. Each of them had her hands full of her own job; that of developing her full self. He had his; and the more he studied the question, the clearer it became that the first number on the program of his self-development was—would have to be—a single-handed expedition against the key planet of Civilization's top-ranking foes.
He did so, and as he lay still in his bunk, the tiny pieces of an incredibly complex jigsaw puzzle began to click into place. The ordinary zwilniks—all the small players fit in well enough. The Overlords of Delgon. The Kalonians... hm-m-m... he should probably check with Dad on that angle. The Eich—under control. Kandron of Onlo, the same. "X" was in safe hands; Cam had already been alerted to watch her step. Some planet named Ploor—what in the world had Mentor meant by that comment? Anyway, that piece didn't fit anywhere—yet. That left Eddore—and at the thought, a series of cold shivers raced up and down the young Lensman's spine. Nevertheless, Eddore was his oyster—his, and nobody else's. Mentor had made that clear enough. Everything the Arisians had done for countless millennia had been aimed at the Eddorians. They had chosen him to lead the charge—and how could a man coordinate an attack against something he knew nothing about? And the only way to get to know Eddore and its inhabitants was to go there. Should he bring in the kids? He should not. Each of them had her hands full with her own job; that of developing her full self. He had his; and the more he thought about it, the clearer it became that the first step in his self-development was—would have to be—a solo expedition against the key planet of Civilization's top enemies.
He sprang out of his bunk, changed his vessel's course, and lined out a thought to his father.
He jumped out of his bed, altered his ship's direction, and jotted down a thought for his father.
"Dad? Kit. Been flitting around out Arisia way, and picked up an idea that I want to pass along to you. It's about Kalonians. What do you know about them?"
"Dad? It's Kit. I've been hanging around the Arisia area and got an idea I want to share with you. It's about the Kalonians. What do you know about them?"
"They're blue—"
"They're blue."
"I don't mean that."
"I didn't mean that."
"I know you don't. There were Helmuth, Jalte, Prellin, Crowninshield ... all I can think of at the moment. Big operators, son, and smart hombres, if I do say so myself as shouldn't; but they're all ancient history ... hold it! Maybe I know of a modern one, too—Eddie's Lensman. The only part of that picture that was sharp was the Lens, since Eddie was never analytically interested in any of the hundreds of types of people he met, but there was something about that Lensman.... I'll bring him back and focus him as sharply as I can—there." Both men studied the blurred statue posed in the Gray Lensman's mind. "Wouldn't you say he could be a Kalonian?"
"I know you don't. There were Helmuth, Jalte, Prellin, Crowninshield... all I can think of right now. Big players, buddy, and smart guys, if I may say so; but they're all in the past... wait! Maybe I can think of a modern one too—Eddie's Lensman. The only part of that movie that was clear was the Lens, since Eddie never really cared about any of the hundreds of people he met, but there was something about that Lensman... I'll bring him back and focus on him as clearly as I can—there." Both men examined the blurry statue in the Gray Lensman's mind. "Wouldn't you say he could be a Kalonian?"
"Check. I wouldn't want to say much more than that. But about that Lens—did you really examine it? It is sharp—under the circumstances, of course, it would be."
"Check. I wouldn’t want to say much more than that. But about that Lens—did you really look at it? It is sharp—given the circumstances, of course, it would be."
"Certainly! Wrong in every respect—rhythm, chroma, context, and aura. Definitely not Arisian; therefore Boskonian. That's the point—that's what I was afraid of, you know."
"Definitely wrong in every way—rhythm, color, context, and vibe. Not at all Arisian; so it must be Boskonian. That's it—that's what I was worried about, you know."
"Double-check. And that point ties in absolutely tight with the one that made me call you just now, that everybody, including you and me, seems to have missed. I've been searching my memory for five hours—you know what my memory is like—and I have heard of exactly two other Kalonians. They were big operators, too. I have never heard of the planet itself. To me it is a startling fact that the sum total of my information on Kalonia, reliable or otherwise, is that it produced seven big-shot zwilniks; six of them before I was born. Period."
"Double-check. And that point connects perfectly with what made me call you just now, something that everyone, including you and me, seems to have overlooked. I've been digging through my memory for five hours—you know how my memory works—and I can only recall two other Kalonians. They were major players, too. I’ve never heard of the planet itself. To me, it’s striking that all I know about Kalonia, reliable or not, is that it produced seven big-time zwilniks; six of them before I was born. That’s it."
Kit felt his father's jaw drop.
Kit felt his dad's jaw drop.
"No, I don't believe that I have ever heard anything about the planet, either," the older man finally replied. "But I'll bet that I can get you all the information you want in fifteen minutes."
"No, I don't think I've ever heard anything about the planet either," the older man eventually said. "But I bet I can get you all the info you need in fifteen minutes."

"Credits to millos it'll be a lot nearer fifteen days. You can find it sometime, though, if anybody can—that's why I'm taking it up with you. While I don't want to seem to be giving a Gray Lensman orders"—that jocular introduction had come to be a sort of ritual in the Kinnison family—"I would very diffidently suggest that there might be some connection between that completely unnoticed planet and some of the things we don't know about Boskonia."
"Thanks to Millos, it’ll be a lot closer to fifteen days. You might find it eventually if anyone can—that’s why I’m bringing it up with you. While I don’t want to come off as giving a Gray Lensman orders"—that joking intro had become a bit of a tradition in the Kinnison family—"I would very humbly suggest that there could be some link between that totally overlooked planet and some of the things we don’t yet understand about Boskonia."
"Diffident! You?" The Gray Lensman laughed deeply. "Like an atomic bomb! I'll start a search on Kalonia right away. As to your credits-to-millos-fifteen-days thing, I'd be ashamed to take your money. You don't know our librarians or our system. Ten millos, even money, that we get full data in less than five G-P days from right now. Want it?"
"Shy! You?" The Gray Lensman chuckled heartily. "Like an atomic bomb! I'll kick off a search on Kalonia right away. As for your credits-to-millos-fifteen-days thing, I'd feel embarrassed to take your money. You don't know our librarians or how our system works. Ten millos, straight up, that we get full data in less than five G-P days from now. Interested?"
"I'll say so. I'll wear that cento on my tunic as a medal of victory over the Gray Lensman. I do know the size of these here two galaxies!"
"I'll say it. I'll wear that badge on my tunic like a medal for winning against the Gray Lensman. I do know the size of these two galaxies!"
"QX—it's a bet. I'll let you know if we find anything. In the meantime, Kit, remember that you're my favorite son."
"QX—it’s a gamble. I’ll update you if we discover anything. In the meantime, Kit, just know that you’re my favorite son."
"Well, you're not so bad, yourself. Any time I want mother to divorce you so as to change fathers for me I'll let you know." What a terrific, what a tremendous meaning was heterodyned upon that seemingly light exchange! "Clear ether, Dad!"
"Well, you're not so bad yourself. Whenever I want mom to divorce you so I can have a different dad, I'll let you know." What a powerful, what a huge meaning was hidden in that seemingly casual exchange! "Clear signal, Dad!"
"Clear ether, son!"
"Clear the air, son!"
XIII.
XIII.
Thousands of years were to pass before Christopher Kinnison could develop the ability to visualize, from the contemplation of one fact or artifact, the entire Universe to which it belonged. He could not even plan in detail his one-man invasion of Eddore until he could integrate all available data concerning the planet Kalonia into his visualization of the Boskonian Empire. One unknown, Ploor, blurred his picture badly enough; two such completely unknown factors made visualization, even in broad, impossible.
Thousands of years would pass before Christopher Kinnison could develop the ability to visualize, from the contemplation of one fact or artifact, the entire universe it belonged to. He couldn't even plan in detail his one-man invasion of Eddore until he could integrate all available data about the planet Kalonia into his visualization of the Boskonian Empire. One unknown, Ploor, distorted his picture badly enough; having two completely unknown factors made visualization, even broadly, impossible.
Anyway, he decided, he had one more job to do before he tackled the key planet of the enemy; and now, while he was waiting for the dope on Kalonia, would be the best time to do it. Wherefore he sent out a thought to his mother.
Anyway, he decided he had one more task to complete before he took on the enemy's key planet; and now, while he was waiting for the info on Kalonia, would be the perfect time to do it. So, he sent out a thought to his mom.
"Hi, First Lady of the Universe! 'Tis thy first-born who wouldst fain converse with thee. Art pressly engaged in matters of moment or import?"
"Hi, First Lady of the Universe! It’s your first-born who would love to talk with you. Are you busy with anything important?"
"Art not, Kit." Clarrissa's characteristic chuckle was as infectious, as full of the joy of life, as ever. "Not that it would make any difference—but methinks I detect an undertone of seriosity beneath thy persiflage. Spill it."
"Don't joke around, Kit." Clarrissa's usual laugh was as contagious and full of life as always. "Not that it would change anything—but I think I sense a serious tone beneath your teasing. Just tell me."
"Let's make it a rendezvous, instead," he suggested. "We're fairly close, I think—closer than we've been for a long time. Where are you, exactly?"
"How about we make it a meetup instead?" he suggested. "I think we're pretty close—closer than we’ve been in a while. Where are you exactly?"
"Oh! Can we? Wonderful!" She marked her location and velocity in his mind. She made no effort to conceal her joy at the idea of a personal meeting. She never had tried and she never would try to make him put first matters other than first. She had not expected to see him again, physically, until this war was over. But if she could—!
"Oh! Can we? That's amazing!" She noted her position and speed in his mind. She couldn't hide her excitement at the thought of meeting in person. She had never tried, and she never would try, to make him prioritize anything other than what was most important. She didn't expect to see him in person again until this war was over. But if she could—!
"QX. Hold your course and speed; I'll be seeing you in eighty-three minutes. In the meantime, it'll be just as well if we don't communicate, even by Lens."
"QX. Stay on your current course and speed; I’ll see you in eighty-three minutes. In the meantime, it’s probably best if we don’t communicate, even by Lens."
"Why, son?"
"Why, dude?"
"Nothing definite—just a hunch, is all. 'Bye, Gorgeous!"
"Nothing for sure—just a feeling, that's all. 'Bye, Gorgeous!"
The two speedsters approached each other—inerted—matched intrinsics—went free—flashed into contact—sped away together upon Clarrissa's original course.
The two speedsters moved toward each other—still—aligned in their energy—broke free—shot into contact—zoomed away together on Clarrissa's original path.
"Hi, Mums!" Kit spoke into a visiphone. "I should, of course, come to you, but it might be better if you come in here—I've got some special rigs set up here that I don't want to leave. QX?" He snapped on one of the special rigs as he spoke—a device which he himself had built and installed; the generator of a screen which would detect upon every possible band and channel of thought or of intrusion.
"Hey, Moms!" Kit said into a video phone. "I should definitely come to you, but it might be better if you come over here—I’ve got some special setups that I don’t want to leave behind. QX?" He activated one of the special devices as he spoke—a gadget he had built and installed himself; it was a screen generator that would pick up on every possible thought band and channel of intrusion.
"Why, of course!" She came, and was swept off her feet in the exuberance of her tall son's embrace; a greeting which she returned with a fervor at least the equal of his own.
"Of course!" She came, and was swept off her feet in the excitement of her tall son's embrace; a greeting she returned with a passion that was at least equal to his.
"It's nice, Mother, seeing you again." Words, or thoughts even, were so inadequate! Kit's voice was a trifle rough: his eyes were not completely dry.
"It's great to see you again, Mom." Words, or even thoughts, felt so insufficient! Kit's voice was a bit raspy; his eyes were still a little wet.
"Uh-huh. It is nice," she agreed, snuggling her spectacular head even more firmly into the curve of his shoulder. "Mental contact is better than nothing, of course, but this is perfect!"
"Yeah, it is nice," she said, snuggling her amazing head even more into the curve of his shoulder. "Mental contact is better than nothing, but this is perfect!"
"Just as much a menace to navigation as ever, aren't you?" He held her at arm's length and shook his head in mock disapproval. "Do you think it's quite right for one woman to have so much of everything when all the others have so little of anything?"
"You're still just as much a problem for navigation, aren't you?" He held her at arm's length and shook his head in fake disapproval. "Do you really think it's fair for one woman to have so much of everything while all the others have so little of anything?"
"Honestly, I don't." She and Kit had always been exceptionally close; now her love for and her pride in this splendid creature, her son and her first-born, simply would not be denied. "You're joking, I know, but that strikes too deep for comfort. I wake up in the night to wonder why, of all the women in existence, I should be so lucky, especially in my children. QX, skip it." Kit was shying away—she should have known better than to try in words even to skirt the profound depths of sentiment which both she and he knew so well were there.
"Honestly, I don't." She and Kit had always been incredibly close; now her love for and pride in this amazing creature, her son and her firstborn, were undeniable. "You're just joking, I know, but that really hits too hard for comfort. I wake up at night wondering why, out of all the women in the world, I should be so lucky, especially with my kids. QX, forget it." Kit was pulling away—she should have realized that trying to put into words the deep feelings they both knew were there was a mistake.
"Get back onto the beam, Gorgeous, you know what I meant. Look at yourself in a mirror some day—or do you, perchance?"
"Get back on track, Gorgeous, you know what I mean. Look at yourself in the mirror someday—or do you, by any chance?"
"Once in a while—maybe twice." She giggled unaffectedly. "You don't think that all this charm and glamour comes without effort, do you? But maybe you'd better get back on the beam yourself—I know that you didn't come all these parsecs out of your way to say pretty things to your mother—even though I admit that they've built up my ego no end."
"Once in a while—maybe twice." She laughed lightly. "You don't really think all this charm and glamour comes without effort, do you? But maybe you should get back on track yourself—I know you didn’t travel all these parsecs just to say nice things to your mom—even though I have to admit they've really boosted my confidence."
"On target, dead center." Kit had been grinning, but he sobered quickly. "I wanted to talk to you about Lyrane and the job you're figuring on doing out there."
"On target, dead center." Kit had been smiling, but he quickly became serious. "I wanted to discuss Lyrane and the job you're planning to do out there."
"Why?" she demanded. "Do you know anything about it?"
"Why?" she asked. "Do you know anything about it?"
"Unfortunately, I don't." Kit's black frown of concentration reminded her forcibly of his father's characteristic scowl. "Guesses—suspicions—theories—not even good hunches. But I thought ... I wondered—" He paused, embarrassed as a schoolboy, then went on with a rush: "Would you mind it too much if I went into something pretty personal?"
"Unfortunately, I don't." Kit's intense frown made her think of his father's trademark scowl. "Guesses—suspicions—theories—not even good instincts. But I thought ... I wondered—" He paused, embarrassed like a schoolboy, then quickly continued: "Would you mind if I talked about something pretty personal?"
"You know I wouldn't, son." In contrast to Kit's usual clarity and precision of thought, the question was highly ambiguous, but Clarrissa covered both angles. "I can conceive of no subject, event, action, or thing, in either my life or yours, too intimate or too personal to discuss with you in full. Can you?"
"You know I wouldn't, son." Compared to Kit's typical clarity and precise thinking, the question was quite vague, but Clarrissa addressed both sides. "I can't think of any topic, event, action, or thing, in my life or yours, that's too private or personal to talk about openly with you. Can you?"
"No, I can't—but this is different. As a woman, you're tops—the finest and best that ever lived." This statement, made with all the matter-of-factness of stating that a triangle had three corners, thrilled Clarrissa through and through. "As a Gray Lensman you're over the rest of them like a cirrus cloud. But you should rate full Second Stage, and ... well, you may run up against something too hot to handle, some day, and I ... that is, you—"
"No, I can't—but this is different. As a woman, you're the best—the finest that ever lived." This statement, delivered with the same certainty as saying a triangle has three sides, excited Clarrissa to her core. "As a Gray Lensman, you're above the rest like a high cirrus cloud. But you deserve to be at full Second Stage, and ... well, one day, you might face something too intense to deal with, and I ... that is, you—"
"You mean that I don't measure up?" she asked, quietly. "I know very well that I don't, and admitting an evident fact should not hurt my feelings a bit. Don't interrupt, please," as Kit began to protest. "In fact, it is sheerest effrontery—it has always bothered me terribly, Kit—to be classed as a Lensman at all, considering what splendid men they all are and what each one of them had to go through to earn his Lens. You know as well as I do that I have never done a single thing to earn or to deserve it. It was handed to me on a silver platter. I'm not worthy of it, Kit, and all the real Lensmen know that I'm not. They must know it, Kit—they must feel that way!"
"You mean I don't measure up?" she asked softly. "I know I don't, and accepting a clear truth shouldn't hurt my feelings at all. Please don't interrupt," she said as Kit started to object. "Honestly, it's such a nerve—it has always upset me, Kit—to be called a Lensman at all, considering how amazing they all are and what each of them went through to earn their Lens. You know just as well as I do that I've never done anything to earn or deserve it. It was given to me without any effort. I'm not worthy of it, Kit, and all the real Lensmen know that I'm not. They *have* to know it, Kit—they *have* to feel that way!"
"Did you ever express yourself in exactly that way before, to anybody? You didn't, I know." Kit stopped sweating; this was going to be easier than he had feared.
"Have you ever expressed yourself like that to anyone before? You haven't, I know." Kit stopped sweating; this was going to be easier than he had feared.
"I couldn't, Kit, it was too deep; but as I said, I can talk anything over with you."
"I couldn't, Kit, it was too intense; but like I said, I can discuss anything with you."
"QX. We can settle that fast enough if you will answer just one question. Do you honestly believe that you would have been given the Lens if you were not absolutely worthy of it? Perfectly—in every minute particular?"
"QX. We can sort that out pretty quickly if you just answer one question. Do you really think you would have received the Lens if you weren't completely worthy of it? Totally—in every tiny detail?"
"Why, I never thought of it that way ... probably not ... no, certainly not." Clarrissa's somber mien lightened markedly. "But I still don't see how or why—"
"Wow, I never thought of it like that... probably not... no, definitely not." Clarrissa's serious expression brightened significantly. "But I still don't understand how or why—"
"Clear enough," Kit interrupted. "You were born with what the rest of them had to work so hard for—with stuff that no other woman, anywhere, ever had."
"Clear enough," Kit interrupted. "You were born with what the others had to struggle so hard to get—things that no other woman, anywhere, has ever had."
"Except the girls, of course," Clarrissa corrected, half-absently.
"Except for the girls, of course," Clarrissa corrected, half-heartedly.
"Except the kids," he concurred. It could do no harm to agree with his mother's statement of a self-evident fact.
"Except for the kids," he agreed. It wouldn't hurt to go along with his mother's observation of an obvious truth.
He crossed the room and adjusted a couple of dials. His vessel's screens would not now react to the thoughts of Mentor of Arisia, but would still announce the presence of any possible other. "You can take it from me, as one who knows, that the other Lensmen know that you've got plenty of jets. They all know also that the Arisians never did and never will make a Lens for anybody who hasn't got what it takes. And so, very neatly, we have stripped ship for the action I came over here to see you about. It isn't a case of you not measuring up, because you do, in every respect. It's simply that you're short a few jets that you ought by rights to have. You really are a Second-Stage Lensman—you know that, Mums—but you never went to Arisia for your real L2 work. I hate to see you blast off without full equipment into what may prove to be a big-time job; especially when you're so eminently able to take it. Mentor could give you the works in a couple of hours. Why don't you flit for Arisia right now, or let me take you there?"
He walked across the room and adjusted a few dials. His ship's screens wouldn’t react to the thoughts of Mentor of Arisia, but they would still pick up the presence of anyone else. "You can trust me, as someone who knows, the other Lensmen are aware that you have plenty of jets. They also know that the Arisians never made and never will make a Lens for anyone who doesn’t have what it takes. So, we’ve neatly stripped the ship for the mission I came here to discuss with you. It’s not that you don’t measure up because you do, in every way. It’s simply that you’re missing a few jets that you should rightfully have. You really are a Second-Stage Lensman—you know that, Mums—but you never went to Arisia for your real L2 training. I hate to see you take off without full gear into what could turn out to be a major job; especially when you’re fully capable of handling it. Mentor could set you up in a couple of hours. Why don’t you head for Arisia right now, or let me take you there?"
"No—NO!" Clarrissa backed away, shaking her head emphatically. "Never! I couldn't, Kit, ever—not possibly!"
"No—NO!" Clarrissa stepped back, shaking her head vigorously. "Never! I couldn't, Kit, ever—not possibly!"
"Why not?" Kit was amazed. "Why, Mother, you're actually shaking!"
"Why not?" Kit was shocked. "Mom, you're actually shaking!"
"I know I am—I can't help it. That's why. He's the only thing in the entire Universe that I'm really afraid of. I can talk about him without quite getting goosebumps all over me, but the mere thought of actually being with him simply scares me into shivering, quivering fits."
"I know I am—I can't help it. That's why. He's the only thing in the entire Universe that I'm really afraid of. I can talk about him without getting goosebumps all over me, but just the thought of actually being with him totally scares me into shivering, quivering fits."
"I see ... it might very well work that way, at that. Does Dad know it?"
"I see ... that could really work like that. Does Dad know?"
"Yes ... or, that is, he knows that I'm afraid of Mentor, but he doesn't know it the way you do ... it simply doesn't register in true color. Kim can't even conceive of me being either a coward or a cry-baby. And I don't want him to, either, Kit, so please don't tell him, ever."
"Yeah ... or, I mean, he knows I'm scared of Mentor, but he doesn't see it the way you do ... it just doesn't click for him. Kim can't even imagine me being a coward or a crybaby. And I don’t want him to think that, either, Kit, so please don’t ever tell him."
"I won't—he'd fry me to a cinder in my own grease if I did. Frankly, I can't see any part of your self-portrait, either. As a matter of cold fact, you are so obviously neither a coward nor a cry-baby that no refutation of that canard is either necessary or desirable. What you've really got, Mums, is a fixation, and if it can't be removed—"
"I won't—he'd burn me to a crisp in my own fat if I did. Honestly, I can't see any part of your self-portrait, either. The cold hard truth is, you are so clearly neither a coward nor a cry-baby that there's no need to deny that rumor. What you've really got, Mums, is an obsession, and if it can't be removed—"
"It can't," she declared flatly. "I've tried that, now and then, ever since before you were born. Whatever it is, it's a permanent installation and it's really deep. I have known all along that Kim didn't give me the whole business—he couldn't—and I've tried again and again to make myself go to Arisia, or at least to call Mentor about it, but I can't do it, Kit—I simply can't!"
"It can't," she said simply. "I've tried that from time to time, even before you were born. Whatever it is, it’s a permanent thing and it runs really deep. I’ve always known that Kim didn’t tell me everything—he couldn’t—and I’ve tried over and over to make myself go to Arisia, or at least reach out to Mentor about it, but I just can’t do it, Kit—I just can’t!"
"I understand." Kit nodded. He did understand, now. What she felt was not, in essence and at bottom, fear at all. It was worse than fear, and deeper. It was true revulsion; the basic, fundamental, subconscious, sex-based reaction of an intensely vital human female against a mental monstrosity who had not had a sexual thought for countless thousands of her years. She could neither analyze nor understand her feeling; but it was as immutable, as ineradicable, and as old as the surging tide of life itself.
"I get it," Kit nodded. He really did get it now. What she felt wasn't just fear, not at its core. It was worse and deeper than fear. It was genuine revulsion; the basic, fundamental, subconscious reaction of a deeply vital woman against a mental monstrosity that hadn't had a sexual thought for countless thousands of her years. She couldn't analyze or truly understand her feelings; but they were as unchangeable, as permanent, and as ancient as the relentless surge of life itself.
"But there's another way, just as good—probably better, as far as you're concerned. You aren't afraid of me, are you?"
"But there's another way, just as good—maybe even better, from your perspective. You’re not scared of me, right?"
"What a question! Of course I'm not—Why, do you mean you—" Her expressive eyes widened. "You children—especially you—are far beyond us ... as, of course, you should be ... but can you, Kit? Really?"
"What a question! Of course I’m not—Why, do you mean you—" Her expressive eyes widened. "You kids—especially you—are way ahead of us ... as you totally should be ... but can you, Kit? Really?"
Kit keyed a part of his mind to an ultra-high level. "I know the techniques, Mentor, but the first question is, should I do it?"
Kit sharpened a part of his mind to an extremely high level. "I know the techniques, Mentor, but the first question is, should I go for it?"
"You should. The time has come when it is necessary."
"You should. It's time for that."
"Second—I've never done anything like this before, and she's my own mother. If I make one slip, I'll never forgive myself. Will you stand by and see that I don't slip?"
"Second—I've never done anything like this before, and she's my own mom. If I mess up even a little, I'll never be able to forgive myself. Will you please make sure I don't mess up?"
"I will stand by."
"I'm here for you."
"I really can, Mums." Kit answered her question with no perceptible pause. "That is, if you are willing to put everything you've got into it. Just letting me into your mind isn't enough. You'll have to sweat blood—you'll think that you've been run through a hammer mill and spread out on a Delgonian torture screen to dry."
"I totally can, Mom." Kit replied without missing a beat. "But that is, if you're ready to give it your all. Just letting me into your head isn't enough. You’re going to have to work really hard—you’ll feel like you’ve been run through a hammer mill and then laid out on a Delgonian torture screen to dry."
"No need for worry on that score, my son." All the passionate intensity of Clarrissa's being was in her vibrant voice. "If you just knew how utterly I have been longing for it—I'll work; and whatever you give me I can take."
"No need to worry about that, my son." All the passionate intensity of Clarrissa's being was in her vibrant voice. "If only you knew how much I've been longing for it—I’ll work; and whatever you give me, I can handle."
"I'm sure of that. And, not to work under false pretenses, I'd better tell you how I know. Mentor showed me what to do and told me to do it."
"I'm sure of that. And, to be honest, I should tell you how I know. Mentor showed me what to do and told me to do it."
"Mentor!"
"Guide!"
"Mentor," Kit agreed. "He knew that it was a psychological impossibility for you to work with him, and that you could and would work with me. So he appointed me a committee of one." Clarrissa was reacting to this news as it was inevitable that she should react; and to give her time to steady down he went on:
"Mentor," Kit agreed. "He understood it was mentally impossible for you to work with him, and that you could and would work with me. So he assigned me as a committee of one." Clarrissa was responding to this news in the way that was expected; and to give her time to calm down, he continued:
"Mentor also knew, and so do you and I, that even though you are afraid of him, you know what he is and what he means to Civilization. It was necessary for me to tell you this so that you would know, without any tinge of doubt, that I am not a half-baked kid setting out to do a man's job of work."
"Mentor also knew, and so do you and I, that even though you're afraid of him, you understand who he is and what he represents for Civilization. I needed to tell you this so that you could be absolutely clear that I'm not just some inexperienced kid trying to take on a man's responsibilities."
"Jet back, Kit! I may have thought a lot of different things about you at times, but 'half-baked' was never one of them. That is your own thinking, not mine."
"Back off, Kit! I might have had a lot of different thoughts about you at times, but 'half-baked' was never one of them. That's all on you, not me."
"I wouldn't wonder." Kit grinned wryly. "My ego could stand some stiffening right now. This isn't going to be funny. You're too fine a woman, and I think too much of you, to enjoy the prospect of mauling you around so unmercifully."
"I wouldn't be surprised." Kit smirked. "My ego could use a boost right now. This isn't going to be a good time. You're an amazing woman, and I think too highly of you to enjoy the idea of treating you so harshly."
"Why, Kit!" Her mood was changing fast. Her old-time, impish smile came back in force. "You aren't weakening, surely? Shall I hold your hand?"
"Why, Kit!" Her mood shifted quickly. Her playful, mischievous smile returned with full force. "You’re not backing down, are you? Should I hold your hand?"
"Uh-huh—cold feet," he admitted. "It might be a smart idea, at that, holding hands. Physical linkage. Well, I'm as ready as I ever will be, I guess—whenever you are, say so. And you'd better sit down before you fall down."
"Uh-huh—cold feet," he admitted. "It might actually be a good idea to hold hands. Physical connection. Well, I'm as ready as I'll ever be, I guess—just let me know when you are. And you should probably sit down before you fall over."
"QX, Kit—come in."
"QX, Kit—join us."
Kit came; and at the first terrific surge of his mind within hers the Red Lensman caught her breath, stiffened in every muscle, and all but screamed in agony. Kit's fingers needed their strength as her hands clutched his and closed in a veritable spasm. She had thought that she knew what to expect; but the reality was different—much different. She had suffered before. On Lyrane II, although she had never told anyone of it, she had been burned and wounded and beaten. She had borne five children. This was as though every poignant experience of her past had been rolled into one, raised to the nth power, and stabbed deep into the tenderest, most sensitive centers of her entire being.
Kit arrived; and with the first overwhelming surge of his mind connecting with hers, the Red Lensman gasped, tensed every muscle, and nearly screamed in pain. Kit's fingers gripped tightly as her hands clutched his in a genuine spasm. She thought she knew what to expect, but the reality was completely different—far more intense. She had endured suffering before. On Lyrane II, although she had never shared it with anyone, she had been burned, injured, and beaten. She had given birth to five children. This felt as if every painful experience from her past had been compressed into one, amplified to the nth degree, and driven deep into the most vulnerable, sensitive parts of her entire being.
And Kit, boring in and in and in, knew exactly what to do; and now that he had started, he proceeded unflinchingly and with exact precision to do what had to be done. He opened up her mind as she had never dreamed it possible for a mind to open. He separated the tiny, jammed compartments, each completely from every other. He showed her how to make room for this tremendous expansion and watched her do it, against the shrieking protests of every cell and fiber of her body and of her brain. He drilled new channels everywhere, establishing an inconceivably complex system of communication lines of infinite conductivity. He knew just what he was doing to her, since the same thing had been done to him so recently, but he kept on relentlessly until the job was done. Completely done.
And Kit, boring in and in and in, knew exactly what to do; and now that he had started, he proceeded confidently and with precise accuracy to do what needed to be done. He opened her mind in a way she never thought was possible. He separated the tiny, jammed compartments, completely isolating each one. He showed her how to make space for this incredible expansion and watched her do it, despite the intense protests of every cell and fiber of her body and brain. He carved new pathways everywhere, creating an unimaginably complex network of communication lines with infinite connectivity. He knew exactly what he was doing to her, since the same thing had happened to him so recently, but he continued relentlessly until the task was finished. Completely finished.
Then, working together, they sorted and labeled and classified and catalogued. They checked and double checked. Finally she knew, and Kit knew that she knew, every hitherto unplumbed recess of her mind and every individual cell of her brain. Every iota of every quality and characteristic, every scrap of knowledge she had ever acquired or ever would acquire, would be at her command instantaneously and effortlessly. Then, and only then, did Kit withdraw his mind from hers.
Then, working together, they sorted, labeled, classified, and cataloged. They checked and double-checked. Finally, she understood, and Kit realized that she understood every previously unexplored corner of her mind and every single cell in her brain. Every bit of every quality and characteristic, every piece of knowledge she had ever gained or would ever gain, would be at her command instantly and effortlessly. Only then did Kit pull his mind away from hers.
"Did you say that I was short just a few jets, Kit?" She got up groggily and mopped her face; upon which her few freckles stood out surprisingly dark upon a background of white. "I'm a wreck ... I'd better go and—"
"Did you just say I was missing a few jets, Kit?" She got up sleepily and wiped her face; her few freckles looked unexpectedly dark against her pale skin. "I'm a mess ... I should go and—"
"As you were for just a sec—I'll break out a bottle of fayalin. This rates a celebration of sorts, don't you think?"
"As you were for just a sec—I'll grab a bottle of fayalin. This calls for a bit of a celebration, don't you think?"
"Very much so." As she sipped the pungently aromatic red liquid her color began to come back. "No wonder I felt as though I were missing something all these years. Thanks, Kit. I really appreciate it. You're a—"
"Absolutely." As she sipped the strongly aromatic red liquid, her color started to return. "No wonder I felt like I was missing something all these years. Thanks, Kit. I really appreciate it. You're a—"
"Seal it, Mums." He picked her up and squeezed her, hard. He scarcely noticed her sweat-streaked face and disheveled hair, but she did.
"Seal it, Mom." He picked her up and squeezed her tightly. He barely noticed her sweaty face and messy hair, but she did.
"Good Heavens, Kit, I'm a perfect hag!" she exclaimed. "I've got to go and put on a new face!"
"Good heavens, Kit, I'm a total hag!" she exclaimed. "I've got to go put on some makeup!"
"QX. I don't feel quite so fresh, myself. What I need, though, is a good, thick steak. Join me?"
"QX. I don't feel all that great, honestly. What I really need is a nice, hearty steak. Want to join me?"
"Uh-uh. How can you even think of eating, at a time like this?"
"Uh-uh. How can you even think about eating at a time like this?"
"Same way you can think of war paint and feathers, I suppose. Different people, different reactions. QX, I'll be in there and see you in fifteen or twenty minutes. Flit!"
"Just like you can think of war paint and feathers, I guess. Different people, different reactions. QX, I'll be in there and see you in about fifteen or twenty minutes. Flit!"
She left, and Kit heaved an almost explosive sigh of relief. Mighty good thing she hadn't asked too many questions—if she had become really curious, he would have had a horrible time keeping her away from the fact that that kind of work never had been done and never would be done outside of solid, multiply, Arisian screen. He ate, cleaned up, ran a comb through his hair, and, when his mother was ready, crossed over into her speedster.
She left, and Kit let out a huge sigh of relief. Thank goodness she didn’t ask too many questions—if she had gotten really curious, it would have been a nightmare to keep her from knowing that kind of work had never been done and never would be done outside of a solid, multiple Arisian screen. He ate, tidied up, ran a comb through his hair, and, when his mom was ready, got into her speedster.
"Whee ... whee-yu!" Kit whistled descriptively. "What a seven-sector call-out! Just who do you think you're going to knock out of the ether on Lyrane II?"
"Whee ... whee-yu!" Kit whistled playfully. "What a seven-sector call-out! Who do you think you're going to take down from the air on Lyrane II?"
"Nobody at all." Clarrissa laughed. "This is all for you, son—and maybe a little bit for me, too."
"Nobody at all." Clarrissa laughed. "This is all for you, son—and maybe a little bit for me, too."
"I'm stunned. You're a blinding flash and a deafening report. But I've got to do a flit, Gorgeous. So clear—"
"I'm shocked. You're a bright flash and a loud noise. But I have to make a quick exit, Gorgeous. So clear—"
"Wait a minute—you can't go yet! I've got questions to ask you about these new networks and things. How do I handle them?"
"Hold on—you can't leave yet! I have questions to ask you about these new networks and stuff. How do I deal with them?"
"Sorry—you've got to develop your own techniques. You know that already."
"Sorry—you need to come up with your own techniques. You already know that."
"In a way. I thought maybe, though, I could wheedle you into helping me a little. I should have known better—but tell me, all Lensmen don't have minds like this, do they?"
"In a way. I thought maybe I could persuade you to help me a bit. I should have known better—but tell me, not all Lensmen think like this, do they?"
"I'll say they don't. They're all like yours was before, but not as good. Except the other L2's, of course—Dad, Worsel, Tregonsee, and Nadreck. Theirs are more or less like yours is now; but you've got a lot of stuff that they haven't."
"I'll say they don't. They're all like yours was before, but not as good. Except for the other L2's, of course—Dad, Worsel, Tregonsee, and Nadreck. Theirs are pretty much like yours is now; but you've got a lot of things that they don't."
"Huh?" she demanded. "Such as?"
"Huh?" she asked. "Like what?"
"'Way down—there." He showed her. "You worked all of that area yourself. I only showed you how, without getting in too close."
"'Way down—there." He pointed it out to her. "You handled all of that area by yourself. I just showed you how, without getting too close."
"Why? Oh, I see—you would. Life-force. I would have lots of that, of course." She did not blush, but Kit did.
"Why? Oh, got it—you would. Life-force. I would totally have a lot of that, of course." She didn't blush, but Kit did.
"Life-force" was a pitifully inadequate term indeed for that which Civilization's only Lensman-mother had in such measure, but they both knew what it was. Kit ducked.
"Life-force" was a sadly inadequate term for what Civilization's only Lensman-mother had in abundance, but they both understood what it was. Kit ducked.
"You can always tell all about a Lensman by looking at his Lens; it's an absolute diagram of his whole mind. You've studied Dad's, of course."
"You can always tell everything about a Lensman by looking at his Lens; it's a complete reflection of his entire mind. You've looked at Dad's, right?"
"Yes. Three times as big as the ordinary ones—or mine—and much finer and brighter. But mine isn't, Kit?"
"Yeah. Three times bigger than the regular ones—or mine—and way nicer and brighter. But mine isn't, right, Kit?"
"It wasn't, you mean. Put it on and look at it now."
"It wasn't, right? Put it on and check it out now."
She opened a drawer, and even before she could snap the bracelet around her wrist, her eyes and mouth became three round O's of astonishment. She had never seen that Lens before, or anything like it. It was three times as big as hers, seven times as fine and as intricate, and ten times as bright.
She opened a drawer, and even before she could fasten the bracelet around her wrist, her eyes and mouth widened in shock. She had never seen that Lens before, or anything like it. It was three times bigger than hers, seven times more detailed and intricate, and ten times brighter.
"Why, this isn't mine!" she gasped. "But this is where I put—"
"Why, this isn't mine!" she exclaimed. "But this is where I put—"
"Sneeze, Gorgeous," Kit advised. "Cobwebs. It lit up, didn't it? You aren't thinking a lick. Your mind changed, so your Lens had to. See?"
"Sneeze, beautiful," Kit suggested. "Cobwebs. It lit up, right? You’re not thinking straight. Your mind changed, so your Lens had to. See?"
"I see." Clarrissa looked deep into her son's eyes, her face again paling under her make-up. "Now I'm going to get personal, Kit. Will you let me look at your Lens? You never seem to wear it—I haven't seen it since you graduated."
"I see." Clarrissa looked deeply into her son's eyes, her face paling again under her makeup. "Now I'm going to get personal, Kit. Will you let me see your Lens? You never seem to wear it—I haven’t seen it since you graduated."
"Sure. Why not?" He reached into a pocket. "I take after you, that way; neither of us gets any kick out of throwing his weight around."
"Sure. Why not?" He reached into his pocket. "I’ve got that from you; neither of us enjoys flexing our power."
His Lens flamed upon his wrist. It was larger in diameter than Clarrissa's, and thicker. Its texture was finer; its colors were brighter, harsher, and seemed, somehow, more solid. Both studied both Lenses for a moment, then Kit seized his mother's hand, brought their wrists together, and stared.
His Lens glowed on his wrist. It was larger in diameter than Clarrissa's and thicker. Its texture was smoother; its colors were more vibrant, intense, and somehow felt more solid. Both of them looked at each other's Lenses for a moment, then Kit grabbed his mother's hand, brought their wrists together, and stared.
"That's it," he breathed. "That's it—That's IT, just as sure as Klono has got teeth and claws."
"That's it," he said, breathing heavily. "That's it—That's IT, just like Klono has teeth and claws."
"What's it? What do you see?" she demanded.
"What's that? What do you see?" she asked.
"I see how and why I got the way I am—and if the kids had Lenses theirs would be the same. Remember Dad's? Look at your dominants—notice that every one of them is duplicated in mine. Blank them out of mine, and see what you've got left—pure Kimball Kinnison, with just enough extras thrown in to make me an individual instead of a carbon copy. Hm-m-m credits to millos this is what comes of having Lensmen on both sides of the family. No wonder we're freaks! Don't know whether I'm in favor of it or not—I don't think that they should produce any more Lady Lensmen, do you? Maybe that's why they never did."
"I get how and why I became who I am—and if the kids had Lenses, theirs would be the same. Remember Dad's? Look at your dominant traits—notice that every one of them is also in mine. Erase them from mine, and see what you’ve got left—pure Kimball Kinnison, with just enough extras added in to make me unique instead of a clone. Hm-m-m, credits to millos, this is what happens when you have Lensmen on both sides of the family. No wonder we’re odd! I’m not sure if I support it or not—I don’t think they should produce any more Lady Lensmen, do you? Maybe that’s why they never did."
"Don't try to be funny," she reproved; but her dimples were again in evidence. "If it would result in more people like you and your sisters, I would be very much in favor of it; but, some way or other, I doubt it. I know that you're squirming to go, so I won't hold you any longer. What you just found out about Lenses is fascinating. For the rest of it ... well ... thanks, son, and clear ether."
"Don't try to be funny," she said, but her dimples were showing again. "If it would lead to more people like you and your sisters, I'd totally support it; but somehow, I doubt it. I can tell you're eager to leave, so I won't keep you any longer. What you just learned about Lenses is really interesting. As for the rest ... well ... thanks, kid, and take care."
"Clear ether, Mother. This is the worst part of being together, leaving so quick. I'll see you again, though, soon and often. If you get stuck, yell, and one of the kids or I—or all of us—will be with you in a split second."
"Clear skies, Mom. This is the hardest part of being together, saying goodbye so soon. I’ll see you again, though, really soon and often. If you need anything, just shout, and one of the kids or I—maybe all of us—will be there in no time."
He gave her a quick, hard hug; kissed her enthusiastically, and left. He did not tell her, and she never did find out, that his "discovery" of one of the secrets of the Lens was made to keep her from asking questions which he could not answer.
He gave her a quick, tight hug; kissed her passionately, and left. He didn’t tell her, and she never found out, that his "discovery" of one of the secrets of the Lens was made to stop her from asking questions he couldn’t answer.
The Red Lensman was afraid that she would not have time to put her new mind in order before reaching Lyrane II; but, being naturally a good housekeeper, she did. More, so rapidly and easily did her mind now work, she had time to review and to analyze every phase of her previous activities upon that planet and to lay out in broad her first lines of action. She wouldn't put on the screws at first, she decided. She would let them think that she didn't have any more jets than before. Helen was nice, but a good many of the others, especially that airport manager, were simply quadruply-distilled vixens. She'd take it easy at first, but she'd be very sure that she didn't get into any such jams as last time.
The Red Lensman was worried she wouldn't have time to sort out her new thoughts before reaching Lyrane II, but being a naturally good organizer, she managed. In fact, her mind was working so quickly and easily that she had time to review and analyze every part of her previous actions on that planet and outline her initial plans. She decided not to push too hard at the beginning. She would let them believe she didn’t have any more power than before. Helen was nice, but many others, especially that airport manager, were just pure trouble. She would take it slow at first, but she was determined not to get into any messes like last time.
She coasted down through Lyrane's stratosphere and poised high above the city she remembered so well.
She glided down through Lyrane's atmosphere and hovered high above the city she remembered so clearly.
"Helen of Lyrane!" she sent out a sharp, clear thought. "That is not your name, I know, but we did not learn any other—"
"Helen of Lyrane!" she projected a clear, sharp thought. "That's not your real name, I know, but we never learned any other—"
She broke off, every nerve taut. Was that, or was it not, Helen's thought; cut off, wiped out by a guardian block before it could take shape?
She stopped short, every nerve on edge. Was that, or was it not, Helen's thought? It was cut off, erased by a protective barrier before it could even form.
"Who are you, stranger, and what do you want?" the thought came, almost instantly, from a person seated at the desk of the Chief Executive of the planet.
"Who are you, stranger, and what do you want?" the thought came, almost instantly, from someone sitting at the desk of the planet's Chief Executive.
Clarrissa glanced at the sender and thought that she recognized the face. Her new channels functioned instantaneously; she remembered every detail.
Clarrissa looked at the sender and thought she recognized the face. Her new channels worked instantly; she recalled every detail.
"Lensman Clarrissa, formerly of Sol III, Unattached. I remember you, Ladora, although you were only a child when I was here. Do you remember me?"
"Lensman Clarrissa, formerly from Earth, Unattached. I remember you, Ladora, even though you were just a kid when I was here. Do you remember me?"
"Yes. I repeat, what do you want?" The memory did not decrease Ladora's hostility.
"Yeah. I’ll say it again, what do you want?" The memory didn’t lessen Ladora's anger.
"I would like to speak to the former Elder Person, if I may."
"I would like to speak to the former Elder, if that's okay."
"You may not. It is no longer with us. Leave at once, or we will shoot you down."
"You can't. It's gone. Leave now, or we'll take you out."
"Think again, Ladora." Clarrissa held her tone even and calm. "Surely your memory is not so short that you have forgotten the Dauntless and its capabilities."
"Think again, Ladora." Clarrissa kept her tone steady and calm. "Surely your memory isn't that short that you've forgotten the Dauntless and what it can do."
"I remember. You may take up with me whatever it is that you wish to discuss with my predecessor Elder Person."
"I remember. You can talk to me about anything you want that you were going to discuss with my predecessor Elder Person."
"You are familiar with the Boskonian Invasion of years ago. It is suspected that they are planning new and Galaxy-wide outrages, and that this planet is in some way involved. I have come here to investigate the situation."
"You know about the Boskonian Invasion from years ago. It’s suspected that they’re planning new and widespread attacks across the galaxy, and that this planet is somehow involved. I’ve come here to check out the situation."
"We will conduct our own investigations," Ladora declared, curtly. "We insist that you and all other foreigners stay away from this planet."
"We're going to do our own investigations," Ladora said sharply. "We insist that you and all other foreigners keep your distance from this planet."
"You investigate a Galactic condition?" In spite of herself, Clarrissa almost let the connotations of that question become perceptible. "If you give me permission, I will land alone. If you do not, I shall call the Dauntless and we will land in force. Take your choice."
"You investigating a Galactic situation?" Despite herself, Clarrissa almost allowed the implications of that question to show. "If you let me, I'll land alone. If not, I'll call the Dauntless and we’ll land with full force. The choice is yours."
"Land alone, then, if you must land," Ladora yielded, seethingly. "Land at our City Airport."
"Fine, if you want land," Ladora said, fuming. "Land at our City Airport."
"Under those guns? No, thanks; I am neither invulnerable nor immortal. I land where I please."
"Under those guns? No way; I'm neither invincible nor immortal. I go wherever I want."
She landed. During her previous visit she had had a hard enough time getting any help from these pigheaded matriarchs, but this time she encountered a nonco-operation so utterly fanatical that it put her completely at a loss. None of them tried to harm her in any way; but not one of them would have anything to do with her. Every thought, even the friendliest, was stopped by a full-coverage block; no acknowledgment, even, was ever made.
She landed. During her last visit, she had a tough time getting any help from these stubborn matriarchs, but this time she faced a level of non-cooperation that was so extreme it left her completely baffled. None of them tried to hurt her in any way; but not a single one would engage with her. Every thought, even the kindest, was met with a total block; there was never even a hint of acknowledgment.
"I can crack those blocks easily enough, if I want to," she declared, one bad evening, to her mirror, "And if they keep this up very much longer, by Klono's emerald-filled gizzard, I will!"
"I can break those blocks without any trouble if I want to," she stated one rough evening to her mirror, "And if they don’t stop this soon, by Klono's emerald-filled gizzard, I will!"
XIV.
XIV.
When Kimball Kinnison received his son's call he was in Ultra Prime, the Patrol's stupendous Klovian base, about to enter his ship. He stopped for a moment; practically in mid-stride. While nothing was to be read in his expression or in his eyes, the lieutenant to whom he had been talking had been an interested, if completely uninformed, witness to many such Lensed conferences, and knew that they were usually important. He was, therefore, not surprised when the Lensman turned around and headed for an exit.
When Kimball Kinnison got his son's call, he was at Ultra Prime, the Patrol's impressive Klovian base, about to board his ship. He paused for a moment, almost in mid-stride. While his expression and eyes revealed nothing, the lieutenant he had been speaking to was a curious, yet completely clueless, observer of many such Lensed meetings and understood that they were typically significant. So, he wasn't surprised when the Lensman turned around and made his way to an exit.
"Put her back, please. I won't be going out for a while, after all," Kinnison explained, briefly. "Don't know exactly how long."
"Put her back, please. I won't be going out for a while, after all," Kinnison said simply. "I’m not sure exactly how long."
A fast flitter took him to the hundred-story pile of stainless steel and glass which was the Co-ordinator's office. He strode along a corridor, through an unmarked door.
A quick shuttle took him to the hundred-story building made of stainless steel and glass that housed the Coordinator's office. He walked down a corridor and entered through an unmarked door.
"Hi, Phyllis—the boss in?"
"Hi, Phyllis—is the boss in?"
"Good morning, Chief. Yes, sir ... no, I mean...." His startled secretary touched a button and a door opened; the door of his private office.
"Good morning, Chief. Yeah, sir ... wait, I mean...." His surprised secretary pressed a button and a door opened; the door to his private office.
"Hi, Kim—back so soon?" Vice Co-ordinator Maitland also showed surprise as he got up from the massive desk and shook hands cordially. "Good! Taking over?"
"Hi, Kim—back already?" Vice Coordinator Maitland said, also surprised as he stood up from the huge desk and shook hands warmly. "Great! Are you taking over?"
"Emphatically no. Hardly started yet. Just dropped in to use your plate, if you've got a free high-power wave. QX?"
"Definitely not. I barely just got here. I just stopped by to use your plate, if you have a free high-power wave. QX?"
"Certainly. If not, you can free one fast enough."
"Of course. If not, you can get one free pretty quickly."
"Communications." Kinnison touched a stud. "Will you please get me Thrale? Library One; Principal Librarian Nadine Ernley. Plate-to-plate."
"Communications." Kinnison pressed a button. "Can you connect me to Thrale? Library One; Principal Librarian Nadine Ernley. Direct link."
This request was surprising enough to the informed. Since the Co-ordinator practically never dealt personally with anyone except Lensmen, and usually Unattached Lensmen at that, it was a rare event indeed for him to use any ordinary channels of communication. And as the linkage was completed, subdued murmurs and sundry squeals gave evidence that intense excitement prevailed at the other end of the line.
This request caught the informed off guard. Since the Coordinator almost never interacted directly with anyone except Lensmen—and usually only Unattached Lensmen at that—it was quite unusual for him to go through regular channels of communication. As the connection was made, low murmurs and various squeals signaled that there was a lot of excitement on the other end of the line.
"Mrs. Ernley will be on in one moment, sir." The operator's business was done. Her crisp, clear-cut voice ceased, but the background noise increased markedly.
"Mrs. Ernley will be on in just a moment, sir." The operator's job was finished. Her sharp, clear voice stopped, but the background noise grew noticeably louder.
"Sh ... sh ... sh! It's the Gray Lensman, himself!" Everywhere upon Klovia, Tellus, and Thrale, and in many localities of many other planets, the words "Gray Lensman", without surname, had only one meaning.
"Sh ... sh ... sh! It's the Gray Lensman, himself!" Across Klovia, Tellus, and Thrale, as well as in numerous places on many other planets, the term "Gray Lensman," without a last name, held just one meaning.
"Not the Gray Lensman!"
"Not the Gray Lensman!"
"It can't be!"
"It can't be!"
"It is, really ... I know him ... I actually met him once!"
"It is, really ... I know him ... I actually met him once!"
"Let me look ... just a peek!"
"Let me take a look ... just a peek!"
"Sh ... sh! He'll hear you!"
"Shh! He'll hear you!"
"Switch on the vision. If we've got a moment, let's get acquainted," Kinnison suggested, and upon his plate there burst into view a bevy of excitedly embarrassed blondes, brunettes, and redheads. "Hi, Madge! Sorry that I don't know the rest of you, but I'll make it a point to get acquainted—before long, I think. Don't go away." The principal librarian was coming on the run. "You're all in on this. Hi, Nadine! Long time no see. Remember that bunch of squirrel food you rounded up for me?"
"Turn on the vision. If we have a minute, let's get to know each other," Kinnison suggested, and suddenly his screen lit up with a group of excitedly awkward blondes, brunettes, and redheads. "Hey, Madge! Sorry I don’t know the rest of you, but I’ll make sure to get to know you all soon. Don’t go anywhere." The main librarian was hurrying over. "You’re all part of this. Hey, Nadine! It’s been a while. Do you remember that stash of squirrel food you collected for me?"
"I remember, sir." What a question! As though Nadine Ernley, nee Hostetter, could ever forget her share in that famous meeting of the fifty-three greatest—and least stable—scientific minds of all Civilization. "I'm sorry that I was out in the stacks when you called."
"I remember, sir." What a question! As if Nadine Ernley, formerly Hostetter, could ever forget her role in that famous meeting of the fifty-three greatest—and least stable—scientific minds of all Civilization. "I'm sorry I was in the stacks when you called."
"QX—we all have to work sometimes, I suppose. What I'm calling about is that I've got a mighty big job for you and those smart girls of yours. Something like that other one, only a lot more so. I want all the information you can dig up about a planet named Kalonia, just as fast as you can possibly get it. What makes it extra tough is that I have never even heard of the planet itself and don't know of anyone who has. There may be a million other names for it, on a million other planets, but we don't know any of them. Here's all I know." He summarized; concluding: "If you can get it for me in less than four point nine five G-P days from now I'll bring you, Nadine, a Manarkan star-drop; and you can have each of your girls go down to Brenleer's and pick out a wrist watch or whatever she likes, and I'll have it engraved to her 'In appreciation, Kimball Kinnison'. This job is important—my son Kit has bet me ten millos that we can't do it that fast."
"QX—we all have to work sometimes, I guess. The reason I’m calling is that I’ve got a huge job for you and your talented girls. It’s similar to that other one, just way bigger. I need all the info you can find about a planet called Kalonia, as quickly as you can. What makes it especially tough is that I’ve never even heard of this planet and I don’t know anyone who has. It could have a million different names across a million other planets, but we just don’t know any of them. Here's everything I know." He summarized, concluding: "If you can get it for me in less than four point nine five G-P days from now, I’ll bring you, Nadine, a Manarkan star-drop; and each of your girls can go down to Brenleer’s and pick out a wristwatch or whatever they like, and I’ll have it engraved: ‘In appreciation, Kimball Kinnison’. This job is important—my son Kit has bet me ten millos that we can’t do it that fast."
"Ten millos!" Four or five of the girls gasped as one.
"Ten millos!" Four or five of the girls gasped together.
"Fact," he assured them, gravely. "So whenever you get the dope, tell Communications ... no, you listen while I tell them myself. Communications, all along the line, come in!" They came. "I expect one of these librarians to call me, plate-to-plate, within the next few days. When she does, no matter what time of the day or night it is, and no matter what I or anyone else happen to be doing, that call will have the right-of-way over any other business in the Universe. Cut!" The plates went dead and in Library One:
"Fact," he said seriously. "So whenever you get the info, tell Communications... no, just listen while I tell them myself. Communications, everyone on the line, come in!" They responded. "I expect one of these librarians to call me, plate-to-plate, within the next few days. When she does, no matter what time it is—day or night, and no matter what I or anyone else is doing—that call will take priority over anything else in the Universe. Cut!" The plates went silent and in Library One:
"But he was joking, surely!"
"But he was just kidding, right!"
"Ten millos—one cento—and a star-drop—why, there aren't more than a dozen of them on all Thrale!"
"Ten millos—one cento—and a star-drop—there can’t be more than a dozen of them on all of Thrale!"
"Wrist watches—or something—from the Gray Lensman!"
"Wrist watches—or something— from the Gray Lensman!"
"Be quiet, everybody!" Madge exclaimed. "I see now. That's the way Nadine got her watch, that she always brags about so insufferably and that makes everybody's eyes turn green. But I don't understand that silly ten-millo bet ... do you, Nadine?"
"Be quiet, everyone!" Madge shouted. "I get it now. That's how Nadine got her watch, the one she always brags about so annoyingly that makes everyone jealous. But I don't get that ridiculous ten-millo bet... do you, Nadine?"
"I think so. He does the nicest things—things that nobody else would think of. You have seen Red Lensman's Chit, in Brenleer's." This was a statement, not a question. They all had, with what emotions they all knew. "How would you like to have that one-cento piece, in a thousand-credit frame, here in our main hall, with the legend 'won from Christopher Kinnison for Kimball Kinnison by ...' and our names? He's got something like that in mind, I'm sure."
"I think so. He does the nicest things—things that no one else would think of. You've seen Red Lensman's Chit in Brenleer's." This was a statement, not a question. They all had, with emotions they all understood. "How would you like to have that one-cent piece, in a thousand-credit frame, displayed here in our main hall, with the caption 'won from Christopher Kinnison for Kimball Kinnison by ...' and our names? I'm sure he's got something like that in mind."
The ensuing clamor indicated that they liked the idea.
The loud chatter showed that they liked the idea.
"He knew we would; and he knew that doing it this way would make us dig like we never dug before. He'll give us the watches and things anyway, of course, but we won't get that one-cento piece unless we win it. So let's get to work. Take everything out of the machines, finished or not. Madge, you might start by interviewing Lanion and the other—no, I'd better do that myself, since you are more familiar with the encyclopedia than I am. Run the whole English block, starting with K, and follow up any leads, however slight, that you can find. Betty, you can analyze for synonyms, starting with the Thralian equivalent of Kalonia and spreading out to the other Boskonian planets. Put half a dozen techs on it, with transformers. Frances, you can study Prellin and Bronseca. Joan, Leona, Edna—Jalte, Helmuth, and Crowninshield. Beth, as our best linguist, you can do us the most good by sensitizing a tech to the sound of Kalonia in each of all the languages you know or that the rest of us can find, and running and rerunning all the transcripts we have of Boskonian meetings. How many of us are left? Not enough—we'll have to spread ourselves thin on this list of Boskonian planets."
"He knew we would, and he understood that doing it this way would make us work harder than we ever had before. He'll give us the watches and stuff anyway, of course, but we won't get that one-cent piece unless we win it. So let's get to work. Take everything out of the machines, finished or not. Madge, you might start by interviewing Lanion and the others—no, I should probably handle that myself since you know the encyclopedia better than I do. Run the whole English section, starting with K, and follow up on any leads, no matter how small, that you can find. Betty, you can look for synonyms, starting with the Thralian equivalent of Kalonia and branching out to the other Boskonian planets. Put half a dozen techs on it, with transformers. Frances, you can study Prellin and Bronseca. Joan, Leona, Edna—Jalte, Helmuth, and Crowninshield. Beth, as our best linguist, you can be the most helpful by tuning a tech to the sound of Kalonia in each of the languages you know or that we can find, and running and rerunning all the transcripts we have of Boskonian meetings. How many of us are left? Not enough—we'll have to stretch ourselves thin on this list of Boskonian planets."
Thus Principal Librarian Ernley organized a search beside which the proverbial one of finding a needle in a haystack would have been as simple as locating a football in a bushel basket. And she and her girls worked. How they worked! And thus, in four days and three hours, Kinnison's top-priority person-to-person call came through. Kalonia was no longer a planet of mystery.
Thus Principal Librarian Ernley organized a search that made finding a needle in a haystack seem easy compared to locating a football in a bushel basket. And she and her team worked. How they worked! In just four days and three hours, Kinnison's top-priority person-to-person call came through. Kalonia was no longer a mysterious planet.
"Fine work, girls! Put it on a tape and I'll pick it up."
"Great job, girls! Record it on a tape and I'll come get it."
He then left Klovia—precipitately. Since Kit was not within rendezvous distance, he instructed his son—after giving him the high points of what he had learned—to forward one one-cento piece to Brenleer of Thrale, personal delivery. He told Brenleer what to do with it upon arrival. He landed. He bestowed the star-drop; one of Cartiff's collection of fine gems. He met the girls, and gave each one her self-chosen reward. He departed.
He then left Klovia—quickly. Since Kit wasn’t nearby, he told his son—after giving him the main points of what he had learned—to send a one-cento piece to Brenleer of Thrale, personally. He instructed Brenleer on what to do with it once it arrived. He landed. He handed over the star-drop; one of Cartiff's collection of fine gems. He met the girls and gave each one her chosen reward. He left.
Out in open space, he ran the tape once—Second-Stage Lensmen do not forget any detail of anything they have ever learned—and sat still, scowling blackly. It was no wonder that Kalonia had remained unknown to Civilization for over twenty years. There was a lot of information on that tape—and all of it stunk—but it had been assembled, one unimportant bit at a time, from the more than eight hundred million cards of Thrale's Boskonian Archives; and all of the really significant items had been found on vocal transcriptions which had never before been played.
Out in open space, he ran the tape once—Second-Stage Lensmen remember every detail they've ever learned—and sat still, frowning darkly. It’s no surprise that Kalonia had stayed hidden from Civilization for over twenty years. There was a lot of information on that tape—and none of it was good—but it had been pieced together, one small detail at a time, from the more than eight hundred million cards in Thrale's Boskonian Archives; and all of the truly important items had been discovered in vocal transcriptions that had never been played before.
Civilization in general had assumed that Thrale had housed the top echelons of the Boskonian Empire, and that the continuing inimical activity had been due solely to momentum. Kinnison and his friends had had their doubts, but they had not been able to find any iota of evidence that any higher authority had ever issued any orders to Thrale. The Gray Lensman now knew, however, that Thrale had never been the top. Nor was Kalonia. The information on this tape, by its paucity, its brevity, its incidental and casual nature, made that fact startlingly clear. Thrale and Kalonia were equals. Neither gave the other any orders—in fact, they had surprisingly little to do with each other. While Thrale formerly directed the activities of a half-million or so planets—and Kalonia apparently still did much the same—their field of action had not overlapped at any point.
Civilization had generally assumed that Thrale was home to the highest levels of the Boskonian Empire and that the ongoing hostile actions were due only to momentum. Kinnison and his friends had their doubts, but they hadn’t found any evidence that a higher authority had ever given orders to Thrale. The Gray Lensman now realized, however, that Thrale had never been at the top. Neither had Kalonia. The information on this tape, because of its lack of detail, its brevity, and its casual nature, made that fact shockingly clear. Thrale and Kalonia were equals. Neither issued orders to the other—in fact, they had remarkably little to do with each other. While Thrale once oversaw the activities of about half a million planets—and Kalonia seemingly still did much the same—their areas of influence had never overlapped.
His conquest of Thrale, hailed so widely as such a triumph, had got him precisely nowhere in the solution of the real problem. It might be possible for him to conquer Kalonia in a similar fashion, but what would it get him? Nothing. There would be no more leads upward from Kalonia than there had been from Thrale. How in all of Noshabkeming's variegated and iridescent hells was he going to work this out?
His takeover of Thrale, celebrated by many as a huge success, had really gotten him nowhere in tackling the actual issue. He might be able to take Kalonia in the same way, but what would that accomplish? Nothing. There wouldn’t be any better opportunities from Kalonia than there had been from Thrale. How in all of Noshabkeming's diverse and chaotic hells was he going to figure this out?
A complete analysis revealed only one possible method of procedure. In one of the transcriptions—made twenty-one years ago and unsealed for the first time by Beth, the librarian-linguist—one of the speakers had mentioned casually that the new Kalonian Lensmen seemed to be doing a good job, and a couple of the others had agreed with him. That was all. It might, however, be enough; since it made it highly probable that Eddie's Lensman was in fact a Kalonian, and since even a Black Lensman would certainly know where he got his Lens. At the thought of trying to visit the Boskonian equivalent of Arisia he flinched, but only momentarily. Invasion, or even physical approach, would, of course, be impossible; but any planet, even Arisia itself, could be destroyed. If it could be found, that planet would be destroyed. He had to find it—that was probably what Mentor had been wanting him to do all the time! But how?
A complete analysis showed only one possible course of action. In one of the transcriptions—made twenty-one years ago and unsealed for the first time by Beth, the librarian-linguist—one of the speakers had casually mentioned that the new Kalonian Lensmen seemed to be doing a good job, and a couple of others agreed. That was it. However, it might be enough; since it made it very likely that Eddie's Lensman was actually a Kalonian, and even a Black Lensman would certainly know where he got his Lens. The thought of trying to visit the Boskonian equivalent of Arisia made him flinch, but only for a moment. Invasion, or even physical contact, would obviously be impossible; but any planet, even Arisia itself, could be destroyed. If it could be located, that planet would be destroyed. He had to find it—that was probably what Mentor had been wanting him to do all along! But how?
In his various previous enterprises against Boskonia he had been a gentleman of leisure, a dock-walloper, a meteor miner, and many other things. None of his already established aliases would fit on Kalonia; and besides, it was very poor technique to repeat himself, especially at this high level of opposition. To warrant appearance on Kalonia at all, he would have to be an operator of some kind—not too small, but not big enough so that an adequate background could not be synthesized in a hurry. A zwilnik—an actual drug-runner with a really worth-while cargo—would be the best bet.
In his various past ventures against Boskonia, he had taken on roles like a laid-back gentleman, a dock worker, a meteor miner, and several others. None of his existing aliases would work on Kalonia; plus, it was poor strategy to duplicate himself, especially given the high level of competition. To even show up on Kalonia, he needed to be some kind of player—not too small, but not so big that an adequate backstory couldn’t be quickly created. A zwilnik—an actual drug dealer with a valuable cargo—would be the best choice.
His course of action decided, the Gray Lensman started making calls. He first called Kit, with whom he held a long conversation. He called the captain of his battleship-yacht, the Dauntless, and gave him many and explicit orders. He called Vice Co-ordinator Maitland, and various other Unattached Lensmen who had plenty of weight in Narcotics, Public Relations, Criminal Investigation, Navigation, Homicide, and many other apparently totally unrelated establishments of the Galactic Patrol. Finally, after ten solid hours of mind-wracking labor, he ate a tremendous meal and told Clarrissa—he called her last of all—that he was going to go to bed and sleep for one whole G-P week.
His course of action decided, the Gray Lensman started making calls. He first called Kit and talked for a long time. Then he called the captain of his battleship-yacht, the Dauntless, and gave him several clear orders. He reached out to Vice Coordinator Maitland and various other Unattached Lensmen who had significant influence in Narcotics, Public Relations, Criminal Investigation, Navigation, Homicide, and many other seemingly unrelated departments of the Galactic Patrol. Finally, after ten solid hours of intense work, he enjoyed a huge meal and told Clarrissa—he called her last—that he was going to bed to sleep for a whole G-P week.
Thus it was that the name of Bradlow Thyron began to obtrude itself above the threshold of Galactic consciousness. For seven or eight years that name had been below the middle of the Patrol's long, black list of the wanted; now it was well up toward the top. That notorious zwilnik and his villainous crew had been chased from one side of the First Galaxy to the other. For a few months it had been supposed that they had been blown out of the ether. Now, however, it was known definitely that he was operating in the Second Galaxy, and he and every one of his cutthroat gang—fiends who had blasted thousands of lives with the noxious wares—were wanted for piracy, drug-mongering, and first-degree murder. From the Patrol's standpoint, the hunting was very poor. G-P planetographers have charted only a small percentage of the planets of the Second Galaxy; and only a few of those are peopled by the adherents of Civilization.
Thus, the name Bradlow Thyron started to push its way into the collective awareness of the Galaxy. For seven or eight years, that name had been somewhere in the middle of the Patrol's extensive blacklist of fugitives; now it had risen significantly. That infamous zwilnik and his criminal crew had been hunted across the First Galaxy. For a while, it was believed they had been wiped out. However, it was now clear that he was operating in the Second Galaxy, and he, along with his ruthless gang—criminals who had taken thousands of lives with their toxic products—were wanted for piracy, drug trafficking, and first-degree murder. From the Patrol's perspective, the search was quite challenging. G-P planetographers had only mapped a small fraction of the planets in the Second Galaxy, and among those, only a few were inhabited by followers of Civilization.
Therefore it required some time, but finally there came the message for which Kinnison was so impatiently waiting. A Boskonian pretty-big-shot drug-master named Harkleroy, on the planet Phlestyn II, city, Nelto, co-ordinates so-and-so, fitted his specifications to a "T"; a middle-sized operator neither too close to nor too far away from Kalonia. And Kinnison, having long since learned the lingua franca of the region from a local meteor miner, was ready to act.
Therefore it took some time, but finally the message Kinnison had been eagerly waiting for arrived. A Boskonian big-shot drug dealer named Harkleroy, on the planet Phlestyn II, city Nelto, coordinates so-and-so, matched his specifications perfectly; a medium-sized operator neither too close to nor too far from Kalonia. And Kinnison, who had long since learned the lingua franca of the area from a local meteor miner, was ready to take action.
First, he made sure that the mighty Dauntless would be where he wanted her when he needed her. Then, seated at his speedster's communicator, he put through regular channels a call to the Boskonian.
First, he made sure that the powerful Dauntless would be exactly where he wanted her when he needed her. Then, sitting at his speedster's communicator, he placed a call to the Boskonian through the usual channels.
"Harkleroy? I've got a proposition you'll be interested in. Where and when do you want to see me?"
"Harkleroy? I have a proposal that I think you'll like. Where and when do you want to meet?"
"What makes you think I want to see you at all?" a voice snarled, and the plate showed a gross, vicious face. "Who are you, scum?"
"What makes you think I want to see you at all?" a voice sneered, and the screen displayed a grotesque, menacing face. "Who do you think you are, loser?"
"Who I am is nobody's business—and if you don't clamp a baffle on that mouth of yours I'll come down there and shove a glop-skinner's glove so far down your throat you can sit on it."
"Who I am is none of your business—and if you don't shut your mouth, I'll come down there and shove a glop-skinner's glove so far down your throat you can sit on it."
At the first defiant word the zwilnik began visibly to swell; but in a matter of seconds he recognized Bradlow Thyron, and Kinnison knew that he did. That pirate could, and would be expected to, talk back to anybody.
At the first defiant word, the zwilnik started to visibly swell; but within seconds, he recognized Bradlow Thyron, and Kinnison could tell that he did. That pirate could, and would be expected to, talk back to anyone.
"I didn't recognize you at first," Harkleroy almost apologized. "We might do some business, at that. What have you got?"
"I didn't recognize you at first," Harkleroy almost apologized. "We might actually do some business. What do you have?"
"Cocaine, heroin, bentlam, hashish, nitrolabe—most anything a warm-blooded oxygen-breather would want. The prize package, though, is two kilograms of clear-quill thionite."
"Cocaine, heroin, bentlam, hashish, nitrolabe—pretty much anything a warm-blooded oxygen-breather would desire. The real prize, though, is two kilograms of clear-quill thionite."
"Thionite—two kilograms!" The Phlestan's eyes gleamed. "Where and how did you get it?"
"Thionite—two kilograms!" The Phlestan's eyes sparkled. "Where did you get it, and how?"
"I asked the Lensman on Trenco to make it for me, special, and he did."
"I asked the Lensman on Trenco to make it for me, specially, and he did."
"So you won't talk, huh?" Kinnison could see Harkleroy's brain work. Thyron could be made to talk, later. "We can maybe do business at that. Come down here right away."
"So you won't talk, huh?" Kinnison could see Harkleroy thinking. Thyron could be made to talk later. "Maybe we can work something out. Get down here right away."
"I'll do that, but listen!" and the Lensman's eyes burned into the zwilnik's. "I know what you're figuring on, and I'm telling you right now not to try it if you want to keep on living. You know that this ain't the first planet I ever landed on, and if you've got a brain you know that a lot of guys smarter than you are have tried monkey business on me—and I'm still here. So watch your step!"
"I'll do that, but listen up!" The Lensman's eyes drilled into the zwilnik's. "I know what you’re thinking, and I'm warning you right now not to try it if you want to stay alive. You know this isn’t the first planet I've landed on, and if you've got any sense, you know that plenty of guys smarter than you have tried messing with me—and I’m still here. So watch yourself!"
The Lensman landed, and made his way to Harkleroy's inner office in what seemed to be an ordinary enough, if somewhat oversize, suit of light space-armor. But it was no more ordinary than it was light. It was a powerhouse, built of dureum a quarter of an inch thick. Kinnison was not walking in it; he was merely the engineer of a battery of two-thousand-horsepower motors. Unaided, he could not have lifted one leg of that armor off the ground.
The Lensman landed and headed to Harkleroy's inner office in what looked like a pretty normal, albeit slightly oversized, suit of light space armor. But it was anything but ordinary, and it definitely wasn’t light. It was a powerhouse, made of dureum that was a quarter of an inch thick. Kinnison wasn’t walking in it; he was just the operator of a two-thousand-horsepower motor system. On his own, he wouldn’t have been able to lift even one leg of that armor off the ground.

As he had expected, everyone he encountered wore a thought-screen; nor was he surprised at being halted by a blaring loud-speaker in the hall, since the zwilnik's search-beams were being stopped four feet away from his armor.
As he expected, everyone he ran into had a thought-screen on; he wasn't surprised to be stopped by a loudspeaker blaring in the hallway, since the zwilnik's search beams were getting cut off four feet away from his armor.
"Halt! Cut your screens or we'll blast you where you stand!"
"Halt! Turn off your screens or we’ll take you out right here!"
"Yeah? Act your age, Harkleroy. I told you I had a lot of stuff up my sleeve besides my arm, and I meant it. Either I come as I am or I flit somewhere else, to do business with somebody who wants this stuff bad enough to act like half a man. 'Smatter—afraid you ain't got blasters enough in there to handle me?"
"Yeah? Act your age, Harkleroy. I told you I had a lot more going on besides just my arm, and I meant it. Either I show up as I am or I move on somewhere else to do business with someone who wants this stuff badly enough to act like a real person. What’s up—afraid you don’t have enough firepower in there to deal with me?"
This taunt bit deep, and the visitor was allowed to proceed. As he entered the private office, however, he saw that Harkleroy's hand was poised near a switch, whose closing would signal a score or more of concealed gunners to burn him down. They supposed that the stuff was either on his person or in his speedster just outside. Time was short.
This insult hit hard, and the visitor was allowed to move forward. However, as he entered the private office, he noticed that Harkleroy's hand was hovering near a switch, which would alert a dozen hidden gunners to take him out. They believed that the goods were either on him or in his fast car just outside. Time was running out.
"I abase myself—that's the formula you insist on, ain't it?" Kinnison sneered, without bending his head a millimeter.
"I humble myself—that's the formula you want, right?" Kinnison sneered, without bowing his head even slightly.
Harkleroy's finger touched the stud.
Harkleroy's finger pressed the button.
"Dauntless! Come down!" Kinnison snapped out the order.
"Dauntless! Get down!" Kinnison shouted the command.
Hand, stud, and a part of the desk disappeared in the flare of Kinnison's beam. Wall-ports opened; projectors and machine rifles erupted vibratory and solid destruction. Kinnison leaped toward the desk; the attack slowing down and stopping as he neared and seized the big shot. One fierce, short blast reduced the thought-screen generator to blobs of fused metal. Harkleroy screamed to his gunners to resume fire, but before bullet or beam took the zwilnik's life, Kinnison learned what he most wanted to know.
Hand, stud, and part of the desk disappeared in the glare of Kinnison's beam. Wall ports opened; projectors and machine rifles unleashed both vibrating and solid destruction. Kinnison jumped toward the desk; the attack slowed and then stopped as he got closer and grabbed the big weapon. One powerful, quick blast turned the thought-screen generator into blobs of melted metal. Harkleroy yelled for his gunners to start firing again, but before any bullet or beam could take the zwilnik's life, Kinnison discovered what he most wanted to know.
The ape did know something about Black Lensmen. He didn't know where the Lenses came from, but he did know how the men were chosen. More, he knew a Lensman personally—one Melasnikov, who had his office in Cadsil, on Kalonia III itself.
The ape knew a thing or two about Black Lensmen. He didn’t know where the Lenses came from, but he did know how the guys were selected. Even more, he personally knew a Lensman—one Melasnikov, who had his office in Cadsil, on Kalonia III itself.
Kinnison turned and ran—the alarm had been given and they were bringing up stuff too heavy for even his armor to handle. But the Dauntless was landing already; smashing to rubble five city blocks in the process. She settled; and as the dureum-clad Gray Lensman began to fight his way out of Harkleroy's fortress, Major Peter VanBuskirk and a full battalion of Valerians, armed with space-axes and semiportables, began to hew and to blast their way in.
Kinnison turned and ran—the alarm had been sounded, and they were bringing in equipment too heavy for even his armor to manage. But the Dauntless was already landing, crushing five city blocks in the process. It came to a stop, and as the dureum-clad Gray Lensman fought his way out of Harkleroy's fortress, Major Peter VanBuskirk and a full battalion of Valerians, armed with space-axes and semiportables, started chopping and blasting their way in.


XV.
XV.
Inch by inch, foot by foot, Kinnison fought his way back along the corpse-littered corridor. Under the ravening force of the attacker's beams his defensive screens flared into pyrotechnic splendor, but they did not go down. Fierce-driven metallic slugs spanged and whanged against the unyielding dureum of his armor, but that, too, held. Dureum is incredibly massive, unbelievably tough, unimaginably hard—against these qualities and against the thousands of horsepower driving that veritable tank and energizing its screens the zwilniks might just as well have been shining flashlights at him and throwing confetti. His immediate opponents could not touch him, but the Boskonians were bringing up reserves that he didn't like a little bit; mobile projectors with whose energies even his screens could not cope.
Inch by inch, foot by foot, Kinnison fought his way back along the corpse-filled corridor. Under the relentless force of the attacker's beams, his defensive shields flared into a dazzling display, but they held strong. Fiercely propelled metal slugs pinged and clanged against the tough dureum of his armor, but that held too. Dureum is incredibly dense, remarkably tough, and unimaginably hard—against these qualities and the thousands of horsepower powering that literal tank and energizing its shields, the zwilniks might as well have been shining flashlights at him and tossing confetti. His immediate opponents couldn’t touch him, but the Boskonians were bringing in reinforcements that he didn’t like at all; mobile projectors with energies that even his shields couldn’t withstand.
He had, however, one great advantage over his enemies. He had the sense of perception; they did not. He could see them, but they could not see him. All he had to do was to keep at least one opaque wall between them until he was securely behind the mobile screens, powered by the stupendous generators of the Dauntless, which VanBuskirk and his Valerians were so earnestly urging toward him. If a door was handy in the moment of need, he used it. If not, he went through a wall.
He did have one major advantage over his enemies. He had the ability to perceive things; they didn’t. He could see them, but they couldn’t see him. All he needed to do was keep at least one solid wall between them until he was safely behind the mobile screens powered by the impressive generators of the Dauntless, which VanBuskirk and his Valerians were working hard to bring to him. If there was a door available in his time of need, he used it. If not, he went through a wall.
The Valerians were fighting furiously and were coming fast. Those two words, when applied to members of that race, mean something starkly incredible to anyone who has never seen Valerians in action. They average little less than seven feet in height; something over four hundred pounds in weight; and are muscled, boned, and sinewed against a normal gravitational force of almost three times that of Earth. VanBuskirk's weakest warrior could do, in full armor, a standing high jump of fourteen feet against one Tellurian gravity; he could handle himself and the thirty-pound monstrosity which was his space-ax with a blinding speed and a devastating efficiency literally appalling to contemplate. They are the deadliest hand-to-hand fighters ever known; and, unbelievable as it may seem to any really highly advanced intelligence, they did and still do fairly revel in that form of combat.
The Valerians were fighting fiercely and charging quickly. Those two words, when used to describe this race, mean something incredibly intense to anyone who hasn’t seen Valerians in action. They average just under seven feet tall, weigh over four hundred pounds, and are built with muscles, bones, and sinews that adapt to a gravitational force nearly three times that of Earth. VanBuskirk's weakest warrior, even in full armor, could make a standing high jump of fourteen feet under one Earth gravity; he could manage himself and the thirty-pound beast of a space ax with a speed and efficiency that is truly mind-blowing. They are the most lethal hand-to-hand fighters known, and, unbelievable as it may sound to any really advanced intelligence, they did and still do genuinely enjoy that kind of combat.
The Valerian tide reached the battling Gray Lensman—closed around him.
The Valerian tide surrounded the fighting Gray Lensman.
"Hi ... you little ... Tellurian ... wart!" Major Peter VanBuskirk boomed this friendly thought, a yell of pure joy, in cadence with the blows of his utterly irresistible weapon. His rhythm broke—his frightful ax was stuck. Not even dureum-inlaid armor could bar the inward course of those furiously driven beaks; but sometimes it made it fairly difficult to get them out. The giant pulled, twisted—put one red-splashed boot on the battered breastplate—bent his mighty back—heaved viciously. The weapon came free with a snap that would have broken any ordinary man's arms, but the Valerian's thought rolled smoothly on: "Ain't we got fun?"
"Hey there, you little ... Tellurian ... wart!" Major Peter VanBuskirk shouted joyfully, his voice ringing out in sync with the powerful strikes of his unstoppable weapon. His rhythm faltered—his terrifying axe had gotten stuck. Not even the dureum-inlaid armor could stop those forcefully driven blades, but sometimes it made getting them out pretty challenging. The giant pulled and twisted—put one red-splattered boot on the damaged chest plate—bent his strong back—heaved fiercely. The weapon came loose with a snap that would have shattered any ordinary person's arms, but the Valerian's thoughts flowed smoothly on: "Ain't we got fun?"
"Ho, Bus, you big Valerian baboon!" Kinnison thought back in kind. "Thought maybe we would need you and your gang—thanks for the ride. But back, now, and fast!"
"Hey, Bus, you big Valerian baboon!" Kinnison thought in return. "I figured we might need you and your crew—thanks for the ride. But head back now, and make it quick!"
Although the Valerians did not like to retreat, after even a successful operation, they knew how to do it. Hence in a matter of minutes all the survivors—and their losses had been surprisingly small—were back inside the Dauntless.
Although the Valerians didn't like to back down, even after a successful mission, they knew how to pull it off. So, within minutes, all the survivors—and their losses had been surprisingly small—were back inside the Dauntless.
"You picked up my speedster, Frank." It was a statement, not a question, directed at the young Lensman standing beside the Chief Pilot's board.
"You picked up my speedster, Frank." It was a statement, not a question, aimed at the young Lensman standing next to the Chief Pilot's board.
"Of course, sir. They're massing fast, and without any hostile demonstration, as you said they would." He nodded unconcernedly at the plate, which showed the sky dotted with warlike shapes.
"Sure thing, sir. They're gathering quickly and without any aggressive show, just like you mentioned." He nodded casually at the screen, which displayed the sky filled with military formations.
"No maulers?"
"No fighters?"
"None detectable as yet."
"None detected so far."
"QX. Original orders stand. At detection of one mauler, execute Operation Able without further instructions. Tell everybody that, while the announcement of Operation Able will put me out of control instantly and automatically, until such announcement I will give instructions. What they will be like I haven't the foggiest notion. It depends on what His Nibs upstairs decides to do—it's his move next."
"QX. Original orders remain in effect. If one mauler is detected, carry out Operation Able without needing any more instructions. Inform everyone that, although the announcement of Operation Able will take me out of control immediately and automatically, until that announcement, I will provide instructions. I have no idea what those instructions will be like. It all depends on what His Nibs upstairs decides to do—it's his turn now."
As though the last phrase were a cue, a burst of noise rattled from the speaker—of which only the words "Bradlow Thyron" were intelligible to the un-Lensed members of the crew. That name, however, explained why they were not being attacked—yet. Kalonia had heard much of that intransigent and obdurate pirate and of the fabulous prowess of his ship; and Kinnison was pretty sure that they were much more interested in his ship than in him.
As if the last phrase was a signal, a loud noise erupted from the speaker—where only the words "Bradlow Thyron" were clear to the crew members without lenses. That name, however, clarified why they weren't being attacked—yet. Kalonia had heard a lot about that stubborn and unyielding pirate and the incredible abilities of his ship; and Kinnison was pretty sure they were way more interested in his ship than in him.
"I can't understand you!" The Gray Lensman barked, in the polyglot language he had so lately learned. "Talk pidgin!"
"I can't understand you!" the Gray Lensman shouted in the mixed language he had just picked up. "Speak pidgin!"
"Very well. I see that you are indeed Bradlow Thyron, as we were informed. What do you mean by this outrageous attack? Surrender! Disarm your men, take off their armor, and march them out of your vessel, or we will blast you as you lie there—Mendonai, vice admiral, speaking!"
"Alright. I see that you are really Bradlow Thyron, just as we were told. What do you mean by this outrageous attack? Surrender! Disarm your men, remove their armor, and march them out of your ship, or we will destroy you while you lie there—Mendonai, vice admiral, speaking!"
"I abase myself." Kinnison-Thyron did not sneer—exactly—and he did incline his stubborn head perhaps one millimeter; but he made no move to comply with the orders so summarily issued. Instead:
"I humble myself." Kinnison-Thyron didn't exactly sneer—he might have tilted his stubborn head by maybe one millimeter; but he didn't make any effort to follow the orders that were given so abruptly. Instead:
"What kind of planet is this, anyway?" he demanded, hotly. "I come here to see this louse Harkleroy because a friend of mine tells me that he's a big shot and so interested in my line that we can do a lot of business with each other. I give the lug fair warning, too—tell him plain that I've been around plenty and that if he tries to give me the works I'll rub him out like a pencil mark. So what happens? In spite of what I just tell him he tries dirty work on me, and I go to work on him—which he certainly has got coming to him. Then you and your flock of little tin boats come barging in as though I'd busted a law or something. Who do you think you are, anyway? What license you got to be butting into a private business deal?"
"What kind of planet is this, anyway?" he shouted angrily. "I come here to see this jerk Harkleroy because a friend of mine tells me that he's important and really interested in what I do, so we could make a lot of business together. I even gave the guy a fair warning—told him straight up that I’ve been around enough and if he tries to pull something on me, I’ll wipe him out like a pencil mark. So what happens? Despite what I just told him, he tries to mess with me, and I go after him—which he definitely deserves. Then you and your bunch of little toy boats come barging in like I've broken some law or something. Who do you think you are, anyway? What right do you have to interfere in a private business deal?"
"Ah, I had not heard that version." Vision came on; the face upon the plate was typically Kalonian—blue, cold, cruel, and keen. "Harkleroy was warned, you say? Definitely?"
"Ah, I hadn't heard that version." The screen lit up; the face on the display was unmistakably Kalonian—blue, cold, cruel, and sharp. "So Harkleroy was warned, you say? For sure?"
"I warned him plenty definitely. Ask any of the zwilniks in that private office of his. Most of them are still alive, and they all must of heard it."
"I definitely warned him enough. Just ask any of the zwilniks in his private office. Most of them are still alive, and they all must have heard it."
The plate fogged, the speaker again gave out gibberish. The Lensmen knew, however, that the commander of the cruisers above them was indeed questioning the dead zwilnik's guards. They knew that Kinnison's story was being corroborated in full.
The plate fogged up, and the speaker once again blurted out nonsense. However, the Lensmen knew that the commander of the cruisers above them was actually questioning the dead zwilnik's guards. They understood that Kinnison's story was being completely confirmed.
"You interest me." The Boskonian's language again became intelligible to the group at large. "We will forget Harkleroy—stupidity brings its own reward and the property damage is of no present concern. From what I have been able to learn of you, you have never belonged to that so-called Civilization. I know for a fact that you are not, and never have been, one of us. How have you been able to survive? And why do you work alone?"
"You interest me." The Boskonian's language became clear to everyone in the group again. "We'll forget about Harkleroy—stupidity has its consequences, and the property damage isn't a concern right now. From what I've gathered about you, you've never belonged to that so-called Civilization. I know for sure that you aren't, and never have been, one of us. How have you managed to survive? And why do you work alone?"
"'How' is easy enough—by keeping one jump ahead of the other guy, like I did with your pal here, and by being smart enough to have good engineers put into my ship everything that any other one ever had and everything they could dream up besides. As to 'why,' that's simple, too. I don't trust anybody except myself. If nobody except myself ever knows what I'm going to do, or when, nobody except myself is ever going to be able to stick a knife into me when I ain't looking—see? So far, it's paid off big. I'm still around, and still healthy, while them that trusted other guys ain't."
"'How' is simple—by staying one step ahead of the other guy, like I did with your friend here, and by being smart enough to have good engineers put everything my ship needs into it, plus anything they could imagine. As for 'why,' that's straightforward, too. I don't trust anyone but myself. If nobody but me knows what I'm going to do or when, then nobody but me can catch me off guard—get it? So far, it's worked out well. I'm still here, and still healthy, while those who trusted others aren't."
"I see. Crude, but graphic. The more I study you, the more convinced I become that you would be a worth-while addition to our force—"
"I get it. Unrefined, but clear. The more I observe you, the more I'm convinced that you would be a valuable asset to our team—"
"No deal, Mendonai," Kinnison interrupted, shaking his unkempt head positively. "I never yet took orders from no boss, and I ain't going to, never."
"No deal, Mendonai," Kinnison interrupted, shaking his messy head firmly. "I've never taken orders from any boss, and I'm not going to start now."
"You misunderstand me, Thyron." The zwilnik was queerly patient and much too forbearing. Kinnison's insulting omission of his title should have touched him off like a rocket. "I was not thinking of you in any minor capacity, but as an ally. An entirely independent ally, working with us in certain mutually advantageous undertakings."
"You’re misunderstanding me, Thyron." The zwilnik was strangely patient and way too forgiving. Kinnison's rude omission of his title should have set him off like a firework. "I wasn't thinking of you in any lesser role, but as a partner. An entirely independent partner, collaborating with us on certain mutually beneficial projects."
"Such as?" Kinnison allowed himself to betray his first sign of interest. "You may be talking sense now, brother, but what's in it for me? Believe me, there's got to be plenty."
"Like what?" Kinnison let himself show his first hint of interest. "You might be making sense now, bro, but what's the benefit for me? Trust me, there has to be a lot in it."
"There will be plenty. With the ability you have already shown, and with our vast resources back of you, you will take more every week than you have been taking in a year."
"There will be plenty. With the skills you’ve already demonstrated, and with our extensive resources backing you, you will achieve more each week than you have in a year."
"Yeah? People like you just love to do things like that for people like me. What do you figure on getting out of it?" Kinnison wondered, and Lensed a sharp thought to his junior at the board.
"Yeah? People like you just love to do things like that for people like me. What do you think you’ll get out of it?" Kinnison wondered, sending a sharp thought to his junior at the board.
"On your toes, Frank. He's stalling for something, and I'm betting it's maulers."
"Stay alert, Frank. He's buying time for something, and I think it's maulers."
"None detectable yet, sir."
"Nothing detected yet, sir."
"We stand to gain, of course," the pirate admitted, smoothly. "For instance, there are certain features of your vessel which might—just possibly, you will observe, and speaking only to mention an example—be of some interest to our naval designers. Also, we have heard that you have an unusually hot battery of primary beams. You might tell me about some of those things now; or at least refocus your plate so that I can see something besides your not unattractive face."
"We definitely have something to gain," the pirate said smoothly. "For example, there are some aspects of your ship that might—just potentially, and I'm only giving you an example—be of interest to our naval designers. Also, we’ve heard you have an impressively powerful set of primary beams. You could share some details about those now, or at least adjust your view so I can see more than just your rather nice face."
"I might not, too. What I've got here is my own business, and stays mine."
"I might not either. What I have here is my own business, and it stays mine."
"Is that what we are to expect from you in the way of co-operation?" The commander's voice was still low and level, but now bore a chill of deadly menace.
"Is that what we should expect from you in terms of cooperation?" The commander's voice remained calm and steady, but now carried a sense of cold, deadly threat.
"Co-operation!" The cutthroat chief was unimpressed. "I'll maybe tell you a thing or two—eat out of your dish—after I get good and sold on your proposition, whatever it is, but not one second sooner!"
"Cooperation!" The ruthless leader was not impressed. "I might share a thing or two—get something from your plate—after I'm fully convinced of your offer, whatever it is, but not a second before!"
The commander glared. "I weary of this. You probably are not worth the trouble, after all. I might as well blast you out now as later. You know that I can, of course, as well as I do."
The commander shot a sharp look. "I'm tired of this. You're probably not worth the hassle, anyway. I might as well get rid of you now as later. You know I can do that, just like you do."
"Do I?" Kinnison did sneer, this time. "Act your age, pal. As I told that fool Harkleroy, this ain't the first planet I ever sat down on, and it won't be the last. And don't call no maulers," as the Boskonian officer's hand moved almost imperceptibly toward a row of buttons. "If you do, I start blasting as soon as we spot one on our plates—and they're full out right now."
"Do I?" Kinnison sneered this time. "Act your age, buddy. Like I told that idiot Harkleroy, this isn’t the first planet I’ve ever landed on, and it won’t be the last. And don’t call any maulers," he said as the Boskonian officer’s hand moved almost imperceptibly toward a row of buttons. "If you do, I start blasting as soon as we see one on our screens—and they’re fully operational right now."
"You would start blasting?" The zwilnik's surprise—almost amazement—was plain, but the hand stopped its motion.
"You would start shooting?" The zwilnik's surprise—almost disbelief—was clear, but the hand halted its motion.
"Yeah—me. Them heaps of scrap metal you got up there don't bother me a bit, but maulers I can't handle, and I ain't afraid to tell you so because you probably know it already. I can't stop you from calling 'em, if you want to, but bend both ears to this—I can outrun 'em, and I'll guarantee that you personally won't be alive to see me run. Why? Because your ship will be the first one I'll whiff on the way out. And if the rest of your heaps stick around long enough to try to stop me, I'll whiff twenty-five or thirty more of them before your maulers can get close enough so that I'll have to flit. Now, if your brains are made out of the same kind of thick, blue mud that Harkleroy's was, start something!"
"Yeah—me. Those piles of scrap metal you have up there don't bother me at all, but I can't handle maulers, and I'm not afraid to say it because you probably already know. I can't stop you from calling them if you want to, but listen closely—I can outrun them, and I guarantee you won't be alive to see me go. Why? Because your ship will be the first one I take out on my way out. And if the rest of your junk stick around long enough to try to stop me, I'll take out twenty-five or thirty more of them before your maulers can get close enough for me to have to run. Now, if your brains are made out of the same thick, blue mud that Harkleroy's was, go ahead and make a move!"
This was an impasse. Kinnison knew what he wanted the other to do, but he could not give him a suggestion, or even a hint, without tipping his hand. The officer, quite evidently, was in a quandary. He did not want to open fire upon this tremendous, this fabulous ship. Even if he could destroy it, such a course would be unthinkable—unless, indeed, the very act of destruction would brand as false rumor the tales of invincibility and invulnerability which had heralded its coming, and thus would operate in his favor at the court-martial so sure to be called. He was very much afraid, however, that those rumors were not false—a view which was supported very strongly both by Thyron's undisguised contempt for the Boskonian warships threatening him and by his equally frank declaration of his intention to avoid engagement with craft of really superior force. Finally, however, the Boskonian perceived one thing that did not quite fit.
This was a stalemate. Kinnison knew what he wanted the other person to do, but he couldn't give him a suggestion or even a hint without revealing his intentions. The officer was clearly in a dilemma. He didn't want to fire upon this massive, incredible ship. Even if he could destroy it, that idea was unthinkable—unless, of course, the destruction would disprove the rumors of its invincibility and invulnerability that had announced its arrival, thus working in his favor at the court-martial that was sure to follow. However, he was quite afraid that those rumors were true—a belief strongly reinforced by Thyron's open disdain for the Boskonian warships threatening him and by his clear declaration to avoid engaging with genuinely superior forces. Yet, in the end, the Boskonian noticed something that didn't quite add up.
"If you are as good as you claim to be, why aren't you doing a flit right now?" Mendonai asked, smoothly. "If you could get away, I should think that you'd be doing it. We've got stuff, you know, that's both heavy and fast."
"If you're as good as you say you are, why aren't you making a run for it right now?" Mendonai asked, smoothly. "If you could escape, I would expect you to do it. We've got things, you know, that are both heavy and quick."
"Because I don't want to flit, that's why. Use your head, pal." This was better. Mendonai had shifted the conversation into a line upon which the Lensman could do a bit of steering. "I had to leave the First Galaxy because it got too hot for me, and I got no connections at all, yet, here in the Second. You folks need certain kinds of stuff that I've got, and I need other kinds, that you've got. So we could do a nice business, if you wanted to. That was what I had in mind with Harkleroy, but he got greedy. I don't mind saying that I'd like to do business with you, but I just got bit pretty bad, and I'll have to have some kind of solid guarantee that you mean business, and not monkey business, before I take a chance again. See?"
"Because I don't want to jump around, that's why. Use your brain, buddy." This was better. Mendonai had shifted the conversation into a direction where the Lensman could steer a bit. "I had to leave the First Galaxy because it got too dangerous for me, and I don't have any connections here in the Second. You guys need certain things that I have, and I need other things that you have. So we could make a good deal if you wanted to. That's what I had in mind with Harkleroy, but he got greedy. I’m not afraid to say I'd like to do business with you, but I just got burned pretty badly, and I need some sort of solid guarantee that you're serious and not just playing games before I take a risk again. Get it?"
"I see. The idea is good, but its execution may prove difficult. I could give you my word, which I assure you has never been broken."
"I get it. The idea is solid, but making it happen might be tough. I could promise you that my word has never been broken."
"Don't make me laugh." Kinnison snorted. "Would you take mine?"
"Don't make me laugh," Kinnison scoffed. "Would you take mine?"
"The case is different. I would not. Your point, however, is well taken. How about the protection of a high court of law? I will bring you an unalterable writ from any court you name."
"The situation is different. I wouldn’t. However, you make a valid point. What about the protection of a high court? I can get you an unchangeable order from any court you specify."
"Uh-huh," the Gray Lensman dissented. "There never was no court yet that didn't take orders from the big shots who kept the fat cats fat, and lawyers are the crookedest crooks in the whole Universe. You'll have to do better than that, pal."
"Uh-huh," the Gray Lensman replied. "There’s never been a court that didn’t take orders from the powerful who kept the wealthy wealthy, and lawyers are the most dishonest people in the whole Universe. You’ll have to do better than that, buddy."
"Well, then, how about a Lensman? You know about Lensmen, don't you?"
"Well, how about a Lensman? You know what Lensmen are, right?"
"A Lensman!" Kinnison gasped. He shook his head violently. "Are you completely nuts, or do you think I am? I do know Lensmen—a Lensman chased me from Alsakan to Vandemar once, and if I hadn't had a dose of Hell's own luck, he'd have got me. Lensmen chased me out of the First Galaxy—why else do you think I'm here? Use your brain, mister, use your brain!"
"A Lensman!" Kinnison exclaimed. He shook his head vigorously. "Are you totally insane, or do you think I am? I do know Lensmen—a Lensman chased me from Alsakan to Vandemar once, and if I hadn’t had a stroke of unbelievable luck, he would have caught me. Lensmen drove me out of the First Galaxy—why else do you think I'm here? Think it through, man, think it through!"
"You're thinking of Civilization's Lensmen—particularly of Gray Lensmen." The officer was manifestly enjoying Thyron's passion. "Ours—the Black Lensmen—are different—entirely different. They have as much power, or more, but they use it as it should be used. They work with us right along. In fact, they have been bumping Gray Lensmen off right and left lately."
"You're thinking about the Lensmen of Civilization—especially the Gray Lensmen." The officer clearly enjoyed Thyron's enthusiasm. "Ours—the Black Lensmen—are different—completely different. They have just as much power, if not more, but they use it the way it should be used. They collaborate with us all the time. In fact, they've been taking out Gray Lensmen left and right lately."
"You mean that he could open up, for instance, your mind and mine, so that we could see that the other guy wasn't figuring on running in no stacked decks? And that he'd stand by and sort of referee this business deal we got on the fire? And do you know one yourself—personally?"
"You mean that he could open up, for example, your mind and mine, so we could see that the other guy wasn't planning on playing with loaded dice? And that he'd just hang back and kind of oversee this business deal we have going? And do you know one yourself—personally?"
"He could, and would, do all that. Yes, I know one personally. His name is Melasnikov, and his office is on Kalonia III, not an hour's flit from here. He may not be there at the moment, but he will come in if I call. How about it—shall I call him now?"
"He can, and he will, do all that. Yes, I know someone like that personally. His name is Melasnikov, and his office is on Kalonia III, less than an hour's flight from here. He might not be there right now, but he will come in if I call him. What do you think—should I call him now?"
"Don't work up a sweat. Sounds like it might work, if we can figure out an approach. I don't suppose that you and him would come out to me in space?"
"Don't stress out. It sounds like it could work if we can come up with a plan. I don't suppose you and him would come out to space with me?"
"Hardly. After the way you have acted, you wouldn't expect us to, would you?"
"Hardly. Given how you've acted, you wouldn't expect us to, would you?"
"It wouldn't be very bright of you. And since I want to do business, I guess I got to meet you part way. How would this be? You pull your ships away, out of range. My ship takes station right above this here Lensman's office. I go down in my speedster, like I did here, and go inside to meet him and you. I'll wear my armor—and when I say it's real armor I ain't just snapping my choppers, neither."
"It wouldn’t be very smart of you. And since I want to do business, I guess I have to compromise. How about this? You pull your ships back, out of range. My ship will position itself right above this Lensman’s office. I’ll go down in my speedster, like I did here, and go inside to meet him and you. I’ll wear my armor—and when I say it’s real armor, I’m not just talking nonsense."
"I can see only one slight flaw." The Boskonian was really trying to work out a mutually satisfactory solution. "The Lensman will open our minds to you in proof, however, that we will have no intention of bringing up our maulers or other heavy stuff while we are in conference."
"I can see just one small issue." The Boskonian was genuinely trying to find a solution that works for both sides. "The Lensman will show you our thoughts as evidence, but we promise we won't bring up our maulers or any heavy artillery while we're in meeting."
"Right then he'll show you that you hadn't better, too." Kinnison grinned, wolfishly.
"Right then, he'll show you that you'd better not, either." Kinnison grinned, like a wolf.
"What do you mean?" The officer demanded.
"What do you mean?" the officer asked.
"I mean that I've got enough good big superatomic bombs aboard to blow the planet apart, and that the boys'll drop 'em all if you start playing dirty. I've got to take a little chance, of course, to start doing business, but it's a small one. If you ain't smart enough to know that what would happen would be mighty poor business, your Lensman will be—especially when it won't get you any dope on what makes this ship of mine tick the way she does. And the clincher is that even if you bring up everything you've got, I never did figure on living forever, and going out in an atomic blast of that size, together with your fleet and half your planet and you and your Lensman and seven hundred million other people, is as good a way as I can think of."
"I mean I've got enough big superatomic bombs on board to blow the planet apart, and the guys will drop them all if you start playing dirty. I have to take a little risk to start doing business, but it's a small one. If you're not smart enough to realize that it would be really bad business, your Lensman will be—especially since it won't give you any clue about what makes my ship operate the way it does. And the kicker is that even if you bring everything you've got, I never planned on living forever, and going out in an atomic blast like that, along with your fleet, half your planet, you, your Lensman, and seven hundred million other people, is as good a way as I can think of."
"If the Lensman's examination bears that out, it will constitute an absolute guarantee," the officer agreed. Hard as he was, he could not conceal the fact that he had been shaken: "Everything, then, is satisfactory?"
"If the Lensman's examination confirms that, it will be a complete guarantee," the officer agreed. Tough as he was, he couldn't hide the fact that he had been unsettled: "So everything is good then?"
"On the green. Are you ready to flit?"
"On the green. Are you ready to move?"
"We are ready."
"We're ready."
"Call your Lensman, then, and lead the way. Boys, take her upstairs!"
"Call your Lensman, then lead the way. Guys, take her upstairs!"
XVI.
XVI.
Karen Kinnison was worried. She, who had always been so steady, so sure of herself, had for weeks been conscious of a gradually increasing ... what was it, anyway? Not exactly a loss of control ... a change ... a something that manifested itself in increasingly numerous fits of senseless—sheerly idiotic—stubbornness. And always and only it was directed at—of all the people in the universe—her brother. She got along with her sisters perfectly; their tiny tiffs barely rippled the surface of any of their minds. But any time her path of action crossed Kit's, it seemed, the profoundest depths of her being flared into opposition like exploding duodec. Worse than senseless and idiotic, it was inexplicable, for the feeling which the Five had for each other was much deeper than that felt by ordinary brothers and sisters.
Karen Kinnison was worried. She, who had always been so steady and sure of herself, had, for weeks, been aware of a gradually increasing ... what was it, anyway? Not exactly a loss of control ... a change ... a something that showed up in more and more pointless—sheerly idiotic—stubbornness. And it was always directed at—of all people—her brother. She got along perfectly with her sisters; their little arguments barely affected any of them. But whenever her actions clashed with Kit's, it felt like the deepest parts of her being flared up in opposition like an explosion. Worse than pointless and idiotic, it was inexplicable, because the bond the Five had for each other was much deeper than what ordinary siblings felt.
She didn't want to fight with Kit. She liked him! She liked to feel his mind en rapport with hers, just as she liked to dance with him; their bodies as completely in accord as were their minds. No change of step or motion, however suddenly conceived and executed or however bizarre, had ever succeeded in taking the other by surprise or in marring by a millimeter the effortless precision of their performance. She could do things with Kit that would tie any other man into knots and break half of his bones. All other men were lumps. Kit was so far ahead of any other man in existence that there was simply no comparison. If she were Kit she would give her a going-over that would ... or could even he—
She didn’t want to argue with Kit. She liked him! She loved feeling their minds in sync with each other, just as she enjoyed dancing with him; their bodies were as perfectly in sync as their thoughts. No change in step or movement, no matter how sudden or strange, ever caught the other off guard or disrupted the effortless precision of their performance. She could do things with Kit that would confuse any other guy and probably hurt him. All other men were just dull. Kit was so far ahead of any other guy that there was no comparison. If she were Kit, she would give her a thorough assessment that would ... or could even he—
At the thought she turned cold inside. He could not. Even Kit, with all his tremendous power, would hit that solid wall and bounce. Well, there was one—not a man, but an entity—who could. He might kill her, but even that would be better than to allow the continued growth within her mind of this monstrosity which she could neither control nor understand. Where was she, and where was Lyrane, and where was Arisia? Good—not too far off line. She would stop off at Arisia en route.
At the thought, she felt a chill inside. He couldn’t. Even Kit, with all his immense power, would hit that solid wall and bounce back. Well, there was one—not a man, but a being—who could. He might kill her, but even that would be better than letting this monstrosity grow in her mind, something she couldn’t control or understand. Where was she, and where was Lyrane, and where was Arisia? Good—not too far off course. She would stop by Arisia on her way.
She did so, and made her way to Mentor's quiet office on the hospital grounds. She told her story.
She did that and headed to Mentor's quiet office on the hospital grounds. She shared her story.
"Fighting with Kit was bad enough," she concluded, "but when I start defying you, Mentor, it's high time that something was done about it. Why didn't Kit ever knock me into a spiral? Why didn't you work me over? You called Kit in, with the distinct implication that he needed more education—why didn't you pull me in here, too, and pound some intelligence into me?"
"Arguing with Kit was tough enough," she said, "but when I start going against you, Mentor, it's time to do something about it. Why didn’t Kit ever put me in my place? Why didn’t you step in? You brought Kit here, clearly suggesting he needed more training—why didn’t you bring me in too and teach me a lesson?"
"Concerning you, Christopher had definite instructions, which he obeyed. I did not touch you for the same reason that I did not ask you to come to me; neither course would have been of any use. Your mind, daughter Karen, is unique. One of its prime characteristics—the one, in fact, which is to make you an all-important player in the drama which is to come—is a yieldlessness very nearly absolute. Your mind might, just conceivably, be broken; but it cannot be bent by any imaginable external force, however applied. Thus it was inevitable from the first that nothing could be done about the untoward manifestations of this characteristic until you yourself should recognize the fact that your development was not complete. It would be idle for me to say that during adolescence you have not been more than a trifle trying. I was not speaking idly when I said that the development of you has been a tremendous task. It is with equal seriousness, however, that I now tell you that the reward is commensurate with the magnitude of the undertaking. It is impossible to express the satisfaction I feel—the fulfillment, the completion, the justification—as you children come, one by one, each in his proper time, for final instruction."
"About you, Christopher had clear instructions, which he followed. I didn't reach out to you for the same reason I didn't ask you to come to me; neither action would have helped. Your mind, daughter Karen, is one of a kind. One of its main traits—the one that will make you a crucial player in the upcoming drama—is a remarkable stubbornness. Your mind might, conceivably, be broken; but it can't be swayed by any external force, no matter how applied. So, it was clear from the start that nothing could be done about the unexpected signs of this trait until you recognized that your growth wasn't finished. It would be pointless for me to say that you've been a bit challenging during your teenage years. I wasn't speaking lightly when I said that helping you grow has been a huge task. However, I now tell you with equal seriousness that the reward matches the scale of the challenge. It’s impossible to express the satisfaction I feel—the fulfillment, the completion, the validation—as you children come, one by one, each in your own time, for final guidance."
"Oh—you mean, then, that there's nothing really the matter with me?" Hard as Karen was, she trembled as her awful tension eased. "That I was supposed to act that way? And can I tell Kit, right away?"
"Oh—you mean, then, that there's nothing actually wrong with me?" Despite how tough Karen was, she shook as her intense anxiety lessened. "That I was meant to act that way? And can I tell Kit right away?"
"No need. Your brother now knows that it was a passing phase; he shall know very shortly that it has passed. It is not that you were 'supposed' to act as you acted. You could not help it. Nor could your brother, nor I. From now on, however, you shall be completely the mistress of your own mind. Come fully, daughter Karen, into mine."
"No need. Your brother understands that it was just a phase; he’ll soon realize it’s over. It’s not that you were 'supposed' to act the way you did. You couldn’t help it. Neither could your brother or I. From now on, though, you’ll be completely in control of your own thoughts. Come fully, daughter Karen, into my mind."
She did so, and in a matter of time her "formal education" was complete.
She did that, and before long her "formal education" was finished.
"There is one thing that I don't quite understand—" she began, before she boarded her speedster.
"There’s one thing I don’t really get—" she started, before she hopped into her speedster.
"Consider it, and I am sure that you will," Mentor assured her. "Explain it, whatever it is, to me."
"Think about it, and I know you will," Mentor reassured her. "Just tell me what it is, no matter what."
"QX—I'll try. It's about Fossten and Dad." Karen cogitated. "Fossten was, of course, an Eddorian—your making Dad believe him to be an insane Arisian was a masterpiece. I see, of course, how you did that—principally by making Fossten's 'real' shape exactly like the one he saw of you in Arisia. But his physical actions as Fossten—"
"QX—I'll give it a shot. It's about Fossten and Dad." Karen thought for a moment. "Fossten was, of course, an Eddorian—convincing Dad that he was a crazy Arisian was a real stroke of genius. I can see how you pulled that off—mainly by making Fossten's 'true' form look just like the one he saw of you in Arisia. But his physical actions as Fossten—"
"Go on, daughter. I am sure that your visualization will be sound."
"Go ahead, daughter. I'm sure your visualization will be solid."
"While acting as Fossten he had to act as a Thralian would have acted," Kay decided with a rush. "He was watched everywhere he went, and knew it. To display his real power would have been disastrous. Just like you Arisians, they have to keep in the background to avoid setting up an inferiority complex that will ruin everything for them. Fossten's actions, then, were constrained. Just as they were when he was Gray Roger, so long ago—except that then he did make a point of unhuman longevity, deliberately to put an insoluble problem up to First-Lensman Samms and his men. Just as you—you must have ... you did coach Virgil Samms, Mentor, and some of you Arisians were there, as men!"
"While he was acting as Fossten, he had to behave like a Thralian would," Kay concluded quickly. "He was being watched wherever he went, and he knew it. Showing his true power would have been a disaster. Just like you Arisians, they have to stay in the background to prevent creating an inferiority complex that could ruin everything for them. So, Fossten's actions were limited. Just like when he was Gray Roger, a long time ago—except back then, he intentionally showed his unnatural longevity to create an unsolvable problem for First-Lensman Samms and his team. Just like you—you must have... you did coach Virgil Samms, Mentor, and some of you Arisians were there, as men!"
"We were. We wrought briefly as men, and died as men. Up to the present moment, no one has ever been the wiser."
"We were. We acted briefly as men and died as men. Up to now, no one has ever been the wiser."
"But you weren't Virgil Samms, please!" Kay almost begged. "Not that it would break me if you were, but even I would much rather you hadn't been."
"But you weren't Virgil Samms, please!" Kay almost begged. "Not that it would ruin me if you were, but even I would definitely prefer that you hadn't been."
"No, none of us was Samms," Mentor assured her. "Nor Cleveland, nor Rodebush, nor Costigan, nor even Clio Marsden. We worked with—'coached,' as you express it—those persons and others from time to time in certain small matters, but we were at no time integral with any of them. One of us was, however, Dr. Bergenholm. The full inertialess space-drive became necessary at that time, and it would have been poor technique to have had either Rodebush or Cleveland develop so suddenly the ability to perfect the device as Bergenholm did perfect it."
"No, none of us was Samms," Mentor assured her. "Nor Cleveland, nor Rodebush, nor Costigan, nor even Clio Marsden. We worked with—'coached,' as you put it—those individuals and others from time to time on some minor issues, but we were never deeply involved with any of them. However, one of us was Dr. Bergenholm. The complete inertialess space-drive became essential at that point, and it wouldn’t have been good practice to have either Rodebush or Cleveland develop the ability to perfect the device as suddenly as Bergenholm did."
"QX. Bergenholm isn't important—he was just an inventor. To get back onto the subject of Fossten: When he was there on the flagship with Dad, and in position to throw his full weight around, it was too late—you Arisians were on the job. You'll have to take it from there, though; I'm out beyond my depth."
"QX. Bergenholm isn't significant—he was just an inventor. Getting back to Fossten: When he was on the flagship with Dad and in a position to use his influence, it was too late—you Arisians were already handling it. You'll have to take it from here, though; I'm in over my head."
"Because you lack data. Know, then, daughter, that the planet Eddore is screened as heavily as is our own Arisia; by screens which can be extended at will to any desired point in space. In those last minutes the Eddorian knew that Kimball Kinnison was neither alone nor unprotected. He called instantaneously for help, but help did not come. It could not. Eddore's screens were being attacked at every point by every force generable by the massed intellect of Arisia; they were compressed almost to the planet's surface. If the Eddorians had weakened those screens sufficiently to have sent through them a helping thought, every one of them would in that instant have perished. Nor could Fossten escape from the form of flesh he was then energizing. I myself saw to that." Karen had never before felt the Arisian display emotion, but his thought was grim and cold. "From that form, which your father never did perceive, he passed into the next plane of existence."
"Because you don't have enough information. So, listen up, daughter, the planet Eddore is protected just like our own Arisia; with shields that can be adjusted to any location in space. In those final moments, the Eddorian realized that Kimball Kinnison wasn’t alone or defenseless. He immediately called for help, but it didn’t come. It couldn’t. Eddore’s shields were under attack from every force generated by the combined intelligence of Arisia; they were pushed almost down to the planet’s surface. If the Eddorians had weakened those shields enough to send through a helping thought, they all would’ve perished in that moment. And Fossten couldn't escape from the physical form he was inhabiting. I made sure of that." Karen had never seen the Arisian show emotion before, but his thoughts were dark and chilling. "From that form, which your father never noticed, he moved on to the next plane of existence."
Karen shivered. "It served him right. That clears everything up, I think. But are you sure, Mentor, that you can't—or rather, shouldn't—teach me any more than you have? It's just about time for me to go, and I feel ... well, 'incompetent' is putting it very mildly indeed."
Karen shivered. "He got what he deserved. That clears everything up, I think. But are you sure, Mentor, that you can't—or rather, shouldn't—teach me any more than you have? It's almost time for me to leave, and I feel ... well, 'incompetent' is really putting it very mildly."

"To a mind of such power and scope as yours, in its present state of development, such a feeling is inevitable. Nor can anyone except yourself do anything about it. Cold comfort, perhaps, but it is the stark truth that from now on your development is your own task. Yours alone. As I have already told Christopher and Kathryn, and will very shortly tell Camilla and Constance, you have had your last Arisian treatment. I will be on call to any of you at any instant of any day, to aid you or to guide you or to reinforce you at need; but of formal instruction there can be no more."
"Given the power and scope of your mind at its current stage of development, this feeling is unavoidable. No one but you can change that. It might be a cold comfort, but the harsh reality is that your development is now entirely your responsibility. It’s just you. As I’ve already mentioned to Christopher and Kathryn, and will soon tell Camilla and Constance, you’ve had your final Arisian treatment. I’ll be available to any of you at any moment, day or night, to help, guide, or support you when necessary; but there will be no more formal instruction."
Karen left Arisia and drove for Lyrane, her thoughts in a turmoil. The time was too short by far; she deliberately cut her vessel's speed and took a long detour so that the vast and chaotic library of her mind could be reduced to some semblance of order before she landed.
Karen left Arisia and drove for Lyrane, her thoughts in turmoil. Time was way too short; she intentionally slowed down her vessel and took a long detour so that the vast and chaotic library of her mind could be organized before she landed.

She reached Lyrane II, and there, again to all outward seeming a happy, carefree girl, she hugged her mother rapturously. Nor was this part of it acting in any sense—as has been said, those four girls loved each other and their mother and their father and their brother with a depth and fervor impossible to portray intelligibly in words.
She arrived at Lyrane II, and there, looking just like a happy, carefree girl, she embraced her mother with joy. This was not an act in any way— as previously mentioned, those four girls shared a love for each other, their mother, their father, and their brother that was so deep and intense it's hard to express in words.
"You're the most wonderful thing, Mums!" Karen exclaimed. "It's simply marvelous, seeing you again in the flesh."
"You're the most amazing thing, Mom!" Karen exclaimed. "It's just fantastic to see you again in person."
"Now why bring that up?" Clarrissa had—just barely—become accustomed to working undraped, in the Lyranian fashion.
"Why bring that up now?" Clarrissa had—just barely—gotten used to working without clothes, in the Lyranian style.
"I didn't mean it that way at all, and you know I didn't." Kay snickered. "Shame on you—fishing for compliments, and at your age, too!" Ignoring the older woman's attempt at protest she went on: "All kidding aside, Mums, you're a mighty smart-looking hunk of woman. I approve of you exceedingly much. In fact, we're a keen pair, and I like both of us. I've got one advantage over you, of course, in that I never did care a particle whether I ever had a stitch of clothes on or not, anywhere, and you still do, a little. But what I was going to ask, though, was how are you doing?"
"I didn't mean it that way at all, and you know I didn't." Kay chuckled. "Shame on you—fishing for compliments, especially at your age!" Ignoring the older woman's attempt to protest, she continued: "All jokes aside, Mums, you look like a really attractive woman. I think you're great. Honestly, we're a fantastic duo, and I like both of us. I definitely have one advantage over you, of course, because I've never cared at all about whether I wore clothes or not, anywhere, while you still do a little. But what I was really going to ask is, how are you doing?"
"Not so well—of course, though, I haven't been here very long." Clarrissa, forgetting her undressedness, frowned. "I haven't found Helen, and I haven't found out yet why she retired. I can't quite decide whether to put pressure on now, or wait a while longer. Ladora, the new Elder Person, is ... that is, I don't know—Oh, here she comes now. I'm glad—I want you to meet her."
"Not really—of course, I haven't been here very long." Clarrissa, forgetting that she wasn’t fully dressed, frowned. "I haven't found Helen, and I still don't know why she left. I can't quite decide whether to push for answers now or to wait a bit longer. Ladora, the new Elder Person, is... well, I don't know—Oh, here she comes now. I'm glad—I want you to meet her."
If Ladora was glad to meet Karen, however, she did not show it. Instead, for an inappreciable instant of time which was nevertheless sufficient for the acquirement of full information, each studied the other. Like Helen—the former Queen of the matriarchy of Lyrane II—Ladora was tall, beautifully proportioned, flawless of skin and feature, hard and fine. But so, and in most respects even more so, to Ladora's astonishment and quickly-mounting wrath, was this pink-tanned stranger. Practically instantaneously, therefore, she hurled a vicious mental bolt—only to get the surprise of her life. She had not yet crossed wills in a serious enough way with this strange person, Clarrissa, to find out what she had in the way of equipment, but it certainly couldn't be much. She had never tried to do her harm, nor ever seemed to resent her studied and arrogant aloofness; and therefore her daughter, younger and less experienced, of course, would be easy enough prey.
If Ladora was happy to meet Karen, she didn’t show it. Instead, for a brief moment that was more than enough to take in everything, they both examined each other. Like Helen—the former Queen of the matriarchy of Lyrane II—Ladora was tall, beautifully proportioned, with flawless skin and features, hard and refined. But, to Ladora's shock and rising anger, this pink-tanned stranger was even more striking in many ways. Almost instantly, Ladora threw out a sharp mental attack—only to be completely taken aback. She hadn’t yet clashed wills seriously enough with this unfamiliar person, Clarrissa, to gauge her abilities, but they couldn’t be much. Clarrissa had never shown any intent to harm her and seemed unfazed by Ladora's studied and arrogant distance; so, Ladora's daughter, being younger and less experienced, would surely be an easy target.
But Ladora's bolt, the heaviest she could send, did not pierce even the outermost fringes of her intended victim's defenses, and so vicious was the almost simultaneous counterthrust that it went through the Lyranian's hard-held block in nothing flat. Inside her brain, it wrought such hellishly poignant punishment that the matriarch, forgetting everything, tried only and madly to scream. She could not. She could not move a muscle of her face or of her body. She could not even fall. And the one brief glimpse she had into the stranger's mind showed it to be such a blaze of incandescent fury that she, who had never feared in the slightest any living creature, knew now in full measure what fear was.
But Ladora's strongest attack, the heaviest she could launch, didn't even break through the outer edges of her target's defenses, and the almost instant counterattack was so fierce that it smashed through the Lyranian's tightly held block in no time. Inside her mind, it inflicted such torturous pain that the matriarch, completely forgetting everything, could only and desperately try to scream. She couldn't. She couldn't move a single muscle in her face or body. She couldn't even collapse. And the one brief glimpse she had into the stranger's mind revealed a blaze of intense rage that made her, who had never feared any living being, fully understand what fear truly was.
"I'd like to give that alleged brain of yours a real massage, just for fun." Karen forced her emotion to subside to a mere seething rage, and Ladora watched her do it. "But since this whole stinking planet is my mother's dish, not mine, she'd blast me to a cinder—she's done it before—if I dip in." She cooled further—visibly. "At that, I don't suppose you're too bad an egg, in your own poisonous way—you just don't know any better. So maybe I'd better warn you, you poor fool, since you haven't got sense enough to see it, that you're playing with a live fuse when you push my mother around like you've been doing. About one more millimeter of it and she'll get mad—like I did a second ago except more so—and you'll wish to Klono you had never been born. She'll never make a sign until she blows up, but I'm telling you that she's as much harder and tougher than I am as she is older, and what she always does to people who cross her I wouldn't want to watch happen again, even to a snake. Want to know what she'll do to you first? She'll pick you up, curl you into a perfect circle, pull off your arms, shove both your legs down your throat to the knees, and roll you down that chute there into the ocean. After that I don't know what she'll do—depends on how much pressure she develops before she blows up. One thing, though, she's always sorry afterward—why, she even attends the funeral, sometimes, and insists on paying the expenses!"
"I’d love to give that so-called brain of yours a real workout, just for kicks." Karen forced her emotions down to a simmering rage, and Ladora watched her do it. "But since this whole messed-up planet is my mom's territory, not mine, she'd turn me to ash—she's done it before—if I got involved." She calmed down even more—clearly. "That said, I don't think you're a terrible person, in your own toxic way—you just don't know any better. So maybe I should warn you, you poor fool, since you can't see it, that you're playing with fire when you mess with my mom like you have. Just one more push and she'll get angry—like I did a second ago, but worse—and you'll wish you had never been born. She won’t show any signs until she explodes, but I’m telling you, she’s so much tougher than I am and just as much older, and what she does to people who cross her is something I wouldn’t want to witness again, even for a snake. Want to know what she’ll do to you first? She’ll lift you up, curl you into a perfect ball, rip off your arms, shove both your legs down your throat to your knees, and roll you down that chute over there into the ocean. After that, I don’t know what she’ll do—it depends on how much pressure she builds up before she blows. One thing’s for sure, though; she always feels bad afterward—why, she even goes to the funeral sometimes and insists on covering the costs!"
With which outrageous thought she kissed Clarrissa an enthusiastic good-by. "Told you I couldn't stay a minute. Got to do a flit—'see a man about a dog.' Came a million parsecs to squeeze you, Mums, but it was worth it. Clear ether!"
With that wild idea, she gave Clarrissa an excited goodbye kiss. "I told you I couldn't stay even a minute. I have to bounce—'see a man about a dog.' I traveled a million light-years just to see you, Mums, but it was totally worth it. Clear skies!"
She was gone; and it was a dewy-eyed and rapt mother, not a Lensman, who turned to the still completely disorganized Lyranian. Clarrissa had perceived nothing whatever of what had happened—Karen had very carefully seen to that.
She was gone; and it was a tearful and entranced mother, not a Lensman, who turned to the still totally disorganized Lyranian. Clarrissa had noticed nothing at all about what had happened—Karen had made sure of that.
"My daughter," Clarrissa mused, as much to herself as to Ladora. "One of four. The four dearest, finest, sweetest girls that ever lived. I often wonder how a woman of my limitations, of my faults, could possibly have borne such children."
"My daughter," Clarrissa thought aloud, mostly to herself but also to Ladora. "One of four. The four most precious, wonderful, sweetest girls that ever existed. I often wonder how a woman with my limitations and flaws could have possibly raised such amazing children."
And Ladora of Lyrane, humorless and literal as all Lyranians are, took those thoughts at their face value and correlated their every connotation and implication with what she herself had perceived in that "dear, sweet" daughter's mind; with what that daughter had done and had said. The nature and quality of this hellish person's "limitations" and "faults" became eminently clear, and as she perceived what she thought was the truth, the Lyranian literally cringed.
And Ladora of Lyrane, as serious and straightforward as all Lyranians are, took those thoughts at face value and connected every meaning and implication with what she had observed in her “dear, sweet” daughter’s mind; with what that daughter had done and said. The nature and quality of this hellish person's “limitations” and “faults” became very clear, and as she perceived what she believed to be the truth, the Lyranian literally cringed.
"As you know, I have been in doubt as to whether or not to support you actively, as you wish," Ladora offered, as the two walked together across the field, toward the line of ground-cars. "On the one hand, the certainty that the safety, and perhaps the very existence, of my race will be at hazard; on the other the possibility that you are right in saying that the situation will continue to deteriorate if we do nothing. The decision has not been an easy one to make." Ladora was no longer aloof. She was just plain scared. She had been talking against time, and hoping that the help for which she had long since called would arrive in time. "I have touched only the outer surfaces of your mind. Will you allow me, without offense, to test its inner quality before deciding definitely?" she asked, and in the instant of asking sent out an exploratory tentacle of thought which was in actuality a full-driven probe.
"As you know, I've been unsure about whether to actively support you as you want," Ladora said as they walked together across the field toward the line of ground-cars. "On one hand, there's the certainty that the safety, and maybe even the existence, of my race is at risk; on the other hand, there’s the possibility that you’re right in saying that the situation will keep getting worse if we do nothing. This decision hasn’t been easy." Ladora was no longer distant. She was just plain scared. She had been rushing her words, hoping that the help she had been waiting for would arrive in time. "I've only scratched the surface of your mind. Would you let me, without causing any offense, test its deeper qualities before I make a final decision?" she asked, and in that moment, she sent out an exploratory thread of thought that was actually a fully driven probe.
"I will not." Ladora's beam struck a barrier which seemed to her exactly like the daughter's. None of her race had developed anything like it. She had never seen ... yes, she had, too—years ago, when she was a child, that time in the assembly hall—that utterly hated male, Kinnison of Tellus! This visitor, then, was not a real person at all, but a female—Kinnison's female—the Red Lensman, of whom even Lyrane had heard—and that pers ... that thing was their offspring! But behind that impenetrable block there might very well be—there probably was—exactly the kind of mind that the offspring had described. A creature who was physically a person, but mentally that inconceivable monstrosity, a female, might be anything and might do anything. Ladora temporized.
"I won’t." Ladora's beam hit a barrier that felt just like the daughter’s. No one from her race had ever created anything like it. She had seen it before... yes, she had, years ago when she was a child, that time in the assembly hall— that utterly detested male, Kinnison of Tellus! So this visitor wasn’t a real person at all, but a female—Kinnison’s female—the Red Lensman, whom even Lyrane had heard of—and that pers ... that thing was their offspring! But behind that unbreakable barrier, there could very well be—there probably was—exactly the kind of mind that the offspring had described. A creature who was physically a person, but mentally that inconceivable monstrosity, a female, could be anything and could do anything. Ladora hesitated.
"Excuse me; I did not mean to intrude against your will," she apologized, smoothly enough. "Since your attitude makes it extremely difficult for me to co-operate with you, I can make no promises as yet. What is it that you wish to know first?"
"Sorry to interrupt, I didn’t mean to come in uninvited," she apologized, sounding pretty smooth. "Since your attitude makes it really hard for me to work with you, I can’t make any promises right now. What do you want to know first?"
"I wish to interview your predecessor Elder Person, the one we called Helen." Strangely refreshed, in a sense galvanized by the brief personal visit with her dynamic daughter, it was no longer Mrs. Kimball Kinnison who faced the Lyranian Queen. Instead, it was the Red Lensman; a full-powered Second-Stage Lensman who had finally decided that, since appeals to reason, logic, and common sense had no perceptible effect upon this stiff-necked near-woman, the time had come to bear down. "Furthermore, I intend to interview her now, and not at some such indefinite future time as your whim may see fit to allow."
"I want to interview your predecessor Elder Person, the one we called Helen." Strangely energized, almost charged by the brief personal visit with her dynamic daughter, it was no longer Mrs. Kimball Kinnison who faced the Lyranian Queen. Instead, it was the Red Lensman; a fully powered Second-Stage Lensman who had finally decided that, since appeals to reason, logic, and common sense had no visible effect on this stubborn near-woman, the time had come to get serious. "Also, I plan to interview her now, and not at some vague future time that you might decide is okay."
Ladora sent out a final desperate call for help and mustered her every force against the interloper. Fast and strong as her mind was, however, the Red Lensman's was faster and stronger. The Lyranian's defensive structure was wrecked in the instant of its building, the frantically struggling mind was taken over in toto. Help arrived—uselessly; since, although Clarrissa's newly enlarged mind had not been put to warlike use, it was brilliantly keen and ultimately sure. Nor, in times of stress, did the softer side of her nature operate to stay mind or hand. While carrying Lensman's Load she contained no more of ruth for Civilization's foes than did abysmally frigid Nadreck himself.
Ladora sent out one last desperate plea for help and gathered all her strength against the intruder. But no matter how fast and strong her mind was, the Red Lensman's was even faster and stronger. The Lyranian's defensive structure was destroyed the moment it was created, and her panicked thoughts were completely taken over. Help arrived—but it was useless; although Clarrissa's newly expanded mind hadn't been used for combat, it was exceptionally smart and ultimately effective. Also, during stressful times, her gentler side didn’t prevent her from acting decisively. While bearing the Lensman's Load, she felt no more compassion for the enemies of Civilization than the coldly indifferent Nadreck himself.
Head thrown back, taut and tense, gold-flecked tawny eyes flashing, she stood there for a moment and took on her shield everything that those belligerent persons could send. More, she returned it in kind, plus; and under those withering blasts of force more than one of her attackers ceased to live. Then, still holding her block, she and her unwilling captive raced across the field toward the line of peculiar little fabric-and-wire machines which were still the last word in Lyranian air transport.
Head thrown back, tense and alert, her gold-flecked, amber eyes flashing, she stood there for a moment, ready to deflect everything those aggressive people could throw at her. Moreover, she sent it right back, plus some; and under those overwhelming attacks, more than one of her assailants lost their lives. Then, still holding her guard, she and her unwilling captive dashed across the field toward the line of strange little fabric-and-wire machines that were still the latest in Lyranian air transport.
Clarrissa knew that the Lyranians had no modern offensive or defensive weapons. They did, however, have some fairly good artillery at that airport; and she hoped fervently as she ran that she could put out jets enough to spoil the aim and fusing—luckily, they hadn't developed proximity fuses yet!—of what ack-ack they could bring to bear on her crate during the few minutes she would have to use it. Fortunately, there was no artillery at the small, unimportant airport on which her speedster lay.
Clarrissa knew that the Lyranians didn't have any modern offensive or defensive weapons. However, they did have some decent artillery at that airport, and she hoped desperately as she ran that she could destroy enough jets to mess up their aim and fusing—thankfully, they hadn't developed proximity fuses yet!—of the anti-aircraft fire they could direct at her plane during the few minutes she would have to use it. Fortunately, there was no artillery at the small, insignificant airport where her speedster was located.
"Here we are. We'll take this tripe—it's the fastest thing here!"
"Here we are. We'll grab this tripe—it's the quickest option here!"
Clarrissa could operate the triplane, of course—any knowledge or ability that Ladora had ever had was now and permanently the Lensman's. She started the queer engines; and as the powerful little plane screamed into the air, hanging from its props, she devoted what of her mind she could spare to the problem of antiaircraft fire. She could not handle all the guncrews; but she could and did command the most important members of most of them. Thus, nearly all of the shells either went wide or exploded too soon. Since she knew every point of aim of the few guns with whose operations she could not interfere, she avoided their missiles by not being at any one of those points at the predetermined instant of functioning.
Clarrissa could fly the triplane, of course—any skill or knowledge that Ladora had ever possessed now belonged entirely to the Lensman. She started the strange engines; and as the powerful little plane shot up into the sky, suspended by its props, she focused whatever mind power she could spare on the problem of anti-aircraft fire. She couldn’t manage all the gun crews, but she could and did direct the key members of most of them. As a result, nearly all the shells either missed or exploded too early. Knowing the targeting points of the few guns she couldn’t influence, she avoided their fire by ensuring she wasn’t at any of those spots at the set time of firing.
Thus plane and passengers escaped unscathed and in a matter of minutes arrived at their destination. The Lyranians there had been alerted, of course; but they were few in number and they had not been informed that it would take physical force, not mental, to keep that red-headed pseudoperson from boarding her outlandish ship of space.
Thus, the plane and passengers were unharmed and arrived at their destination in just a few minutes. The Lyranians there had been notified, of course; but they were few in number and hadn’t been told that it would require physical strength, not mental skills, to stop that red-headed pseudoperson from boarding her bizarre spaceship.
In a few more minutes, then, Clarrissa and her captive, safe in the speedster, were high in the stratosphere. Clarrissa sat Ladora down—hard—in a seat and fastened the safety straps.
In a few more minutes, Clarrissa and her captive, secure in the speedster, were high in the stratosphere. Clarrissa slammed Ladora down into a seat and buckled the safety straps.
"Stay in that seat and keep your thoughts to yourself," she directed, curtly. "If you don't, you'll never again either move or think in this life." She opened a sliding door, put on a couple of wisps of Manarkan glamourette, reached for a dress, and paused. Eyes glowing, she gazed hungrily at a suit of plain gray leather; a costume which she had not as yet so much as tried on. Should she wear it, or not?
"Stay in that seat and keep your thoughts to yourself," she said sharply. "If you don’t, you’ll never be able to move or think again in this life." She opened a sliding door, applied a few touches of Manarkan glamourette, reached for a dress, and paused. Her eyes shining, she looked longingly at a plain gray leather suit; an outfit she hadn’t even tried on yet. Should she wear it or not?
She could work efficiently—at service maximum, really—in ordinary clothes. Ditto, although she didn't like to, unclothed. In Gray, though, she could hit absolute max if she had to. Nor had there ever been any question of right involved; the only barrier had been her own hypersensitivity.
She could work efficiently—at peak performance, really—in regular clothes. Likewise, even though she wasn’t a fan of it, she could do it unclothed. In Gray, though, she could reach full capacity if necessary. There had never been any question of right involved; the only obstacle had been her own hypersensitivity.
For over twenty years she herself had been the only one to deny her right. What license, she was wont to ask, did an imitation or synthetic or amateur or "Red" Lensman have to wear the garb which meant so much to so many? Over those years, however, it had become increasingly widely known that hers was one of the five finest and most powerful minds in the entire Gray Legion; and when Co-ordinator Kinnison recalled her to active duty in Unattached status, that Legion passed by unanimous vote a resolution asking her to join them in Gray. Psychics all, they knew that nothing less would suffice; that if there was any trace of resentment or of antagonism or of feeling that she did not intrinsically belong, she would never don the uniform which every adherent of Civilization so revered and for which, deep down, she had always so intensely longed. The Legion had sent her these Grays. Kit had convinced her that she did actually deserve them.
For over twenty years, she had been the only one to deny her right. What right, she would often ask, did a fake or synthetic or amateur or "Red" Lensman have to wear the uniform that meant so much to so many? Yet, over those years, it became widely recognized that she had one of the five finest and most powerful minds in the entire Gray Legion. When Co-ordinator Kinnison called her back to active duty as an independent, that Legion unanimously voted to invite her to join them in Gray. All psychics, they understood that anything less wouldn’t work; if there was any hint of resentment or hostility or a feeling that she didn’t truly belong, she would never wear the uniform that every supporter of Civilization deeply respected and for which, deep down, she had always longed. The Legion had given her these Grays. Kit had convinced her that she actually deserved them.
She really should wear them. She would.
She should definitely wear them. She would.
She put them on, thrilling to the core as she did so, and made the quick little gesture she had seen Kim make so many times. Lensman's Seal. No one, however accustomed, has ever donned or ever will don unmoved the plain gray leather of the Unattached Lensman of the Galactic Patrol.
She put them on, feeling excited to the core as she did, and made the quick little gesture she had seen Kim do so many times. Lensman's Seal. No one, no matter how experienced, has ever put on or ever will put on the plain gray leather of the Unattached Lensman of the Galactic Patrol without being moved.
Hands on hips, she studied herself minutely and approvingly, both in the mirror and by means of her vastly more efficient sense of perception. She wriggled a little, and giggled inwardly as she remembered deploring as "exhibitionistic" this same conduct in her oldest daughter.
Hands on her hips, she examined herself closely and with satisfaction, both in the mirror and through her much sharper perception. She wiggled a bit and chuckled to herself as she recalled having criticized this same behavior as "attention-seeking" in her oldest daughter.
The Grays fitted her perfectly. A bit revealing, perhaps, but her figure was still good—very good, as a matter of fact. Not a speck of dirt or tarnish. Her DeLameters were fully charged. Her tremendous Lens flamed brilliantly upon her wrist. She looked—and felt—ready. She could hit absolute max in a fraction of a microsecond. If she had to get really tough, she would. She sent out a call.
The Grays fit her perfectly. A bit revealing, maybe, but her figure was still great—really great, actually. Not a hint of dirt or tarnish. Her DeLameters were fully charged. Her amazing Lens shone brightly on her wrist. She looked—and felt—ready. She could hit absolute max in a fraction of a microsecond. If she needed to get really tough, she would. She sent out a call.
"Helen of Lyrane! I know they've got you around here somewhere, and, if any of your guards try to screen out this thought, I'll burn their brains out. Clarrissa of Sol III calling. Come in, Helen!"
"Helen of Lyrane! I know they have you here somewhere, and if any of your guards try to block this thought, I'll fry their brains. Clarrissa of Sol III calling. Come in, Helen!"
"Clarrissa!" This time there was no interference. A world of welcome was in every nuance of the thought. "Where are you?"
"Clarrissa!" This time there was no interruption. A world of warmth was in every detail of the thought. "Where are you?"
"High up, at—" Clarrissa gave her position. "I'm in my speedster, so can get to anywhere on the planet in minutes. More important, where are you? And why?"
"High up, at—" Clarrissa stated her location. "I'm in my speedster, so I can reach anywhere on the planet in just minutes. More importantly, where are you? And why?"
"In jail, in my own—the Elder Person's—office." Queens should have palaces, but Lyrane's ruler did not. Everything was strictly utilitarian. "The tower on the corner, remember? On the top floor. 'Why' is too long to discuss now—I'd better tell you as much as possible of what you should know, while there is time."
"In jail, in my own—the Elder Person's—office." Queens should have palaces, but Lyrane's ruler did not. Everything was strictly utilitarian. "The tower on the corner, remember? On the top floor. 'Why' is too long to discuss now—I'd better tell you as much as possible of what you should know, while there is time."
"Time? Are you in danger?"
"Time? Are you in trouble?"
"Yes. Ladora would have killed me long ago if it had dared. My following grows less daily, the Boskonians stronger. The guards have already summoned help. They are coming now, to take me."
"Yes. Ladora would have killed me a long time ago if it had the guts. My followers are dwindling every day, while the Boskonians are getting stronger. The guards have already called for backup. They’re on their way now to take me."
"That's what they think!" Clarrissa had already reached the scene. She had exactly the velocity she wanted. She slanted downward in a screaming dive. "Can you tell whether they're limbering up any of that ack-ack around the office, or not?"
"That's what they think!" Clarrissa had already arrived at the scene. She was moving just as fast as she needed to. She angled downward in a loud dive. "Can you tell if they're getting any of that anti-aircraft ready around the office, or not?"
"I don't believe so—I don't feel any such thoughts."
"I don't think so—I don't have any thoughts like that."
"QX. Get away from the window." If they hadn't started already, they never would start, the Red Lensman was deadly sure of that.
"QX. Move away from the window." If they hadn't begun yet, they never would, the Red Lensman was absolutely certain of that.
She came within range—her range—of the guns. She was in time. Several gunners were running toward their stations. None of them arrived. The speedster leveled off and stuck its hard nose into and almost through the indicated room; reinforced concrete, steel bars, and glass showering abroad as it did so. The port snapped open. As Helen leaped in, Clarrissa practically threw Ladora out.
She came within range—her range—of the guns. She was just in time. Several gunners were rushing to their stations. None of them made it. The speedster leveled off and shoved its hard nose into, nearly breaking through, the indicated room; reinforced concrete, steel bars, and glass flew everywhere as it did. The port snapped open. As Helen jumped in, Clarrissa practically hurled Ladora out.
"Bring Ladora back!" Helen demanded. "I shall have its life!"
"Bring Ladora back!" Helen insisted. "I will take its life!"
"Nix!" Clarrissa snapped. "I know everything that she does. We've other fish to fry, my dear."
"Nix!" Clarrissa said sharply. "I know everything she does. We have other things to take care of, my dear."
The massive door clanged shut. The speedster darted forward, straight through the solid concrete wall. That small vessel, solidly built of beryllium alloys, had been designed to take brutal punishment. She took it.
The huge door slammed shut. The speedster raced ahead, going right through the solid concrete wall. That small craft, sturdily made from beryllium alloys, was built to endure severe damage. And it did.
Out in open space, Clarrissa went free, leaving the artificial gravity at normal. Helen stood up, took Clarrissa's hand, and shook it gravely and strongly; a gesture at which the Red Lensman almost choked.
Out in open space, Clarrissa was free, leaving the artificial gravity set to normal. Helen stood up, took Clarrissa's hand, and shook it seriously and firmly; a gesture that almost made the Red Lensman choke.
Helen of Lyrane had changed even less than had the Earthwoman. She was still six feet tall; erect, taut, springy, and poised. She didn't weigh a pound more than the one-eighty she had scaled twenty-odd years ago. Her vivid auburn hair showed not one strand of gray. Her eyes were as clear and as proud; her skin almost as fine and firm.
Helen of Lyrane had changed even less than the Earthwoman. She was still six feet tall; upright, fit, energetic, and composed. She didn't weigh more than the one-eighty she had been twenty years ago. Her bright auburn hair had not a single strand of gray. Her eyes were just as clear and proud; her skin almost as smooth and firm.
"You are, then, alone?" In spite of her control, Helen's thought showed relief.
"You are alone, then?" Despite her composure, relief was evident in Helen's thoughts.
"Yes. My hus ... Kimball Kinnison is very busy elsewhere." Clarrissa understood perfectly. Helen, after twenty years of thinking things over, really liked her; but she still simply couldn't stand a male, not even Kim; any more than Clarrissa could ever adapt herself to the Lyranian habit of using the neuter pronoun "it" when referring to one of themselves. She couldn't. Anybody who ever got a glimpse of Helen would have to think of her as "she"! But enough of this wool-gathering—which had taken perhaps one millisecond of time.
"Yes. My husband... Kimball Kinnison is really busy elsewhere." Clarrissa understood perfectly. Helen, after twenty years of contemplation, genuinely liked her; but she still just couldn’t tolerate a man, not even Kim; just like Clarrissa could never get used to the Lyranian habit of using the neuter pronoun "it" when talking about one of their own. She couldn’t. Anyone who ever caught a glimpse of Helen would have to see her as "she"! But enough of this daydreaming—which had probably only taken a millisecond.
"There's nothing to keep us from working together perfectly," Clarrissa's thought flashed on. "Ladora didn't know much, and you do. So tell me all about things, so that we can decide where to begin!"
"There's nothing stopping us from working together perfectly," Clarrissa thought. "Ladora didn’t know much, but you do. So tell me everything, so we can figure out where to start!"
XVII.
XVII.
When Kandron called his minion in that small and nameless base to learn whether or not he had succeeded in trapping the Palainian Lensman, Nadreck's relay station functioned so perfectly, and Nadreck was so completely in charge of his captive's mind, that the caller could feel nothing out of the ordinary. Ultra-suspicious though Kandron was, there was nothing whatever to indicate that anything had changed at, or pertaining to, that base since he had last called its commander. That individual's subconscious mind reacted properly to the key stimulus. The conscious mind took over, remembered, and answered properly a series of trick questions.
When Kandron called his assistant at that small, unnamed base to find out if he had successfully captured the Palainian Lensman, Nadreck's relay station worked flawlessly, and Nadreck was completely in control of his captive's mind, so the caller felt nothing unusual. Despite Kandron's extreme suspicion, there was absolutely no sign that anything had changed at the base or regarding it since he last spoke to its commander. The commander's subconscious mind responded correctly to the key prompts. The conscious mind then took over, recalled, and answered a series of tricky questions accurately.
These things occurred because the Base Commander was still alive. His ego, the pattern and matrix of his personality, was still in existence and had not been changed. What Kandron did not and could not suspect was that that ego was no longer in control of the commander's mind, brain, or body; that it was utterly unable of its own volition, either to think any iota of independent thought or to stimulate any single physical cell. The Onlonian's ego was present—just barely present—but that was all. It was Nadreck who, using that ego as a guide and, in a sense, as a helplessly impotent transformer, received the call. Nadreck made those exactly correct replies. Nadreck was now ready to render a detailed and fully documented—and completely mendacious—report upon his own destruction!
These things happened because the Base Commander was still alive. His ego, the makeup of his personality, was still there and hadn’t changed. What Kandron didn’t realize and couldn’t suspect was that this ego was no longer in control of the commander’s mind, brain, or body; it was completely incapable of independent thought or stimulating any physical action. The Onlonian’s ego was there—just barely—but that was it. It was Nadreck who, using that ego as a guide and, in a way, as a powerless intermediary, received the call. Nadreck gave all the right answers. Nadreck was now ready to provide a detailed and fully documented—and totally deceptive—report about his own destruction!
Nadreck's special tracers were already out, determining line and intensity. Strippers and analyzers were busily at work on the fringes of the beam, dissecting out, isolating, and identifying each of the many scraps of extraneous thought accompanying the main beam. These side-thoughts, in fact, were Nadreck's prime concern. The Second-Stage Lensmen had learned that no being—except possibly an Arisian—could narrow a beam of thought down to one single, pure sequence. Only Nadreck, however, recognized in those side-bands a rich field; only he had designed and developed mechanisms with which to work that field.
Nadreck's special tracers were already out, measuring line and intensity. Strippers and analyzers were hard at work on the edges of the beam, breaking down, isolating, and identifying each of the many stray thoughts that accompanied the main beam. These side thoughts were, in fact, Nadreck's main focus. The Second-Stage Lensmen had learned that no being—except possibly an Arisian—could narrow a beam of thought down to one single, pure sequence. Only Nadreck, however, saw those side bands as a valuable area; only he had designed and developed tools to work with that area.
The stronger and clearer the mind, the fewer and less complete were the extraneous fragments of thought; but Nadreck knew that even Kandron's brain would carry quite a few such nongermane accompaniments, and from each of those bits he could reconstruct an entire sequence as accurately as a competent paleontologist reconstructs a prehistoric animal from one fossilized piece of bone.
The stronger and clearer the mind, the fewer and less complete the random fragments of thought; but Nadreck knew that even Kandron's brain would carry quite a few of those irrelevant pieces, and from each of those bits he could recreate an entire sequence as accurately as a skilled paleontologist reconstructs a prehistoric animal from a single fossilized bone.
Thus Nadreck was completely ready when the harshly domineering Kandron asked his first real question.
Thus Nadreck was fully prepared when the harshly domineering Kandron asked his first real question.
"I do not suppose that you have succeeded in killing the Lensman?"
"I don't think you've managed to kill the Lensman, have you?"
"Yes, Your Supremacy, I have." Nadreck could feel Kandron's start of surprise; could perceive without his instruments Kandron's fleeting thoughts of the hundreds of unsuccessful previous attempts upon his life. It was clear that the Onlonian was not at all credulous.
"Yes, Your Supremacy, I have." Nadreck could sense Kandron's initial surprise; he could pick up on Kandron's brief thoughts about the hundreds of failed assassination attempts on his life without needing any devices. It was obvious that the Onlonian was far from gullible.
"Report in detail!" Kandron ordered.
"Give a detailed report!" Kandron ordered.
Nadreck did so, adhering rigidly to the truth up to the moment in which his probes of force had touched off the Boskonian alarms. Then:
Nadreck did so, sticking strictly to the truth until the moment his force probes triggered the Boskonian alarms. Then:
"Spy-ray photographs taken at the instant of alarm show an indetectable speedster, with one, and only one occupant, as Your Supremacy anticipated. A careful study of all the pictures taken of that occupant shows: first, that he was definitely alive at that time, and was neither a projection nor an artificial mechanism; and second, that his physical measurements agree in every particular with the specifications furnished by Your Supremacy as being those of Nadreck of Palain VII.
"Spy-ray photos captured at the moment of alarm reveal an undetectable speedster, with just one occupant, just as Your Supremacy predicted. A thorough examination of all the pictures of that occupant shows: first, that he was definitely alive at that time and was neither a projection nor a robotic device; and second, that his physical measurements match exactly with the specifications provided by Your Supremacy for Nadreck of Palain VII."
"Since Your Supremacy personally computed and supervised the placement of those projectors," Nadreck went smoothly on, "you know that the possibility is vanishingly small that any material thing, free or inert, could have escaped destruction. As a check, I caused to be taken seven hundred twenty-nine—three to the sixth power—samples of the circumambient space, statistically at random, for analysis. After appropriate allowances for the exactly-observed elapsed times of sampling, diffusion of droplets and molecular and atomic aggregates, temperatures, pressures, and all other factors known or assumed to be operating, I determined that there had been present in the center of action of our beams a mass of approximately four thousand six hundred seventy-eight point one metric tons. This value, Your Supremacy will note, is in close agreement with the most efficient mass of an indetectable speedster designed for long-distance work."
"Since Your Supremacy personally calculated and oversaw the positioning of those projectors," Nadreck continued smoothly, "you know that the chance of any material object, whether free or not, escaping destruction is incredibly small. As a verification, I took seven hundred twenty-nine—three to the sixth power—samples of the surrounding space, chosen randomly for analysis. After adjusting for the precisely measured times of sampling, the diffusion of droplets and molecular and atomic groups, temperatures, pressures, and all other factors known or assumed to be at play, I found that there was approximately four thousand six hundred seventy-eight point one metric tons present at the center of our beam's action. This figure, Your Supremacy will observe, closely aligns with the optimal mass of an undetectable speedster meant for long-distance operations."
That figure was in fact closer than close. It was an almost exact statement of the actual mass of Nadreck's ship.
That figure was actually really accurate. It was almost an exact representation of the actual mass of Nadreck's ship.
"Exact composition?" Kandron demanded.
"Exact makeup?" Kandron demanded.
Nadreck recited a rapid-fire string of elements and figures. They, too, were correct within the experimental error of a very good analyst. The Base Commander could not possibly have known them; but it was well within the bounds of possibility that the insidious Kandron would. He did. He was now practically certain that his ablest and bitterest enemy had been destroyed at last, but there were still a few lingering shreds of doubt.
Nadreck quickly listed a series of elements and numbers. They were accurate within the experimental error of a top-notch analyst. The Base Commander couldn't have known them, but it was entirely possible that the sly Kandron would. He did. He was now almost sure that his most capable and fiercest enemy had finally been defeated, but there were still a few lingering doubts.
"Let me look over your work," Kandron directed.
"Let me check your work," Kandron said.
"Yes, Your Supremacy." Nadreck the Thorough was ready for even that extreme test. Through the eyes of the ultimately enslaved Base Commander Kandron checked and rechecked Nadreck's pictures, Nadreck's charts and diagrams, Nadreck's more than four hundred pages of mathematical, physical, and chemical notes and determinations; all without finding a single flaw.
"Yes, Your Supremacy." Nadreck the Thorough was prepared for even that extreme challenge. Through the eyes of the completely controlled Base Commander, Kandron scrutinized and re-examined Nadreck's images, Nadreck's graphs and diagrams, Nadreck's more than four hundred pages of mathematical, physical, and chemical notes and conclusions; all without discovering a single mistake.
In the end Kandron was ready to believe that Nadreck had in fact ceased to exist. However, he himself had not done the work. There was no corpse. If he himself had killed the Palainian, if he himself had actually felt the Lensman's life depart in the grasp of his own tentacles, then, and only then, would he have known that Nadreck was dead. As it was, even though the work had been done in exact accordance with his own instructions, there remained an infinitesimal uncertainty. Wherefore:
In the end, Kandron was ready to believe that Nadreck had truly stopped existing. However, he hadn’t done the work himself. There was no body. If he had killed the Palainian, if he had actually felt the Lensman's life fade away in his own grasp, then, and only then, would he have known that Nadreck was dead. As it was, even though the work had been done exactly as he had instructed, a tiny uncertainty lingered. Therefore:
"Shift your field of operations to cover X-174, Y-240, Z-16. Do not relax your vigilance in the slightest because of what has happened." He considered briefly the idea of allowing his minion to call him, in case anything happened, but decided against it. "Are the men standing up?"
"Change your area of operations to cover X-174, Y-240, Z-16. Don't let your guard down at all because of what has happened." He briefly thought about letting his assistant call him if anything came up, but decided against it. "Are the men ready?"
"Yes, Your Supremacy, they are in very good shape indeed."
"Yes, Your Supremacy, they are in excellent condition indeed."
And so on. "Yes, Your Supremacy, the psychologist is doing a very fine job. Yes, Your Supremacy ... yes ... yes ... yes—"
And so on. "Yes, Your Supremacy, the psychologist is doing an excellent job. Yes, Your Supremacy ... yes ... yes ... yes—"
Very shortly after the characteristically Kandronesque ending of that interview, Nadreck had learned everything he needed to know. He knew where Kandron was and what he was doing. He knew much of what Kandron had done during the preceding twenty years; and, since he himself figured prominently in many of those sequences, they constituted invaluable checks upon the validity of his other reconstructions. He knew the construction, the armament, and the various ingenious mechanisms, including the locks, of Kandron's vessel; he knew more than any other outsider had ever known of Kandron's private life. He knew where Kandron was going next, and what he was going to do there. He knew in broad what Kandron intended to do during the coming century.
Very shortly after the typically Kandronesque ending of that interview, Nadreck had learned everything he needed to know. He knew where Kandron was and what he was doing. He was aware of much of what Kandron had done over the past twenty years; and, since he himself played a significant role in many of those events, they served as invaluable checks on the accuracy of his other reconstructions. He knew the design, the weaponry, and the various clever mechanisms, including the locks, of Kandron's ship; he knew more about Kandron's private life than any other outsider had ever known. He knew where Kandron was headed next, and what he planned to do there. He had a general idea of what Kandron intended to accomplish in the coming century.
Thus well informed, Nadreck set his speedster into a course toward the planet of Civilization which was Kandron's next objective. He did not hurry; it was no part of his plan to interfere in any way in the horrible program of planet-wide madness and slaughter which Kandron had in mind. It simply did not occur to him to try to save the planet as well as to kill the Onlonian; Nadreck, being Nadreck, took without doubt or question the safest and surest course.
Thus well informed, Nadreck set his speedster on a path toward the planet of Civilization, which was Kandron's next target. He didn't rush; it wasn't his intention to intervene in the terrible plan of widespread chaos and destruction that Kandron aimed to execute. It didn't even cross his mind to try to save the planet while also eliminating the Onlonian; Nadreck, being himself, chose without hesitation the safest and most certain route.
Nadreck knew that Kandron would set his vessel into an orbit around the planet, and that he would take a small boat—a flitter—for the one personal visit necessary to establish his lines of communication and control. Vessel and flitter would be alike indetectable, of course; but Nadreck found the one easily enough and knew when the other left its mother-ship. Then, using his lightest, stealthiest spy rays, the Palainian set about the exceedingly delicate business of boarding the Boskonian craft.
Nadreck knew Kandron would put his ship into orbit around the planet and that he would take a small boat—a flitter—for the one personal visit needed to set up his lines of communication and control. Both the ship and the flitter would be practically undetectable, of course; but Nadreck found the first one easily enough and knew when the second left its mothership. Then, using his lightest, stealthiest spy rays, the Palainian started the tricky task of boarding the Boskonian craft.
That undertaking could be made a story in its own right, for Kandron did not leave his ship unguarded. However, merely by thinking about his own safety, Kandron had all unwittingly given away the keys to his supposedly impregnable fortress. While Kandron was wondering whether or not the Lensman was really dead, and especially after he had been convinced that he most probably was, the Onlonian's thoughts had touched fleetingly upon a multitude of closely-related subjects. Would it be safe to abandon some of the more onerous precautions he had always taken, and which had served him so well for so many years? And as he thought of them, each one of his safeguards flashed at least partially into view; and for Nadreck, any significant part was practically as good as the whole. Kandron's protective devices, therefore, did not protect. Projectors, designed to flame out against intruders, remained cold. Ports opened; and as Nadreck touched sundry buttons, various invisible beams, whose breaking would have produced unpleasant results, ceased to exist. In short, Nadreck knew all the answers. If he had not been coldly certain that his information was complete, he would not have acted at all.
That mission could be a story on its own because Kandron didn’t leave his ship unguarded. However, by only focusing on his own safety, Kandron unknowingly revealed the keys to his supposedly impenetrable fortress. While Kandron was thinking about whether the Lensman was really dead, and especially after he became convinced he probably was, the Onlonian briefly considered a range of related topics. Was it safe to drop some of the more burdensome precautions he had always taken that had worked well for him for so many years? As he thought about them, each safeguard came partially to mind; and for Nadreck, any significant part was nearly as good as knowing the whole system. Therefore, Kandron's protective devices were ineffective. Projectors meant to take out intruders stayed inactive. Ports opened; and as Nadreck pressed various buttons, several invisible beams that could have caused serious trouble ceased to exist. In short, Nadreck knew all the answers. If he hadn't been completely sure that his information was thorough, he wouldn't have acted at all.
After entry, his first care was to send out spotting devices which would give ample warning in case the Onlonian should return unexpectedly soon. Then, working in the service-spaces behind instrument boards and panels, in junction boxes, and in various other out-of-the-way places, he cut into lead after lead, ran wire after wire, and installed item after item of apparatus and equipment upon which he had been at work for weeks. He finished his work undisturbed. He checked and rechecked the circuits, making absolutely certain that every major one of the vessel's controlling leads ran to or through at least one of the things he had just installed. With painstaking nicety he obliterated every visible sign of his visit. He departed as carefully as he had come; restoring to full efficiency as he went each one of Kandron's burglar alarms.
After entering, his first priority was to send out detection devices that would provide plenty of warning in case the Onlonian returned unexpectedly soon. Then, working in the service spaces behind instrument boards and panels, in junction boxes, and in various other hidden spots, he cut into lead after lead, ran wire after wire, and installed item after item of equipment he had been working on for weeks. He finished his tasks without interruption. He checked and double-checked the circuits, making sure that every major control lead of the vessel went to or through at least one of the devices he had just installed. With meticulous care, he erased every trace of his presence. He left as carefully as he had arrived, restoring each of Kandron's burglar alarms to full functionality as he went.
Kandron returned, entered his ship as usual, stored his flitter, and extended a tentacular member toward the row of switches on his panel.
Kandron came back, went into his ship like always, put away his flitter, and reached out with a tentacle towards the row of switches on his control panel.
"Don't touch anything, Kandron," he was advised by a thought as cold and as deadly as any one of his own; and upon the Onlonian equivalent of a visiplate there appeared the one likeness which he least expected and least desired to perceive.
"Don't touch anything, Kandron," a thought as cold and deadly as his own warned him; and on the Onlonian version of a visiplate, the one image he least expected and wanted to see appeared.
"Nadreck of Palain VII—Star A Star—THE Lensman!" The Onlonian was physically and emotionally incapable of gasping, but the idea is appropriate. "You have, then, wired and mined this ship."
"Nadreck of Palain VII—Star A Star—THE Lensman!" The Onlonian couldn't gasp, either physically or emotionally, but the thought fits well. "So, you've wired and mined this ship, then."
There was a subdued clicking of relays. The Bergenholm came up to speed, the speedster spun about and darted straight away from the planet under a couple of kilodynes of drive.
There was a soft clicking of relays. The Bergenholm accelerated, the speedster spun around, and shot directly away from the planet with a couple of kilodynes of thrust.
"I am Nadreck of Palain VII, yes. One of the group of Lensmen whose collective activities you have ascribed to Star A Star and the Lensman. Your ship is, as you have deduced, mined. The only reason you did not die as you entered it is that I wish to be absolutely certain; and not merely statistically so, that it is actually Kandron of Onlo, and not someone else, who dies."
"I am Nadreck of Palain VII, yes. I'm one of the Lensmen whose actions you’ve attributed to Star A Star and the Lensman. Your ship is, as you've figured out, rigged. The only reason you didn't die when you entered it is that I want to be completely sure; and not just statistically sure, that it’s actually Kandron of Onlo, and not someone else, who dies."
"That unutterable fool!" Kandron quivered in helpless rage. "Oh, that I had taken the time and killed you myself!"
"That incredible idiot!" Kandron trembled in powerless anger. "Oh, if only I had taken the time to kill you myself!"
"If you had done your own work, the techniques I used here could not have been employed, and you might have been in no danger at the present moment," Nadreck admitted, equably enough. "My powers are small, my intellect feeble, and what might have been has no present bearing. I am inclined, however, to question the validity of your conclusions, due to the known fact that you have been directing a campaign against me for over twenty years without success; whereas I have succeeded against you in less than half a year. My analysis is now complete. You may now touch any control you please. By the way, you do not deny that you are Kandron of Onlo, do you?"
"If you had done your own work, the methods I used here wouldn’t have been possible, and you might not be in any danger right now," Nadreck said calmly. "My abilities are limited, my mind is not very strong, and what could have happened doesn’t matter now. However, I can’t help but question the accuracy of your conclusions, considering you’ve been trying to take me down for over twenty years without success, while I’ve managed to beat you in less than six months. My analysis is now finished. You can now operate any control you want. By the way, you don’t deny that you are Kandron of Onlo, do you?"
Neither of those monstrous beings asked, suggested, or even thought of mercy. In neither of their languages was there any word for or concept of such a thing.
Neither of those monstrous beings asked, suggested, or even considered mercy. In neither of their languages was there any word or concept for such a thing.
"That would be idle. You have a record of my life pattern, of course, just as I have one of yours. But I cannot understand how you got through that—"
"That would be pointless. You have a record of how I live my life, just like I have one of yours. But I can't figure out how you managed to get through that—"
"It is not necessary that you should. Do you wish to close one of those switches or shall I?"
"It’s not necessary for you to do that. Do you want to turn off one of those switches, or should I?"
Kandron had been thinking for minutes, studying every aspect of his predicament. Knowing Nadreck, he knew just how desperate the situation was. However, there was one very small chance—just one. The way he had come was clear. He knew that that was the only clear way. Wherefore, to gain an extra instant of time, he reached out toward a switch; but even while he was reaching he put every ounce of his tremendous strength into a leap which hurled him across the room toward his flitter.
Kandron had been thinking for minutes, analyzing every angle of his situation. Knowing Nadreck, he understood how desperate things really were. However, there was one tiny chance—just one. The route he had taken was clear. He recognized that it was the only clear path. So, to buy himself a little extra time, he reached for a switch; but even as he was reaching, he summoned all of his incredible strength for a leap that propelled him across the room toward his flitter.
No luck. One of Nadreck's minor tentacles was already curled around a switch, tensed and ready. Kandron had not moved a foot when a relay snapped shut and four canisters of duodec detonated as one. Duodecaplylatomate, that frightful detonant whose violence is exceeded only by that of nuclear disintegration itself!
No luck. One of Nadreck's smaller tentacles was already wrapped around a switch, tense and ready. Kandron hadn't moved an inch when a relay clicked shut and four canisters of duodec exploded simultaneously. Duodecaplylatomate, that terrifying explosive whose force is only surpassed by nuclear disintegration itself!
There was an appalling flash of viciously white light, which expanded in microseconds into an enormous globe of incandescent gas. Cooling and darkening as it expanded rapidly into the near-vacuum of interplanetary space, the gases and vapors soon became invisible. Through and throughout the entire volume of volatilization Nadreck drove analyzers and detectors, until it was a mathematical certainty that no particle of material substance larger in diameter than five microns remained of either Kandron or his spaceship. He then called the Gray Lensman.
There was a shocking burst of harsh white light that quickly grew into a massive sphere of glowing gas. As it rapidly expanded into the near-empty space between planets, the gases and vapors began to cool and fade from view. Nadreck pushed analyzers and detectors through the whole area of vaporization until it was mathematically confirmed that no particles larger than five microns were left of either Kandron or his spaceship. He then contacted the Gray Lensman.
"Kinnison. Nadreck of Palain VII calling, to report that my assignment has been completed. I have destroyed Kandron of Onlo."
"Kinnison. Nadreck of Palain VII here, reporting that I’ve finished my assignment. I’ve taken care of Kandron of Onlo."
"Good! Fine business, ace! What kind of a picture did you get? He must have known something about the higher echelons—or did he? Was he just another dead end?"
"Great! Awesome job! What kind of picture did you get? He must have known something about the higher-ups—or did he? Was he just another dead end?"
"I did not go into that."
"I wasn't into that."
"Huh? Why not?" Kinnison demanded, exasperation in every line of his thought.
"Huh? Why not?" Kinnison asked, frustration evident in every part of his thoughts.
"Because it was not included in the project," Nadreck explained, patiently. "You already know that one must concentrate in order to work efficiently. To secure the requisite minimum of information it was necessary to steer his thoughts into one, and only one, set of channels. There were some foreign side-bands, of course, and it may be that some of them touched upon this new subject which you have now, too late, introduced ... no, there were no such."
"Because it wasn't included in the project," Nadreck explained patiently. "You already know that you have to concentrate to work efficiently. To get the essential minimum of information, it was necessary to direct his thoughts into one, and only one, specific area. There were some foreign side-notes, of course, and it might be that some of them addressed this new topic which you have now, too late, brought up... no, there were no such."
"Damnation!" Kinnison exploded; then by main strength shut himself up. "QX, ace; skip it. But listen, my spiny and murderous friend. Get this—engrave it in big type right on the top-side inside of your thick skull—what we want is INFORMATION, not mere liquidation. Next time you get hold of such a big shot as Kandron must have been, don't kill him until either: first, you get some leads as to who or what the real head of the outfit is; or, second, you make sure that he doesn't know. Then kill him all you want to, but FIND OUT WHAT HE KNOWS FIRST. Have I made myself clear this time?"
“Damnation!” Kinnison exclaimed, then forcefully shut himself off. “QX, ace; forget it. But listen, my spiky and deadly friend. Get this—engrave it in big letters right on the inside of your thick skull—what we need is INFORMATION, not just liquidation. Next time you come across someone as important as Kandron must have been, don’t kill him until either: first, you get some leads about who or what the real leader of the group is; or, second, you make sure he doesn’t know anything. Then go ahead and kill him, but FIND OUT WHAT HE KNOWS FIRST. Am I being clear this time?”
"You have, and as Co-ordinator your instructions should and will govern. I point out, however, that the introduction of a multiplicity of objectives into a problem not only destroys its unity, but also increases markedly both the time necessary for, and the actual personal danger involved in, its solution."
"You have, and as Coordinator, your instructions should and will guide us. However, I should point out that adding multiple objectives to a problem not only breaks its unity but also significantly increases both the time needed for and the personal risk involved in solving it."
"So what?" Kinnison countered, as evenly as he could. "That way, we may be able to get the answer some day. Your way, we never will. But the thing's done—there's no use yapping and yowling about it now. Have you any ideas as to what you should do next?"
"So what?" Kinnison replied, trying to stay calm. "This way, we might find the answer someday. Your way, we never will. But it's done—there's no point in complaining about it now. Do you have any ideas on what we should do next?"
"No. Whatever you wish, that I shall try to do."
"No. Whatever you want, I'll do my best to make it happen."
"I'll check with the others." He did so, receiving no helpful ideas until he consulted his wife.
"I'll check with the others." He did that, getting no useful suggestions until he talked to his wife.
"Hi, Kim, my dear!" came Clarrissa's buoyant thought; and, after a brief but intense greeting: "Glad you called. Nothing definite enough yet to report to you officially, but there are indications that Lyrane IX may be an important—"
"Hi, Kim, my dear!" Clarrissa’s cheerful thought came through; and after a quick but heartfelt greeting: "I’m glad you called. Nothing concrete enough to officially report yet, but there are signs that Lyrane IX might be significant—"
"Nine?" Kinnison interrupted. "Not Eight again?"
"Nine?" Kinnison interrupted. "Not Eight again?"
"Nine," she confirmed. "A new item. So I may be doing a flit over there one of these days."
"Nine," she confirmed. "A new item. So I might be heading over there one of these days."
"Uh-uh," he denied. "Lyrane IX would be none of your business. Stay away from it."
"Uh-uh," he said. "Lyrane IX isn't your concern. Stay away from it."
"Says who?" she demanded. "We went into this once before, Kim, about you telling me what I could and couldn't do."
"Says who?" she asked. "We've talked about this before, Kim, about you telling me what I can and can't do."
"Yeah, and I came out second best." Kinnison grinned. "But now, as the Co-ordinator, I make suggestions to even Second-Stage Lensmen, and they follow them—or else. I, therefore, suggest officially that you stay away from Lyrane IX on the grounds that since it is colder than a Palainian's heart, it is definitely not your problem, but Nadreck's. And personally, I am adding that if you don't behave yourself I'll come over there and administer appropriate physical persuasion."
"Yeah, and I came out second best." Kinnison grinned. "But now, as the Co-ordinator, I make suggestions to even Second-Stage Lensmen, and they follow them—or else. So, I officially suggest that you stay away from Lyrane IX because, since it’s colder than a Palainian's heart, it’s definitely not your problem, but Nadreck’s. And personally, I'm adding that if you don't behave, I'll come over there and give you a proper talking to."
"Come on over—that would be fun!" Clarrissa giggled, then sobered quickly. "But seriously, you win, I guess—this time. You'll keep me informed?"
"Come on over—that would be fun!" Clarrissa giggled, then got serious quickly. "But really, you win, I suppose—this time. You'll keep me updated?"
"I'll do that. Clear ether, Chris!" and he turned back to the Palainian.
"I'll do that. Clear ether, Chris!" he said as he turned back to the Palainian.
"... so you see this is your problem. Go to it, little chum."
"... so you see this is your problem. Go for it, buddy."
"I go, Kinnison."
"I'm leaving, Kinnison."
XVIII.
XVIII.
For hours Camilla Kinnison and Tregonsee wrestled separately and fruitlessly with the problem of the elusive "X." Then, after she had studied the Rigellian's mind in a fashion which he could neither detect nor employ, Camilla broke the mental silence.
For hours, Camilla Kinnison and Tregonsee struggled alone and unsuccessfully with the elusive "X." Then, after she had explored the Rigellian's mind in a way that he couldn't sense or use, Camilla finally interrupted the mental quiet.
"Uncle Trig, my conclusions frighten me. Can you conceive of the possibility that it was contact with my mind, not yours, that made 'X' run away?"
"Uncle Trig, my conclusions scare me. Can you imagine that it was contact with my mind, not yours, that made 'X' run away?"
"That is the only tenable conclusion. I know the limitations of my own mind, but I have never been able to guess at the capabilities of yours. I fear that I, at least, underestimated our opponent."
"That's the only reasonable conclusion. I understand the limits of my own mind, but I've never been able to figure out the full potential of yours. I'm afraid I, at least, underestimated our opponent."
"I know that I did, and I was terribly wrong. I shouldn't have tried to fool you, either, even a little bit. There are some things about me that I just can't show to most people, but you are different—you're such a wonderful person!"
"I know I did, and I was completely wrong. I shouldn't have tried to trick you, even a little. There are things about me that I just can't reveal to most people, but you are different—you're such an amazing person!"
"Thanks, Camilla, for your trust." Understandingly, he did not go on to say that he would keep on being worthy of it. "I accept the fact that you Five, being children of two Second-Stage Lensmen, are basically beyond my comprehension. There are indications that you do not as yet thoroughly understand yourself. You have, however, decided upon a course of action."
"Thanks, Camilla, for your trust." He understood that he didn’t need to add that he would continue to be deserving of it. "I realize that you Five, being kids of two Second-Stage Lensmen, are pretty much beyond my understanding. There are signs that you don’t fully understand yourselves yet. However, you have chosen a path to follow."
"Oh—I'm so relieved! Yes, I have. But before we go into that, I haven't been able to solve the problem of 'X.' More, I have proved that I cannot solve it without more data. Therefore, you can't, either. Check?"
"Oh—I'm so relieved! Yes, I have. But before we get into that, I haven't been able to figure out the problem of 'X.' In fact, I’ve shown that I can't solve it without more information. So, you can’t solve it either. Got it?"
"I had not yet reached that conclusion, but I accept your statement as truth."
"I haven't come to that conclusion yet, but I take your statement as true."
"One of those uncommon powers of mine, to which you referred a while ago, is a wide range of perception, from large masses down to extremely tiny components. Another, or perhaps a part of the same one, is that, after resolving and analyzing these fine details, I can build up a logical and coherent whole by processes of interpolation and extrapolation."
"One of the rare abilities I mentioned earlier is my broad range of perception, from large groups down to very small details. Another aspect, or maybe just another part of the same skill, is that once I’ve broken down and analyzed these tiny details, I can create a logical and cohesive whole through processes of interpolation and extrapolation."
"I can believe that such things would be possible to such a mind as yours must be. Go on."
"I can believe that such things are possible for a mind like yours. Go ahead."
"Well, that is how I know that I underestimated Mr. 'X.' Whoever or whatever he is, I am completely unable to resolve the structure of his thought. I gave you all I got of it. Look at it again, please—hard. What can you make of it now?"
"Well, that's how I know I underestimated Mr. 'X.' Whoever or whatever he is, I just can't figure out how he thinks. I gave you everything I had on it. Take another look, please—really look at it. What do you make of it now?"
"It is exactly the same as it was before; a fragment of a simple and plain introductory thought to an audience. That is all."
"It’s exactly the same as it was before; a small piece of a straightforward and basic introductory idea for an audience. That’s all."
"That's all I can see, too, and that's what surprises me so." The hitherto imperturbable and serene Camilla got up and began to pace the floor. "That thought is apparently absolutely solid; and since that is a definitely impossible condition, the truth is that its structure is so fine that I cannot resolve it into its component units. This fact shows that I am not nearly so competent as I thought I was. When you and Dad and the others reached that point, you each went to Arisia. I have decided to do the same thing."
"That's all I can see too, and that's what surprises me the most." The previously calm and composed Camilla stood up and started to pace the floor. "That idea seems completely solid; and since it's definitely an impossible situation, the truth is that its structure is so intricate that I can't break it down into its basic parts. This shows that I'm not nearly as capable as I thought I was. When you, Dad, and the others got to that point, you all went to Arisia. I've decided to do the same."
"That decision seems eminently sound."
"That decision seems really wise."
"Thanks, Uncle Trig—that was what I hoped you would say. I have never been there, you know, and the idea scared me a little. Clear ether!"
"Thanks, Uncle Trig—that's exactly what I was hoping you'd say. I've never been there, you know, and the idea freaked me out a bit. Clear ether!"
There is no need to go into detail as to Camilla's bout with Mentor. Her mind, like Karen's, had had to mature of itself before any treatment could be really effective; but once mature, she took as much in one session as Kathryn had taken in all her many. She had not suggested that the Rigellian accompany her to Arisia; they both knew that he had already received all that he could take. Upon her return she greeted him as casually as though she had been gone only a matter of hours.
There’s no need to go into detail about Camilla’s experience with Mentor. Her mind, like Karen’s, had to mature on its own before any treatment could truly be effective; but once it did mature, she absorbed as much in one session as Kathryn had in all her many sessions combined. She didn’t suggest that the Rigellian come with her to Arisia; they both knew he had already gotten everything he could handle. Upon her return, she greeted him casually, as if she had only been gone for a few hours.
"What Mentor did to me, Uncle Trig, shouldn't have been done to a Delgonian catlat. It doesn't show too much, though, I hope—does it?"
"What Mentor did to me, Uncle Trig, shouldn't have happened to a Delgonian catlat. I hope it doesn't show too much, though—does it?"
"Not at all." He scanned her narrowly, both physically and mentally. "I can perceive no change in detail. In general, however, you have changed. You have developed."
"Not at all." He looked at her closely, both physically and mentally. "I don't see any specific changes. Overall, though, you have changed. You've grown."
"Yes, more than I would have believed possible. I can't do much with my present very poor transcription of that thought, since the all-important fine detail is missing. We'll have to intercept another one. I'll get it all, this time, and it will tell us a lot."
"Yes, more than I ever thought was possible. I can't do much with my current, really poor version of that thought since the crucial details are missing. We'll need to capture another one. I'll get it all this time, and it will give us a lot of information."
"But you did something with this one, I am sure. There must have been some developable features—a sort of latent-image effect?"
"But you did something with this one, I’m sure. There must have been some features that could be developed—like a kind of latent-image effect?"
"A little. Practically infinitesimal compared to what was really there. Physically, his classification to four places is TUUV; quite a bit like the Nevians, you notice. His home planet is big, and practically covered with liquid. No real cities, just groups of half-submerged, temporary structures. Mentality very high, but we knew that already. Normally, he thinks upon a very short wave, so short that he was then working at the very bottom of his range. His sun is a fairly hot main-sequence-star, of spectral class somewhere around F, and it's probably more or less variable, because there was quite a distinct implication of change. But that's normal enough, isn't it?"
"A little. Practically negligible compared to what was really there. Physically, his classification to four places is TUUV; quite similar to the Nevians, you’ll notice. His home planet is large and almost entirely covered with water. No real cities, just clusters of half-submerged, temporary structures. The mentality is very advanced, but we already knew that. Generally, he thinks on a very short wavelength, so short that he was then operating at the very bottom of his range. His sun is a fairly hot main-sequence star, of spectral class around F, and it’s probably somewhat variable, because there was a clear indication of change. But that's pretty typical, isn't it?"
Within the limits imposed by the amount and kind of data available, Camilla's observations and analyses had been perfect, her reconstruction flawless. She did not then have any idea, however, that "X" was in fact a spring-form Plooran. More, she did not even know that such a planet as Ploor existed, except for Mentor's one mention of it.
Within the constraints of the data she had, Camilla's observations and analyses were spot-on, her reconstruction was flawless. However, she had no idea that "X" was actually a spring-form Plooran. Furthermore, she didn’t even know that a planet called Ploor existed, aside from a single mention by Mentor.
"Of course. Peoples of planets of variable suns think that such suns are the only kind fit to have planets. You cannot reconstruct the nature of the change?"
"Of course. People from planets with different types of suns believe those suns are the only ones capable of supporting planets. Can't you figure out the nature of the change?"
"No. Worse, I can't find even a hint of where his planet is in space—but then, I probably couldn't, anyway, even with a whole, fresh thought to study."
"No. Even worse, I can't find any clue about where his planet is in space—but honestly, I probably wouldn't be able to, even if I had a clear, new idea to look at."
"Probably not. 'Rigel Four' would be an utterly meaningless thought to anyone ignorant of Rigel; and, except when making a conscious effort, as in directing strangers, I never think of its location in terms of galactic co-ordinates. I suppose that the location of a home planet is always taken for granted. That would seem to leave us just about where we were before in our search for 'X,' except for your implied ability to intercept another of his thoughts, almost at will. Explain, please."
"Probably not. 'Rigel Four' would mean absolutely nothing to anyone who doesn't know about Rigel; and unless I'm consciously trying, like when I'm guiding strangers, I never think about its location in terms of galactic coordinates. I guess the location of a home planet is always something we just assume. That puts us pretty much back where we started in our search for 'X,' except for your suggested ability to pick up another one of his thoughts almost at will. Can you explain that?"
"Not my ability—ours." Camilla smiled, confidently. "I couldn't do it alone, neither could you, but between us I don't believe that it will be too difficult. You, with your utterly calm, utterly unshakable certainty, can drive a thought to any corner of the universe. You can fix and hold it steady on any indicated atom. I can't do that, or anything like it, but with my present ability to detect and to analyze, I am not afraid of missing 'X' if we can come within parsecs of him. So my idea is a sort of piggy-back hunting trip; you to take me for a ride, mentally, very much as Worsel takes Con, physically. That would work, don't you think?"
"Not my ability—ours." Camilla smiled confidently. "I couldn't do it alone, and neither could you, but together I don't think it will be too hard. You, with your complete calmness and unshakeable certainty, can send a thought to any corner of the universe. You can pinpoint it and keep it focused on any specific atom. I can't do that, or anything like it, but with my current skills in detecting and analyzing, I’m not worried about missing 'X' if we can get within a few parsecs of him. So my idea is a kind of piggy-back hunting trip; you get to take me for a mental ride, just like Worsel takes Con for a physical one. That should work, don’t you think?"
"Perfectly, I am sure." The stolid Rigellian was immensely pleased. "Link your mind with mine, then, and we will set out. If you have no better plan of action mapped out, I would suggest starting at the point where we lost him and working outward, covering an expanding sphere."
"Absolutely, I'm sure." The expressionless Rigellian was very pleased. "Connect your mind with mine, and let's get going. If you don't have a better plan, I suggest we start from where we last lost him and work our way out, covering a growing area."
"You know best. I will stick to you wherever you go. I am ready."
"You know what’s best. I’ll follow you wherever you go. I’m ready."
Tregonsee launched his thought; a thought which, at a velocity not to be measured even in multiples of that of light, generated the surface of a continuously enlarging sphere of space. And with that thought, a very part of it, sped Camilla's incomprehensibly delicate, instantaneously reactive detector web. The Rigellian, with his unhuman perseverance, would have surveyed total space had it been necessary; and the now adult Camilla would have stayed with him. However, the patient pair did not have to comb all of space. In a matter of hours the girl's almost infinitely tenuous detector touched, with infinitesimal power and for an inappreciable instant of time, the exact thought-structure to which it had been so carefully attuned.
Tregonsee started his thought, a thought that, at a speed impossible to quantify even by the speed of light, created the surface of an ever-expanding sphere of space. With that thought, a part of it powered Camilla's incredibly delicate, instantaneously responsive detector web. The Rigellian, with his relentless determination, would have explored all of space if necessary; and now adult Camilla would have stayed with him. However, the patient pair didn’t need to search through all of space. In just a few hours, the girl’s almost infinitely fine detector made contact, with minimal power and for a fleeting moment, with the exact thought-structure to which it had been meticulously tuned.
"Halt!" she flashed, and Tregonsee's mighty superdreadnought shot away along the indicated line at maximum blast.
"Halt!" she shouted, and Tregonsee's massive superdreadnought sped off along the marked line at full power.
"You are not now thinking at him, of course, but how sure are you that he did not feel your detector?" Tregonsee asked.
"You’re not really thinking about him right now, but how sure are you that he didn’t sense your detector?" Tregonsee asked.
"Positive," the girl replied. "I couldn't even feel it myself until after a million-fold amplification. It was just a web, you know, not nearly solid enough for an analyzer or a recorder. I didn't touch his mind at all. However, when we get close enough to work efficiently, which will be in about five days, we will have to touch him. Assuming that he is as sensitive as we are, he will feel us; hence we will have to work fast and according to some definite plan. What are your ideas as to technique?"
"Definitely," the girl replied. "I couldn't even sense it myself until it was amplified a million times. It was just a web, you know, not solid enough for an analyzer or a recorder. I didn’t connect with his mind at all. However, when we get close enough to work effectively, which should be in about five days, we will need to make a connection. If he's as sensitive as we are, he will feel us; so we need to work quickly and follow a clear plan. What are your thoughts on the technique?"
"I may offer a suggestion or two, later, but I resign leadership to you. You already have made plans, have you not?"
"I might give you a suggestion or two later, but I’ll leave the leadership to you. You've already made plans, right?"
"Only a framework, I could not go into detail without consulting you. Since we agree that it was my mind that he did not like, you will have to make the first contact."
"Just a basic outline; I can’t go into specifics without talking to you first. Since we both agree that it was my way of thinking he didn’t like, you’ll need to make the first move."
"Of course. But since the action of thought is so nearly instantaneous, are you sure that you will be able to protect yourself in case he overcomes me at that first contact?" If the Rigellian gave any thought at all to his own fate in such a case, no trace of it was evident.
"Of course. But since thinking happens so quickly, are you sure you'll be able to protect yourself if he gets the upper hand in that first encounter?" If the Rigellian had any concerns about his own fate in that scenario, he didn’t show it at all.
"My screens are good. I am fairly certain that I could protect both of us, but it might slow me down a trifle; and even an instant's delay might keep me from getting the information we want. It would be better, I think, to call Kit in. Or, better yet, Kay. She can stop a superatomic bomb. With Kay covering us both, we will be free to put our full power into the offense."
"My screens are solid. I'm pretty sure I could protect both of us, but it might slow me down a bit; and even a moment's delay could prevent me from getting the information we need. It would be smarter, I think, to call Kit in. Or, even better, Kay. She can stop a superatomic bomb. With Kay watching our backs, we’ll be able to focus all our energy on the offense."
"And that offense is to be—?"
"And that offense is to be—?"
"I have no idea. We will work that out together."
"I don't know. We'll figure that out together."
Again they went into a union of minds; considering, weighing, analyzing, rejecting, and—a few times—accepting. And finally, well within the five-day time limit, they had drawn up a completely detailed plan of battle.
Again they came together to share their thoughts; discussing, evaluating, analyzing, rejecting, and—occasionally—agreeing. And in the end, well within the five-day deadline, they created a fully detailed battle plan.
How uselessly that time was spent! For that battle, instead of progressing according to their carefully worked-out plan, was ended almost in the instant of its beginning.
How wasteful that time was! Instead of following their carefully designed plan, that battle ended almost as soon as it started.
According to plan, Tregonsee tuned his mind to "X's" pattern as soon as they had come within working range. He reached out as delicately as he could; and his best was very fine work indeed. He might just as well have struck with all his power, for at the first touch of the fringe, extremely light and entirely innocuous though it was, the stranger's barriers flared into being and there came back instantly a mental bolt of such vicious intensity that it would have gone through Tregonsee's hardest-held block as though no barrier had been there. But that bolt did not strike Tregonsee's shield; he did not even know, until much later, that it had been sent. Instead, it struck Karen Kinnison's, which has already been described.
According to the plan, Tregonsee focused his mind on "X's" pattern as soon as they were within working range. He reached out as gently as he could, and his best was truly remarkable. He might as well have hit with all his strength, because at the first touch of the fringe—extremely light and completely harmless—the stranger's barriers shot up, and instantly a mental blast came back with such brutal force that it would have pierced through Tregonsee's strongest block as if there were no barrier at all. But that blast didn’t hit Tregonsee's shield; he didn’t even realize until much later that it had been sent. Instead, it impacted Karen Kinnison's, which has already been described.
It did not exactly bounce, nor did it cling, nor did it linger, even for a microsecond, to do battle as expected. It simply vanished; as though that minute interval of time had been sufficient for the enemy to have recovered from the shock of encountering a completely unexpected resistance, to have analyzed the texture of the shield, to have deduced from that analysis the full capabilities of its owner and operator, to have decided that he did not care to have any dealings with the entity so deduced, and finally, as he no doubt supposed, to have begun to retreat in good order.
It didn’t exactly bounce, cling, or linger, even for a split second, to fight as expected. It just disappeared; as if that brief moment had been enough for the enemy to recover from the surprise of facing completely unexpected resistance, to analyze the texture of the shield, to figure out the full capabilities of its owner and operator from that analysis, to decide that he wanted nothing to do with the entity he had just assessed, and finally, as he probably thought, to start retreating in an organized manner.
His retreat, however, was not in good order. He did not escape, this time. This time, as she had declared that she would be, Camilla was ready for anything—literally anything. Everything she had—and she had plenty—was on the trips; tense, taut, and poised. Knowing that Karen, the Ultimate of Defense, was on guard, she was wholly free to hurl her every force in the instant of perceiving the enemy's poignant thrust. Scarcely had the leading element of her attack touched the stranger's screens, however, when those screens, "X" himself, his vessel and any others that might have been accompanying it, and everything tangible in nearby space, all disappeared at once in the inconceivably violent, the ultimately cataclysmic detonation of a superatomic bomb.
His retreat, however, was a mess. He didn’t get away this time. This time, just as she had said she would be, Camilla was ready for anything—truly anything. Everything she had—and she had a lot—was on edge, tense, and ready. Knowing that Karen, the Ultimate of Defense, was on guard, she felt completely free to unleash all her forces the moment she perceived the enemy's sharp attack. Hardly had the first part of her attack made contact with the stranger's screens when those screens, “X” himself, his ship, and any others that might have been with it, and everything tangible in nearby space, all vanished at once in an unbelievably violent, utterly catastrophic explosion of a superatomic bomb.
It may not, perhaps, be generally known that the "completely liberating" or "superatomic" bomb liberates one hundred percent of the total component energy of two or more subcritical masses of an unstable isotope, in a space of time estimated to be sixty-nine hundredths of one microsecond. Its violence and destructiveness thus differ, both in degree and in kind, from those of the earlier type, which liberated only the energy of nuclear fission, very much as the radiation of S-Doradus differs from that of Earth's moon. Its mass attains, and holds for an appreciable length of time, a temperature to be measured only in millions of Centigrade degrees; which fact accounts in large part for its utterly incredible vehemence.
It might not be widely known that the "fully liberating" or "superatomic" bomb releases one hundred percent of the total energy from two or more subcritical masses of an unstable isotope, in about sixty-nine hundredths of a microsecond. Its power and destructiveness are therefore different, both in degree and in kind, from those of the earlier type, which only released the energy from nuclear fission, much like the radiation from S-Doradus is different from that of Earth's moon. Its mass reaches and maintains a temperature that can only be measured in millions of degrees Celsius; this is a big reason for its incredibly intense force.
Nothing inert in its entire sphere of primary action can even begin to move out of the way before being reduced to its subatomic constituents and thus contributing in some measure to the cataclysm. Nothing is or becomes visible until the secondary stage begins; until the frightful globe has expanded to a diameter of some hundreds of miles and by this expansion has cooled down to a point at which some of its radiation lies in the visible violet. And as for lethal radiation—there are radiations and they are lethal.
Nothing inactive in its entire area of primary action can start to move out of the way before being broken down to its subatomic parts, which then contributes to the disaster. Nothing is or becomes visible until the next stage begins; until the terrifying sphere has grown to a diameter of several hundred miles and by this expansion has cooled down enough that some of its radiation falls into the visible violet spectrum. And regarding deadly radiation—there are radiations, and they are deadly.
The battle with "X" had occupied approximately two milliseconds of actual time. The expansion had been progressing for a second or two when Karen lowered her shield.
The battle with "X" had taken about two milliseconds of real time. The expansion had been going on for a second or two when Karen dropped her shield.
"Well, that finishes that," she commented. "I'd better get back on the job. Did you find out what you want to know, Cam, or not?"
"Well, that wraps it up," she said. "I should get back to work. Did you find out what you needed to know, Cam, or not?"
"I got a little in the moment before the explosion. Not much." Camilla was deep in study. "It is going to be quite a job of reconstruction. One thing of interest to you, though, is that this 'X' had quit sabotage temporarily and was on his way to Lyrane IX, where he had some kind of important—"
"I got a brief moment before the explosion. Not much." Camilla was focused on her studies. "It’s going to take a lot of work to rebuild. One thing that might interest you, though, is that this 'X' had stopped sabotaging for a while and was heading to Lyrane IX, where he had some sort of important—"
"Nine?" Karen asked, sharply. "Not Eight? I've been watching Eight, you know—I haven't even thought of Nine."
"Nine?" Karen asked, sharply. "Not Eight? I've been watching Eight, you know—I haven't even considered Nine."
"Nine, definitely. The thought was clear. You might give it a scan once in a while. How is mother doing?"
"Nine, for sure. The thought was clear. You might glance at it now and then. How’s mom doing?"
"She's doing a grand job, and that Helen is quite an operator, too. I'm not doing much—just a touch here and there—I'll see what I can see on Nine. I'm not the scanner or detector that you are, though, you know—maybe you'd better come over here too, in person. Suppose?"
"She's doing a great job, and that Helen really knows how to get things done, too. I'm not doing much—just a little bit here and there—I’ll check out what I can see on Nine. I'm not as good at scanning or detecting as you are, you know—maybe you'd be better off coming over here in person. What do you think?"
"I think so—don't you, Uncle Trig?" Tregonsee did. "We can do some exploring as we come, but since I have no definite patterns for web work, we may not be able to do much until we get close. Clear ether, Kay!"
"I think so—don't you, Uncle Trig?" Tregonsee agreed. "We can do some exploring along the way, but since I don't have any specific plans for web work, we might not be able to do much until we get closer. Clear ether, Kay!"
"The fine structure is there, and I can resolve it and analyze it," Camilla informed Tregonsee, after a few hours of intense concentration. "There are quite a few clear extraneous sequences, instead of the blurred latent images we had before, but there is still no indication whatever of the location of his home planet. I can see his physical classification to ten places instead of four, more detail as to the sun's variation, the seasons, their habits, and so on. Things that seem mostly to be of very little importance, as far as we are concerned. I found one fact, though, that is new and important. According to my reconstruction, his business of Lyrane IX was the induction of Boskonian Lensmen—Black Lensmen, Tregonsee, just as father suspected!"
"The details are clear now, and I can break it down and analyze it," Camilla told Tregonsee after a few hours of intense focus. "There are quite a few distinct extra sequences, instead of the fuzzy hidden images we had before, but there's still no sign of where his home planet is. I can now classify his physical traits into ten categories instead of four, with more detail about the sun’s variations, the seasons, their behaviors, and so on. These things don't seem to matter much to us, though. But I did find one fact that's new and significant. According to my analysis, his work on Lyrane IX involved recruiting Boskonian Lensmen—Black Lensmen, Tregonsee, just as father suspected!"
"In that case, he must have been the Boskonian counterpart of an Arisian, and hence one of the highest echelon. I am very glad indeed that you and Karen relieved me of the necessity of trying to handle him myself. Kinnison will be very glad to know that we have at last and in fact reached the top—"
"In that case, he must have been the Boskonian equivalent of an Arisian, making him one of the highest ranks. I’m really grateful that you and Karen took on the task of dealing with him for me. Kinnison will be thrilled to hear that we've finally reached the top—"
Camilla was paying attention to the Rigellian's cogitations with only a fraction of her mind; most of it being engaged in a private conversation with her brother.
Camilla was listening to the Rigellian's thoughts with just a small part of her mind; most of it was occupied with a private conversation with her brother.
"... so you see, Kit, he was under a subconscious compulsion. He had to destroy himself, his ship, and everything in it, in the very instant of attack by any mind definitely superior to his own. Therefore he couldn't have been an Eddorian, possibly, but merely another intermediate, and I haven't been of much help."
"... so you see, Kit, he was driven by a subconscious urge. He had to self-destruct, taking his ship and everything in it with him, the moment he faced an intelligence clearly superior to his own. So, he couldn't have been an Eddorian, but just another intermediate, and I haven't been very helpful."
"Sure you have, Cam! You got a lot of information, and some mighty good leads to Lyrane IX and what goes on there. I'm on my way to Eddore now; and by working down from there and up from Lyrane IX we can't go wrong. Clear ether, Sis!"
"Of course you have, Cam! You've got a lot of information and some really good leads on Lyrane IX and what's happening there. I'm heading to Eddore now; by working our way down from there and up from Lyrane IX, we can't go wrong. Clear skies, Sis!"
XIX.
XIX.
Constance Kinnison did not waste much time in idle recriminations, even at herself. Realizing at last that she was still not fully competent, and being able to define exactly what she lacked, she went to Arisia for final treatment. She took that treatment and emerged from it, as her brother and sisters had emerged, a completely integrated personality.
Constance Kinnison didn’t spend much time on pointless blame, not even on herself. Finally understanding that she still wasn’t fully capable and being able to pinpoint exactly what she was missing, she went to Arisia for the final treatment. She went through the treatment and came out of it, just like her brother and sisters had, as a fully integrated person.
She had something of everything the others had, of course, as did they all; but her dominants, the characteristics which had operated to make Worsel her favorite Second-Stage Lensman, were much like those of the Velantian. Her mind, like his, was quick and facile, yet of extraordinary power and range. She did not have much of her father's flat, driving urge or of his indomitable will to do; she was the least able of all the Five to exert long-sustained extreme effort. Her top, however, was vastly higher than theirs. Like Worsel's, her armament was almost entirely offensive—she was far and away the deadliest fighter of them all. She only of them all had more than a trace of pure killer instinct; and when roused to full fighting pitch her mental bolts were weapons of as starkly incomprehensible an effectiveness as the sphere of primary action of a superatomic bomb.
She had a bit of everything the others had, of course, just like they all did; but her standout traits, the qualities that made Worsel her favorite Second-Stage Lensman, were very similar to those of the Velantian. Her mind, much like his, was sharp and nimble, yet incredibly powerful and expansive. She didn’t possess much of her father’s relentless drive or his unyielding determination; she was the least capable among the Five when it came to maintaining extreme effort for a long time. However, her peak performance was significantly higher than theirs. Like Worsel, her skills were almost entirely offensive—she was by far the most lethal fighter of them all. She was the only one with more than just a hint of pure killer instinct; and when she was fully engaged in combat, her mental strikes were as starkly effective as the primary action sphere of a superatomic bomb.
As soon as Constance had left the Velan, remarking that she was going to Arisia to take her medicine, Worsel called a staff meeting to discuss in detail the matter of the "Hell Hole in Space." That conference was neither long nor heated; it was unanimously agreed that that phenomenon was—must be—simply another undiscovered cavern of Overlords.
As soon as Constance left the Velan, saying she was heading to Arisia for her medication, Worsel called a staff meeting to discuss the "Hell Hole in Space" in detail. The meeting wasn’t long or intense; everyone agreed that this phenomenon was—had to be—just another undiscovered cavern of Overlords.
In view of the fact that Worsel and his crew had been hunting down and killing Overlords for more than twenty years, the only logical course of action was for them to deal similarly with one more, perhaps the only remaining large group of their hereditary foes. Nor did any doubt of their ability to do so enter any one of the Velantians' minds.
Considering that Worsel and his crew had been tracking and eliminating Overlords for over twenty years, the only sensible option was for them to handle one more, likely the last large group of their traditional enemies. No one among the Velantians doubted their ability to accomplish this.
How wrong they were!
How mistaken they were!
They did not have to search for the "Hell Hole." Long since, to stop its dreadful toll, a spherical cordon of robot guard ships had been posted to warn all traffic away from the outer fringes of its influence. Since they merely warned against, but could not physically prohibit, entry into the dangerous space, Worsel did not pay any attention to the guard ships or to their signals as the Velan went through the warning web. His plans were, he thought, well laid. His ship was free. Its speed, by Velantian standards, was very low. Each member of his crew wore a full-coverage thought-screen; a similar and vastly more powerful screen would surround the whole vessel if one of Worsel's minor members were either to tighten or to relax its grip upon a spring-mounted control. Worsel was, he thought, ready for anything.
They didn't need to look for the "Hell Hole." Long ago, to stop its terrible impact, a circular barrier of robot guard ships had been set up to warn all traffic away from the outer edges of its influence. Since they could only issue warnings but couldn't physically stop anyone from entering the dangerous area, Worsel ignored the guard ships and their signals as the Velan passed through the warning zone. He believed his plans were solid. His ship was free, though its speed was quite slow by Velantian standards. Each crew member wore a full-coverage thought-screen; a similar, much more powerful screen would envelop the entire vessel if one of Worsel's junior crew members either tightened or relaxed their grip on a spring-mounted control. Worsel felt prepared for anything.
But the "Hell Hole in Space" was not a cavern of Overlords. No sun, no planet, nothing material existed within that spherical volume of space. That something was there, however, there was no doubt. Slow as was the Velan's pace, it was still too fast by far; for in a matter of minutes, through the supposedly impervious thought-screens, there came an attack of utterly malignant ferocity; an assault which tore at Worsel's mind in a fashion he had never imagined possible; a poignant, rending, unbearably crescendo force whose violence seemed to double with every mile of advance.
But the "Hell Hole in Space" wasn't a cave of Overlords. No sun, no planet, nothing tangible existed within that spherical area of space. That something was definitely there, without a doubt. Slow as the Velan's pace was, it was still way too fast; in just a few minutes, through the supposedly impenetrable thought-screens, there came an attack of completely malignant ferocity; an assault that tore at Worsel's mind in a way he had never thought possible; a painful, rending, unbearably intense force whose violence seemed to double with every mile they moved forward.
The Velan's all-encompassing screen snapped on—uselessly. Its tremendous power was as unopposed as were the lesser powers of the personal shields—that highly inimical thought was coming past, not through, the barriers. An Arisian, or one of the Children of the Lens, would have been able to perceive and to block that band; no one of lesser mental stature could.
The Velan's all-encompassing screen turned on—uselessly. Its incredible power faced no opposition, just like the weaker personal shields—the highly hostile thought was coming toward us, not through the barriers. An Arisian, or one of the Children of the Lens, would have been able to sense and block that wave; no one of lesser mental capacity could.
Strong and fast as Worsel was, mentally and physically, he got his vessel turned around just barely in time. All his resistance and all his strength had to be called into play to maintain his mind's control over his body; to enable him to spin his ship end for end and to kick her drive up to maximum blast. To his surprise, his agony decreased with distance as rapidly as it had built up; disappearing entirely well before the Velan reached the web she had crossed such a short time before.
Strong and fast as Worsel was, both mentally and physically, he managed to turn his vessel around just in time. He had to tap into all his resistance and strength to keep his mind in control of his body; to allow him to turn his ship around and push her engines to full power. To his surprise, his pain faded with distance just as quickly as it had built up, completely disappearing long before the Velan reached the web she had crossed only a short while ago.

Groggy, sick, and shaken, hanging slackly from his bars, the Velantian Lensman was roused to action by the mental and physical frenzy of his crew. Ten of them had died in the Hell Hole; six more were torn to bits before their commander could muster enough force to stop their insane rioting. Then Master Therapist Worsel went to work; and one by one he brought the survivors back. They remembered; but he made those memories bearable.
Groggy, sick, and shaken, slumped against his bars, the Velantian Lensman was stirred into action by the chaotic energy of his crew. Ten of them had perished in the Hell Hole; six more were ripped apart before their commander could gather enough strength to quell their madness. Then Master Therapist Worsel got to work; and one by one, he helped the survivors recover. They remembered, but he made those memories manageable.
He then called Kinnison. "... but there didn't seem to be anything personal about it, as one would expect from an Overlord," he concluded his brief report. "It did not concentrate on us, reach for us, or follow us as we left. Its intensity seemed to vary only with distance ... perhaps inversely as distance squared—it might very well have been radiated from a center. While it was nothing like anything I ever felt before, I still think that it must be an Overlord—maybe a sort of Second-Stage Overlord, just as you and I are Second-Stage Lensmen. He is too strong for me now, just as they used to be too strong for us before we met you. By the same reasoning, however, I am pretty sure that if you can come over here, you and I together could figure out a way of taking him. How about it?"
He then called Kinnison. "... but it didn't seem personal at all, unlike what you'd expect from an Overlord," he wrapped up his brief report. "It didn't focus on us, reach for us, or follow us as we left. Its intensity appeared to change only with distance ... maybe inversely proportional to the square of the distance—it could very well have been coming from a central point. While it felt completely different from anything I’ve experienced before, I still think it must be an Overlord—maybe a kind of Second-Stage Overlord, just like you and I are Second-Stage Lensmen. He's too powerful for me right now, just like they used to be too powerful for us before we met you. However, by that same logic, I'm pretty sure if you could come over here, we could figure out a way to take him on together. What do you think?"
"Mighty interesting, and I'd like to, but I'm right in the middle of a job," Kinnison replied, and went on to explain rapidly what he, as Bradlow Thyron, had done and what he still had to do. "As soon as I can get away I'll come over. In the meantime, fellow old snake, keep away from there. Do a flit—find something else to keep you amused until I can join you."
"Mighty interesting, and I’d love to, but I’m in the middle of a job," Kinnison replied, quickly explaining what he, as Bradlow Thyron, had already done and what was still on his to-do list. "As soon as I can get free, I’ll come over. In the meantime, my old friend, stay away from there. Take a break—find something else to keep you entertained until I can join you."
Worsel set out, and after a few days ... or weeks—idle time means practically nothing to a Velantian—a sharply-Lensed thought drove in.
Worsel set out, and after a few days ... or weeks—time off doesn’t really mean much to a Velantian—a sudden, clear thought struck him.
"Help! A Lensman calling help! Line this thought and come at speed to System—" The message ended as sharply as it had begun; in a flare of agony which, Worsel knew, meant that that Lensman, whoever he was, had died.
"Help! A Lensman calling for help! Focus this thought and come quickly to System—" The message ended as abruptly as it had started; in a burst of pain that Worsel knew meant that Lensman, whoever he was, had died.
Since the thought, although broadcast, had come in strong and clear, Worsel knew that its sender had been close by. While the time had been very short indeed, he had been able to get a line of sorts. Into that line he whirled the Velan's sharp prow and along it she hurtled at the literally inconceivable pace of her absolute-maximum drive. As the Gray Lensman had often remarked, the Velantian superdreadnought had more legs than a centipede, and now she was using them all. In minutes, then, the scene of battle grew large upon her plates.
Since the thought, even though it was sent out widely, had come through loud and clear, Worsel realized that its source was nearby. Although the time was brief, he managed to make a connection of sorts. He directed the Velan's sharp bow into that connection, and she sped along it at the unbelievably fast speed of her maximum power. As the Gray Lensman had often pointed out, the Velantian superdreadnought had more legs than a centipede, and now she was using every single one of them. In just a few minutes, the battle scene loomed large on her screens.
The Patrol ship, hopelessly out-classed, could last only seconds longer. Her screens were down; her very wall shield was dead. Red pockmarks sprang into being along her sides as the Boskonian needle-beamers wiped out her few remaining controls. Then, as the helplessly raging Worsel looked on, his brain seething with unutterable Velantian profanity, the enemy prepared to board—a course of action which, Worsel could see, was changed abruptly by the fact—and perhaps as well by the terrific velocity—of his own unswerving approach. The conquered Patrol cruiser disappeared in a blaze of detonating duodec; the conqueror devoted his every jet to the task of running away; strewing his path as he did so with sundry items of solid and explosive destruction. Such things, however, whether dirigible or not, whether inert or free, were old and simple stuff to the Velan's war-wise crew. Their spotters and detectors were full out, as was also a practically solid forefan of annihilating and disintegrating beams.
The patrol ship, completely outmatched, could only hold on for a few more seconds. Its shields were down; even its wall shield was offline. Red scorch marks erupted along its sides as the Boskonian needle-beamers destroyed its remaining controls. Then, as the furious Worsel watched, his mind boiling with unexpressed Velantian curses, the enemy prepared to board—a decision that quickly changed due to the fact—and maybe the incredible speed—of his own direct approach. The defeated patrol cruiser vanished in a flash of exploding duodec; the victor focused all his energy on escaping, leaving a trail of various solid and explosive wreckage behind him. However, whether it was controllable or not, whether it was still or moving, those were old tricks for the Velan's battle-savvy crew. Their spotters and detectors were fully engaged, just like their nearly solid barrage of destructive and disintegrating beams.
Thus none of the Boskonian's missiles touched the Velan, nor, with all his speed, could he escape. Few indeed were the ships of space able to step it, parsec for parsec, with Worsel's mighty craft, and this luckless pirate vessel was not one of them. Up and up the pursuer rushed; second by second the intervening distance lessened. Tractors shot out, locked on, and pulled briefly with all the force of their stupendous generators.
Thus none of the Boskonian's missiles hit the Velan, nor could he escape, no matter how fast he went. There were very few ships in space that could match Worsel's powerful craft, and this unfortunate pirate vessel wasn’t one of them. Up and up the pursuer surged; with each passing second, the gap between them shrank. Tractors shot out, locked on, and pulled briefly with all the power of their enormous generators.
Briefly, but long enough. As Worsel had anticipated, that savage yank had, in the fraction of a second required for the Boskonian commander to recognize and to cut the tractors, been enough to bring the two inertialess war craft practically screen to screen.
Briefly, but long enough. As Worsel had expected, that brutal pull had, in the split second it took for the Boskonian commander to realize and cut the tractors, been enough to bring the two inertialess warcraft almost screen to screen.
"Primaries! Blast!" Worsel hurled the thought even before his tractors snapped. He was in no mood for a long-drawn-out engagement. He might be able to win with his secondaries, his needles, his tremendously powerful short-range stuff and his other ordinary offensive weapons, but he was taking no chances. Besides, the Boskonians might very well have primaries of their own by this time, and if they did his only chance was to use them first. His men knew what to do and would do it without further orders. A dozen or so of those hellishly irresistible projectors of sheer destruction lashed out as one.
"Primaries! Blast!" Worsel threw out the thought even before his tractors activated. He was in no mood for a prolonged battle. He might be able to win with his secondaries, his needles, his incredibly powerful short-range weapons, and his other standard offensive tools, but he wasn't taking any chances. Besides, the Boskonians could very well have their own primaries by now, and if they did, his only shot was to use them first. His crew knew what to do and would act without needing any further commands. A dozen or so of those incredibly effective projectors of pure destruction fired at once.
One! Two! Three! The three courses of Boskonian defensive screen scarcely winked as each, locally overloaded, flared through the visible into the black and went down.
One! Two! Three! The three layers of the Boskonian defense barely flickered as each, overloaded, blazed through the visible and vanished into the dark.
Crash! The stubborn fabric of the wall shield offered little more resistance before it, too, went down, exposing the bare metal of the Boskonian's hull—and, as is well known, any conceivable material substance simply vanishes, tracelessly, at the merest touch of such fields of force as those.
Crash! The stubborn wall shield barely held up before it collapsed, revealing the bare metal of the Boskonian's hull—and, as everyone knows, any material object simply disappears without a trace at the slightest contact with such force fields.
Driving projectors carved away and main batteries silenced, Worsel's needle-beamers proceeded systematically to riddle every control panel and every lifeboat, to make of the immense space rover a completely helpless hulk.
Driving projectors shut down and main batteries muted, Worsel's needle-beamers systematically went to work, puncturing every control panel and lifeboat, turning the massive space rover into a totally defenseless hulk.
"Hold!" An observer flashed the thought. "Number Eight slip is empty—Number Eight lifeboat got away!"
"Stop!" an observer thought urgently. "Number Eight slip is empty—Number Eight lifeboat has launched!"
"Damnation!" Worsel, at the head of his armed and armored storming party, as furiously eager as they to come to grips with the enemy, paused briefly. "Trace it—or can you?"
"Damnation!" Worsel, leading his armed and armored storming party, just as eager as they were to confront the enemy, paused briefly. "Can you trace it—or can’t you?"
"I did. My tracers can hold it for fifteen minutes, perhaps twenty. No longer than twenty."
"I did. My tracers can hold it for about fifteen minutes, maybe twenty. No more than twenty."
Worsel thought intensely. Which had first call, ship or lifeboat? The ship, he decided almost instantly. Its resources were vastly greater; most of its personnel were probably practically unharmed. Given any time at all, they might very well be able to jury-rig a primary, and that would be bad—very bad. Besides, there were more people here; and even if, as was distinctly possible, the Boskonian big shot had abandoned his vessel and his crew in an attempt to save his own life, Worsel had plenty of time.
Worsel thought hard. Which one took priority, the ship or the lifeboat? He decided almost immediately it was the ship. Its resources were much greater; most of its crew was probably unharmed. Given any time at all, they might be able to whip up a makeshift primary, and that would be really bad. Plus, there were more people here; and even if, as seemed likely, the Boskonian big shot had ditched his vessel and crew to save himself, Worsel had plenty of time.
"Hold that lifeboat," he instructed the observer. "Ten minutes is all we need here."
"Keep that lifeboat ready," he told the observer. "We just need ten more minutes here."
And it was. The Boskonians—barrel-bodied, blocky-limbed monstrosities resembling human beings about as much as they did the Velantians—wore armor, possessed hand-weapons of power, and fought viciously. They had even managed to rig a few semiportable projectors, but none of these were allowed a single blast. Spy-ray observers were alert, and needle-beam operators; hence the fighting was all at hand to hand, with hand-weapons only. For, while the Velantians to a man lusted to kill, they had had it drilled into them for twenty years that the search for information came first; the pleasure of killing, second.
And it was. The Boskonians—thick-bodied, blocky-limbed creatures that looked like humans about as much as they looked like the Velantians—wore armor, carried powerful hand weapons, and fought fiercely. They had even set up a few semi-portable projectors, but none of them were allowed to fire a single shot. Spy-ray observers were on high alert, along with needle-beam operators; so all the fighting was done up close, with only hand weapons. Because, while the Velantians were all eager to kill, they had been trained for twenty years that the search for information came first; the thrill of killing came second.
Worsel himself went straight for the Boskonian captain, his pre-selected prey. That wight had a couple of guards with him, but they did not matter—needle-ray men took care of them. He also had a pair of heavy beam guns, which he held steadily on the Velantian. Worsel paused momentarily; then, finding that his screens were adequate, he slammed the control room door shut with a flick of his tail and launched himself, straight and level at his foe, with an acceleration of seven gravities. The captain tried to dodge but could not. The frightful impact did not kill him, but it hurt him, badly. Worsel, on the other hand, was scarcely jarred. Hard, tough, and durable, Velantians are accustomed from birth to knockings-about which would pulverize human bones.
Worsel went right for the Boskonian captain, his chosen target. The captain had a couple of guards with him, but they didn’t matter—needle-ray guys took care of them. He also had two heavy beam guns, which he aimed steadily at the Velantian. Worsel paused for a moment; then, seeing that his shields were good enough, he slammed the control room door shut with a flick of his tail and launched himself straight at his opponent, accelerating at seven gravities. The captain tried to dodge but couldn’t. The terrifying impact didn’t kill him, but it hurt him badly. Worsel, on the other hand, was barely shaken. Hard, tough, and durable, Velantians are used from birth to physical impacts that would shatter human bones.
Worsel batted the Boskonian's guns away with two terrific blows of an armored paw, noting as he did so that violent contact with a steel wall did not do their interior mechanisms a bit of good. Then, after cutting off both his enemy's screens and his own, he batted the Boskonian's helmet; at first experimentally, then with all his power. Unfortunately, however, it held. So did the thought-screen, and there were no external controls. That armor was good stuff!
Worsel swatted away the Boskonian's guns with two powerful hits from his armored paw, realizing that hitting a steel wall violently didn't help their internal mechanisms at all. After disabling both his enemy's screens and his own, he hit the Boskonian's helmet; first lightly to test it, then with all his strength. Unfortunately, it didn’t give way. Neither did the thought-screen, and there were no external controls. That armor was really tough!
Leaping to the ceiling, he blasted his whole mass straight down upon the breastplate, striking it so hard this time that he hurt his head. Still no use. He wedged himself between two heavy braces, flipped a loop of tail around the Boskonian's feet, and heaved. The armored form flew across the room, struck the heavy steel wall, bounced, and dropped. The bulges of the armor were flattened by the force of the collision, the wall was dented—but the thought-screen still held!
Leaping to the ceiling, he slammed his entire weight down onto the breastplate, hitting it so hard this time that he hurt his head. Still no luck. He wedged himself between two heavy braces, wrapped a loop of his tail around the Boskonian's feet, and yanked. The armored figure was thrown across the room, slammed into the heavy steel wall, bounced off, and fell. The bulges of the armor were crushed by the impact, the wall was dented—but the thought-screen still held!
Worsel was running out of time, fast. He couldn't treat the thing very much rougher without killing him, if he wasn't dead already. He couldn't take him aboard; he had to cut that screen here and now! He could see how the armor was put together; but, armored as he was, he could not take it apart. And, since the whole ship was empty of air, he could not open his own.
Worsel was running out of time quickly. He couldn't handle the situation too aggressively without risking his life, if he wasn't already dead. He couldn't bring him on board; he had to cut that screen right here and now! He could see how the armor was assembled, but even with his own armor on, he couldn't take it apart. And since the whole ship was devoid of air, he couldn't open his own.
Or could he? He could. He could breathe space long enough to do what had to be done. He cut off his air, loosened a plate enough to release four or five gnarled hands, and, paying no attention to his involuntarily laboring lungs, set furiously to work. He tore open the Boskonian's armor, snapped off his thought-screen. The creature was not quite dead yet—good! He didn't know a thing, though, nor did any member of his crew, except ... yes, one man—a big shot—had got away. Who or what, was he?
Or could he? He could. He could hold his breath long enough to do what needed to be done. He cut off his air, loosened a plate just enough to release four or five twisted hands, and, ignoring his struggling lungs, got to work. He ripped open the Boskonian's armor and snapped off his thought-screen. The creature wasn't quite dead yet—great! He didn't know anything at all, nor did any member of his crew, except ... yes, one guy—a big shot—had escaped. Who or what was he?
"Tell me!" Worsel demanded, with the full power of mind and Lens, even while he was exploring with all his skill and speed. "TELL ME!"
"Tell me!" Worsel insisted, using all his mental strength and power of the Lens, even as he pushed himself to explore with all his skill and speed. "TELL ME!"
But the Boskonian was dying fast. The ungentle treatment, and now the lack of air, were taking toll. His patterns were disintegrating by the second, faster and faster. Meaningless blurs, which, under Worsel's vicious probing, condensed into something which seemed to be a Lens.
But the Boskonian was quickly fading. The harsh treatment, and now the lack of air, were taking their toll. His patterns were breaking down by the second, faster and faster. Meaningless blurs, which, under Worsel's brutal probing, formed into something that appeared to be a Lens.
A Lensman? Impossible—starkly unthinkable! But jet back—hadn't Kim intimated a while back that there might be such things as Black Lensmen?
A Lensman? No way—totally unbelievable! But wait—hadn't Kim hinted not long ago that there could be such things as Black Lensmen?
But Worsel himself wasn't feeling so good. He was only half conscious. Red, black, and purple spots were dancing in front of every one of his eyes. He sealed his suit, turned on his air, gasped, and staggered. Two of the nearest Velantians, all of whom had, of course, been en rapport with him throughout, came rushing to his aid; arriving just as he recovered full control.
But Worsel wasn't feeling well. He was only half conscious. Red, black, and purple spots were swirling in front of his eyes. He sealed his suit, turned on his air supply, gasped, and swayed unsteadily. Two of the closest Velantians, who had been in sync with him the whole time, rushed to help him, arriving just as he regained full control.
"Back to the Velan, everybody!" he ordered. "No time for any more fun—we've got to get that lifeboat!" Then, as soon as he had been obeyed: "Bomb that hulk ... good. Flit!"
"Back to the Velan, everyone!" he commanded. "No more time for fun—we need to get that lifeboat!" Then, once he was obeyed: "Blast that wreck ... good. Move!"
Overtaking the lifeboat did not take long. Spearing it with a tractor and yanking it alongside required only seconds. For all his haste, Worsel found in it only something that looked as though it once might have been a Delgonian Lensman. It had blown itself apart with a grenade. Because of its reptilian tenacity of life, however, it was not quite dead; its Lens still showed an occasional flicker of light and its shattered mind was not yet entirely devoid of patterns. Worsel studied that mind until all trace of life had vanished, then again reported to the Co-ordinator.
Overtaking the lifeboat didn’t take long. Using a tractor to spear it and pull it alongside only took seconds. Despite his hurry, Worsel found only what seemed to be a Delgonian Lensman that had blown itself apart with a grenade. Because of its reptilian resilience, it wasn’t completely dead yet; its Lens still showed an occasional flicker of light and its damaged mind wasn't entirely empty of patterns. Worsel examined that mind until all signs of life were gone, then reported back to the Co-ordinator.

"... so you see I guessed wrong. The Lens was too dim to read, but he must have been a Black Lensman. The only readable thought in his mind was an extremely fuzzy one of the planet Lyrane IX. I hate to have hashed the job up so—especially since I had one chance in two of guessing right."
"... so you see I guessed wrong. The Lens was too dim to read, but he must have been a Black Lensman. The only clear thought in his mind was a very vague one about the planet Lyrane IX. I hate that I messed the job up so badly—especially since I had a 50/50 chance of getting it right."
"Well, no use in squawking now." Kinnison paused in thought. "Besides, he could have done it anyway, and would have. You haven't done so badly, at that. You found a Black Lensman who is not a Kalonian, and you've got confirmation of Boskonian interest in Lyrane IX. What more do you want? Stick around fairly close to the Hell Hole, Slim, and as soon as I can make it, I'll join you there."
"Well, there's no point in complaining now." Kinnison stopped to think. "Besides, he could have done it anyway, and he would have. You haven't done too badly, really. You found a Black Lensman who isn't from Kalon, and you've got confirmation of Boskonian interest in Lyrane IX. What more do you need? Just stay fairly close to the Hell Hole, Slim, and as soon as I can, I'll come join you there."
XX.
XX.
"Boys, take her upstairs," Kinnison-Thyron ordered, and the tremendous raider—actually the Dauntless in disguise—floated serenely upward to a station immediately astern of the vice admiral's flagship. All three courses of multi-ply defensive screen were out, as were full-coverage spy-ray blocks and thought-screens.
"Boys, take her upstairs," Kinnison-Thyron ordered, and the massive raider—actually the Dauntless in disguise—floated smoothly upward to a position directly behind the vice admiral's flagship. All three layers of multi-ply defensive shields were deployed, as were the full-coverage spy-ray blockers and thought-screens.
As the fleet blasted in tight formation for Kalonia III, Vice Admiral Mendonai tested the Dauntless' defenses thoroughly, and found them bottle-tight. No intrusion was possible. The only open channel was that one plate-to-plate, the other end of which was so villainously fogged that nothing could be seen except Bradlow Thyron's face. Convinced at last of that fact, Mendonai sat back and seethed quietly, his pervasive Kalonian blueness pointing up his grim and vicious mood.
As the fleet surged in close formation towards Kalonia III, Vice Admiral Mendonai thoroughly tested the Dauntless' defenses and found them completely secure. No breaches were possible. The only open channel was a direct connection, but the other end was so obscured by fog that only Bradlow Thyron's face was visible. Finally convinced of this, Mendonai leaned back and simmered in silence, his deep blue Kalonian aura highlighting his grim and fierce mood.
He had never, in all his long life, been insulted so outrageously. Was there anything—anything!—he could do about it? There was not. Thyron, personally, he could not touch—yet—and the fact that the outlaw had so brazenly and so nonchalantly placed his vessel in the exact center of the Boskonian fleet made it pellucidly clear to any Boskonian mind that he had nothing whatever to fear from that fleet.
He had never, in his entire life, been insulted so outrageously. Was there anything—anything!—he could do about it? There wasn’t. Thyron, personally, he couldn’t touch—yet—and the fact that the outlaw had so boldly and casually positioned his ship right in the middle of the Boskonian fleet made it crystal clear to anyone in the Boskonian fleet that he had nothing to fear from them.
Wherefore the Kalonian seethed, and his minions stepped ever more softly and followed with ever-increasing punctilio the rigid Boskonian code. For the grapevine carries news swiftly; by this time the whole fleet knew that His Nibs had been taking a God-awful kicking around, and that the first guy who gave him an excuse to blow off steam would be lucky if he only got boiled in oil.
Wherefore the Kalonian fumed, and his followers moved even more quietly and adhered with greater precision to the strict Boskonian code. Because gossip travels fast; by now, the entire fleet was aware that His Nibs had been taking a brutal beating, and the first person who gave him a reason to vent would be lucky if they only ended up boiled in oil.
As the fleet spread out for inert maneuvering above the Kalonian stratosphere, Kinnison turned again to the young Lensman.
As the fleet spread out for inert maneuvering above the Kalonian stratosphere, Kinnison turned once more to the young Lensman.
"One last word, Frank. I am as sure as I can be that I am fully covered—a lot of smart people worked on this problem. Nevertheless, something may happen, so I will send you the data as fast as I get it. Remember what I told you before—if I get the dope we need, I'm expendable and it'll be your job to get it back to Base. No heroics. Is that clear?"
"One last thing, Frank. I'm as confident as I can be that I'm completely covered—a lot of smart people tackled this issue. Still, something might come up, so I'll send you the data as soon as I have it. Remember what I mentioned earlier—if I get the info we need, I'm expendable, and it’ll be your responsibility to get it back to Base. No heroics. Is that clear?"
"Yes, sir." The young Lensman gulped. "I hope, though, that it doesn't—"
"Yeah, sure." The young Lensman swallowed hard. "I just hope it doesn't—"
"So do I," Kinnison grinned as he climbed into his highly special dureum armor, "and the chances are a million to one that it won't. That's why I'm going down there."
"So do I," Kinnison smiled as he got into his unique dureum armor, "and the odds are a million to one that it won't. That's why I'm heading down there."
In their respective speedsters Kinnison and Mendonai made the long drop to the ground, and side by side they went into the office of Black Lensman Melasnikov. That worthy, too, wore heavy armor; but he did not have a mechanical thought-screen. Arrogantly conscious of his tremendous power of mind, what did any Black Lensman need of mechanical shields? Thyron, of course, did; a fact of which Melasnikov became instantly aware.
In their speeders, Kinnison and Mendonai made a long drop to the ground, and side by side they entered the office of Black Lensman Melasnikov. He was also in heavy armor, but he didn't have a mechanical thought-screen. Confident in his immense mental power, why would any Black Lensman need mechanical shields? Thyron, of course, did; and Melasnikov quickly realized this fact.
"Release your screen," he directed, brusquely.
"Let go of your screen," he instructed, sharply.
"Not yet, pal—don't be so hasty," Thyron advised. "There're some things about this here hookup that I don't exactly like. We got quite a bit of talking to do before I open up."
"Not yet, buddy—don't rush it," Thyron said. "There are some things about this situation that I’m not too sure about. We have a lot to discuss before I reveal everything."
"No talk, worm. Talk, especially your talk, is entirely meaningless. From you I want, and will have, the truth, and not talk. CUT THOSE SCREENS!"
"No more talking, worm. Your words are completely pointless. What I want from you, and what I will get, is the truth—not empty chatter. REMOVE THOSE SCREENS!"
And lovely Kathryn, in her speedster not too far away, straightened up and sent out a call.
And beautiful Kathryn, in her sports car not too far away, sat up straight and made a call.
"Kit ... Kay ... Cam ... Con—are you free?" They were, for the moment. "Stand by, please, all of you. I'm pretty sure something is going to happen. Dad can handle this Melasnikov easily enough, if none of the higher-ups step in, but they probably will. Their Lensmen are probably important enough to rate protection. Check?"
"Kit ... Kay ... Cam ... Con—are you available?" They were, for now. "Hold on, all of you. I'm pretty sure something is about to happen. Dad can deal with this Melasnikov without any issue, as long as none of the higher-ups get involved, but they likely will. Their Lensmen are probably important enough to warrant protection. Got it?"
"Check."
"Verify."
"So, as soon as Dad begins to get the best of the argument, the protector will step in," Kathryn continued, "and whether I can handle him alone or not depends on how high a higher-up they send in. So I'd like to have you all stand by for a minute or two, just in case."
"So, as soon as Dad starts to win the argument, the protector will step in," Kathryn continued, "and whether I can handle him alone or not depends on how powerful a higher-up they send in. So I'd like all of you to be ready for a minute or two, just in case."
How different was Kathryn's attitude now than it had been in the hyperspatial tube! And how well for Civilization that it was!
How different was Kathryn's attitude now compared to what it had been in the hyperspatial tube! And how good for Civilization that it was!
"Hold it, kids. I've got a thought," Kit suggested. "We've never done any teamwork since you became able to handle heavy stuff, and we'll have to get in some practice before the big blow-off. What say we link up now, on this?"
"Wait a second, kids. I've got an idea," Kit suggested. "We haven't done any teamwork since you started handling heavy stuff, and we need to practice before the big event. How about we team up on this now?"
"Oh, yes!" "Let's do!" "Take over, Kit!" Three approvals came as one, and:
"Oh, definitely!" "Let's go for it!" "You got this, Kit!" Three agreements came all at once, and:
"QX," came Kathryn's less enthusiastic concurrence, a moment later. Naturally enough, she would rather do it alone if she could; but she had to admit that her brother's plan was the better.
"QX," Kathryn agreed, though with less enthusiasm, a moment later. Naturally, she would prefer to handle it on her own if she could; but she had to admit that her brother's plan was the better option.
Kit laid out the matrix and the four girls came in. There was a brief moment of snuggling and fitting; then each of the Five caught his breath in awe. This was new—brand new. Each had thought himself complete and full; each had supposed that much practice and at least some give-and-take would be necessary before they could work efficiently as a group. But this! This was the supposedly unattainable—perfection itself! This was UNITY—full; round; complete. No practice was or ever would be necessary. Not one micro-microsecond of doubt or of uncertainty would or ever could exist. This was the UNIT, a thing for which there are no words in any written or spoken language; a thing theretofore undreamed-of save as a purely theoretical concept in an unthinkably ancient, four-ply Arisian brain.
Kit laid out the matrix, and the four girls walked in. There was a quick moment of snuggling and adjustment; then each of the Five gasped in awe. This was new—totally new. Each had thought he was complete and fulfilled; each had assumed that a lot of practice and some give-and-take would be needed before they could work effectively as a group. But this! This was the supposedly impossible—perfection itself! This was UNITY—whole; round; complete. No practice was or ever would be needed. Not a single microsecond of doubt or uncertainty could or ever would exist. This was the UNIT, something for which there are no words in any spoken or written language; something previously only dreamt of as a purely theoretical concept in a mind from an unimaginably ancient, four-layered Arisian brain.
"U.m.n.g.n.k," Kit swallowed a lump as big as his fist before he could think. "This, kids, is really some—"
"U.m.n.g.n.k," Kit swallowed a lump as big as his fist before he could think. "This, kids, is really some—"
"Ah, children, you have done it." Mentor's thought rolled smoothly in. "You now understand why I could not attempt to describe the Unit to any one of you. This is the culminating moment of my life—of our lives, we may now say. For the first time in more years than you can understand, we are at last sure that our lives have not been lived in vain. But attend—that for which you are waiting will soon be here."
"Ah, kids, you’ve done it." Mentor's thoughts flowed effortlessly. "You now see why I couldn't explain the Unit to any of you. This is the defining moment of my life—of our lives, I can say now. For the first time in more years than you can imagine, we are finally sure that our lives have not been in vain. But listen carefully—what you’ve been waiting for will soon arrive."
"What is it?" "Who?" "Tell us how to—"
"What is it?" "Who?" "Let us know how to—"
"We cannot." Four separate Arisians smiled as one—a wash of ineffable blessing and benediction suffused the Five. "We, who made the Unit possible, are almost completely ignorant of the details of its higher functions. But that it will need no help from our lesser minds is certain; it is the most powerful and the most nearly perfect creation this Universe has ever seen."
"We can’t." Four different Arisians smiled together—a wave of indescribable blessing and goodwill enveloped the Five. "We, who made the Unit possible, know almost nothing about how its higher functions work. But it’s clear that it won’t need any assistance from our lesser minds; it is the most powerful and nearly flawless creation this Universe has ever seen."
The Arisians vanished; and, even before Kimball Kinnison had released his screen, a cryptic, utterly untraceable and all-pervasive foreign thought came in.
The Arisians disappeared; and even before Kimball Kinnison had turned off his screen, a mysterious, completely untraceable, and all-encompassing foreign thought rushed in.
To aid the Black Lensman? To study this disturbing new element? Or merely to observe? Or what? The only certainty was that that thought was coldly, clearly, and highly inimical to all Civilization.
To help the Black Lensman? To investigate this unsettling new factor? Or just to watch? Or something else? The only sure thing was that thought was cold, clear, and extremely hostile to all of Civilization.
Again everything happened at once. Karen's impenetrable block flared into being—not instantly, but instantaneously. Constance assembled and hurled, in the same lack of time, a mental bolt of whose size and power she had never dreamed herself capable. Camilla, the detector-scanner, synchronized herself with the attacking thought and steered. And Kathryn and Kit, with all the force, all the will, and all the drive of human heredity, got behind it and pushed.
Again everything happened at once. Karen's impenetrable block flared into existence—not instantly, but instantaneously. Constance gathered her thoughts and launched, in the same brief moment, a mental bolt whose size and strength she had never imagined herself capable of. Camilla, the detector-scanner, aligned herself with the attacking thought and navigated it. And Kathryn and Kit, with all the force, all the will, and all the drive of human heritage, got behind it and pushed.
Nor was this, any of it, conscious individual effort. The children of the Lens were not now five, but one. This was the Unit at work; doing its first job. It is literally impossible to describe what happened; but each of the Five knew that one would-be Protector, wherever he had been in space or whenever in time, would never think again. Seconds passed. The Unit held tense, awaiting the riposte. No riposte came.
Nor was any of this a conscious effort by individuals. The children of the Lens were no longer five, but one. This was the Unit at work, fulfilling its first task. It's literally impossible to explain what happened; but each of the Five understood that one would-be Protector, no matter where he had been in space or when in time, would never think again. Seconds passed. The Unit stayed tense, waiting for a response. No response came.
"Fine work, kids!" Kit broke the linkage and each girl felt hard, brotherly pats on her back. "That's all there is to this one, I guess—must have been only one guard on duty. You're good eggs, and I like you. How we can operate now!"
"Great job, everyone!" Kit disconnected the link, and each girl felt solid, friendly pats on her back. "I guess that's it for this one—there must have been only one guard on duty. You're all good people, and I appreciate you. Look at how we can work together now!"
"But it was too easy, Kit!" Kathryn protested. "Too easy by far for it to have been an Eddorian. We aren't that good. Why, I could have handled him alone ... I think," she added, hastily, as she realized that she, although an essential part of the Unit, had as yet no real understanding of what that Unit really was.
"But it was way too easy, Kit!" Kathryn protested. "Way too easy for it to have been an Eddorian. We aren’t that good. I could have handled him alone ... I think," she added quickly, realizing that even though she was a crucial part of the Unit, she still didn't really understand what that Unit actually was.
"You hope, you mean!" Constance jeered. "If that bolt was as big and as hot as I'm afraid it was, anything it hit would have looked easy. Why didn't you slow us down, Kit? You're supposed to be the Big Brain, you know. As it was, we haven't the faintest idea of what happened. Who was he, anyway?"
"You hope, right?" Constance mocked. "If that bolt was as big and as hot as I think it was, anything it hit would have looked easy. Why didn't you slow us down, Kit? You're supposed to be the smart one, you know. As it stands, we have no clue about what happened. Who was he, anyway?"
"Didn't have time," Kit grinned. "Everything got out of hand. All of us were sort of inebriated by the exuberance of our own enthusiasm, I guess. Now that we know what our speed is, though, we can slow down next time—if we want to. As for your last question, Con, you're asking the wrong guy. Was it an Eddorian, Cam, or not?"
"Didn't have time," Kit grinned. "Things got a bit chaotic. We were all pretty caught up in our own excitement, I guess. But now that we know how fast we are, we can take it easy next time—if we want. As for your last question, Con, you're asking the wrong person. Was it an Eddorian, Cam, or not?"
"What difference does it make?" Karen asked.
"What difference does it make?" Karen asked.
"On the practical side, none. For the completion of the picture, maybe a lot. Come in, Cam."
"On the practical side, none. For the completion of the picture, maybe a lot. Come in, Cam."
"It was not an Eddorian," Camilla decided. "It was not of Arisian, or even near-Arisian, grade. Sorry to say it, Kit, but it was another member of that high-thinking race that you've already got down on Page One of your little black book."
"It wasn't an Eddorian," Camilla said. "It wasn’t Arisian or even close to Arisian quality. Sorry to say this, Kit, but it was another member of that deep-thinking race that you've already noted on Page One of your little black book."
"I thought it might be. The missing link between Kalonia and Eddore. Credits to millos it's that dopey planet Ploor that Mentor was yowling about."
"I thought it might be. The missing link between Kalonia and Eddore. Thanks to Millos, it's that clueless planet Ploor that Mentor was going on about."
"Let's link up and let the Unit find it," Constance suggested, brightly. "That'd be fun."
"Let's connect and let the Unit track it down," Constance suggested cheerfully. "That would be fun."
"Act your age, baby," Kit advised. "Ploor is taboo—you know that as well as I do. Mentor told us all not to try to investigate it—that we'd learn of it in time, so we probably will. I told him a while back that I was going to hunt it up myself, and he told me that if I did he'd tie both my legs around my neck in a lovers' knot, or words to that effect. Sometimes I'd like to half-brain the old buzzard, but everything he has said so far has dead-centered the beam. We'll just have to take it, and try to like it."
"Act your age, kid," Kit said. "Ploor is off-limits—you know that as well as I do. The Mentor told us not to look into it—that we’d find out about it eventually, and we probably will. I mentioned to him a while ago that I was going to track it down myself, and he warned me that if I did, he’d tie my legs in a knot around my neck, or something like that. Sometimes I feel like knocking some sense into the old guy, but everything he’s said so far has been right on target. We’ll just have to deal with it and try to accept it."
Kinnison was eminently willing to cut his thought-screen, since he could not work through it to do what had to be done here. Nor was he over-confident. He knew that he could handle the Black Lensman—any Black Lensman—but he also knew enough of mental phenomena in general and of Lensmanship in particular to realize that Melasnikov might very well have within call reserves about whom he, Kinnison, could know nothing. He knew that he had lied outrageously to young Frank in regard to the odds applicable to this enterprise; that instead of a million to one, the actuality was one to one, or even less.
Kinnison was more than ready to turn off his thought-screen since he couldn’t focus on what needed to be done here. He wasn't overly confident, though. He knew he could handle the Black Lensman—any Black Lensman—but he also understood enough about mental phenomena in general and Lensmanship in particular to realize that Melasnikov might have resources at his disposal that Kinnison didn’t know about. He was aware that he had lied badly to young Frank about the odds for this mission; instead of a million to one, the reality was more like one to one, or even worse.
Nevertheless, he was well content. He had neither lied nor exaggerated in saying that he himself was expendable. That was why Frank and the Dauntless were upstairs now. Getting the dope and getting it back to Base were what mattered. Nothing else did.
Nevertheless, he was quite satisfied. He hadn’t lied or stretched the truth when he said he was replaceable. That’s why Frank and the Dauntless were upstairs now. Getting the information and bringing it back to Base were what was important. Nothing else mattered.
He was coldly certain that he could get all the information that Melasnikov had, once he had engaged the Kalonian Lensman mind to mind. No Boskonian power or thing, he was convinced, could treat him rough enough to kill him fast enough to keep him from doing that. And he could and would shoot the stuff along to Frank as fast as he got it. And he stood an even—almost even, anyway—chance of getting away afterward. If he could, QX. If he couldn't ... well, that would have to be QX, too.
He was confident that he could get all the information that Melasnikov had, once he engaged the Kalonian Lensman mind to mind. He was sure that no Boskonian power or anything could hurt him badly enough to prevent him from doing that. He could and would pass the information on to Frank as quickly as he received it. He had a decent—almost decent, at least—chance of escaping afterward. If he could, great. If he couldn't ... well, that would have to be fine, too.
Kinnison flipped his switch and there ensued a conflict of wills that made the subether boil. The Kalonian was one of the strongest, hardest, and ablest individuals of his hellishly capable race; and the fact that he believed implicitly in his own complete invulnerability operated to double and to quadruple his naturally tremendous strength.
Kinnison flipped his switch, triggering a clash of wills that made the subether churn. The Kalonian was one of the strongest, toughest, and most skilled members of his incredibly capable race; his absolute belief in his own invulnerability only amplified his already immense strength.
On the other hand, Kimball Kinnison was a Second-Stage Lensman of the Galactic Patrol.
On the other hand, Kimball Kinnison was a Second-Stage Lensman of the Galactic Patrol.
Back and back, then, inch by inch and foot by foot, the Black Lensman's defensive zone was forced; back to and down into his own mind. And there, appallingly enough, Kinnison found almost nothing of value.
Back and back, then, inch by inch and foot by foot, the Black Lensman's defensive zone was pushed; back to and down into his own mind. And there, shockingly enough, Kinnison found almost nothing of value.
No knowledge of the higher reaches of the Boskonian organization; no hint that any real organization of Black Lensmen existed; only the peculiarly disturbing fact that he had picked up his Lens on Lyrane IX. And "picked up" was literal. He had not seen, nor heard, nor had any dealings of any kind with anyone while he was there.
No knowledge of the upper levels of the Boskonian organization; no indication that any real group of Black Lensmen existed; only the strangely unsettling fact that he had found his Lens on Lyrane IX. And "found" was literal. He had not seen, heard, or had any interactions of any kind with anyone while he was there.
Since both armored figures stood motionless, no sign of the tremendous actuality of their mental battle was evident. Thus the Boskonians were not surprised to hear their Black Lensman speak.
Since both armored figures stood still, there was no indication of the intense mental struggle happening between them. So, the Boskonians weren’t shocked to hear their Black Lensman speak.
"Very well, Thyron, you have passed this preliminary examination. I know all that I now need to know. I will accompany you to your vessel, to complete my investigation there. Lead the way."
"Alright, Thyron, you've successfully completed this initial assessment. I have all the information I need for now. I'll join you at your ship to finish my inquiry there. Please, take the lead."
Kinnison did so, and as the speedster came to rest inside the Dauntless the Black Lensman addressed Vice Admiral Mendonai via plate.
Kinnison did this, and as the speedster came to a stop inside the Dauntless, the Black Lensman spoke to Vice Admiral Mendonai through the screen.
"I am taking Bradlow Thyron and his ship to the space yards on Four, where a really comprehensive study of it can be made. Return to and complete your original assignment."
"I’m taking Bradlow Thyron and his ship to the space yards on Four, where a thorough analysis can be done. Go back and finish your original task."
"I abase myself, Your Supremacy, but ... but I ... I discovered that ship!" Mendonai protested.
"I humble myself, Your Supremacy, but ... but I ... I found that ship!" Mendonai protested.
"Granted," the Black Lensman sneered. "You will be given full credit in the report for what you have done. The fact of discovery, however, does not excuse your present conduct. Go—and consider yourself fortunate that, because of that service, I forbear from disciplining you for your intolerable insubordination."
"Fine," the Black Lensman scoffed. "You’ll get full credit in the report for what you did. But just because you made a discovery doesn't mean your current behavior is acceptable. Now, go—and consider yourself lucky that, because of that service, I’m choosing not to punish you for your sheer disrespect."
"I abase myself, Your Supremacy. I go." He really did abase himself, this time, and the fleet disappeared.
"I lower myself, Your Supremacy. I'm leaving." He truly did lower himself this time, and the fleet vanished.
Then, the mighty Dauntless safely away from Kalonia and on her course to rendezvous with the Velan, Kinnison again went over his captive's mind; line by line and almost cell by cell. It was still the same. It was still Lyrane IX and it still didn't make any kind of sense. Since Boskonians were certainly not supermen, and hence could not possibly have developed their own Lenses, it followed that they must have obtained them from the Boskonian counterpart of Arisia. Hence, Lyrane IX must be IT—a conclusion which was certainly fallacious—ridiculous—preposterous—utterly untenable. Lyrane IX never had been, was not, and never would be the home of any Boskonian super-race. Nevertheless, it was a definite fact that Melasnikov had got his Lens there. Also, if he had ever had any special training, such as any Lensman must have had, he didn't have any memory of it. Nor did he carry any scars of surgery. What a hash! How could anybody make any sense out of such a mess as that?
Then, the mighty Dauntless safely left Kalonia and continued on her way to meet up with the Velan. Kinnison went over his captive's mind again, piece by piece and almost cell by cell. It was still unchanged. It was still Lyrane IX, and it still made no sense. Since Boskonians were definitely not supermen, they couldn't have developed their own Lenses, so they must have gotten them from the Boskonian equivalent of Arisia. That meant Lyrane IX had to be IT—a conclusion that was clearly false—ridiculous—absurd—utterly impossible. Lyrane IX had never been, was not, and would never be the home of any Boskonian super-race. Still, it was a fact that Melasnikov had gotten his Lens there. Also, if he had ever received any special training, like any Lensman must have, he had no memory of it. Nor did he have any scars from surgery. What a mess! How could anybody make sense of such chaos?
Ever-watchful Kathryn, eyes narrowed now in concentration, could have told him, but she did not. Her visualization was beginning to clear up. Lyrane was out. So was Ploor. The Lenses originated on Eddore; that was certain. The fact that their training was subconscious weakened the Black Lensmen in precisely the characteristics requisite for ultimate strength—although probably neither the Eddorians nor the Ploorans, with their warped, Boskonian sense of values, realized it. The Black Lensmen would never constitute a serious problem. QX.
Ever-watchful Kathryn, her eyes narrowed in concentration, could have told him, but she didn’t. Her visualization was starting to clear up. Lyrane was out. So was Ploor. The Lenses came from Eddore; that was certain. The fact that their training was subconscious weakened the Black Lensmen in exactly the aspects needed for ultimate strength—although it’s likely that neither the Eddorians nor the Ploorans, with their twisted Boskonian sense of values, realized it. The Black Lensmen would never be a serious problem. QX.
The time of rendezvous approached. Kinnison, having attended to the unpleasant but necessary job of resolving Melasnikov into his component atoms, turned to his Lensman-aide.
The time for the meeting was drawing near. Kinnison, having dealt with the unpleasant but necessary task of breaking Melasnikov down into his basic components, turned to his Lensman aide.
"Hold everything, Frank, until I get back. This won't take long."
"Just hang on, Frank, until I get back. This won't take long."
Nor did it, although the outcome was not at all what the Gray Lensman had expected.
Nor did it, although the outcome was nothing like what the Gray Lensman had anticipated.
Kinnison and Worsel, in an inert speedster, crossed the Hell Hole's barrier web at a speed of only miles per hour, and then slowed down. The ship was backing in on her brakes, with everything set to hurl her forward under full drive should either Lensman flick a finger. Kinnison could feel nothing, even though, being en rapport with Worsel, he knew that his friend was soon suffering intensely.
Kinnison and Worsel, in a motionless speedster, passed through the Hell Hole's barrier web at just a few miles per hour, then reduced their speed. The ship was slowing down on its brakes, fully prepared to propel her forward at full speed if either Lensman made a move. Kinnison felt nothing, even though, being en rapport with Worsel, he was aware that his friend was about to experience great suffering.
"Let's flit," the Gray Lensman suggested, and threw on the drive. "I probed my limit, and couldn't touch or feel a thing. Had enough, didn't you?"
"Let's take off," the Gray Lensman suggested, and engaged the drive. "I tested my limit and couldn't sense a thing. Had enough, right?"
"More than enough—I couldn't have taken much more."
"That was more than enough—I couldn't have handled much more."
Each boarded his ship; and as the Dauntless and the Velan tore through space toward far Lyrane, Kinnison paced his room, scowling in black abstraction. Nor would a mind reader have found his thoughts either cogent or informative.
Each person boarded their ship; and as the Dauntless and the Velan raced through space toward distant Lyrane, Kinnison walked back and forth in his room, frowning in deep thought. Even a mind reader wouldn't have found his thoughts clear or useful.
"Lyrane IX ... LYRANE IX ... Lyrane IX ... LYRANE IX ... and something that I can't even feel or perceive, but that kills anybody and everybody else ... KLONO'S tungsten TEETH and CURVING CARBALLOY CLAWS!!!"
"Lyrane IX ... LYRANE IX ... Lyrane IX ... LYRANE IX ... and something that I can't even feel or see, but that kills anyone and everyone else ... KLONO'S tungsten TEETH and CURVING CARBALLOY CLAWS!!!"
XXI.
XXI.
Helen's story was short and bitter. Human or near-human Boskonians came to Lyrane II and spread insidious propaganda all over the planet. Lyranian matriarchy should abandon its policy of isolationism. Matriarchs were the highest type of life. Matriarchy was the most perfect of all existing forms of government—why keep on confining it to one small planet, when it should by right be ruling the entire Galaxy? The way things were, there was only one Elder Person; all other Lyranians, even though better qualified than the then incumbent, were nothing—and so on. Whereas, if things were as they should be, each individual Lyranian person could be and would be the Elder Person of a planet at least, and perhaps of an entire solar system—and so on. And the visitors, who, they insisted, were no more males than the Lyranian persons were females, would teach them. They would be amazed at how easily, under Boskonian guidance, this program could be put into effect.
Helen's story was short and bitter. Human or almost-human Boskonians came to Lyrane II and spread harmful propaganda all over the planet. The Lyranian matriarchy should stop its isolationist policies. Matriarchs were the highest form of life. Matriarchy was the best form of government out there—why continue to limit it to one small planet when it should be ruling the entire Galaxy? As it was, there was only one Elder Person; all other Lyranians, even those more qualified than the current one, were dismissed—and so on. But if things were as they should be, each individual Lyranian could and would be the Elder Person of at least one planet, and maybe even an entire solar system—and so on. The visitors, who claimed they were no more male than the Lyranian persons were female, would teach them. They would be amazed at how easily, under Boskonian guidance, this plan could be put into action.
Helen fought the intruders with every jet she had. She despised the males of her own race; she detested those of all others. Believing that hers was the only existing matriarchal race, especially since neither Kinnison nor the Boskonians seemed to know of any other, she was sure that any prolonged contact with other cultures would result, not in the triumph of matriarchy, but in its fall. She not only voiced these beliefs as she held them—violently—but also acted upon them in the same fashion.
Helen fought off the intruders with every bit of effort she had. She hated the men of her own kind and couldn't stand those from other races either. Convinced that her people were the only existing matriarchal society, especially since neither Kinnison nor the Boskonians seemed to be aware of any others, she believed that any extended interaction with different cultures would lead, not to the victory of matriarchy, but to its downfall. She not only expressed these beliefs loudly and aggressively but also acted on them just as fiercely.
Because of the ingrained matriarchally conservative habit of Lyranian thought, particularly among the older persons, Helen found it comparatively easy to stamp out the visible manifestations; and, being in no sense a sophisticate, she thought that the whole matter was settled. Instead, she merely drove the movement underground, where it grew tremendously. The young, of course, rebellious as always against the hide-bound, mossbacked, and reactionary older generation, joined the subterranean New Deal in droves. Nor was the older generation solid. In fact, it was riddled by the defection of many thousands who could not expect to attain any outstanding place in the world as it was and who believed that the Boskonians' glittering forecasts would come true.
Due to the deeply rooted, conservative matriarchal mindset of Lyranian society, especially among the older generations, Helen found it relatively easy to eliminate the obvious signs of dissent; and, being quite naive, she assumed that the issue was resolved. In reality, she simply forced the movement underground, where it thrived significantly. The youth, as is typical, rebelled against the outdated and reactionary older generation, flocking to the underground New Deal in large numbers. The older generation wasn't united either. In fact, it was fractured by the departure of many thousands who realized they wouldn’t achieve any significant success in the current world and who believed that the Boskonians' dazzling predictions would come to fruition.
Disaffection spread, then, rapidly and unobserved; culminating in the carefully-planned uprising which made Helen an Ex-Chief Person and put her into the tower room to await a farcical trial and death.
Discontent spread quickly and unnoticed, leading to the well-planned uprising that made Helen an Ex-Chief Person and placed her in the tower room to await a ridiculous trial and execution.
"I see." Clarrissa caught her lower lip between her teeth. "Very unfunny. I noticed that you didn't mention or think of any of your persons as ringleaders ... peculiar that you couldn't catch them, with your telepathy ... no, natural enough, at that ... but there's one I want very much to get hold of. Don't know whether she was really a leader, or not, but she was mixed up in some way with a Boskonian Lensman. I never did know her name. She was the wom ... the person who managed your airport here when Kim and I were—"
"I see." Clarrissa bit her lower lip. "Not very funny. I noticed you didn’t mention or think of any of your people as ringleaders... interesting that you couldn’t catch them with your telepathy... no, not so strange, actually... but there’s one I really want to find. I’m not sure if she was actually a leader or not, but she was involved in some way with a Boskonian Lensman. I never found out her name. She was the woman... the person who managed your airport here when Kim and I were—"
"Cleonie? Why, I never thought ... but it might have, at that ... yes, as I look back—"
"Cleonie? Wow, I never thought ... but maybe it could have, actually ... yeah, as I think back—"
"Yes, hindsight is a lot more accurate than foresight," the Red Lensman grinned. "I've noticed that myself, lots of times."
"Yeah, hindsight is way more accurate than foresight," the Red Lensman grinned. "I've seen that myself, so many times."
"It did! It was a leader!" Helen declared, furiously. "I shall have its life, too, the jealous cat—the blood-sucking, back-biting louse!"
"It did! It was a leader!" Helen shouted, angrily. "I’ll take its life, too, that jealous jerk—the blood-sucking, back-stabbing louse!"
"She's all of that, in more ways than you know," Clarrissa agreed, grimly, and spread in the Lyranian's mind the story of Eddie the derelict. "So you see that Cleonie has got to be our starting-point. Have you any idea of where we can find her?"
"She's all of that, in more ways than you know," Clarrissa agreed grimly and shared the story of Eddie the derelict in the Lyranian's mind. "So you see that Cleonie has to be our starting point. Do you have any idea where we can find her?"
"I haven't seen or heard anything of Cleonie lately." Helen paused in thought. "If, though, as I am now practically certain, it was one of the prime movers behind this brainless brat Ladora, it wouldn't dare leave the planet for very long at a time. As to how to find it, I don't quite know. Anybody would be apt to shoot me on sight. Would you dare fly this funny plane of yours down close to a few of our cities?"
"I haven't seen or heard anything from Cleonie lately." Helen paused to think. "But if, as I'm now almost sure, it was one of the main forces behind that clueless brat Ladora, it wouldn't risk leaving the planet for very long. As for how to find it, I'm not really sure. Anyone might shoot me on sight. Would you be willing to fly your odd little plane close to a few of our cities?"
"Certainly. I don't know of anything around here that my screens and fields can't stop. Why?"
"Of course. I can't think of anything around here that my screens and fields can't handle. Why?"
"Because I know of several places where Cleonie might be, and if I can get fairly close to them, I can find it in spite of anything it can do to hide itself from me. But I don't want to get you into too much trouble, and I don't want to get killed myself, either, now that you have rescued me—at least, until after I have killed Cleonie and Ladora."
"Because I know several places where Cleonie could be, and if I can get reasonably close, I can find it no matter how well it tries to hide from me. But I don’t want to put you in too much danger, and I don’t want to get myself killed either, especially now that you’ve saved me—at least until after I’ve dealt with Cleonie and Ladora."
"QX. What are we waiting for? Which way, Helen?"
"QX. What are we waiting for? Which way should we go, Helen?"
"Back to the city first, for several reasons. Cleonie probably is not there, but we must make sure. Also, I want my guns—"
"Back to the city first, for several reasons. Cleonie probably isn't there, but we need to be sure. Also, I want my guns—"
"Guns? No. DeLameters are better. I have several spares." In one fleeting mental contact Clarrissa taught the Lyranian all there was to know about DeLameters. And that feat impressed Helen even more than did the nature and power of the weapon.
"Guns? No. DeLameters are better. I have a few extras." In one quick mental moment, Clarrissa taught the Lyranian everything there was to know about DeLameters. And that achievement impressed Helen even more than the weapon's nature and power.
"What a mind!" she exclaimed. "You didn't have any such equipment as that, the last time I saw you. Or were you ... no, you weren't hiding it."
"What a mind!" she exclaimed. "You didn't have any of this stuff the last time I saw you. Or were you ... no, you weren't hiding it."
"You're right; I have developed considerably since then. But about guns—what do you want of one?"
"You're right; I've come a long way since then. But about guns—what do you need one for?"
"To kill that nitwit Ladora on sight, and that snake Cleonie, too, as soon as you get done with it."
"Kill that idiot Ladora on sight, and that snake Cleonie too, as soon as you’re done with it."
"But why guns? Why not the mental force you always used?"
"But why guns? Why not the mental strength you always relied on?"
"Except by surprise, I couldn't," Helen admitted, frankly. "All adult persons are of practically equal mental strength. But speaking of strength, I marvel that a craft as small as this should be able to ward off the attack of one of those tremendous Boskonian ships of space."
"Unless it’s by surprise, I couldn’t," Helen admitted honestly. "All adults are basically equal in mental strength. But speaking of strength, I’m amazed that a craft this small could fend off an attack from one of those massive Boskonian ships in space."
"But she can't! What made you think she could?"
"But she can't! What made you think she could?"
"Your own statement—or were you thinking of purely Lyranian dangers, not realizing that Ladora, of course, called Cleonie as soon as you showed your teeth, and that Cleonie as surely called the Lensman or some other Boskonian? And that they must have ships of war not too far away?"
"Your own words—or were you just considering Lyranian threats, not recognizing that Ladora immediately contacted Cleonie as soon as you got confrontational, and that Cleonie must have reached out to the Lensman or another Boskonian? And that they probably have warships close by?"
"Heavens, no! It never occurred to me!"
"Heavens, no! That never crossed my mind!"
Clarrissa thought briefly. It wouldn't do any good to call Kim. Both the Dauntless and the Velan were coming, as fast as they could come, but it would be a day or so yet before they arrived. Besides, he would tell her to lay off, which was exactly what she was not going to do. She turned her thought back to the matriarch.
Clarrissa thought for a moment. It wouldn’t help to call Kim. Both the Dauntless and the Velan were on their way, as quickly as they could, but it would still be a day or so before they got there. Plus, he would tell her to back off, which was exactly what she wasn’t going to do. She refocused her thoughts on the matriarch.
"Two of our best ships are coming, and I hope they get here first. In the meantime, we'll just have to work fast and keep our detectors full out. Anyway, Cleonie won't know that I'm looking for her—I haven't even mentioned her to anyone except you."
"Two of our best ships are on their way, and I hope they arrive first. In the meantime, we’ll need to work quickly and keep our detectors working at full capacity. Besides, Cleonie won’t know I’m searching for her—I haven’t told anyone about her except you."
"No?" pessimistically. "Cleonie knows that I am looking for it, and since it knows by now that I am with you, it would think that both of us were hunting it even if we weren't. But we are nearly close enough now; I must concentrate. Fly around quite low over the city, please."
"No?" he said, feeling discouraged. "Cleonie knows that I'm looking for it, and since it knows by now that I'm with you, it would assume that both of us are searching for it, even if we're not. But we're getting close enough now; I need to focus. Please fly low over the city."
"QX. I'll tune in with you, too. 'Two heads,' you know." Clarrissa learned Cleonie's pattern, tuned to it, and combed the city while Helen was getting ready.
"QX. I'll check in with you as well. 'Two heads,' you know." Clarrissa learned Cleonie's routine, adapted to it, and explored the city while Helen was getting ready.
"She isn't here, unless she's behind one of those thought-screens," the Red Lensman remarked. "Can you tell?"
"She’s not here, unless she’s behind one of those thought-screens," the Red Lensman said. "Can you tell?"
"Thought-screens! The Boskonians had a few of them, but none of us ever did. How can you find them? Where are they?"
"Thought-screens! The Boskonians had a few, but none of us ever did. How can you find them? Where are they?"
"One there—two over there. They stick out like big black spots on a white screen. Can't you see them? I supposed that your scanners were the same as mine, but apparently they aren't. Take a quick peek at them with the spy—you work it like so. If they've got spy-ray blocks up, too, we'll have to go down there and blast."
"One there—two over there. They stand out like big black spots on a white screen. Can't you see them? I thought your scanners were the same as mine, but apparently they aren't. Take a quick look at them with the spy—you do it like this. If they have spy-ray blocks up, too, we'll have to go down there and take them out."
"Politicians only," Helen reported, after a moment's manipulation of the suddenly familiar instrument. "They need killing, of course, on general principles, but perhaps we shouldn't take time for that now. The next place to look is a few degrees east of north of here."
"Only politicians," Helen said, after a moment of tinkering with the suddenly familiar device. "They definitely need to go, of course, for general reasons, but maybe we shouldn't take the time for that right now. The next place to check is a few degrees east of north from here."
Cleonie was not, however, in that city. Nor in the next, nor the next. But the speedster's detector screens remained blank and the two allies, so much alike physically, so different mentally, continued their hunt. There was opposition, of course—all that the planet afforded—but Clarrissa's second-stage mind took care of the few items of offense which her speedster's defenses could not handle.
Cleonie wasn't in that city, or the next one, or the one after that. But the speedster's detection screens stayed blank, and the two allies, who looked so much alike but were so different in thinking, kept searching. There was resistance, of course—all that the planet could throw at them—but Clarrissa's advanced mind dealt with the few threats that her speedster's defenses couldn't manage.
Finally two things happened almost at once. Clarrissa found Cleonie, and Helen saw a dim and fuzzy white spot upon the lower left-hand corner of the detector plate.
Finally, two things happened almost simultaneously. Clarrissa found Cleonie, and Helen noticed a faint and blurry white spot in the lower left corner of the detector plate.
"Can't be ours," the Red Lensman decided instantly. "Almost exactly the wrong direction. Boskonians. Ten minutes—twelve at most—before we have to flit. Time enough—I hope—if we work fast."
"Can't be ours," the Red Lensman concluded immediately. "Almost exactly in the wrong direction. Boskonians. Ten minutes—twelve at most—before we need to take off. Hopefully, that’s enough time—if we move quickly."
She shot downward, going inert and matching intrinsics at a lack of altitude which would have been suicidal for any ordinary pilot. She rammed her beryllium-bronze torpedo through the first-floor wall of a forbidding, almost windowless building—its many stories of massive construction, she knew, would help no end against the heavy stuff so sure to come. Then, while every hitherto-hidden offensive arm of the Boskone-coached Lyranians converged, screaming through the air and crashing and clanking along the city's streets, Clarrissa probed and probed and probed. Cleonie had locked herself into a veritable dungeon cell in the deepest subbasement of the structure. She was wearing a thought-screen, too, but she had been releasing it, for an instant at a time, to see what was going on. One of those instants was enough—that screen would never work again. She had been prepared to kill herself at need; but her full-charged weapons emptied themselves futilely against a massive lock and she threw her vial of poison across the corridor and into an empty cell.
She dove downwards, going limp and matching her instinct to stay at a dangerously low altitude that would have been lethal for any regular pilot. She crashed her beryllium-bronze torpedo through the first-floor wall of a formidable, nearly windowless building—its several stories of solid construction, she knew, would be a big help against the heavy fire that was sure to come. Meanwhile, as every previously hidden weapon of the Boskone-coached Lyranians closed in, shrieking through the air and banging along the city streets, Clarrissa kept probing and probing. Cleonie had locked herself in a real dungeon in the deepest subbasement of the building. She was using a thought-screen, too, but she had been letting it go, just for a second at a time, to see what was happening. One of those moments was enough—that screen would never work again. She had been ready to take her own life if necessary; but her fully charged weapons fired uselessly against a heavy lock, and she threw her vial of poison across the hallway and into an empty cell.
So far, so good; but how to get her out of there? Physical approach was out of the question. There must be somebody around, somewhere, with keys, or hacksaws, or sledge-hammers, or something. Ha—oxyacetylene torches! Very much against their wills, two Lyranian mechanics trundled a dolly along a corridor, into an elevator. The elevator went down four levels. The artisans began to burn away a barrier of thick steel bars.
So far, so good; but how do we get her out of there? A physical approach was not an option. There had to be someone nearby with keys, hacksaws, sledgehammers, or something. Oh—oxyacetylene torches! Reluctantly, two Lyranian mechanics rolled a dolly down a corridor and into an elevator. The elevator descended four levels. The workers started to cut through a barrier of thick steel bars.
By this time the whole building was rocking to the detonation of high explosives. Much more of that kind of stuff and she would be trapped by the sheer mass of the rubble. She was handling six jackass-stubborn people already and that Boskonian warship was coming fast; she did not quite know whether she was going to get away with this or not.
By this point, the whole building was shaking from the blasts of high explosives. If there was much more of that, she would be buried under the massive debris. She was already managing six incredibly stubborn individuals, and that Boskonian warship was approaching quickly; she wasn’t sure if she would make it out of this or not.
But somehow, from the unplumbed and unplumbable depths which made her what she so uniquely was, the Red Lensman drew more and ever more power. Kinnison, who had once made heavy going of handling two-and-a-fraction Lensmen, guessed, but never did learn from her, what his beloved wife really did that day.
But somehow, from the unfathomable depths that shaped her into the unique person she was, the Red Lensman drew more and more power. Kinnison, who had once struggled to manage two-plus Lensmen, speculated but never found out from her what his beloved wife actually did that day.
Even Helen, only a few feet away, could not understand what was happening. Left parsecs behind long since, the Lyranian could not help in any particular, but could only stand and wonder. She knew that this queerly powerful Lens-bearing Earth-person—white-faced, sweating, strung to the very snapping-point as she sat motionless at her board—was exerting some terrible, some tremendous force. She knew that the heaviest of the circling bombers sheered away and crashed. She knew that certain mobile projectors, a few blocks away, did not come any closer. She knew that Cleonie, against every iota of her mulish Lyranian will, was coming toward the speedster. She knew that many persons, who wished intensely to bar Cleonie's progress or to shoot her down, were physically unable to act. She had no faint idea, however, of how such work could possibly be done.
Even Helen, just a few feet away, couldn't understand what was going on. Having long left parsecs behind, the Lyranian couldn’t help in any way; she could only stand and wonder. She realized that this oddly powerful Earth person with a lens—pale-faced, sweating, and on the verge of snapping as she sat still at her control board—was unleashing some terrible, immense force. She saw that the heaviest of the circling bombers veered off and crashed. She noticed that certain mobile projectors, just a few blocks away, weren't getting any closer. She understood that Cleonie, against every stubborn fiber of her Lyranian will, was moving toward the speedster. She was aware that many people, who intensely wanted to stop Cleonie or take her down, were physically unable to act. However, she had no idea how such a thing could possibly happen.
Cleonie came aboard and Clarrissa snapped out of her trance. The speedster nudged and blasted its way out of the wrecked stronghold, then tore a hole through protesting air into open space. Clarrissa shook her head, wiped her face, studied a tiny double dot in the corner of the plate opposite the one now showing clearly the Boskonian warship, and set her controls.
Cleonie came aboard, and Clarrissa snapped out of her trance. The speedster nudged and blasted its way out of the wrecked stronghold, then tore a hole through protesting air into open space. Clarrissa shook her head, wiped her face, studied a tiny double dot in the corner of the screen opposite the one now clearly showing the Boskonian warship, and set her controls.
"We'll make it—I think," she announced. "Even though we're indetectable, they, of course, know our line, and they're so much faster that they'll be able to find us, even on their visuals, before long. On the other hand, they must be detecting our ships now, and my guess is that they won't dare follow us long enough to do us any harm. Keep an eye on things, Helen, while I find out what Cleonie really knows. And while I think of it, what's your real name? It isn't polite to keep on calling you by a name that you never even heard of until you met us."
"We're going to make it, I think," she said. "Even though we’re not detectable, they know our route, and they’re way faster, so they’ll catch up to us, even on their screens, soon enough. On the bright side, they must be tracking our ships right now, and I have a feeling they won’t risk following us long enough to actually hurt us. Keep an eye on everything, Helen, while I figure out what Cleonie really knows. And by the way, what's your real name? It’s not cool to keep calling you a name you didn’t even know until you met us."
"Helen," the Lyranian made surprising answer. "I liked it, so I adopted it—officially."
"Helen," the Lyranian replied unexpectedly. "I liked it, so I adopted it—officially."
"Oh. That's a compliment, really, to both Kim and me. Thanks."
"Oh, that's a compliment, actually, to both Kim and me. Thanks."
The Red Lensman then turned her attention to her captive, and as mind fitted itself precisely to mind her eyes began to gleam in gratified delight. Cleonie was a real find; this seemingly unimportant Lyranian knew a lot—an immense lot—about things that no adherent of the Patrol had ever heard before. And she, Clarrissa Kinnison, would be the first of all the Gray Lensmen to learn of them! Therefore, taking her time now, she allowed every detail of the queer but fascinating picture-story to imprint itself upon her mind.
The Red Lensman then focused on her captive, and as their minds connected, her eyes began to shine with pleased excitement. Cleonie was a real discovery; this seemingly insignificant Lyranian knew a tremendous amount—far more than any member of the Patrol had ever known. And she, Clarrissa Kinnison, would be the first of all the Gray Lensmen to learn these things! So, taking her time, she let every detail of the strange but captivating story sink into her mind.
And Karen and Camilla, together in Tregonsee's ship, glanced at each other and exchanged flashing thoughts. Should they interfere? They hadn't had to so far, but it began to look as though they would have to, now—it would wreck their mother's mind, if she could understand. She probably could not understand it, any more than Cleonie could—but even if she could, she had so much more inherent stability, even than Dad, that she might be able to take it, at that. Nor would she ever leak, even to Dad—and Dad, bless his tremendous boots, was not the type to pry. Maybe, though, just to be on the safe side, it would be better to screen the stuff, and to edit, if necessary, anything about Eddore. The two girls synchronized their minds all imperceptibly with their mother's and Helen's, and learned.
And Karen and Camilla, together on Tregonsee's ship, glanced at each other and shared quick thoughts. Should they step in? They hadn’t needed to until now, but it seemed like they were going to have to—this would break their mother’s mind if she could comprehend it. She probably couldn’t understand it, any more than Cleonie could—but even if she could, she had so much more emotional resilience, even more than Dad, that she might be able to handle it. Plus, she would never reveal anything, even to Dad—and Dad, bless his big heart, wasn’t the kind to snoop. Maybe, just to be safe, it would be better to filter the information and edit out, if needed, anything about Eddore. The two girls subtly synchronized their thoughts with their mother’s and Helen’s, and they learned.
The time was in the unthinkably distant past; the location was unthinkably remote in space. A huge planet circled slowly about a cooling sun. Its atmosphere was not air; its liquid was not water. Both were noxious; composed in large part of compounds even yet unknown to man.
The time was in the unimaginably distant past; the place was unimaginably far away in space. A massive planet orbited a cooling sun at a slow pace. Its atmosphere wasn’t made of air; its liquid wasn’t water. Both were toxic, made mostly of compounds still unknown to humans.
Yet life was there; a race which was even then ancient. Not sexual, this race. Not androgynous, nor hermaphroditic, but absolutely sexless. Except for the many who died by physical or by mental violence, its members lived endlessly. After many hundreds of thousands of years each being, having reached his capacity to live and to learn, divided into two individuals; each of which, although possessing in toto the parents' memories, knowledges, skills, and powers, had also a renewed and increased capacity.
Yet life existed; a species that was ancient even then. Not sexual, not androgynous, nor hermaphroditic, but completely sexless. Except for the many who perished from physical or mental violence, its members lived indefinitely. After many hundreds of thousands of years, each being, having reached their full potential to live and learn, split into two individuals; each of whom, while having all of the parents' memories, knowledge, skills, and abilities, also had a renewed and enhanced capacity.
And, since life was, there had been competition. Competition for power. Knowledge was desirable only insofar as it contributed to power. Power for the individual—the group—the city. Wars raged—what wars!—and internecine strifes which lasted while planets came into being, grew old, and died. And finally, to the few survivors, there came peace. Since they could not kill each other, they combined their powers and hurled them outward—together they would dominate and rule solar systems—regions—the Galaxy itself—the entire macrocosmic Universe.
And since the beginning of time, there has been competition. Competition for power. Knowledge was valuable only as long as it led to power. Power for the individual, the group, the city. Wars raged—what wars!—and internal conflicts lasted while planets were born, aged, and perished. Eventually, for the few who remained, peace arrived. Unable to destroy one another, they combined their strengths and aimed them outward—together they would dominate and rule solar systems, regions, the Galaxy itself, the entire macrocosmic Universe.
Amorphous, amoeboid, each could assume at will any imaginable form, could call into being members to handle any possible tool. Nevertheless, as time went on they used their bodies less and less. More and more they used their minds, to bring across gulfs of space and to enslave other races, to labor under their direction. By nature and by choice they were bound to their own planet; few indeed were the planets upon which their race could possibly live. Also, it was easier to rejuvenate their own world, or to move it to a younger sun, than to enforce and to supervise the myriads of man-hours of slave labor necessary to rebuild any planet to their needs. Thus, then, they lived and ruled by proxy an ever-increasing number of worlds.
Formless and shapeshifting, they could adopt any form they wanted and create limbs to use any tool. However, over time, they relied less on their physical bodies. Instead, they used their minds more and more to bridge vast distances and dominate other races, forcing them to work under their command. By both nature and choice, they were tied to their own planet; very few planets could support their species. Additionally, it was easier for them to restore their own world or shift it to a brighter sun than to manage the countless hours of slave labor required to transform another planet to suit their needs. So, they lived and ruled indirectly over an ever-growing number of worlds.
Although they had long since learned that their asexuality was practically unique, that bisexual life dominated the universe, this knowledge served only to stiffen their determination to rule, and finally to change to their own better standards, that universe. They were still seeking a better proxy race; the more nearly asexual a race, the better. One race, the denizens of a planet of a variable sun, approached that idea closely. So did the Kalonians, whose women had only one function in life—the production of men.
Although they had long understood that their asexuality was pretty much one of a kind and that bisexuality was everywhere, this realization only strengthened their resolve to take control and ultimately reshape the universe according to their own ideals. They were still looking for a better proxy race; the closer a race was to being asexual, the better. One race, the inhabitants of a planet with a variable sun, came close to that idea. So did the Kalonians, whose women served only one purpose in life—bearing men.
Now these creatures had learned of the matriarchs of Lyrane. That they were physically females meant nothing; to the Eddorians one sex was just as good—or as bad—as the other. The Lyranians were strong; not tainted by the weaknesses which seemed to characterize all races believing in even near-equality of the sexes. Lyranian science had been trying for centuries to do away with the necessity for males; in a few more generations, with some help, that goal could be achieved and the perfect proxy race would have been developed.
Now these beings had come to know about the matriarchs of Lyrane. The fact that they were physically female didn’t matter; to the Eddorians, one sex was just as valuable—or as flawed—as the other. The Lyranians were strong, unburdened by the weaknesses that seemed to be found in all races that believed in even close to equal standing of the sexes. For centuries, Lyranian science had been working to eliminate the need for males; in just a few more generations, with some assistance, that goal could be reached, and the perfect proxy race could be developed.
It is not to be supposed that this story was obtained in such straight-forward fashion as it is presented here. It was dim, murky, confused. Cleonie never had understood it. Clarrissa understood it better, but less accurately; for in the version the Red Lensman received, one minor change was made—in it the Ploorans and the Eddorians were one and the same race! She understood, however, that that actually unnamed and to her unknown race was the highest of Boskone, and the place of the Kalonians in the Boskonian scheme was plain enough.
It shouldn't be assumed that this story was gathered in the straightforward way it’s presented here. It was unclear, murky, and confusing. Cleonie never really understood it. Clarrissa got the gist better, but not as accurately; because in the version the Red Lensman received, one small change was made — in it, the Ploorans and the Eddorians were considered the same race! However, she understood that the actually unnamed and unknown race to her was the highest in Boskone, and the role of the Kalonians in the Boskonian plan was clear enough.
"I am giving you this story," the Kalonian Lensman told Cleonie coldly, "not of my own free will but because I must. I hate you as much as you hate me. What I would like to do to you, you may imagine. Nevertheless, so that your race may have its chance, I am to take you on a trip and, if possible, make a Lensman out of you. Come with me." And, urged by her jealousy of Helen, her seething ambition, and probably, if the truth were to be known, by an Eddorian mind, Cleonie went.
"I’m telling you this story," the Kalonian Lensman said to Cleonie coldly, "not because I want to, but because I have to. I hate you just as much as you hate me. You can imagine what I would do to you if I could. Still, for the sake of your race getting a chance, I’m going to take you on a trip and, if possible, turn you into a Lensman. Come with me." And motivated by her jealousy of Helen, her intense ambition, and probably, if we’re being honest, by an Eddorian mindset, Cleonie agreed to go.
There is no need to dwell at length upon the horrors, the atrocities, of that trip; of which the matter of Eddie the meteor miner was only a very minor episode. It will suffice to say that Cleonie was very good Boskonian material; that she learned fast and passed all tests successfully.
There’s no need to spend too much time discussing the horrors and atrocities of that trip; the situation with Eddie the meteor miner was just a minor episode. It’s enough to say that Cleonie was great Boskonian material; she learned quickly and passed all the tests with flying colors.
"That's all," the Black Lensman informed her then, "and I'm glad to see the last of you. You'll get a message when to hop over to Nine and pick up your Lens. Flit—and I hope that the first Gray Lensman you meet will ram his Lens down your throat and turn you inside out."
"That's it," the Black Lensman told her, "and I'm relieved to see the last of you. You'll get a message about when to head over to Nine and grab your Lens. Take off—and I hope that the first Gray Lensman you encounter will shove his Lens down your throat and turn you inside out."
"The same to you, brother, and many of them," Cleonie sneered. "Or, better, when my race supplants yours as Proxies of Power, I shall give myself the pleasure of doing just that to you."
"The same to you, brother, and many more," Cleonie mocked. "Or, better yet, when my people take your place as Proxies of Power, I'll enjoy doing exactly that to you."
"Clarrissa! Clarrissa! Pay attention, please!" The Red Lensman came to herself with a start—Helen had been thinking at her, with increasing power, for seconds. The Velan's blunt nose filled half the plate.
"Clarrissa! Clarrissa! Please pay attention!" The Red Lensman snapped back to reality—Helen had been projecting her thoughts to her, getting stronger by the second. The Velan's blunt nose took up half the plate.
In minutes, then Clarrissa and her party were in Kinnison's private quarters in the Dauntless. There had been warm mental greetings; physical demonstrations would come later. Worsel broke in.
In just a few minutes, Clarrissa and her group were in Kinnison's private quarters on the Dauntless. They exchanged friendly thoughts; physical gestures would happen later. Worsel interrupted.
"Excuse it, Kim, but seconds count. Better we split, don't you think? You find out what the score around here is, from Clarrissa, and take steps, and I'll chase that Boskonian. He's flitting—fast."
"Sorry, Kim, but time is crucial. We should split up, don’t you agree? Find out what's going on here from Clarrissa, and take action, while I go after that Boskonian. He’s moving quickly."
"QX, Slim," and the Velan disappeared.
"QX, Slim," and the Velan vanished.
"You remember Helen, of course, Kim." Kinnison bent his head, flipping a quick grin at his wife, who had spoken aloud. The Lyranian, trying to unbend, half-offered her hand, but when he did not take it she withdrew it as enthusiastically as she had twenty years before. "And this is Cleonie, the ... the wench I've been telling you about. You knew her before."
"You remember Helen, right, Kim?" Kinnison nodded, giving a quick smile to his wife, who had just spoken. The Lyranian, trying to relax, half-offered her hand, but when he didn't take it, she pulled it back as eagerly as she had twenty years ago. "And this is Cleonie, the ... the woman I've been telling you about. You knew her before."
"Yeah. She hasn't changed much—still as unbarbered a mess as ever. If you've got what you want, Chris, we'd better—"
"Yeah. She hasn't changed much—still as messy as ever. If you have what you need, Chris, we should—"
"Kimball Kinnison, I demand Cleonie's life!" came Helen's vibrant thought. She had snatched one of Clarrissa's DeLameters and was swinging it into line when she was caught and held as though in a vise.
"Kimball Kinnison, I demand Cleonie's life!" Helen's powerful thought echoed. She had grabbed one of Clarrissa's DeLameters and was swinging it into position when she was seized and held as if in a vise.
"Sorry, Toots," the Gray Lensman's thought was more than a little grim. "Nice little girls don't play so rough. 'Scuse me, Chris, for dipping into your dish. Take over."
"Sorry, Toots," the Gray Lensman thought was pretty grim. "Nice girls don't play so rough. Sorry, Chris, for taking from your plate. You take over."
"Do you really mean that, Kim?"
"Are you serious about that, Kim?"
"Yes. It's your meat—slice it as thick or as thin as you please."
"Yes. It's your meat—cut it as thick or as thin as you want."
"Even to letting her go?"
"Even to letting her leave?"
"Check. What else could you do? In a lifeboat—I'll even show the jade how to run it."
"Check. What else could you do? In a lifeboat—I’ll even show the kid how to run it."
"Oh, Kim—"
"Oh, Kim—"
"Quartermaster! Kinnison. Please check Number Twelve lifeboat and break it out. I am loaning it to Cleonie of Lyrane II."
"Quartermaster! Kinnison. Please inspect the Number Twelve lifeboat and take it out. I'm lending it to Cleonie of Lyrane II."
XXII.
XXII.
Kit had decided long since that it was his job to scout the planet Eddore. His alone. He had told several people that he was en route there, and in a sense he had been, but he was not hurrying. Once he started that job, he knew that he would have to see it through with absolutely undisturbed attention, and there had been altogether too many other things popping up. Now, however, his visualization showed a couple of weeks of free time, and that would be enough. He wasn't sure whether he was grown-up enough yet to do a man's job of work or not, and Mentor wouldn't tell him. This was the best way to find out. If so, QX. If not, he would back off, wait, and try again later.
Kit had decided a long time ago that it was his responsibility to scout the planet Eddore. It was his alone. He had told several people that he was on his way there, and in a way, he had been, but he wasn’t rushing. Once he took on that job, he knew he would need to focus on it completely, and too many other things had come up. Now, though, his schedule showed a couple of weeks of free time, and that would be enough. He wasn’t sure if he was grown-up enough yet to handle a man’s work, and Mentor wouldn’t say. This was the best way to find out. If he was, great. If not, he would take a step back, wait, and try again later.
The kids had wanted to go along, of course.
The kids definitely wanted to go along, of course.
"Come on, Kit, don't be a pig!" Constance started what developed into the last violent argument of their long lives. "Let's gang up on it—think what a grand work-out that would be for the Unit!"
"Come on, Kit, don’t be selfish!" Constance sparked what turned into the final intense argument of their long lives. "Let’s take it on together—imagine what a great workout that would be for the Unit!"
"Uh-uh, Con. Sorry, but it isn't in the cards, any more than it was the last time we discussed it," he began, reasonably enough.
"Uh-uh, Con. Sorry, but it's not going to happen, any more than it did the last time we talked about it," he started, sounding pretty reasonable.
"We didn't agree to it then," Kay cut in, stormily, "and I for one am not going to agree to it now. You don't have to do it today. In fact, later on would be better. Anyway, Kit, I'm telling you right now that if you go in, we all go, as individuals if not as the Unit."
"We didn't agree to it back then," Kay interrupted, angrily, "and I, for one, am not agreeing to it now. You don't have to do it today. Honestly, it would be better to do it later. Anyway, Kit, I'm telling you right now that if you go in, we all go too, as individuals if not as the Unit."
"Act your age, Kay," he advised. "Get conscious. This is one of the two places in the Universe that can't be worked from a distance, and by the time you could get here I'll have the job done. So what difference does it make whether you agree or not? I'm going in now and I'm going in alone. Pick that one out of your pearly teeth!"
"Act your age, Kay," he said. "Wake up. This is one of the few places in the Universe that can't be handled from afar, and by the time you manage to get here, I'll have finished the job. So what's the point in whether you agree or not? I'm going in now, and I'm going in alone. Pick that one out of your perfect smile!"
That stopped Karen, cold—they all knew that even she would not endanger the enterprise by staging a useless demonstration against Eddore's defensive screens—but there were other arguments. Later, he was to come to see that his sisters had some right upon their side, but he could not see it then. None of their ideas would hold air, he declared, and his temper wore thinner and thinner.
That stopped Karen in her tracks—they all knew that even she wouldn't risk the mission by staging a pointless protest against Eddore's defenses—but there were other points to consider. Later, he would realize that his sisters had some valid points, but he couldn't see it at that moment. None of their ideas made sense, he said, and his patience was wearing thin.
"No, Cam—NO! You know as well as I do that we can't all be spared at once, either now or at any time in the near-enough future. Kay's full of pickles, and you all know it. Right now is the best time I'll ever have.
"No, Cam—NO! You know just as well as I do that we can't all be spared at once, either now or any time in the near future. Kay's in a tough spot, and you all know it. Right now is the best chance I'll ever have."
"Seal it, Kat—you can't be that dumb! Taking the Unit in would blow things wide open. There isn't a chance that I can get in, even alone, without touching something off. I, alone, won't be giving too much away, but the Unit would be a flare-lit tip-off and all hell would be out for noon. Or are you actually nitwitted enough to think that, all Arisia to the contrary, we are ready for the grand showdown?
"Seal it, Kat—you can't be that stupid! Bringing the Unit in would expose everything. There's no way I can do this alone without triggering something. I, by myself, won't reveal too much, but the Unit would be a red flag and all hell would break loose. Or do you really think, despite everything Arisia says, that we’re prepared for the big confrontation?"
"Hold it, all of you! Pipe down!" he snorted, finally. "Have I got to bash in your skulls to make you understand that I can't co-ordinate an attack against something without even the foggiest idea of what its actual physical setup is? Use your brains, kids—please use your brains!"
"Wait a minute, everyone! Quiet down!" he huffed, finally. "Do I have to knock some sense into you to make you realize that I can't organize an attack against something without even the slightest clue of what its actual setup is? Use your heads, guys—please use your heads!"
He finally won them over, even Karen; and while his speedster covered the last leg of the flight he completed his analysis.
He finally won them over, even Karen; and while his speedy aircraft covered the last part of the journey, he finished his analysis.
He had all the information he could get—in fact, all that was available—and it was pitifully meager and confusingly contradictory in detail. He knew the Arisians, each of them, personally; and had studied, jointly and severally, the Arisian visualizations of the ultimate foe. He knew the Lyranian impression of the Plooran version of the story of Eddore. Ploor! Merely a name. A symbol which Mentor had always kept rigorously apart from any Boskonian actuality. Ploor must be the missing link between Kalonia and Eddore. And he knew practically everything about it except the two really important facts—whether or not it really was that link, and where, within eleven thousand million parsecs, it was in space!
He had gathered all the information he could get—actually, all that was available—and it was frustratingly sparse and confusingly contradictory in detail. He personally knew each of the Arisians and had studied, both together and separately, their visualizations of the ultimate enemy. He was familiar with the Lyranian interpretation of the Plooran version of the Eddore story. Ploor! Just a name. A symbol that Mentor had always kept strictly separate from any Boskonian reality. Ploor must be the missing link between Kalonia and Eddore. And he knew almost everything about it except for two really crucial facts—whether or not it was actually that link, and where, within eleven thousand million parsecs, it was located in space!
He and his sisters had done their best. So had many librarians; who had found, not at all to his surprise, that no scrap of information or conjecture concerning Eddore or the Eddorians was to be found in any library, however comprehensive or exclusive.
He and his sisters had done their best. So had many librarians, who found, not surprisingly, that there was no information or speculation about Eddore or the Eddorians in any library, no matter how comprehensive or exclusive.
Thus he had guesses, hypotheses, theories, and visualizations galore; but none of them agreed and not one of them was convincing. He had no real facts whatever. Mentor had informed him, equably enough, that such a state of affairs was inevitable because of the known power of the Eddorian mind. That state, however, did not make Kit Kinnison any too happy as he approached dread and dreaded Eddore. He was in altogether too much of a dither as to what, actually, to expect.
Thus, he had plenty of guesses, ideas, theories, and pictures in his mind; but none of them matched up, and not a single one was convincing. He really had no solid facts at all. Mentor had told him, quite calmly, that this situation was unavoidable because of the known strength of the Eddorian mind. However, this reality didn't make Kit Kinnison feel any better as he approached the terrifying and dreaded Eddore. He was far too anxious about what to actually expect.
As he neared the boundary of the star-cluster within which Eddore lay, he cut his velocity to a crawl. An outer screen, he knew, surrounded the whole cluster. How many intermediate protective layers existed, where they were, or what they were like, nobody knew. That information was only a small part of what he had to have.
As he got closer to the edge of the star cluster where Eddore was located, he slowed down to a crawl. He knew there was an outer shield surrounding the entire cluster. No one knew how many layers of protection there were in between, where they were, or what they were like. That information was just a small part of what he needed to know.
His far-flung detector web, at practically zero power, touched the barrier without giving alarm and stopped. His speedster stopped. Everything stopped.
His extensive detector network, using almost no power, reached the barrier without triggering any alarms and halted. His fast vehicle stopped. Everything came to a standstill.
Christopher Kinnison, the matrix and the key element of the Unit, had tools and equipment about which even Mentor of Arisia knew nothing in detail; about which, it was hoped and believed, the Eddorians were completely in ignorance. He reached deep into the storehouse toolbox of his mind, arranged his selections in order, and went to work.
Christopher Kinnison, the center and the crucial part of the Unit, had tools and equipment that even Mentor of Arisia didn’t know much about; it was hoped and believed that the Eddorians were completely unaware of them. He dug deep into the storage toolbox of his mind, organized his choices, and got to work.
He built up his detector web, one infinitesimal increment at a time, until he could just perceive the structure of the barrier. He made no attempt to analyze it, knowing that any fabric or structure solid enough to perform such an operation would certainly touch off an alarm. Analysis could come later, after he had found out whether the generator of this outer screen was a machine or a living brain.
He gradually developed his detection web, one tiny step at a time, until he could barely make out the outline of the barrier. He didn't try to analyze it, knowing that any material or structure sturdy enough for that would definitely trigger an alarm. He could analyze it later, after he figured out whether the source of this outer screen was a machine or a living brain.
He felt his way along the barrier—slowly—carefully. He completely outlined one section, studying the fashion in which the joints were made and how it must be supported and operated. With the utmost nicety of which he was capable he synchronized a probe with the almost impossibly complex structure of the thing and slid it along a feeder beam into the generator station. A mechanism—they didn't waste live Eddorians, then, any more than the Arisians did, on outer defenses. QX.
He carefully felt his way along the barrier, moving slowly and cautiously. He mapped out one section, examining how the joints were constructed and how it must be supported and function. With great precision, he coordinated a probe with the incredibly complex design of the structure and slid it along a feeder beam into the generator station. A mechanism—they didn’t waste live Eddorians on outer defenses, just like the Arisians. QX.
A precisely-tuned blanket surrounded his speedster—a blanket which merged imperceptibly into, and in effect became an integral part of, the barrier itself. The blanket thinned over half of the speedster. The speedster crept forward. The barrier—unchanged, unaffected—was behind the speedster. Man and vessel were through!
A perfectly adjusted blanket enveloped his speedster—a blanket that blended seamlessly into, and effectively became a crucial part of, the barrier itself. The blanket thinned over half of the speedster. The speedster moved slowly forward. The barrier—unchanged, unaffected—was behind the speedster. Man and vessel were through!
Kit breathed deeply in relief and rested. This didn't prove much, of course. Nadreck had done practically the same thing in getting Kandron—except that the Palainian would never be able to analyze or to synthesize such screens as these. The real test would come later; but this had been mighty good practice.
Kit breathed a deep sigh of relief and took a moment to rest. This didn’t mean much, of course. Nadreck had pretty much done the same thing to capture Kandron—except that the Palainian could never analyze or create screens like these. The real challenge would come later; but this had been really good practice.
The real test came with the fifth, the innermost screen. The others, while of ever-increasing sensitivity, complexity, and power, were all generated mechanically, and hence posed problems differing only in degree, and not in kind, from that of the first. The fifth problem, however, involving a living and highly capable brain, differed in both degree and kind from all the others. The Eddorian would be sensitive to form and to shape, as well as to interference. Bulges were out, unless he could do something about the Eddorian—and the speedster couldn't go through a screen without making a bulge.
The real challenge came with the fifth and innermost screen. The others, although increasingly sensitive, complex, and powerful, were all generated mechanically, so they presented problems that were only variations in degree rather than in kind from the first one. However, the fifth problem involved a living, highly capable brain, which made it different both in degree and in kind from the rest. The Eddorian would be responsive to form and shape, as well as to interference. Bulges were not allowed, unless he could do something about the Eddorian—and the speedster couldn't pass through a screen without creating a bulge.
Furthermore, this zone had visual and electromagnetic detectors, so spaced as not to let a microbe through. There were fortresses, maulers, battleships, and their attendant lesser craft. There were projectors, and mines, and automatic torpedoes with atomic warheads, and other such things. Were these things completely dependent upon the Eddorian guardian, or not?
Furthermore, this area had visual and electromagnetic detectors, arranged so tightly that not even a microbe could pass through. There were fortresses, maulers, battleships, and their accompanying smaller crafts. There were projectors, mines, automatic torpedoes with atomic warheads, and other similar devices. Were these things entirely reliant on the Eddorian guardian, or not?
They were not. The officers—Kalonians for the most part—would go into action at the guardian's signal, of course; but they would at need act without instructions. A nice setup—a mighty hard nut to crack! He would have to use zones of compulsion. Nothing else would do.
They weren’t. The officers—mostly Kalonians—would jump into action at the guardian's signal, of course; but they could also act on their own if needed. A tricky situation—a really tough problem to solve! He would have to use areas of compulsion. Nothing else would work.
Picking out the biggest fortress in the neighborhood, with its correspondingly large field of coverage, he insinuated his mind into that of one observing officer after another. When he left, a few minutes later, he knew that none of those officers would initiate any action in response to the alarms which he would so soon set off. They were alive, fully conscious, alert, and would have resented bitterly any suggestion that they were not completely normal in every respect. Nevertheless, whatever colors the lights flashed, whatever pictures the plates revealed, whatever noises blared from the speakers, in their consciousnesses would be only blankness and silence. Nor would recorder tapes reveal later what had occurred. An instrument cannot register fluctuations when its movable member is controlled by a couple of steady fingers.
Choosing the largest fortress in the area, with its wide range of coverage, he subtly tapped into the minds of one observing officer after another. When he departed a few minutes later, he was confident that none of those officers would take any action in response to the alarms he was about to trigger. They were awake, fully aware, alert, and would have strongly rejected any implication that they were less than completely normal in every way. Still, regardless of how the lights flashed, what images the screens displayed, or what sounds blasted from the speakers, their minds would quiet into blankness and silence. Nor would the recorder tapes capture what had happened later. A device cannot pick up changes when its moving part is controlled by a pair of steady hands.
Then the Eddorian. To take over his whole mind was, Kit knew, beyond his present power. A partial zone, though, could be set up—and young Kinnison's mind had been developed specifically to perform the theretofore impossible. Thus the guardian, without suspecting it, suffered an attack of partial blindness which lasted for the fraction of a second necessary for the speedster to flash through the screen. And there was no recorder to worry about. Eddorians, never sleeping and never relaxing their vigilance, had no doubt whatever of their own capabilities and needed no checks upon their own performances.
Then the Eddorian. Kit knew he didn't have the ability to completely take over his mind yet. However, he could establish a partial zone—and young Kinnison's mind had been trained specifically to do what had previously been thought impossible. So, the guardian, without realizing it, experienced a brief moment of partial blindness that lasted just long enough for the speedster to slip through the screen. And there was no recorder to be concerned about. Eddorians, who never slept and were always alert, had complete confidence in their own abilities and didn’t need to verify their own performances.
Christopher Kinnison, Child of the Lens, was inside Eddore's innermost defensive sphere. For countless cycles of time the Arisians had been working toward and looking forward to the chain of events of which this was the first link. Nor would he have much time here: he would have known that even if Mentor had not so stressed the point. As long as he did nothing he was safe; but as soon as he started sniffing around he would be open to detection and some Eddorian would climb his frame in mighty short order. Then blast and lock on—he might get something, or a lot, or nothing at all. Then—win, lose, or draw—he had to get away. Strictly under his own power, against an unknown number of the most powerful and the most ruthless entities ever to live. The Arisian couldn't get in here to help him, and neither could the kids. Nobody could. It was strictly and solely up to him.
Christopher Kinnison, Child of the Lens, was inside Eddore's most secure defensive sphere. For countless cycles, the Arisians had been working towards and anticipating the series of events that this was the beginning of. He wouldn’t have much time here, and he’d know that even if Mentor hadn’t emphasized it so much. As long as he stayed still, he was safe; but as soon as he started poking around, he would be vulnerable, and some Eddorian would catch him in no time. Then it would be a blast and lock on—he might get something, a lot, or nothing at all. Regardless—win, lose, or draw—he had to escape. Completely on his own, facing an unknown number of the most powerful and ruthless beings to ever exist. The Arisian couldn’t come here to help him, nor could the kids. Nobody could. It was entirely up to him.
For more than a moment his spirit failed. The odds against him were far too long. The load was too heavy; he didn't have half enough jets to swing it. Just how did a guy as smart as Mentor figure it that he, a dumb, green kid, stood a chance against all Eddore?
For more than a moment, he felt defeated. The odds were stacked against him. The burden was too heavy; he didn't have nearly enough skills to handle it. How did someone as smart as Mentor think that he, a clueless rookie, had a chance against all of Eddore?
He was scared; scared to the core of his being; scared as he had never been before and never would be again. His mouth felt dry, his tongue cottony. His fingers shook, even as he doubled them into fists to steady them. To the very end of his long life he remembered the fabric and the texture of that fear; remembered how it made him decide to turn back, before it was too late to retrace his way as unobserved as he had come.
He was terrified; terrified to the core of his being; scared like he had never been before and never would be again. His mouth felt dry, his tongue fuzzy. His fingers trembled, even as he clenched them into fists to steady himself. For the rest of his long life, he remembered the feeling and the texture of that fear; remembered how it made him choose to turn back, before it was too late to retrace his steps as unnoticed as he had arrived.
Well, why not? Who would care, and what matter? The Arisians? Nuts! It was all their fault, sending him in half-ready. His parents? They wouldn't know what the score was and wouldn't care. They would be on his side, anyway, no matter what happened. The kids? The kids! Klono's Holy Claws!
Well, why not? Who would care, and what does it matter? The Arisians? Seriously? It was all their fault for sending him in half-prepared. His parents? They wouldn't know what was going on and wouldn’t care. They’d be on his side, anyway, no matter what happened. The kids? The kids! Klono's Holy Claws!
They had tried to talk him out of coming in alone. They had fought like wildcats to make him take them along. He had refused. Now, if he sneaked back with his tail between his legs, how would they take it? What would they do? What would they think? Then, later, after he had loused up the big job and let the Arisians and the Patrol and all Civilization get knocked out—then what? The kids would know exactly how and why it had happened. He couldn't defend himself, even if he tried, and he wouldn't try. Did he have any idea how much sheer, vitriolic, corrosive contempt those four red-headed hellions could generate? Or, even if they didn't—or as a follow-up—their condescending, sisterly pity would be a thousand million times worse. And what would he think of himself? No soap. It was out. Definitely. The Eddorians could kill him only once. QX.
They had tried to talk him out of coming in alone. They had fought hard to convince him to bring them along. He had refused. Now, if he snuck back with his tail between his legs, how would they react? What would they do? What would they think? Then, after he messed up the big job and let the Arisians, the Patrol, and all of Civilization get taken out—then what? The kids would know exactly how and why it happened. He couldn't defend himself, even if he tried, and he wouldn't try. Did he have any idea how much sheer, spiteful, corrosive disdain those four red-headed troublemakers could generate? Or, even if they didn't—or as a follow-up—their condescending, sisterly pity
He drove straight downward, noting as he did so that his senses were clear, his hands steady, his tongue normally moist. He was still scared, but he was no longer paralyzed.
He drove straight down, realizing as he did that his senses were clear, his hands steady, and his tongue normally moist. He was still scared, but he was no longer frozen.
Low enough, he let his every perceptive sense roam abroad—and became instantly too busy to worry about anything. There was an immense amount of new stuff here—if he only could be granted time enough to get it all!
Low enough, he let all his senses wander freely—and quickly became too busy to worry about anything. There was so much new stuff here—if only he could have enough time to take it all in!
He wasn't. In a second or so, it seemed, his interference was detected and an Eddorian came in to investigate. Kit threw everything he had, and in the brief moment before the completely surprised denizen died, the young Klovian learned more of the real truth of Eddore and of the whole Boskonian Empire than all the Arisians had ever found out. In that one flash of ultimately intimate fusion, he knew Eddorian history, practically in toto. He knew the enemies' culture; he knew how they behaved, and why. He knew their ideals and their ideologies. He knew a great deal about their organization; their systems of offense and of defense. He knew their strengths and, more important, their weaknesses. He knew exactly how, if Civilization were to triumph at all, its victory must be achieved.
He wasn’t. In just a second, it seemed, his interference was noticed and an Eddorian came in to check it out. Kit threw everything he had, and in the brief moment before the completely surprised inhabitant died, the young Klovian learned more about the real truth of Eddore and the entire Boskonian Empire than all the Arisians had ever discovered. In that one flash of deep connection, he knew Eddorian history, practically in toto. He understood the enemies' culture; he knew how they acted and why. He was aware of their ideals and ideologies. He learned a lot about their organization; their offense and defense systems. He understood their strengths and, more importantly, their weaknesses. He knew exactly how, if Civilization were to win at all, its victory would have to be achieved.
This seems—or rather, it is—incredible. It is, however, simple truth. Under such stresses as those, an Eddorian mind can yield, and the mind of such a one as Christopher Kinnison can absorb, an incredible amount of knowledge in an incredibly brief interval of time.
This seems—or rather, it is—unbelievable. However, it's the simple truth. Under such pressures, an Eddorian mind can give in, and someone like Christopher Kinnison can take in an amazing amount of knowledge in an extraordinarily short period of time.

Kit, already seated at his controls, cut in his every course of thought-screen. They would help a little in what was coming, but not much—no mechanical screen then known to Civilization could block third-level thought. He kicked in full drive toward the one small area in which he and his speedster would not encounter either beams or bombs—the fortress whose observers would not perceive that anything was amiss. He did not fear physical pursuit, since his speedster was the fastest thing in space.
Kit, already at his controls, activated his thought-screen. It would provide some help for what was ahead, but not a lot—no technology known to Society could block deeper thought. He engaged full speed toward the one small area where he and his ship wouldn’t run into any beams or bombs—the fortress whose watchers wouldn’t notice anything wrong. He wasn’t worried about being chased, since his ship was the fastest thing in space.
For a second or so it was not so bad. Another Eddorian came in, suspicious and on guard. Kit blasted him down—learning still more in the process—but he could not prevent him from radiating a frantic and highly revealing call for help. And although the other Eddorians could scarcely realize that such an astonishing thing as a physical invasion had actually happened, that fact neither slowed them down nor made their anger less violent.
For a second or so, it wasn't too bad. Another Eddorian entered, looking suspicious and on edge. Kit took him down—learning even more in the process—but he couldn't stop him from sending out a frantic and highly revealing call for help. And even though the other Eddorians could hardly believe that something as unbelievable as a physical invasion had actually occurred, that didn’t slow them down or lessen their anger.
When Kit flashed past his friendly fortress he was taking about all that he could handle, and more and more Eddorians were piling on. At the fourth screen it was worse; at the third he reached what he was sure was his absolute ceiling. Nevertheless, from some hitherto unsuspected profundity of his being, he managed to draw enough reserve force to endure that hellish punishment for a little while longer.
When Kit zoomed past his friendly fortress, he was dealing with just about all he could handle, and more and more Eddorians were piling on. At the fourth screen, it was even worse; at the third, he hit what he thought was his absolute limit. Yet, from some previously undiscovered depth of his being, he managed to tap into enough reserve energy to endure that unbearable punishment for a little while longer.
Hang on, Kit, hang on! Only two more screens to go. Maybe only one. Maybe less. Living Eddorian brains, and not mechanical generators, are now handling all the screens, of course; but if Mentor's visualization is worth a tinker's damn, he must have that first screen knocked down by this time and must be working on the second. Hang on, Kit, and keep on slugging!
Hang in there, Kit! Just two more screens to go. Maybe just one. Or even less. Real Eddorian brains, not machines, are handling all the screens now; but if Mentor's visualization is worth anything, he must have finished that first screen by now and is working on the second. Hang in there, Kit, and keep pushing forward!
And grimly—doggedly—toward the end sheerly desperately—Christopher Kinnison, eldest Child of the Lens, hung on and slugged.
And grimly—determinedly—toward the end, purely desperately—Christopher Kinnison, the oldest Child of the Lens, held on and fought.


XXIII.
XXIII.
If the historian has succeeded in his attempt to describe the characters and abilities concerned, it is not necessary to enlarge upon what Kit went through in escaping Eddore. If he has not succeeded, enlargement would be useless. Therefore, it is enough to say that the young Lensman, by dint of calling up and putting out everything he had, hung on long enough and slugged his way through.
If the historian has managed to describe the characters and abilities involved, there's no need to elaborate on what Kit faced in escaping Eddore. If he hasn't succeeded, further details would be pointless. So, it's sufficient to say that the young Lensman, by tapping into all his resources and pushing through, held on long enough and fought his way through.
Mentor's visualization had been sound. The Eddorian guardians had scarcely taken over the first screen when it was overwhelmed by a tremendous wave of Arisian thought. It is to be remembered, however, that this was the second time that the massed might of Arisia had been thrown against Eddore's defenses, and the Boskonians had learned much, during the intervening years, from their exhaustive analyses of the offensive and defensive techniques of that earlier conflict. Thus the Arisian drive was practically stopped at the second zone of defense as Kit approached it. The screen was wavering, shifting; yielding stubbornly wherever it must and springing back into place whenever it could.
Mentor's visualization was spot on. The Eddorian guardians had barely taken control of the first screen when it was hit by a massive surge of Arisian thought. It's important to note that this was the second time the combined power of Arisia had been thrown against Eddore's defenses, and the Boskonians had learned a lot over the years from their in-depth studies of the offensive and defensive strategies from that earlier conflict. As Kit approached, the Arisian push was nearly halted at the second zone of defense. The screen was flickering and shifting, yielding stubbornly when it had to and bouncing back into place whenever it could.
Under a tremendous concentration of Arisian force the screen weakened in a limited area directly ahead of the hurtling speedster. A few beams lashed out aimlessly, uselessly—if the Eddorians could not hold their main screens proof against the power of the Arisian attack, how could they protect such minor things as gunners' minds? The little ship flashed through the weakened barrier and into the center of a sphere of impenetrable, impermeable Arisian thought.
Under an immense concentration of Arisian power, the screen weakened in a small area right in front of the speeding ship. A few beams shot out aimlessly, without purpose—if the Eddorians couldn't keep their main defenses intact against the Arisian assault, how could they safeguard something as insignificant as the minds of their gunners? The small ship raced through the weak point and into the heart of a sphere of impenetrable, impermeable Arisian thought.
At the shock of the sudden ending of his terrific battle—the instantaneous transition from supreme to zero effort—Kit fainted in his control chair. He lay slumped, inert, in a stupor which changed gradually into a deep and natural sleep. And as the sleeping man in his inertialess speedster traversed space at full touring blast, that peculiar sphere of force still enveloped and still protected him.
At the shock of the sudden end of his intense battle—the instant shift from complete intensity to zero effort—Kit passed out in his control chair. He lay slumped, motionless, in a daze that gradually turned into a deep and natural sleep. And as the sleeping man in his weightless speedster zipped through space at full speed, that strange force field still surrounded and protected him.
Kit finally began to come to. His first foggy thought was that he was hungry—then, wide awake and remembering, he grabbed his levers.
Kit finally started to regain consciousness. His first hazy thought was that he was hungry—then, fully alert and remembering, he reached for his levers.
"Rest quietly and eat your fill," a grave resonant pseudovoice assured him. "Everything is exactly as it should be."
"Rest easy and eat to your heart's content," a deep, serious voice assured him. "Everything is just as it should be."
"Hi, Ment ... well, well, if it isn't my old chum Eukonidor! Hi, young fellow! What's the good word? And what's the big idea of letting—or making—me sleep for a week when there's work to do?"
"Hey, Ment... well, well, if it isn't my old buddy Eukonidor! Hey there, young man! What's the latest? And what's the deal with letting—or forcing—me to sleep for a week when there's work to be done?"
"Your part of the work, at least for the immediate present, is done; and, let me say, very well done."
"Your part of the work, at least for now, is finished; and I must say, you did it very well."
"Thanks ... but—" Kit broke off, flushing darkly.
"Thanks ... but—" Kit hesitated, blushing deeply.
"Do not reproach yourself, nor us. Consider, please, and recite, the manufacture of a fine tool of ultimate quality."
"Don't blame yourself or us. Please think about and describe the making of a great tool of the highest quality."
"The correct alloy. Hot working—perhaps cold, too. Forging—heating—quenching—drawing—"
"The right alloy. Hot working—maybe cold, too. Forging—heating—quenching—drawing—"
"Enough. Think you that the steel, if sentient, would enjoy those treatments? While you did not enjoy them, you are able to appreciate their necessity. You are now a finished tool, forged and tempered."
"That's enough. Do you really think that if steel could think, it would appreciate those treatments? Even though you didn't like them, you understand that they were necessary. You are now a complete tool, shaped and strengthened."
"Oh, you may have something there, at that. But as to ultimate quality, don't make me laugh." There was no nuance of merriment in Kit's thought. "You can't square that with cowardice."
"Oh, you might be onto something there. But when it comes to ultimate quality, don't make me laugh." There was no hint of humor in Kit's thoughts. "You can't reconcile that with cowardice."
"Nor is there need. The term ultimate was used advisedly, and still stands. It does not mean or imply, however, a state of perfection, since that condition is unattainable. I am not advising you to try to forget; nor am I attempting to force forgetfulness upon you, since your mind cannot now be coerced by any force presently existing. Be assured that nothing that occurred should irk you; for the simple truth is, that although stressed as no other mind has ever before been stressed, you did not yield. Instead, you secured and retained information which we of Arisia have never been able to obtain; information which will in fact be the means of preserving your Civilization."
"There's really no need. The term ultimate was chosen carefully, and it still stands. However, it doesn't mean or suggest a state of perfection, since that's impossible to achieve. I'm not telling you to forget; nor am I trying to force you to forget, since your mind can't be pressured by any existing force right now. Rest assured that nothing that happened should bother you; the simple truth is, even though you were stressed more than any mind has ever been stressed, you didn’t give in. Instead, you gathered and held onto information that we from Arisia have never been able to obtain; information that will actually help preserve your Civilization."
"I can't believe ... that is, it doesn't seem—" Kit, knowing that he was thinking muddily and foolishly, paused and pulled himself together. Overwhelming, almost paralyzing as that information was, it must be true. It was true!
"I can't believe ... I mean, it doesn't seem—" Kit, realizing that he was thinking in a confused and silly way, paused and gathered his thoughts. As overwhelming and almost paralyzing as that information was, it had to be true. It was true!
"Yes, it is the truth. While we of Arisia have at various times made ambiguous statements, to lead certain Lensmen and others to arrive at erroneous conclusions, you know that we do not lie."
"Yes, it's true. Although we from Arisia have sometimes made vague statements to mislead certain Lensmen and others into making wrong conclusions, you know we don’t lie."
"Yes, I know that." Kit plumbed the Arisian's mind. "It sort of knocks me out of my orbit—that's an awfully big bite to swallow at one gulp, you know."
"Yeah, I get that." Kit dug into the Arisian's thoughts. "It kind of throws me off balance—that's a huge deal to take in all at once, you know."
"It is. That is one reason I am here, to convince you of the truth, which you would not otherwise believe fully. Also to see to it that your rest, without which you might have been hurt, was not disturbed, as well as to make sure that you were not permanently damaged by the Eddorians."
"It is. That's one reason I'm here: to convince you of the truth, which you wouldn't fully believe otherwise. I'm also here to ensure that your rest, which could have led to harm if disturbed, wasn't interrupted, and to make sure you weren't permanently affected by the Eddorians."
"I wasn't ... at least, I don't think so ... was I?"
"I wasn't ... at least, I don't think so ... was I?"
"You were not."
"You weren't."
"Good. I was wondering—Mentor will be tied up for quite a while, of course, so I'll ask you—they must have got a sort of pattern of me, in spite of all I could do, and they'll be camping on my trail from now on, so I suppose I'll have to keep a solid block up all the time?"
"Good. I was wondering—Mentor is going to be busy for a while, so I'll ask you—they must have figured me out, despite everything I tried, and they're going to be on my case from now on, so I guess I’ll have to stay on guard all the time?"
"They will not, Christopher, and you need not. Guided by those whom you knew as Mentor, I myself, as a Guardian, am to see to that. But time presses—I must rejoin my fellows."
"They won’t, Christopher, and you don’t have to either. With the guidance of those you knew as Mentor, I, as a Guardian, will take care of that. But time is limited—I need to go back to my companions."
"One more question first. You've been trying to sell me a bill of goods that I would like to buy. But, Eukonidor, the kids will know that I showed a streak of yellow a meter wide. What will they think?"
"One more question first. You've been trying to sell me something that I'm interested in buying. But, Eukonidor, the kids will know that I showed a huge sign of fear. What will they think?"
"Is that all?" Eukonidor's thought was almost a laugh. "They will make that eminently plain in a moment."
"Is that it?" Eukonidor thought, nearly laughing. "They'll make that really clear in a moment."
The Arisian's presence vanished, as did his sphere of force, and four clamoring thoughts came jamming in.
The Arisian disappeared, along with his sphere of influence, and four noisy thoughts pushed in.
"Oh, Kit, we're so glad!" "We tried to help, but they wouldn't let us!" "They smacked us down!" "Honestly, Kit!" "Oh, if we had only been in there, too!"
"Oh, Kit, we're so happy!" "We tried to help, but they wouldn’t let us!" "They pushed us away!" "Seriously, Kit!" "Oh, if only we had been in there, too!"

"Hold it, everybody! Jet back!" This was Con, Kit knew, but an entirely new Con. "Scan him, Cam, as you never scanned anything before. If they burned out even one cell of his mind, I'm going over there right now and kick every one of Mentor's teeth out!"
"Wait, everyone! Get back!" This was Con, Kit realized, but a totally different Con. "Check him, Cam, like you've never checked anyone before. If they damaged even one cell of his mind, I'm going over there right now to knock all of Mentor's teeth out!"
"And listen, Kit!" This was an equally strange Kathryn blazing with fury and yet suffusing his mind with a more than sisterly tenderness, a surpassing richness. "If we had had the faintest idea of what they were doing to you, all the Arisians and all the Eddorians and all the devils in all the hells of the macrocosmic Universe couldn't have kept us away. You must believe that, Kit—or can you, quite?"
"And listen, Kit!" This was a strangely furious Kathryn, yet there was a deep tenderness in her that went beyond just being sisterly, a profound richness. "If we had even the slightest idea of what they were doing to you, all the Arisians, all the Eddorians, and all the demons in all the hells of the universe couldn't have kept us away. You have to believe that, Kit—or can you?"
"Of course, Sis—you don't have to prove an axiom. Seal it, all of you. You're swell people—absolute tops. But I ... you ... that is—" He broke off and marshaled his thoughts.
"Of course, Sis—you don't need to prove an obvious truth. Just accept it, all of you. You’re great people—truly the best. But I ... you ... I mean—" He paused and organized his thoughts.
He knew that they knew, in every minute particular, everything that had occurred. Yet to a girl they thought that he was wonderful. Their common thought was that they should have been in there, too—taking what he took—giving what he gave!
He knew they were fully aware of everything that had happened in detail. Still, the girls thought he was amazing. They all felt they should have been in there with him—experiencing what he experienced—offering what he offered!
"What I don't get is that you are trying to blame yourselves for what happened to me, when you were on the dead center of the beam all the time. You couldn't have been in there, kids; it would have blown the whole works higher than up. You knew that then, and you know it even better now. You also know that I flew the yellow flag. Didn't that even register?"
"What I don't understand is why you're trying to blame yourselves for what happened to me when you were right in the middle of it all the time. You couldn't have been in there, kids; it would have blown everything sky-high. You knew that then, and you know it even better now. You also know that I flew the yellow flag. Didn't that even register?"
"Oh, that!" Practically identical thoughts of complete dismissal came in unison, and Karen followed through:
"Oh, that!" Almost identical thoughts of total dismissal echoed together, and Karen went ahead:
"The only thing about that is that, since you knew what to expect, we marvel that you ever managed to go in at all—no one else could have, possibly. Or, once in, and seeing what was really there, that you didn't flit right out again. Believe me, brother of mine, you qualify!"
"The only thing is, since you knew what to expect, we’re amazed you even decided to go in at all—no one else could have done it, for sure. And once you were in and saw the reality of it, that you didn’t just run back out again. Trust me, my brother, you’ve earned your place!"
Kit choked. This was too much: but it made him feel good all over. These kids ... the Universe's best—
Kit choked. This was overwhelming, but it made him feel great all over. These kids... the Universe's finest—
As he thought, a partial block came unconsciously into being. For not one of those gorgeous, those utterly splendid creatures suspected, even now, that which he so surely knew—that each one of them was very shortly to be wrought and tempered as he himself had been. And, worse, he would have to stand aside and watch them, one by one, walk into it. Was there anything he could do to ward off, or even to soften, what was coming to them? There was not. With his present power, he could step in, of course—at what awful cost to Civilization only he, Christopher Kinnison, of all Civilization, really knew. No. That was out. Definitely. He could come in afterwards to ease their hurts, as each had come to him, but that was all—and there was a difference. They hadn't known about it in advance. It was tough.
As he contemplated this, an incomplete barrier formed without him realizing it. None of those beautiful, truly magnificent beings suspected, even now, what he knew for sure—that each of them was soon to be shaped and hardened just like he had been. And, worse, he would have to stand by and watch as they each walked into it. Was there anything he could do to prevent or even ease what was coming for them? No. With the power he had now, he could step in, of course—but at a dreadful cost to Civilization that only he, Christopher Kinnison, truly understood. No. That was not an option. He could step in later to help heal their wounds, as each had done for him, but that was all—and there was a difference. They hadn’t known about it beforehand. It was tough.
Could he do anything?
Could he do anything?
He could not.
He couldn't.
And on clammy, noisome Eddore, the Arisian attackers having been beaten off and normality restored, a meeting of the Highest Command was held. No two of those entities were alike in form; some were changing from one horrible shape into another; all were starkly, indescribably monstrous. All were concentrating upon the problem which had been so suddenly thrust upon them; each of them thought at and with each of the others. To do justice to the complexity or the cogency of that maze of intertwined thoughts is impossible; the best that can be done is to pick out a high point here and there.
And on the damp, foul Eddore, after successfully repelling the Arisian attackers and restoring normalcy, a meeting of the Highest Command took place. No two of those beings were the same in appearance; some were shifting from one terrifying form to another; all were shockingly, indescribably monstrous. They were all focused on the sudden problem they faced; each one connected with the thoughts of the others. It's impossible to fully capture the complexity of that tangled web of ideas; the best we can do is highlight a few key points here and there.
"This explains the Star A Star whom the Ploorans and the Kalonians so fear."
"This explains the Star A Star that the Ploorans and the Kalonians fear so much."
"And the failure of our operator on Thrale, and its fall."
"And the failure of our operator on Thrale, and its downfall."
"Also our recent quite serious reverses."
"Also, our recent pretty serious setbacks."
"Those stupid—those utterly brainless underlings!"
"Those idiots—those completely clueless underlings!"
"We should have been called in at the start!"
"We should have been brought in from the beginning!"
"Could you analyze, or even perceive, its pattern save in small part?"
"Can you analyze, or even recognize, its pattern at all?"
"No."
"Nope."
"Nor could I—an astounding and highly revealing circumstance."
"Nor could I—an amazing and very telling situation."
"An Arisian; or, rather, an Arisian development, certainly. No other entity of Civilization could possibly do what was done here. Nor could any Arisian as we know or deduce them."
"An Arisian; or, more accurately, an Arisian development, for sure. No other entity of Civilization could possibly achieve what happened here. Nor could any Arisian as we understand or can infer them."
"They have developed something very recently which we had not visualized."
"They have recently developed something we hadn't imagined."
"Kinnison's son? Bah! Think they to deceive us by the old device of energizing a form of ordinary flesh?"
"Kinnison's son? Please! Do they think they can fool us with the same old trick of bringing a regular body to life?"
"Kinnison—his son—Nadreck—Worsel—Tregonsee—what matters it?"
"Kinnison, his son, Nadreck, Worsel, Tregonsee—what's the difference?"
"Or, as we now know, the completely imaginary Star A Star."
"Or, as we now know, the entirely fictional Star A Star."
"We must revise our thinking," an authoritatively composite mind decided. "We must revise our theory and our plan. It may be possible that this new development will necessitate immediate, instead of later, action. If we had had a competent race of proxies, none of this would have happened, as we would have been kept informed. To correct a situation which may become grave, as well as to acquire fullest and latest information, we must attend the conference which is now being held on Ploor."
"We need to rethink our approach," a unified mind stated decisively. "We have to adjust our theory and our plan. It's possible that this new development requires immediate action instead of delaying it. If we had a capable group of representatives, none of this would have occurred, since we would have been kept in the loop. To fix a situation that could become serious, and to gather the most complete and up-to-date information, we need to attend the conference currently taking place on Ploor."
They did so. With no perceptible lapse of time or mode of transit, the Eddorian mind was in an assembly room upon that now flooded world. Resembling Nevians as much as any other race with which man is familiar, the now amphibious Ploorans lolled upon padded benches and argued heatedly. They were discussing, upon a lower level, much of the same material which the Eddorians had been considering so shortly before.
They did. Without any noticeable delay or means of transportation, the Eddorian mind arrived in a conference room on that now submerged world. Looking like Nevians as much as any other race known to humans, the now amphibious Ploorans lounged on cushioned benches and argued passionately. They were discussing, on a lower level, much of the same topics that the Eddorians had been contemplating just moments earlier.
Star A Star. Kinnison had been captured easily enough, but had, almost immediately, escaped from an escape-proof trap. Another trap was set, but would it take him? Would it hold him if it did? Kinnison was—must be—Star A Star. No, he could not be, there had been too many unrelated and simultaneous occurrences. Kinnison, Nadreck, Clarrissa, Worsel, Tregonsee, even Kinnison's young son, had all shown intermittent flashes of inexplicable power. Kinnison most of all. It was a fact worthy of note that the beginning of the long series of Boskonian setbacks coincided with Kinnison's appearance among the Lensmen.
Star A Star. Kinnison was captured easily enough, but he quickly escaped from what was supposed to be an inescapable trap. Another trap was set, but would it catch him? Would it keep him if it did? Kinnison was—had to be—Star A Star. No, he couldn't be, there had been too many unrelated and simultaneous events. Kinnison, Nadreck, Clarrissa, Worsel, Tregonsee, even Kinnison's young son, had all shown unpredictable flashes of strange power. Kinnison more than anyone. It's noteworthy that the start of the series of Boskonian setbacks coincided with Kinnison's emergence among the Lensmen.
The situation was bad. Not irreparable, by any means, but grave. The fault lay with the Eich, and perhaps with Kandron of Onlo. Such stupidity! Such incompetence! Those lower-echelon operators should have had brains enough to have reported the matter to Ploor before the situation got completely out of hand. But they didn't; hence this mess. None of them, however, expressed a thought that the present situation was already one with which they themselves could not cope; nor suggested that it be referred to Eddore before it should become too hot for even the Masters to handle.
The situation was bad. Not beyond repair, but serious. The blame was on the Eich, and maybe on Kandron of Onlo. What a stupid mistake! Such incompetence! Those lower-level operators should have been smart enough to report the issue to Ploor before things spiraled completely out of control. But they didn't; so here we are. None of them, though, acknowledged that the current situation was already one they couldn't manage; nor did anyone suggest taking it to Eddore before it became too much for even the Masters to deal with.
"Fools! Imbeciles! We, the Masters, although through no foresight or design of yours, are already here. Know now that you have been and still are yourselves guilty of the same conduct which you are so violently condemning in others." Neither Eddorians nor Ploorans realized that that deficiency was inherent in the Boskonian scheme of things, or that it stemmed from the organization's very top. "Sheer stupidity! Gross overconfidence! Those are the reasons for our recent reverses!"
"Fools! Idiots! We, the Masters, though not by your planning or foresight, are already here. Understand now that you have been and still are guilty of the same behavior that you are so aggressively criticizing in others." Neither Eddorians nor Ploorans recognized that this flaw was built into the Boskonian way of doing things, or that it came from the very top of the organization. "Complete stupidity! Total overconfidence! Those are the reasons for our recent setbacks!"
"But, Masters," a Plooran argued, "now that we have taken over, we are winning steadily. Civilization is rapidly going to pieces. In a few more years we will have smashed it flat."
"But, Masters," a Plooran argued, "now that we’re in charge, we’re steadily winning. Civilization is falling apart quickly. In just a few more years, we’ll have completely destroyed it."
"That is precisely what they wish you to think. They have been and are playing for time. Your bungling and mismanagement have already given them sufficient time to develop an object or an entity able to penetrate our screens, so that Eddore suffered the disgrace of an actual physical invasion. It was brief, to be sure, and unsuccessful, but it was an invasion, none the less—the first in our long history."
"That’s exactly what they want you to believe. They have been and still are stalling for time. Your mistakes and mismanagement have already given them enough time to create something that can break through our defenses, resulting in Eddore facing the shame of a real physical invasion. It was short, to be sure, and didn’t succeed, but it was an invasion nonetheless—the first in our long history."
"But, Masters—"
"But, Masters—"
"Silence! We are not here to indulge in recriminations, but to determine facts. Since you do not know Eddore's location in space, it is a certainty that you did not, either wittingly or otherwise, furnish that information. That in turn makes it clear who, basically, the invader was."
"Quiet! We're not here to place blame, but to establish the facts. Since you don’t know where Eddore is located in space, it's certain that you didn't provide that information, whether intentionally or not. That clearly identifies who the invader really was."
"Star A Star?" A wave of questions swept the group.
"Star A Star?" A wave of questions washed over the group.
"One name serves as well as another for what is almost certainly an Arisian entity or device. It is enough for you to know that it is something with which your massed minds would be completely unable to deal. To the best of your knowledge, have you been invaded, either physically or mentally?"
"Any name is just as good as another for what is almost certainly an Arisian entity or device. It's enough for you to know that it's something your combined minds would be totally unable to handle. To the best of your knowledge, have you been invaded, either physically or mentally?"
"We have not, Masters; and it is unbelievable that—"
"We haven't, Masters; and it's hard to believe that—"
"Is it so?" The Masters sneered. "Neither our screens nor our Eddorian guardsmen gave any alarm. We learned of the Arisian's presence only when he attempted to probe our very minds, at Eddore's very surface. Are your screens and minds, then, so much better than ours?"
"Is that so?" The Masters scoffed. "Our screens and Eddorian guards didn't raise any alarms. We only found out about the Arisian's presence when he tried to invade our minds, right at the surface of Eddore. Are your screens and minds really that much better than ours?"
"We erred, Masters. We abase ourselves. What do you wish us to do?"
"We made a mistake, Masters. We are humbled. What do you want us to do?"
"That is better. You will be informed, as soon as a few last-minute details have been worked out. Although nothing is established by the fact that you know of no occurrences here on Ploor, the probability is that you are still unknown and unsuspected, since it is unthinkable that the enemies' minds are in any real sense as strong as ours. Nevertheless, one of us is now taking over control of the trap which you set for Kinnison, in the belief that he is Star A Star."
"That’s better. You’ll be notified as soon as a few last-minute details are sorted out. Even though it doesn't mean much that you haven't heard of anything happening here on Ploor, it’s likely that you’re still under the radar and not suspected, since it’s hard to believe that our enemies are as mentally strong as we are. Still, one of us is now taking over the control of the trap you set for Kinnison, thinking he’s Star A Star."
"Belief, Masters? It is certain that he is Star A Star!"
"Belief, Masters? It's clear that he is Star A Star!"

"In essence, yes. In exactness, no. Kinnison is, in all probability, merely a puppet through whom an Arisian works at times. If you take Kinnison in that trap, however, the entity you call Star A Star will assuredly kill you all."
"In short, yes. In detail, no. Kinnison is probably just a pawn used by an Arisian at times. If you catch Kinnison in that trap, though, the being you refer to as Star A Star will definitely kill you all."
"But, Masters—"
"But, Masters..."
"Again, fools, silence!" The thought dripped vitriol. "Remember how easily Kinnison escaped from you? It was the supremely clever move of not following through and destroying you then that obscured the truth for years—that gave them all this additional time. As we have said, you are completely powerless against the one you call Star A Star. Against any lesser force, however—and the probability is exceedingly great that only such forces, if any, will be sent against you—you should be able to win. Are you ready?"
"Again, idiots, shut up!" The thought seethed with anger. "Remember how easily Kinnison got away from you? It was the brilliant choice not to finish you off then that kept the truth hidden for years—that gave them all this extra time. As we've said, you are totally helpless against the one you call Star A Star. But against any lesser force, which is highly likely to be what you face, you should be able to win. Are you ready?"
"We are ready, Masters." At last the Ploorans were upon familiar ground. "Since ordinary weapons will be useless against us, they will not attempt to use them—especially since they have developed three extraordinary and supposedly irresistible weapons of attack. First: projectiles composed of negative matter, particularly those of planetary antimass. Second: loose planets, driven inertialess, but inerted at the point at which their intrinsic velocities render collision unavoidable. Third, and worst: the sunbeam. These gave us some trouble, particularly the last, but the problems were solved and if any one of the three, or all of them, are used against us, disaster for the Galactic Patrol is assured.
"We're ready, Masters." Finally, the Ploorans were back on familiar ground. "Since regular weapons won't work on us, they'll refrain from using them—especially since they've developed three extraordinary and supposedly unbeatable weapons of attack. First: projectiles made of negative matter, especially those from planetary antimass. Second: rogue planets, driven without inertia but activated right at the point where their natural speeds make collision unavoidable. Third, and the worst: the sunbeam. These caused us some issues, especially the last one, but we figured out the problems. If any of these three, or all of them, are used against us, the Galactic Patrol is in for a disaster."
"Nor did we stop there. Our psychologists, working with our engineers, after having analyzed exhaustively the capabilities of the so-called Second-Stage Lensmen, developed countermeasures against every super-weapon which they will be able to develop during the next century."
"Nor did we stop there. Our psychologists, collaborating with our engineers, after thoroughly analyzing the abilities of the so-called Second-Stage Lensmen, created countermeasures for every super-weapon they might develop over the next century."
"Such as?" The Masters were unimpressed.
"Like what?" The Masters were not impressed.
"The most probable one is an extension of the sunbeam principle, to operate from a distant sun; or, preferably, a nova. We are now installing fields and grids by the use of which we, not the Patrol, will direct that beam."
"The most likely option is to expand on the sunbeam principle, using a distant sun or, ideally, a nova. We are currently setting up fields and grids that will allow us, not the Patrol, to control that beam."
"Interesting—if true. Spread in our minds the details of all that you have foreseen and the fashions in which you have safeguarded yourselves."
"Interesting—if it's true. Share in our minds the details of everything you've predicted and the ways you've protected yourselves."
It was a long operation, even at the speed of thought. At its end the Eddorians were unconvinced, skeptical, and pessimistic.
It was a lengthy process, even at the speed of thought. By the end, the Eddorians remained unconvinced, doubtful, and negative.
"We can visualize several other things which the forces of Civilization may be able to develop well within the century," the Master mind said, coldly. "We will assemble data concerning a few of them, for your study. In the meantime, hold yourselves in readiness to act, as we shall issue final orders very shortly."
"We can picture several other things that the forces of Civilization might be able to develop within the century," the Mastermind said, coldly. "We'll gather information on a few of them for you to study. In the meantime, be prepared to act, as we'll issue final orders very soon."
"Yes, Masters," and the Eddorians went back to their home planet as effortlessly as they had left it. There they concluded their conference.
"Yes, Masters," and the Eddorians returned to their home planet just as easily as they had departed. There they wrapped up their conference.
"It is clear that Kinnison will enter that trap. He cannot do otherwise. Kinnison's protector, whoever or whatever he or it may be, may or may not enter it with him. It may or may not be taken with him. Whether or not the new Arisian figment is taken, Kimball Kinnison must die. He is the very keystone of the Galactic Patrol. At his death, as we will advertise it to have come about, the Patrol will fall apart. The Arisians, themselves unknown, will be forced to try to rebuild it around another puppet; but neither his son nor any other man will ever be able to take Kinnison's place in the esteem of the hero-worshiping, undisciplined mob which is Civilization. Hence the importance of your project. You, personally, will supervise the operation of the trap. You, personally, will kill him."
"It’s obvious that Kinnison will walk into that trap. He has no other choice. Kinnison’s protector, whoever or whatever that might be, may or may not go in with him. It might or might not be caught with him. Regardless of whether the new Arisian creation gets taken, Kimball Kinnison must die. He is the essential linchpin of the Galactic Patrol. When he dies, as we’ll make sure to present it, the Patrol will crumble. The Arisians, who remain in the shadows, will be forced to try to rebuild it around another pawn; but neither his son nor anyone else will ever be able to fill Kinnison’s shoes in the eyes of the adoring, chaotic crowd that is Civilization. That’s why your project is so crucial. You will personally oversee the operation of the trap. You will personally kill him."
"With one exception, I agree with everything said. I am not at all certain that death is the answer. One way or another, however, I shall deal effectively with Kinnison."
"With one exception, I agree with everything that was said. I'm not completely sure that death is the solution. One way or another, though, I will handle Kinnison effectively."
"Deal with? We said kill!"
"Deal with? We said to kill!"
"I heard you. I still say that mere death may not be adequate. I shall consider the matter at length, and shall submit in due course my conclusions and recommendations, for your consideration and approval."
"I heard you. I still believe that just death might not be enough. I will think about this in detail, and I will present my conclusions and recommendations for your review and approval in due time."
Although none of the Eddorians knew it, their pessimism in regard to the ability of the Ploorans to defend their planet against the assaults of Second-Stage Lensmen was even then being justified. Kimball Kinnison, after pacing the floor for hours, called his son.
Although none of the Eddorians knew it, their doubts about the Ploorans' ability to defend their planet against the attacks of Second-Stage Lensmen were being justified even then. After pacing the floor for hours, Kimball Kinnison called his son.
"Kit, I've been working on a thing for months, and I don't know whether I've got a workable solution at last, or not. It may depend entirely on you. Before I go into it, though, I take it that you check me in saying that when we find Boskonia's top planet we're going to have to blow it out of the ether, and that nothing that we have ever used before will work?"
"Kit, I've been working on something for months, and I don’t know if I finally have a workable solution or not. It might depend entirely on you. Before I get into it, though, can I confirm that you agree we’re going to have to obliterate Boskonia's top planet when we find it, and that nothing we've ever used before will do the trick?"
"Check, on both." Kit thought soberly for minutes. "More, it will have to be practically instantaneous, as well as complete. Like the negabombs or the sunbeam, but a lot faster."
"Check both." Kit thought carefully for a few minutes. "It'll have to be almost instantaneous and thorough. Like the negabombs or the sunbeam, but way faster."
"My thought exactly. I've got something, I think, but nobody except old Cardynge and Mentor of Arisia—"
"My thoughts exactly. I have something, I think, but no one except old Cardynge and Mentor of Arisia—"
"Hold it, Dad, while I do a bit of spying and put out some coverage. QX, go ahead."
"Hold on, Dad, while I do some snooping and set up some support. QX, you're good to go."
"Nobody except those two knew anything about the mathematics involved. Even Sir Austin knew only enough to be able to understand Mentor's directions—he didn't do any of the deep stuff himself. Nobody in the present Conference of Science could even begin to handle it. It's that foreign space, you know, that we called the nth space, where that hyperspatial tube dumped us that time. You've been doing a lot of work with some of the Arisians on that sort of stuff. Could you get them to help you compute a tube between Lyrane and there, so that Thorndyke and some of his boys and I could go there and get back?"
"Nobody except those two knew anything about the math involved. Even Sir Austin only knew enough to follow Mentor's instructions—he didn't get into any of the complex stuff himself. No one in the current Conference of Science could even start to grasp it. It's that strange space, you know, that we called the nth space, where that hyperspatial tube dropped us that time. You've been doing a lot of work with some of the Arisians on that kind of stuff. Could you get them to help you calculate a tube between Lyrane and there, so that Thorndyke, some of his guys, and I could go there and come back?"
"Hm-m-m. Let me think a second. Yes, I can. When do you need it?"
"Hm-m-m. Let me think for a second. Yes, I can. When do you need it?"
"Today—or even yesterday."
"Today—or maybe yesterday."
"Too fast. It'll take a couple of days, but it'll be ready for you long before you can get your ship ready and get your gang and the stuff for your gadget aboard her."
"Too fast. It’ll take a couple of days, but it’ll be ready for you long before you can prep your ship and get your crew and the stuff for your gadget on board."
"That won't take so long, son. Same ship we rode before. She's still in commission, you know—Space Laboratory XII, her name is now. Special generators, tools, instruments, everything. We'll be ready in two days."
"That won't take long, son. It's the same ship we used before. She's still operational, you know—Space Laboratory XII, that's her name now. Special generators, tools, instruments, everything. We'll be ready in two days."
They were, and Kit smiled as he greeted Vice Admiral LaVerne Thorndyke, Principal Technician, and the other surviving members of his father's original crew.
They were, and Kit smiled as he greeted Vice Admiral LaVerne Thorndyke, Chief Technician, and the other remaining members of his dad's original crew.
"What a tonnage of brass!" Kit said to Kim, later. "Heaviest load I ever saw on one ship. One sure thing, though, they earned it. You must have been able to pick men, too, in those days."
"What a load of brass!" Kit said to Kim later. "Heaviest cargo I ever saw on one ship. One thing's for sure, though, they earned it. You must have been able to pick out men, too, back then."
"What d'ya mean, 'those days,' you disrespectful young ape? I can still pick men, son!" Kim grinned back at Kit, but sobered quickly. "There's more to this than meets the eye. They went through the strain once, and know what it means. They can take it, and just about all of them will come back. With a crew of kids, twenty per cent would be a high estimate."
"What do you mean, 'those days,' you disrespectful young kid? I can still pick men, son!" Kim grinned back at Kit, but quickly became serious. "There's more to this than it looks like. They’ve been through the tough times before and know what it means. They can handle it, and just about all of them will return. With a crew of kids, twenty percent would be a high estimate."
As soon as the vessel passed System Limits, Kit got another surprise. Even though those men were studded with brass and were, by a boy's standard, old, they were not passengers. In their old Dauntless and well away from port, they gleefully threw off their full-dress uniforms. Each donned the clothing of his status of twenty-odd years back and went to work. The members of the regular crew, young as all regular space crewmen are, did not know at first whether they liked the idea of working watch-and-watch with such heavy brass or not, but they soon found out that they did. Those men were men.
As soon as the ship crossed the System Limits, Kit was in for another surprise. Even though those guys had a lot of medals and were, by a kid's standards, old, they weren’t passengers. Out in their old Dauntless and far from port, they happily stripped off their full-dress uniforms. Each one put on the clothes he had worn twenty years ago and got to work. The regular crew members, young like all standard space crew, weren’t sure at first whether they liked the idea of working alongside such high-ranking officers, but they quickly realized they did. Those men were real men.
It is an ironclad rule of space, however, that operating pilots must be young. Master Pilot Henry Henderson cursed that ruling sulphurously, even while he watched with a proud, if somewhat jaundiced eye, the smooth performance of his son Henry at his own old board.
It’s a strict rule in aviation that pilots need to be young. Master Pilot Henry Henderson complained bitterly about that rule, even as he watched his son Henry skillfully handle the controls at his old station, feeling both proud and a bit envious.
They approached their destination—cut the jets—felt for the vortex—found it—cut in the special generators. Then, as the fields of the ship reacted against those of the tube, every man aboard felt a malaise to which no being has ever become accustomed. Most men become immune rather quickly to seasickness, to airsickness, and even to space-sickness. Interdimensional acceleration, however, is something else. It is different—just how different cannot be explained to anyone who has never experienced it.
They were near their destination—shut down the engines—felt for the vortex—located it—activated the special generators. Then, as the ship’s fields interacted with those of the tube, everyone on board felt a discomfort that no one ever gets used to. Most people quickly adapt to seasickness, airsickness, and even space sickness. But interdimensional acceleration is a whole different ballgame. It’s different—just how different can’t be explained to anyone who hasn’t gone through it.
The almost unbearable acceleration ceased. They were in the tube. Every plate showed blank; everywhere there was the same drab and featureless gray. There was neither light nor darkness; there was simply and indescribably—nothing whatever, not even empty space.
The almost unbearable acceleration stopped. They were in the tube. All the screens were blank; everywhere was the same dull and featureless gray. There was no light or darkness; there was simply and indescribably—nothing at all, not even empty space.
Kit threw a switch. There was a wrenching, twisting shock, followed by a deceleration exactly as sickening as the acceleration had been. It ceased. They were in that enigmatic nth space which each of the older men remembered so well; in which so many of their "natural laws" did not hold. Time still raced, stopped, or ran backward, seemingly at whim; inert bodies had intrinsic velocities far above that of light—and so on. Each of those men, about to be marooned of his own choice in this utterly hostile environment, drew a deep breath and squared his shoulders as he prepared to disembark.
Kit flipped a switch. There was a jarring, twisting shock, followed by a deceleration that was just as nauseating as the acceleration had been. It stopped. They were in that strange nth space that each of the older men remembered vividly; a place where so many of their "natural laws" didn’t apply. Time sped up, paused, or went backward at random; motionless objects had intrinsic speeds far greater than light—and so on. Each of those men, about to voluntarily become stranded in this completely hostile environment, took a deep breath and straightened his shoulders as he got ready to step out.
"That's computation, Kit!" Kinnison exclaimed after one glance into a plate. "That's the same planet we worked on before, right there. All our machines and stuff, untouched. If you'd figured it any closer, it'd have been a collision course. Are you dead sure, Kit, that everything's all set?"
"That's computation, Kit!" Kinnison said after taking one look at a plate. "That's the same planet we worked on before, right there. All our machines and stuff, untouched. If you’d estimated it any closer, it would have been a collision course. Are you absolutely sure, Kit, that everything's ready?"
"Dead sure, Dad, in full duplicate, and Thorndyke and Henderson both know the board."
"Absolutely sure, Dad, completely the same, and Thorndyke and Henderson both know the board."
"QX. Well, fellows, I'd like to stay here with you, and so would Kit, but we've got chores to do. I don't have to tell you to be careful, but I'm going to, anyway. BE CAREFUL! And as soon as you get done, come back home just as fast as Klono will let you. Clear ether, fellows!"
"QX. Well, guys, I want to hang out with you, and Kit does too, but we have stuff to take care of. I don't need to remind you to be careful, but I'm going to say it anyway. BE CAREFUL! And as soon as you're done, come back home as quickly as Klono lets you. Take care, guys!"
"Clear ether, Kim!"
"Clear the air, Kim!"
Lensman father and Lensman son boarded their speedster and left. They traversed the tube and emerged into normal space, all without a word.
Lensman father and Lensman son got into their speedster and took off. They went through the tube and popped out into normal space, all without saying a word.
"Kit," the older man ground out, finally. "This gives me the colly wobblies, no less. Suppose some of them—or all of them—get killed out there? Is it worth it? I know it's my own idea, but will we need it badly enough to take the chance?"
"Kit," the older man said firmly. "This makes me really uneasy. What if some of them—or all of them—get killed out there? Is it worth the risk? I know this was my idea, but do we really need it badly enough to take that chance?"
"We will, Dad. Mentor says that we will."
"We will, Dad. The mentor says we will."
And that was that.
And that’s it.
XXIV.
XXIV.
Kit had had to get back to normal space as soon as possible, in order to be available in case of need. He wanted to get back in time to help his sisters pull themselves together. Think as he would, he could find no flaw in any one of them; but he knew that Mentor would find something or other the matter with each of them. Not a weakness in any ordinary sense, but a strength which was not the ultimate.
Kit needed to return to normal space as quickly as possible to be available if needed. He wanted to get back in time to help his sisters pull themselves together. No matter how hard he thought, he couldn't find any faults in them; but he knew Mentor would find something wrong with each of them. Not a weakness in the usual sense, but a strength that wasn't the ultimate.
Kinnison had had to get back because his business was really pressing. He had called a conference of all the Second-Stage Lensmen and his children; a conference which, bizarrely enough, was to be held in person and not via Lens.
Kinnison had to get back because his work was urgent. He had called a meeting with all the Second-Stage Lensmen and his kids; a meeting that, oddly enough, was going to be held in person instead of through the Lens.
"Not strictly necessary, of course," the Gray Lensman half-apologized to his son as their speedster neared the point of rendezvous with the Dauntless. "I still think that it's a good idea, though, especially since we were all so close to Lyrane anyway."
"Not really necessary, of course," the Gray Lensman half-apologized to his son as their speedster approached the meeting point with the Dauntless. "I still believe it's a good idea, though, especially since we were all so close to Lyrane anyway."
"So do I. It's been a mighty long time since we were all together. Everybody's there now except Nadreck—he'll board about the same time we do."
"So do I. It's been a really long time since we were all together. Everyone is here now except Nadreck—he'll join us around the same time we do."
They boarded. Spacehounds both, they saw to it that their speedster was dogged down solidly into her chocks before they went to the main saloon.
They boarded. Both spacehounds made sure their speedster was securely fastened in her chocks before heading to the main saloon.
"Hi, Mums! Still stopping traffic at all intersections, I see!" Kit lowered his mother's feet to the floor and attempted the physically impossible feat of embracing all four of his sisters at once.
"Hey, Moms! Still causing a scene at every intersection, I see!" Kit lowered his mother's feet to the floor and tried to do the impossible by hugging all four of his sisters at the same time.
By common consent the Five used only their eyes. Nothing showed. Nevertheless, the girls blushed vividly and Kit's face twisted into a dry, wry grin.
By mutual agreement, the Five only used their eyes. Nothing was revealed. Still, the girls flushed brightly, and Kit's face contorted into a dry, sarcastic grin.
"It was good for what ailed us, though, at that—I guess." Kit did not seem to be at all positive. "Mentor, the lug, told me no less than six times that I had arrived—or at least made statements which I interpreted as meaning that. And Eukonidor just told me that I was a 'finished tool,' whatever that means. Personally, I think that they were sitting back and wondering how long it was going to take us to realize that we never could be half as good as we used to think we were. Suppose?"
"It was good for what was bothering us, I suppose." Kit didn't seem very sure. "Mentor, that jerk, told me at least six times that I had arrived—or at least made comments that I took to mean that. And Eukonidor just called me a 'finished tool,' whatever that means. Honestly, I think they were just sitting back and waiting to see how long it would take us to figure out that we could never be as good as we used to believe we were. Right?"
"Something like that, probably. We've shivered more than once, wondering whether we are really finished products yet or not."
"Something like that, I guess. We've felt uncertain more than once, questioning whether we are truly complete or not."
"We've learned—I hope." Karen, hard as she was, did shiver, physically. "If we aren't it will be ... p-s-s-t—Dad's starting the meeting!"
"We've learned—I hope." Karen, tough as she was, did shiver, physically. "If we haven’t, it will be ... p-s-s-t—Dad's starting the meeting!"
"... so settle down, all of you, and we'll get going."
"... so everyone settle down, and we'll get started."
What a group! Tregonsee of Rigel IV—stolid, solid, blocky, immobile; looking as little as possible like one of the profoundest thinkers Civilization had ever produced—did not move. Worsel, the ultrasensitive yet utterly implacable Velantian, curled out three or four eyes and looked on languidly while Constance kicked a few coils of his tail onto a comfortable chaise longue, reclined unconcernedly in the seat thus made, and lighted an Alsakanite cigarette. Clarrissa Kinnison, radiant in her Grays and looking scarcely older than her daughters, sat beside Kathryn, each with an arm around the other. Karen and Camilla, neither of whom could ordinarily be described by the adjective "cuddlesome," were on a davenport with Kit, snuggling as close to him as they could get. And in the farthest corner the heavily-armored, heavily-insulated spacesuit which contained Nadreck of Palain VII chilled the atmosphere for yards around.
What a group! Tregonsee of Rigel IV—sturdy, solid, blocky, motionless; looking as little like one of the most profound thinkers Civilization had ever produced—didn't move. Worsel, the super-sensitive yet completely unyielding Velantian, extended three or four eyes and watched lazily while Constance tossed a few coils of his tail onto a comfy chaise longue, reclined casually in the seat she'd made, and lit up an Alsakanite cigarette. Clarrissa Kinnison, glowing in her Grays and looking hardly older than her daughters, sat next to Kathryn, each with an arm around the other. Karen and Camilla, neither of whom would typically be called "cuddly," were on a davenport with Kit, snuggling as close to him as they could get. And in the farthest corner, the heavily-armored, heavily-insulated spacesuit containing Nadreck of Palain VII cooled the atmosphere for yards around.
"QX?" Kinnison began. "We'll take Nadreck first, since he isn't any too happy here, and let him flit—he'll keep in touch from outside after he leaves. Report, please, Nadreck."
"QX?" Kinnison started. "Let's take Nadreck first, since he isn't too happy here, and let him go—he'll stay in touch from outside after he leaves. Please report, Nadreck."
"I have explored Lyrane IX thoroughly." Nadreck made the statement and paused. When he used such a thought at all, it meant much. When he emphasized it, which no one there had ever before known him to do, it meant that he had examined the planet practically atom by atom. "There was no life of the level of intelligence in which we are interested to be found on, beneath, or above its surface. I could find no evidence that such life has ever been there, either as permanent dwellers or as occasional visitors."
"I have explored Lyrane IX thoroughly." Nadreck said this and then paused. When he made such a claim, it held significant weight. His emphasis, something no one had ever heard him do before, indicated he had studied the planet practically atom by atom. "There was no intelligent life on, beneath, or above its surface that we are interested in. I found no evidence that such life has ever existed there, whether as permanent inhabitants or occasional visitors."
"When Nadreck settles anything as definitely as that, it stays settled," Kinnison remarked as soon as the Palainian had left. "I'll report next. You all know what I did about Kalonia, and so on. The only significant fact I have been able to find—the only lead to the Boskonian higher-ups—is that Black Lensman Melasnikov got his Lens on Lyrane IX. There were no traces of mental surgery. I can see two, and only two, alternatives. Either there was mental surgery which I could not detect, or there were visitors to Lyrane IX who left no traces of their visits. More reports may enable us to decide. Worsel?"
"When Nadreck makes a decision as definitive as that, it stays made," Kinnison said once the Palainian had left. "I'll give my report next. You all know what I did regarding Kalonia and so on. The only important fact I’ve been able to uncover—the only clue to the Boskonian higher-ups—is that Black Lensman Melasnikov got his Lens on Lyrane IX. There were no signs of mental surgery. I see two possibilities: either there was mental surgery that I couldn't detect, or there were visitors to Lyrane IX who left no evidence of their presence. More reports might help us figure it out. Worsel?"
The Second-Stage Lensmen reported in turn. Each had uncovered leads to Lyrane IX, but Worsel and Tregonsee, who had also studied that planet with care, agreed with Nadreck that there was nothing to be found there.
The Second-Stage Lensmen took turns reporting. Each had found clues pointing to Lyrane IX, but Worsel and Tregonsee, who had also examined that planet closely, agreed with Nadreck that there was nothing to discover there.
"Kit?" Kinnison asked then. "How about you and the girls?"
"Kit?" Kinnison asked then. "What about you and the girls?"
"We believe that Lyrane IX was visited by beings having sufficient power of mind to leave no traces whatever as to who they were or where they came from. We also believe that there was no surgery, but an infinitely finer kind of work—an indetectable subconscious compulsion—done on the minds of the Black Lensmen and others who came into physical contact with the Boskonians. These opinions are based upon experiences which we five have had and upon deductions we have made. If we are right, Lyrane is actually, as well as apparently, a dead end and should be abandoned. Furthermore, we believe that the Black Lensmen have not been and cannot become important."
"We think that Lyrane IX was visited by beings with enough mental power to leave no evidence of who they were or where they came from. We also think that there wasn't any surgery, but a much more subtle type of intervention—a subtle subconscious influence—exerted on the minds of the Black Lensmen and others who had physical contact with the Boskonians. These conclusions are based on experiences we've had and deductions we've made. If we're correct, Lyrane is both actually and seemingly a dead end and should be abandoned. Moreover, we believe that the Black Lensmen have not been, and cannot become, significant."
The Co-ordinator was surprised, but after Kit and his sisters had detailed their findings and their deductions, he turned to the Rigellian.
The Coordinator was taken aback, but after Kit and his sisters laid out their findings and deductions, he turned to the Rigellian.
"What next, then, Tregonsee?"
"What’s next, then, Tregonsee?"
"After Lyrane IX, it seems to me that the two most promising subjects are those entities who think upon such a high band, and the phenomenon which has been called 'The Hell Hole in Space.' Of the two, I preferred the first until Camilla's researches showed that the available data could not be reconciled with the postulate that the life-forms of her reconstruction were identical with those reported to you as Co-ordinator. This data, however, was scanty and casual. While we are here, therefore, I suggest that we review this matter much more carefully, in the hope that additional information will enable us to come to a definite conclusion, one way or the other. Since it was her research, Camilla will lead."
"After Lyrane IX, I think the two most promising topics are those entities that think on such a high level and the phenomenon known as 'The Hell Hole in Space.' I was more interested in the first one until Camilla's research revealed that the existing data couldn’t support the idea that the life-forms she reconstructed were the same as those reported to you as Co-ordinator. However, this data was limited and random. So, while we're here, I suggest we take a closer look at this matter in the hope that more information will help us reach a clear conclusion, either way. Since it was her research, Camilla will take the lead."
"First, a question," Camilla began. "Imagine a sun so variable that it periodically covers practically the entire possible range. It has a planet whose atmosphere, liquid, and distance are such that its surface temperature varies from approximately two hundred degrees Centigrade in midsummer to about five degrees absolute in midwinter. In the spring its surface is almost completely submerged. There are terrible winds and storms in the spring, summer, and fall; but the fall storms are the worst. Has anyone here ever heard of such a planet having an intelligent life-form able to maintain a continuing existence through such varied environments by radical changes in its physical body?"
"First, a question," Camilla started. "Imagine a sun that is so unpredictable that it periodically covers nearly the entire range of possibilities. It has a planet with an atmosphere, liquid, and distance that cause its surface temperature to fluctuate from about two hundred degrees Celsius in midsummer to around five degrees absolute in midwinter. In the spring, its surface is almost completely underwater. There are terrible winds and storms in the spring, summer, and fall, but the fall storms are the worst. Has anyone here ever heard of a planet like this having an intelligent life form that can survive through such extreme conditions by making drastic changes to its physical structure?"
A silence ensued, which Nadreck finally broke.
A silence followed, which Nadreck eventually broke.
"I know of two such planets. Near Palain there is an extremely variable sun, two of whose planets support life. All of the higher life-forms, the highest of which are quite intelligent, undergo regular and radical changes, not only of form, but of organization."
"I know of two such planets. Close to Palain, there's a highly variable sun, and two of its planets actually support life. All the complex life forms, the most advanced of which are quite intelligent, go through regular and drastic changes, not just in their shape but also in their structure."
"Thanks, Nadreck. That will perhaps make my story believable. From the thoughts of one of the entities in question, I reconstructed such a solar system. More, that entity himself belonged to just such a race. It was such a nice reconstruction," Camilla went on, plaintively, "and it fitted all those other life-forms so beautifully, especially Kat's 'four-cycle periods.' And to prove it, Kat—put up your block, now—you never told anybody the classification of your pet to more than seven places, did you, or even thought about it?"
"Thanks, Nadreck. That might make my story more believable. I recreated a solar system based on the thoughts of one of the entities involved. Plus, that entity belonged to that exact race. It was such a nice reconstruction," Camilla continued, sadly, "and it matched all those other life-forms so perfectly, especially Kat's 'four-cycle periods.' And to prove it, Kat—put your block up now—you never told anyone the classification of your pet to more than seven places, did you, or even thought about it?"
"No." Kathryn's mind, since the moment of warning, had been unreadable.
"No." Kathryn's mind had been a mystery since the moment she was warned.
"Take the seven. The next three were S-T-R. Check?"
"Take the seven. The next three were S-T-R. Got it?"
"Check."
"Verify."
"But that makes it solid, Sis!" Kit exclaimed.
"But that makes it solid, Sis!" Kit shouted.
"That's what I thought, for a minute—that we had Boskone at last. However, when Tregonsee and I first felt 'X,' long before you met yours, Kat, his classification was TUUV. That would fit in well enough as a spring form, with Kat's as the summer form. What ruins it, though, is that when he killed himself, just a little while ago and long after a summer form could possibly exist—to say nothing of a spring form—his classification was still TUUV. To ten places it was TUUVWYXXWT."
"That's what I thought for a moment—that we finally had Boskone. But when Tregonsee and I first detected 'X,' long before you encountered yours, Kat, his classification was TUUV. That would work fine as a spring form, with Kat's being the summer form. What complicates things, though, is that when he took his own life, just a little while ago and well after a summer form could exist—not to mention a spring form—his classification was still TUUV. To ten decimal places, it was TUUVWYXXWT."
"Well, go on," Kinnison suggested. "What do you make of it?"
"Well, go on," Kinnison said. "What do you think of it?"
"The obvious explanation is that one or all of those entities were planted or primed—not specifically for us, probably, since we are relatively unknown, but for any competent observer. If so, they don't mean a thing." Camilla was not now overestimating her own powers or underestimating those of Boskonia. "There are several others, less obvious, leading to the same conclusion. Tregonsee is not ready to believe any of them, however, and neither am I. Assuming that our data was not biased, we must also account for the fact that the locations in space were—"
"The obvious explanation is that one or all of those entities were placed or set up—not specifically for us, probably, since we’re relatively unknown, but for any capable observer. If that's the case, they don’t mean anything." Camilla wasn’t overestimating her own abilities or underestimating those of Boskonia. "There are several other, less obvious possibilities that lead to the same conclusion. Tregonsee isn’t ready to believe any of them, and neither am I. Assuming our data wasn’t biased, we also have to consider that the locations in space were—"
"Just a minute, Cam, before you leave the classifications," Constance interrupted. "I'm guarded—what was my friend's, to ten places?"
"Hold on a second, Cam, before you wrap up the classifications," Constance interrupted. "I'm curious—what did my friend get, out of ten?"
"VWZYTXSYZY," Camilla replied, unhesitatingly.
"VWZYTXSYZY," Camilla replied, confidently.
"Right; and I don't believe that it was planted, either, so there—"
"Right; and I don't think it was planted, either, so there—"
"Let me in a second!" Kit demanded. "I didn't know that you were on that band at all. I got that RTSL thing even before I graduated—"
"Let me in for a second!" Kit insisted. "I had no idea you were in that band at all. I got that RTSL thing even before I graduated—"
"Huh? What RTSL?" Cam broke in, sharply.
"Huh? What RTSL?" Cam interrupted, sharply.
"My fault," Kinnison put in then. "Skipped my mind entirely, when she asked me for the dope. None of us thought any of this stuff important until just now, you know. Tell her, Kit."
"My bad," Kinnison chimed in. "It completely slipped my mind when she asked me for the details. None of us thought any of this was important until just now, you know. Go ahead, Kit."
Kit repeated his story, concluding:
Kit repeated his story, ending:
"Beyond four places was pretty dim, but Q P arms and legs—Dhilian, eh?—would fit, and so would an R-type hide. Both Kat's and mine, then, could very well have been summer forms, one of their years apart. The thing I felt was on its own planet, and it died there, and credits to millos the thought I got wasn't primed. And the location—"
"Beyond four spaces was pretty dim, but Q P arms and legs—Dhilian, right?—would fit, and so would an R-type hide. Both Kat's and mine could easily have been summer forms, one of their years apart. The thing I felt was on its own planet, and it died there, and credits to millos the thought I had wasn't ready. And the location—"
"Brake down, Kit," Camilla instructed. "Let's settle this thing of timing first. I've got a theory, but I want some ideas from the rest of you."
"Calm down, Kit," Camilla said. "Let's figure out the timing first. I have a theory, but I want ideas from the rest of you."
"Maybe something like this?" Clarrissa asked, after a few minutes of silence. "In many forms which metamorphose completely the change depends upon temperature. No change takes place as long as the temperature remains the same. Your TUUV could have been flitting around in a spaceship at constant temperature. Could this apply here, Cam, do you think?"
"Maybe something like this?" Clarrissa asked after a few moments of silence. "In many forms, which completely transform, the change depends on temperature. No change happens as long as the temperature stays the same. Your TUUV could have been flying around in a spaceship at a constant temperature. Do you think this could apply here, Cam?"
"Could it?" Kinnison exclaimed. "That's it, Chris, sure!"
"Could it?" Kinnison exclaimed. "That's it, Chris, for sure!"
"That was my theory," Camilla said, still dubiously, "but there is no proof that it applies. Nadreck, do you know whether or not it applies to your neighbors?"
"That was my theory," Camilla said, still skeptically, "but there's no proof that it applies. Nadreck, do you know if it applies to your neighbors?"
"Unfortunately, I do not; but I can find out—by experiment if necessary."
"Unfortunately, I don’t have that information; but I can find out—through experimentation if needed."
"It might be a good idea," Kinnison suggested. "Go on, Cam."
"It could be a good idea," Kinnison suggested. "Go ahead, Cam."
"Assuming its truth, there is still left the problem of location, which Kit has just made infinitely worse than it was before. Con's and mine were so indefinite that they might possibly have been reconciled with Kat's precisely-known co-ordinates; but yours, Kit, is almost as definite as Kat's, and cannot possibly be made to agree with it. After all, you know, there are many planets peopled by races humanoid to ten places. And if there are four different races, none of them can be the one we want."
"Assuming that's true, there's still the issue of location, which Kit has just made way more complicated than it was before. Con's and my locations were so vague that they might have lined up with Kat's exact coordinates; but yours, Kit, is nearly as specific as Kat's, and there's no way it can match up with it. After all, there are a lot of planets inhabited by races that are humanoid to ten degrees. And if there are four different races, none of them can be the one we're looking for."
"I don't believe it," Kit argued. "Not that I think on that peculiar band. I'm sure enough of my dope so that I want to cross-question Kat on hers. QX, Kat?"
"I can't believe it," Kit said. "Not that I think about that strange group. I'm confident about my information, so I want to ask Kat about hers. QX, Kat?"
"Surely, Kit. Any questions you like."
"Sure, Kit. Go ahead."
"Those minds both had plenty of jets—how do you know that he was telling you the truth? Did you drive in to see? Are you sure even that you saw his real shape?"
"Both of those minds had a lot of tricks—how do you know he was being honest with you? Did you go in to check? Are you sure you even saw his true form?"
"Certainly I'm sure of his shape!" Kathryn snapped. "If there had been any zones of compulsion around, I would have known it and got suspicious right then."
"Of course I know his shape!" Kathryn snapped. "If there had been any influence around, I would have noticed it and gotten suspicious right away."
"Maybe, and maybe not," Kit disagreed. "That might depend, you know, on how good the guy was who was putting out the zone."
"Maybe, and maybe not," Kit said. "That could depend, you know, on how skilled the guy was who set up the zone."
"Nuts!" Kathryn snorted, inelegantly. "But as to his telling the truth about his home planet—I'm not sure of that, no. I didn't check his channels. I was thinking about other things then." The Five knew that she had just left Mentor. "But why should he want to lie about a thing like that—he would have, though, at that. Good Boskonian technique."
"Nuts!" Kathryn scoffed, not very gracefully. "But when it comes to him being honest about his home planet—I can't say for sure. I didn't look into his communications. I was focused on other things at the time." The Five knew she had just left Mentor. "But why would he want to lie about something like that? He would have, though, for sure. Classic Boskonian tactics."
"Sure. In your official capacity of Co-ordinator, Dad, what do you think?"
"Sure. As the Co-ordinator, Dad, what do you think?"
"The probability is that all those four forms of life belong on one planet. Your location must be wrong, Kat—he gave you the wrong galaxy, even. Too close to Trenco, too—Tregonsee and I both know that region like a book and no such variable is anywhere near there. We've got to find out all about that planet as soon as possible. Worsel, will you please get the charts of Kit's region? Kit, will you check with the planetographers of Klovia as to the variable stars anywhere near where you want them, and how many planets they've got? I'll call Tellus."
"The chances are that all four of those life forms are from the same planet. You must have the wrong location, Kat—he even gave you the wrong galaxy. It's too close to Trenco, too—Tregonsee and I are both familiar with that area, and there's no such variable star nearby. We need to learn everything about that planet as quickly as we can. Worsel, could you please get the charts for Kit's area? Kit, can you check with the planetographers from Klovia about any variable stars close to where you need them, and how many planets they have? I'll call Tellus."
The charts were studied, and in due time the reports of the planetographers were received. The Klovian scientists reported that there were four long-period variables in the designated volume of space, gave the spatial co-ordinates and catalogue numbers of each, and all available data concerning their planets. The Tellurians reported only three, in considerably less detail; but they had named each sun and each planet.
The charts were analyzed, and eventually, the reports from the planetographers came in. The Klovian scientists noted that there were four long-period variables in the specified area of space, providing the spatial coordinates and catalog numbers for each one, along with all the available data about their planets. The Tellurians reported only three, with much less detail; however, they had given names to each sun and each planet.
"Which one did they leave out?" Kinnison wondered audibly as he fitted the two transparencies together. "This one they call Artonon, no planets. Dunlie, two planets, Abab and Dunster. Descriptions, and so on. Rontieff, one planet that they don't know anything about except the name they have given it. Silly-sounding names—suppose they assemble them by grabbing letters at random? Ploor—"
"Which one did they leave out?" Kinnison thought out loud as he fitted the two transparencies together. "This one they call Artonon, no planets. Dunlie, two planets, Abab and Dunster. Descriptions, and so on. Rontieff, one planet that they don't know anything about except the name they've given it. Silly-sounding names—what if they just put them together by picking letters at random? Ploor—"
PLOOR: At last! Only their instantaneous speed of reaction enabled the Five to conceal from the linkage the shrieked thought of what Ploor really meant. After a flashing exchange of thought, Kit smoothly took charge of the conference.
PLOOR: Finally! Only their quick reaction time allowed the Five to hide from the connection the shouted thought of what Ploor really meant. After a rapid exchange of thoughts, Kit confidently took control of the meeting.
"The planet Ploor should be investigated first, I think," he resumed communication with the group as though his attention had not wavered. "It is the planet nearest the most probable point of origin of that thought-burst. Also, the period of the variable and the planet's distance seem to fit our observations and deductions better than any of the others. Any arguments?"
"The planet Ploor should be examined first, I believe," he continued talking to the group as if he had never lost focus. "It's the closest planet to where we think that thought-burst originated. Plus, the timing of the variable and the planet's distance align more closely with our observations and deductions than any of the others. Any objections?"
No arguments. They all agreed. Kinnison, however, demanded action; direct and fast.
No arguments. They all agreed. Kinnison, however, insisted on action; direct and quick.
"We'll investigate it!" he exclaimed. "With the Dauntless, the Z9M9Z, and Grand Fleet; and with our very special knickknack as an ace up our sleeve!"
"We'll check it out!" he exclaimed. "With the Dauntless, the Z9M9Z, and the Grand Fleet; and with our very special gadget as our secret weapon!"
"Just a minute, Dad!" Kit protested. "If, as some of this material seems to indicate, the Ploorans actually are the top of the Boskonian culture, even that array may not be enough."
"Just a minute, Dad!" Kit protested. "If, as some of this material seems to suggest, the Ploorans are actually at the peak of the Boskonian culture, even that collection might not be sufficient."
"You may be right—probably are. What, then? What do you say, Tregonsee?"
"You might be right—probably are. So, what’s next? What do you think, Tregonsee?"
"Fleet action, yes," the Rigellian agreed. "Also, as you implied, but did not clearly state, independent but correlated action by us five Second-Stage Lensmen, with our various skills. I would suggest, however, that your children be put first—very definitely first—in command."
"Yes, fleet action," the Rigellian agreed. "Also, as you hinted but didn’t directly say, independent yet related actions by us five Second-Stage Lensmen, utilizing our different skills. However, I would suggest that your children take the lead—definitely the top priority—in command."
"We object—we haven't got jets enough to—"
"We object—we don't have enough jets to—"
"Overruled!" Kinnison did not have to think to make that decision. He knew. "Any other objections?... Approved. I'll call Cliff Maitland right now, then, and get things going."
"Overruled!" Kinnison didn’t need to think twice about that decision. He knew. "Any other objections?... Approved. I'll call Cliff Maitland right now and get things moving."
That call, however, was never sent; for at that moment the mind of Mentor of Arisia flooded the group.
That call, however, was never made; at that moment, Mentor of Arisia's thoughts overwhelmed the group.
"Children, attend! This intrusion is necessary because a matter has come up which will permit of no delay. Boskonia is now launching the attack which has been in preparation for over twenty years. Arisia is to be the first point of attack. Kinnison, Tregonsee, Worsel, and Nadreck will take immediate steps to assemble the Grand Fleet of the Galactic Patrol in defense. I will confer at length with the younger Kinnisons.
"Kids, listen up! This interruption is crucial because we have an urgent situation. Boskonia is finally launching the attack they've been planning for over twenty years. Arisia is going to be the first target. Kinnison, Tregonsee, Worsel, and Nadreck will quickly start gathering the Grand Fleet of the Galactic Patrol for defense. I’m going to have an extensive discussion with the younger Kinnisons."
"The Eddorians, as you know," Mentor went on to the Children of the Lens, "believe primarily in the efficacy of physical, material force. While they possess minds of real power, they use them principally as tools in the development of more and ever more efficient mechanical devices. We of Arisia, on the other hand, believe in the superiority of the mind. A fully competent mind would have no need of material devices, since it could control all material substance directly. While we have made some progress toward that end, and you will make more in the cycles to come, Civilization is, and for some time will be, dependent upon physical things. Hence the Galactic Patrol and its Grand Fleet.
"The Eddorians, as you know," Mentor continued to the Children of the Lens, "primarily believe in the power of physical, material force. Although they have truly powerful minds, they mainly use them as tools to create more and more efficient machines. We of Arisia, however, value the superiority of the mind. A fully capable mind wouldn’t need physical devices, as it could directly control all material substances. While we’ve made some progress toward that goal, and you will make even more in the future, civilization is, and will be for some time, dependent on physical things. That’s why we have the Galactic Patrol and its Grand Fleet."
"The Eddorians, after ages of effort, have succeeded in inventing a mechanical generator able to block our most penetrant thoughts. They believe implicitly that their vessels, so protected, will be able to destroy our planet. They may believe that the destruction of our planet would so weaken us that they would be able to destroy us. It is assumed that you children have deduced that neither we nor the Eddorians can be slain by physical force?"
"The Eddorians, after years of hard work, have managed to create a mechanical generator that can block our strongest thoughts. They firmly believe that their ships, protected by this technology, will be able to destroy our planet. They think that destroying our planet would weaken us enough for them to eliminate us entirely. It’s assumed that you kids have figured out that neither we nor the Eddorians can be killed by physical means?"
"Yes—the clincher being that no suggestion was made about giving Eddore a planet from nth space."
"Yeah—the key point is that no one suggested giving Eddore a planet from nth space."
"We Arisians, during an equally long time, have been aiding Nature in the development of minds much abler than our own. While those minds will not attain their full powers until after many years of work and study, we believe that you will be able, immature as you are, to use the Patrol and its resources to defend Arisia and to destroy the Boskonian fleet. That we cannot do it ourselves is implicit in what I have said."
"We, the Arisians, have been supporting Nature in developing minds that are far more capable than our own for a long time. Although these minds won't reach their full potential for many years of effort and learning, we believe that, even though you're still growing, you can utilize the Patrol and its resources to protect Arisia and take down the Boskonian fleet. It's clear from what I've said that we cannot accomplish this ourselves."
"But that means ... this is the big show, then, that you have been hinting at so long?"
"But that means... this is the main event you've been hinting at for so long?"
"Far from it. An important engagement, of course, but only preliminary to the real test, which will come when we invade Eddore. Do you agree with us that if Arisia were to be destroyed now, it would be difficult to repair the damage done to the morale of the Galactic Patrol?"
"Not at all. It's a key engagement, sure, but just a warm-up for the real challenge that'll happen when we invade Eddore. Do you agree that if Arisia were destroyed now, it would be tough to fix the damage to the morale of the Galactic Patrol?"
"Difficult? It would be impossible!"
"Hard? It would be impossible!"
"Not necessarily. We have considered the matter at length, however, and have decided that a Boskonian success at this time would not be for the good of Civilization."
"Not necessarily. We've thought about it a lot, though, and we've decided that a Boskonian win right now wouldn't be good for Civilization."
"I'll say it wouldn't—that's a masterpiece of understatement if there ever was one! Also, a successful defense of Arisia would be about the best thing that the Patrol could possibly do for itself."
"I'd say it wouldn't—that's a masterclass in understatement if there ever was one! Also, successfully defending Arisia would be the best thing the Patrol could do for itself."
"Exactly so. Go, then, children, and work to that end."
"Exactly. Now, go ahead, kids, and work towards that goal."
"But how, Mentor—how?"
"But how, Mentor—how?"
"Again I tell you that I do not know. You have powers—individually, collectively, and as the Unit—about which I know little or nothing. Use them!"
"Again, I have to say that I don’t know. You all have abilities—individually, together, and as the Unit—that I understand very little about. Use them!"
XXV.
XXV.
The "Big Brass"—socially the Directrix, technically the Z9M9Z—floated through space at the center of a hollow sphere of maulers packed almost screen to screen. She carried the Brains. She had been built around the seventeen million cubic feet of unobstructed space which comprised her "tank"—the three-dimensional chart in which vari-colored lights, stationary and moving, represented the positions and motions of solar systems, ships, loose planets, negaspheres, and all other objects and items in which Grand Fleet Operations was, or might become, interested. Completely encircling the tank's more than two thousand feet of circumference was the Rigellian-manned, multimillion-plug board; a crew and a board capable of handling efficiently more than a million combat units.
The "Big Brass"—socially known as the Directrix and technically referred to as the Z9M9Z—floated through space at the center of a hollow sphere filled with maulers packed tightly together. She housed the Brains. Built around seventeen million cubic feet of open space, which made up her "tank," this was the three-dimensional display where colorful lights, both stationary and moving, showed the positions and movements of solar systems, ships, rogue planets, negaspheres, and all other objects that Grand Fleet Operations was, or might become, interested in. Surrounding the tank, with a circumference of over two thousand feet, was a Rigellian-manned, multimillion-plug board; a crew and board capable of efficiently managing more than a million combat units.
In the "reducer," the comparatively tiny ten-foot tank set into an alcove, there were condensed the continuously-changing major features of the main chart, so that one man could comprehend and direct the broad strategy of the engagement.
In the "reducer," the relatively small ten-foot tank built into an alcove displayed the constantly changing key aspects of the main chart, allowing one person to understand and manage the overall strategy of the engagement.
Instead of Port Admiral Haynes, who had conned that reducer and issued general orders during the only previous experience of the Z9M9Z in serious warfare, Kimball Kinnison was now in supreme command. Instead of Kinnison and Worsel, who had formerly handled the big tank and the board, there were Clarrissa, Worsel, Tregonsee, and the Children of the Lens. There also, in a built-in, thoroughly competent refrigerator, was Nadreck. Port Admiral Raoul LaForge and Vice Co-ordinator Clifford Maitland were just coming aboard.
Instead of Port Admiral Haynes, who had managed that reducer and given general orders during the only previous serious combat experience of the Z9M9Z, Kimball Kinnison was now in full command. Instead of Kinnison and Worsel, who had previously operated the big tank and the board, there were Clarrissa, Worsel, Tregonsee, and the Children of the Lens. Also there, in a built-in, highly efficient refrigerator, was Nadreck. Port Admiral Raoul LaForge and Vice Co-ordinator Clifford Maitland were just arriving.
Might he need anybody else, Kinnison wondered. Couldn't think of anybody—he had just about the whole top echelon of Civilization. Cliff and Laf weren't L2's, of course, but they were mighty good men—besides, he liked them! Too bad that the fourth officer of their class couldn't be there, too—gallant Wiedel Holmberg, killed in action. At that, three out of four was a high average—mighty high.
Might he need anyone else, Kinnison wondered. He couldn't think of anyone—he had just about the entire top tier of Civilization. Cliff and Laf weren't L2's, of course, but they were really good guys—besides, he liked them! Too bad the fourth officer from their class couldn't be there, too—brave Wiedel Holmberg, killed in action. Still, three out of four was a pretty high average—really high.
"Hi, Cliff—Hi, Laf!"
"Hey, Cliff—Hey, Laf!"
"Hi, Kim!"
"Hey, Kim!"
The three old friends shook hands cordially, then the two newcomers stared for minutes into the maze of lights flashing and winking in the tremendous space chart.
The three old friends shook hands warmly, then the two newcomers stared for several minutes at the maze of lights flashing and winking in the huge space chart.
"Glad I don't have to try to make sense out of that," LaForge commented, finally. "Looks a lot different in battle harness than on practice cruises. You want me on that forward wall there, you said?"
"Glad I don't have to figure that out," LaForge said finally. "Looks a lot different in a battle suit than on training missions. You want me on that front wall there, right?"
"Yes. You can see it plainer down here in the reducer. The white star is Arisia. The yellows, all marked, are suns and other fixed points, such as the markers along the arbitrary rim of the Galaxy, running from there to there. Reds will be Boskonians when they get close enough to show. Greens are ours. Up in the big tank everything is identified, but down here there's no room for details—each green light marks the location of a whole operating fleet. That block of green circles, there, is your command. It's about eighty parsecs deep and covers everything within two hours—say a hundred and fifty parsecs—of the line between Arisia and the Second Galaxy. Pretty loose now, of course, but you can tighten it up and shift it as you please as soon as some reds show up. You'll have a Rigellian talker—here he is now—when you want anything done, think at him and he'll give it to the right panel on the board. QX?"
"Yes. You can see it more clearly down here in the reducer. The white star is Arisia. The yellow ones, all marked, are suns and other fixed points, like the markers along the arbitrary edge of the Galaxy, spanning from here to there. Reds will be Boskonians when they get close enough to show. Greens are ours. Up in the big tank everything is labeled, but down here there's no space for details—each green light represents the location of an entire operating fleet. That block of green circles over there is your command. It's about eighty parsecs deep and covers everything within two hours—around a hundred and fifty parsecs—of the line between Arisia and the Second Galaxy. It's pretty loose now, of course, but you can tighten it up and adjust it however you want as soon as some reds appear. You'll have a Rigellian communicator—here he is now—when you need anything done; just think at him and he'll relay it to the right panel on the board. QX?"
"I think so. I'll practice a bit."
"I think so. I’ll practice for a bit."
"Now you, Cliff. These green crosses, halfway between the forward wall and Arisia, are yours. You won't have quite as much depth as Laf, but a wider coverage. The green tetrahedrons are mine. They blanket Arisia, you notice, and fill the space out to the second wall."
"Now it’s your turn, Cliff. These green crosses, halfway between the front wall and Arisia, are yours. You won’t have as much depth as Laf, but you’ll have broader coverage. The green tetrahedrons are mine. They cover Arisia, as you can see, and fill the space up to the second wall."
"Do you think that you and I will have anything to do?" Maitland asked, waving a hand at LaForge's tremendous barrier.
"Do you think you and I will have anything to do?" Maitland asked, gesturing at LaForge's massive barrier.
"I wish I could hope that we won't, but I can't. I have it from a usually reliable source that they're going to throw the book. That means hyperspatial tubes as well as open space—they'll probably strike everywhere at once."
"I wish I could believe we won't, but I can't. I heard it from a usually trustworthy source that they're going to go all out. That means hyperspatial tubes as well as open space—they'll probably hit everywhere at once."
Then for weeks Grand Fleet drilled, maneuvered, and practiced. All space within ten parsecs of Arisia was divided into minute cubes, each of which was given a reference number. Fleets were so placed that any point in that space could be reached by at least one fleet in thirty seconds or less of elapsed time.
Then for weeks the Grand Fleet trained, maneuvered, and practiced. All the space within ten parsecs of Arisia was divided into tiny cubes, each assigned a reference number. Fleets were positioned so that any point in that space could be reached by at least one fleet in thirty seconds or less.

Drill went on until, finally, it happened. Constance, on guard at the moment, perceived the slight "curdling" of space which presages the appearance of the terminus of a hyperspatial tube and gave the alarm. Kit, the girls, and all the Arisians responded instantly—all knew that this was to be a thing which not even the Five could handle unaided.
Drill continued until, at last, it happened. Constance, who was on watch at the time, noticed the subtle "curdling" of space that indicates the arrival of the end of a hyperspatial tube and raised the alarm. Kit, the girls, and all the Arisians reacted immediately—everyone understood that this was something that even the Five couldn’t manage alone.
Not one, or a hundred, or a thousand, but at least two hundred thousand of those tubes erupted, practically at once. Kit could alert and instruct ten Rigellian operators every second, and so could each of his sisters; but since every tube within striking distance of Arisia had to be guarded or plugged within thirty seconds of its appearance, and since all of the work was done out in space and not in the tank, it is seen that the Arisians did practically all of the spotting and placing during those first literally incredible two or three minutes.
Not one, not a hundred, not a thousand, but at least two hundred thousand of those tubes erupted almost simultaneously. Kit could alert and instruct ten Rigellian operators every second, and so could each of his sisters; however, since every tube within striking distance of Arisia had to be guarded or plugged within thirty seconds of its appearance, and since all of the work was done in space and not in the tank, it’s clear that the Arisians handled practically all of the spotting and placing during those first truly incredible two or three minutes.
If the Boskonians could have emerged from a tube's terminus in the moment of its appearance, it is quite probable that nothing could have saved Arisia. As it was, however, the enemy required seconds, or sometimes even whole minutes, to traverse their tubes, which gave the defenders much valuable time.
If the Boskonians could have stepped out of a tube just as it appeared, it’s likely that nothing could have saved Arisia. However, it took the enemy a few seconds, or sometimes even whole minutes, to travel through their tubes, which gave the defenders a lot of valuable time.
One of the observers—an Arisian or a Third-Stage Lensman—at first perception of a terminus erupting, noted the number of the threatened space-cubicle, informed the Rigellian operator upon whose panel the number was, and flashed a message to all other observers that that number had been "handled." The observer flashed the number to the Communications board of the flagship of the fleet covering that space; a flash which was automatically relayed to every Communications and Navigations officer of that fleet, and which also automatically called upon Reserve for another fleet to take the place being vacated. Without further orders, the fleet drove toward its target cube. En route, tube-locators mapped the terminus and marked its exact location upon each vessel's tube plates.
One of the observers—an Arisian or a Third-Stage Lensman—saw a terminal erupting and immediately took note of the number of the threatened space-cubicle. They informed the Rigellian operator whose panel displayed that number and sent a message to all other observers that the number had been "handled." The observer communicated the number to the Communications board of the flagship of the fleet covering that area; this message was automatically relayed to every Communications and Navigations officer in the fleet and also requested Reserve to send another fleet to take the vacated spot. Without needing further orders, the fleet moved towards the target cube. Along the way, tube-locators mapped the terminal and marked its exact location on each vessel's tube plates.
Upon arriving, the fleet englobed the terminus and laced itself, by means of tractors and pressors, into a rigid although inertialess structure. Then, if there was time, and because the theory was that the pirates would probably send a negasphere through first, with an intrinsic velocity aimed at Arisia, a suitably equipped loose planet was tossed into "this end" of the tube. Since they might send a loose or an armed planet through first, however, the Fleet Admiral usually threw a negasphere in, too.
Upon arriving, the fleet surrounded the endpoint and connected itself, using tractors and pressors, into a strong but motionless structure. Then, if time permitted, and because the theory was that the pirates would likely send a negasphere through first, with a velocity directed at Arisia, a properly equipped loose planet was tossed into "this end" of the tube. However, since they might send either a loose or an armed planet through first, the Fleet Admiral usually launched a negasphere in as well.
What happened when planet met negasphere, in the unknown medium which makes up the "interior" of a hyperspatial tube, is not and probably never will be surely known. Several highly abstruse mathematical treatises and many volumes of rather gruesome fiction have been written upon the subject—none of which, however, has any bearing here.
What happened when the planet met the negasphere, in the unknown substance that makes up the "interior" of a hyperspatial tube, is not and probably will never be fully understood. Several complex mathematical papers and many books of rather dark fiction have been written on the topic—none of which, however, are relevant here.
If the Patrol fleet did not get there first, the succession of events was different; the degree of difference depending upon how much time the enemy had had. If, as sometimes happened, a fleet was coming through it was met by superatomic bombs and by the concentrated fire of every primary projector that the englobing task force could bring to bear; with consequences upon which it is neither necessary or desirable to dwell. If a planet had emerged, it was met by a negasphere—
If the Patrol fleet didn’t arrive first, the sequence of events changed; the extent of that change depended on how much time the enemy had. If a fleet was coming through, it was sometimes confronted by superatomic bombs and the combined fire of every primary projector that the surrounding task force could use, with outcomes that it's neither necessary nor helpful to discuss. If a planet had appeared, it was met by a negasphere—
Have you ever seen a negasphere strike a planet?
Have you ever seen a negasphere hit a planet?
The negasphere is built of negative matter. This material—or, rather, antimaterial—is in every respect the exact opposite of the everyday matter of normal space. Instead of electrons, its ultimate units are positrons—the "Dirac Holes" in an infinity of negative energy. To it a push, however violent, is a pull; a pull is a push. When negative matter strikes positive, then, there is no collision in the usual sense of the word. One electron and one positron neutralize each other and disappear; giving rise to two quanta of extremely hard radiation.
The negasphere is made up of negative matter. This material—or, more accurately, antimatter—is completely opposite to the regular matter we encounter in everyday life. Instead of electrons, its fundamental particles are positrons—the "Dirac Holes" found in an infinite sea of negative energy. For it, a push is actually a pull, and a pull is a push. So when negative matter collides with positive matter, it doesn't result in a collision in the usual way. One electron and one positron cancel each other out and vanish, producing two quanta of extremely intense radiation.
Thus, when the spherical hyper-plane which was the aspect of negasphere tended to occupy the same three-dimensional space in which the loose planet already was, there was no actual collision. Instead, the materials of both simply vanished, along the surface of what should have been a contact, in a gigantically crescendo burst of pure, raw energy. The atoms and the molecules of the planet's substance disappeared; the physically incomprehensible texture of the negasphere's antimass changed into that of normal space. And all circumambient space was flooded with inconceivably lethal radiation; so intensely lethal that any being not adequately shielded from it died before he had time to realize that he was being burned.
Thus, when the spherical hyper-plane that represented the negasphere began to occupy the same three-dimensional space as the loose planet, there was no actual collision. Instead, both materials simply vanished along the surface where they should have made contact, releasing an enormous burst of pure, raw energy. The atoms and molecules of the planet's substance disappeared; the physically incomprehensible texture of the negasphere's antimass transformed into that of normal space. And the surrounding space was flooded with unimaginably lethal radiation; it was so intensely lethal that any being not properly shielded from it died before realizing they were being burned.
Gravitation, of course, was unaffected; and the rapid disappearance of the planet's mass set up unbalanced forces of tremendous magnitude. The hot, dense, pseudoliquid magma tended to erupt as the sphere of nothingness devoured so rapidly the planet's substance, but not a particle of it could move. Instead, it vanished. Mountains fell, crashingly. Oceans poured. Earth-cracks appeared; miles wide, tens of miles deep, hundreds of miles long. The world heaved—shuddered—disintegrated—vanished.
Gravitation, of course, remained unchanged; and the swift loss of the planet's mass created enormous unbalanced forces. The hot, dense, semi-liquid magma was ready to erupt as the void consumed the planet's substance so quickly, but not a single particle could move. Instead, it just disappeared. Mountains collapsed with a crash. Oceans flooded. Gaping fissures opened up; miles wide, tens of miles deep, hundreds of miles long. The world bucked—shuddered—disintegrated—vanished.
The shock attack upon Arisia itself, which in the Eddorian mind had been mathematically certain to succeed, was over in approximately six minutes. Kinnison, Maitland, and LaForge, fuming at their stations, had done nothing at all. The Boskonians had probably thrown everything they could; the probability was vanishingly small that that particular attack was to be or could be resumed. Nevertheless a host of Kinnison's task forces remained on guard and a detail of Arisians still scanned all nearby space.
The surprise assault on Arisia, which the Eddorians believed was guaranteed to succeed, was finished in about six minutes. Kinnison, Maitland, and LaForge, frustrated at their posts, had done nothing. The Boskonians had likely thrown in everything they had; it was extremely unlikely that this specific attack would be or could be repeated. Still, numerous task forces led by Kinnison remained on standby, and a team of Arisians continued to monitor all nearby space.
"What shall I do next, Kit?" Camilla asked. "Help Connie crack that screen?"
"What should I do next, Kit?" Camilla asked. "Should I help Connie fix that screen?"
Kit glanced at his youngest sister, who was stretched out flat, every muscle rigidly tense in an extremity of effort.
Kit glanced at his youngest sister, who was lying flat, every muscle tightly tensed in an intense effort.
"No," he decided. "If she can't crack it alone, all four of us couldn't help her much. Besides, I don't believe that she can break through it. That's a mechanical screen, you know, powered by atomic-motored generators. My guess is that it'll have to be solved, not cracked, and the solution will take time. When she comes down off of that peak, Kay, you might tell her so, and both of you start solving it. The rest of us have another job. The moppers-up are coming in force, and there isn't a chance that either we or the Arisians can derive the counter-formula of that screen in less than a week. Therefore the rest of this battle will have to be fought out on conventional lines. We can do the most good, I think, by spotting the Boskonians into the big tank—our scouts aren't locating five per cent of them—for the L2's to pass on to Dad and the rest of the heavy brass so that they can run this battle the way it should be run. You'll do the spotting, Cam, of course; Kat and I will do the pushing. And if you thought that Tregonsee took you for a wild ride—It'll work, don't you think?"
"No," he said. "If she can't figure it out on her own, the four of us can't help her much. Besides, I don't think she can break through it. That's a mechanical barrier, you know, powered by atomic generators. My guess is that it will need to be solved, not cracked, and solving it will take time. When she comes down from that peak, Kay, you might want to tell her this, and both of you can start working on it. The rest of us have another task. The cleanup crew is coming in strong, and there's no way either we or the Arisians can figure out the counter-formula for that barrier in less than a week. So, we’ll have to handle the rest of this fight using conventional methods. I think we can be most effective by locating the Boskonians near the big tank—our scouts aren't finding more than five percent of them—so the L2s can pass on the information to Dad and the rest of the leadership, so they can manage this battle properly. You’ll do the spotting, Cam, of course; Kat and I will handle the pushing. And if you thought Tregonsee gave you a wild ride—It'll work, don’t you think?"
"Of course it will work—and I like wild rides—the faster the better!"
"Of course it will work—and I love wild rides—the faster, the better!"
Thus, apparently as though by magic, red lights winked into being throughout a third of the volume of the immense tank; and the three master strategists, informed of what was being done, heaved tremendous sighs of relief. They now had real control. They knew, not only the positions of their own task forces, but also, and exactly, the position of every task force of the enemy. More, by merely forming in his mind the desire for the information, any one of the three could know, with no appreciable lapse of time, the exact composition and the exact strength of any individual one of the horde of Boskonian fleets!
Thus, as if by magic, red lights blinked to life throughout a third of the massive tank; and the three master strategists, aware of what was happening, let out huge sighs of relief. They now had real control. They not only knew the positions of their own task forces, but also, precisely, the location of every enemy task force. Even more, by simply thinking of the information they wanted, any one of the three could instantly know the exact makeup and strength of any individual fleet in the vast Boskonian armada!
Kit and his two sisters stood close-grouped, motionless; heads bent and almost touching, arms interlocked. Kinnison perceived with surprise that Lenses, as big and as bright as Kit's own, flamed upon his daughters' wrists; a surprise which changed to awe as the very air around those three red-bronze-auburn heads began to thicken, to pulsate, and to glow with that indefinable, indescribable polychromatic effulgence which is so uniquely characteristic of the Lens of the Galactic Patrol. But there was work to do, and Kinnison did it.
Kit and his two sisters stood closely grouped, completely still; their heads bent and almost touching, arms locked together. Kinnison noticed with surprise that the Lenses, just as big and bright as Kit's, blazed on his daughters' wrists; this surprise quickly turned into awe as the very air around those three red-bronze-auburn heads began to thicken, pulsate, and glow with that unique, indescribable multicolored radiance that is so characteristic of the Lens of the Galactic Patrol. But there was work to do, and Kinnison got to it.
Since the Z9M9Z was now working as not even the most optimistic of her planners and designers had dared to hope that she ever could work, the war could now be, and was now being fought strategically; that is, with the object of doing the enemy as much harm as possible with the irreducible minimum of risk. It was not sporting. It was not clubby. There was nothing whatever of chivalry. There was no thought whatever of giving the enemy a break. It was massacre—it was murder—it was war.
Since the Z9M9Z was now functioning in a way that even the most hopeful of her planners and designers never thought possible, the war could now be, and was currently being fought strategically; that is, with the aim of inflicting as much damage on the enemy as possible while minimizing risk. It wasn’t fair. It wasn’t friendly. There was no sense of chivalry. There was no intention of giving the enemy any chance. It was massacre—it was murder—it was war.
It was not ship to ship. No, nor fleet to fleet. Instead, ten or twenty Patrol task forces, under sure pilotage, dashed out to englobe at extreme range one fleet of the Boskonians. Then, before the opposing admiral could assemble a picture of what was going on, his entire command became the center of impact of hundreds or even thousands of detonating superatomic bombs, as well as the focus of an immensely greater number of scarcely less ravaging primary beams. Not a ship nor a scout nor a lifeboat of the englobed fleet escaped, ever. In fact, few indeed were the blobs, or even droplets, of hard alloy or of dureum which remained merely liquefied or which, later, were able to condense.
It wasn't about ships attacking other ships. No, or fleets battling each other. Instead, ten or twenty patrol task forces, expertly piloted, rushed out to surround one of the Boskonian fleets from a long distance. Then, before the enemy admiral could figure out what was happening, his entire command became the target of hundreds or even thousands of exploding superatomic bombs, as well as an even larger number of equally devastating primary beams. Not a single ship, scout, or lifeboat from the surrounded fleet made it out alive. In fact, there were very few chunks, or even drops, of hard metal or dureum that remained only melted or were able to solidify later.
Fleet by fleet the Boskonians were blown out of the ether; one by one the red lights in the tank and in the reducer winked out. And finally the slaughter was done.
Fleet by fleet, the Boskonians were blasted out of the ether; one by one, the red lights in the tank and in the reducer turned off. And finally, the massacre was over.
Kit and his two now Lensless sisters unlaced themselves. Karen and Constance came up for air, announcing that they knew how to work the problem Kit had handed them, but that they would need more time on it. Clarrissa, white and shaken by what she had driven herself to do, looked and felt sick. So did Kinnison; nor had either of the other two commanders derived any pleasure from the engagement. Tregonsee deplored it. Of all the Lensed personnel, only Worsel had enjoyed himself. He liked to kill enemies, at close range or far, and he could not understand or sympathize with squeamishness. Nadreck, of course, had neither liked nor disliked any part of the whole affair. To him his part had been merely another task, to be performed with the smallest outlay of physical and mental effort consistent with good workmanship.
Kit and his two now Lensless sisters took off their gear. Karen and Constance surfaced, saying they knew how to tackle the problem Kit had given them, but they needed more time to work on it. Clarrissa, pale and shaken by what she had pushed herself to do, felt nauseous. Kinnison felt the same; neither of the other two commanders found any satisfaction in the confrontation. Tregonsee was saddened by it. Of all the Lensed personnel, only Worsel seemed to enjoy himself. He liked taking down enemies, whether up close or from a distance, and he couldn't understand or empathize with those who felt queasy about it. Nadreck, of course, had no strong feelings either way about the whole situation. For him, his role was just another task to complete with minimal physical and mental effort while still ensuring good results.
"What next?" Kinnison asked then, of the group at large. "I say the Ploorans. They're not like these poor devils were—they probably sent them in. They've got it coming!"
"What now?" Kinnison asked the group. "I say we take on the Ploorans. They're not like these poor guys were—they probably sent them here. They've got it coming!"
"They certainly have!"
"They definitely have!"
"Ploor!"
"Plooor!"
"By all means Ploor!"
"Go for it, Ploor!"
"But how about Arisia here?" Maitland asked.
"But what about Arisia here?" Maitland asked.
"Under control," Kinnison replied. "We'll leave a heavy guard and a spare tank—the Arisians will do the rest."
"Under control," Kinnison said. "We'll leave a strong guard and a backup tank—the Arisians will handle the rest."
As soon as the tremendous fleet had shaken itself down into the course for Ploor, all seven of the Kinnisons retired to a small dining room and ate a festive meal. They drank after-dinner coffee. Most of them smoked. They discussed, for a long time and not very quietly, the matter of the Hell Hole in Space. Finally:
As soon as the huge fleet settled into its route for Ploor, all seven of the Kinnisons went to a small dining room and enjoyed a celebratory meal. They sipped after-dinner coffee. Most of them smoked. They talked for a long time and somewhat loudly about the issue of the Hell Hole in Space. Finally:
"I know it's a trap, as well as you do." Kinnison got up from the table, rammed his hands into his breeches pockets, and paced the floor. "It's got T-R-A-P painted all over it, in bill-poster letters seventeen meters high. So what? Since I'm the only one who can, I've got to go in, if it's still there after we knock Ploor off. And it'll still be there, for all the tea in China. All the Ploorans aren't on Ploor."
"I know it's a trap, just like you do." Kinnison stood up from the table, stuffed his hands into his pockets, and started pacing the floor. "It's got T-R-A-P written all over it, in giant letters. So what? Since I'm the only one who can, I have to go in, if it’s still there after we take care of Ploor. And it will still be there, no doubt about it. Not all the Ploorans are on Ploor."
Four young Kinnisons flashed thoughts at Kathryn, who frowned and bit her lip. She had hit that hole with everything she had, and had simply bounced. She had been able to block the radiation, of course, but such solid barriers had been necessary that she had blinded herself by her own screens. That it was Eddorian there could be no doubt—warned by her own activities in the other tube—Plooran, of course—and Dad would be worth taking, in more ways than one.
Four young Kinnisons sent thoughts to Kathryn, who frowned and bit her lip. She had thrown everything she had at that hole and just bounced back. She had managed to block the radiation, but the barriers were so solid that she had blinded herself with her own screens. There was no doubt it was Eddorian—she had been warned by her own actions in the other tube—Plooran, obviously—and Dad would be valuable in more ways than one.
"I can't say that I'm any keener about going in than any of you are about having me to do it," the big Lensman went on, "but unless some of you can figure out a reason for my not going in that isn't fuller of holes than a sponge-rubber cushion, I'm going to tackle it just as soon after we blow Ploor apart as I can possibly get there."
"I can't say I'm any more excited about going in than any of you are about having me do it," the big Lensman continued, "but unless any of you can come up with a reason for me not to go in that isn't full of holes like a sponge-rubber cushion, I'm going to take it on just as soon as we blow Ploor apart and I can get there."
And Kathryn, his self-appointed guardian, knew that nothing could stop him. Nor did anyone there, even Clarrissa, try to stop him. Lensmen all, they knew that he had to go in; and why.
And Kathryn, his self-appointed guardian, knew that nothing could hold him back. Neither did anyone there, even Clarrissa, attempt to stop him. They were all Lensmen and understood that he had to go in—and why.
To the Five, the situation was not too serious. Kinnison would probably come through unhurt. The Eddorians could take him, of course. But whether or not they could do anything to him after they got him would depend no little on what the Kinnison kids would be doing in the meantime—and that would be plenty. They couldn't delay Dad's entry into the tube very much without making a smell, but they could and would hurry Arisia up. And even if, as seemed probable, Dad was already in the tube when Arisia was ready for the big business with Eddore, a lot could be done at the other end. Those amoeboid monstrosities would be fighting for their own precious lives, this time, not for the lives of slaves; and the Five promised each other grimly that the Eddorians would have too much else to worry about to waste any time on Kimball Kinnison.
To the Five, the situation wasn't too serious. Kinnison would probably come out unscathed. The Eddorians could capture him, of course. But whether they could do anything to him once they had him would largely depend on what the Kinnison kids were up to in the meantime—and that would be a lot. They couldn't delay Dad's entry into the tube too much without raising suspicions, but they could and would rush Arisia. And even if, as seemed likely, Dad was already in the tube when Arisia was ready for the big showdown with Eddore, there was still a lot that could happen on the other side. Those amoeboid monsters would be fighting for their own lives this time, not those of slaves; and the Five grimly promised each other that the Eddorians would have too many other things to worry about to spend any time on Kimball Kinnison.
Clarrissa Kinnison, however, fought the hardest and bitterest battle of her life. She loved Kim with a depth and a fervor which very few women, anywhere, have ever been able to feel. She knew with a sick, cold certainty, knew with every fiber of her mind and with every cell of her brain, that if he went into that trap he would die in it. Nevertheless, she would have to let him go in. More, and worse, she would have to send him in—to his death—with a smile. She could not ask him not to go in. She could not even suggest again that there was any possibility that he need not go in. He had to go in. He had to.
Clarrissa Kinnison, however, fought the hardest and most intense battle of her life. She loved Kim with a depth and passion that very few women anywhere have ever felt. She knew with a sick, cold certainty, with every part of her mind and every cell of her brain, that if he walked into that trap, he would die. Still, she would have to let him go in. Worse, she would have to send him in—to his death—with a smile. She couldn’t ask him not to go in. She couldn’t even suggest again that there was any chance he didn’t have to go in. He had to go in. He had to.
And if Lensman's Load was heavy on him, on her it was almost unbearable. His part was vastly the easier. He would only have to die; she would have to live. She would have to keep on living—without Kim—living a lifetime of deaths, one after another. And she would have to hold her block and smile, not only with her face, but with her whole mind. She could be scared, of course, apprehensive, as he himself was; she could wish with all her strength for his safe return: but if he suspected the thousandth part of what she really felt it would break his heart. Nor would it do a bit of good. However brokenhearted at her rebellion against the inflexible Code of the Lens, he would still go in. Being Kimball Kinnison, he could not do anything else.
And if Lensman's Load was heavy on him, it was almost unbearable for her. His part was definitely easier. He would just have to die; she would have to keep living. She would have to continue living—without Kim—experiencing a lifetime of losses, one after another. And she would need to hold it together and smile, not just with her face, but with her whole mind. She could be scared, of course, anxious like he was; she could wish with all her strength for his safe return: but if he suspected even a fraction of what she truly felt, it would break his heart. And it wouldn’t change anything. No matter how heartbroken he was over her rebellion against the strict Code of the Lens, he would still go in. Being Kimball Kinnison, he couldn't do anything else.
As soon as she could, Clarrissa went to a distant room and turned on a full-coverage block. She lay down, buried her face in the pillow, clenched her fists, and fought.
As soon as she could, Clarrissa went to a faraway room and turned on a complete blackout. She lay down, buried her face in the pillow, clenched her fists, and fought.
Was there any way—any possible way—that she could die instead? None. It was not that simple.
Was there any way—any possible way—that she could die instead? No. It wasn't that simple.
She would have to let him go.
She would have to let him go.
Not gladly, but proudly and willingly—for the good of the Patrol.
Not happily, but with pride and a sense of duty—for the benefit of the Patrol.
Clarrissa Kinnison gritted her teeth and writhed.
Clarrissa Kinnison clenched her teeth and twisted in discomfort.
She would simply have to let him go into that ghastly trap—go to his absolutely sure and certain death—without showing one white feather, either to her husband or to her children. Her husband, her KIM, would have to die ... and she—would—have—to—live.
She would just have to let him walk into that horrible trap—head to his certain death—without showing any signs of fear to either her husband or her children. Her husband, her KIM, would have to die ... and she—would—have—to—live.
She got up, smiled experimentally, and snapped off the block. Then, actually smiling and serenely confident, she strolled down the corridor.
She got up, smiled tentatively, and unplugged the block. Then, genuinely smiling and feeling confidently at ease, she walked down the corridor.
Such is Lensman's Load.
That's Lensman's Load.
XXVI.
XXVI.
Twenty-odd years before, when the then Dauntless and her crew were thrown out of a hyperspatial tube and into that highly enigmatic nth space, LaVerne Thorndyke had been a Chief Technician. Mentor of Arisia found them, and put into the mind of Sir Austin Cardynge, mathematician extraordinary, the knowledge of how to find the way back to normal space. Thorndyke, working under nervebreaking difficulties, had been in charge of building the machines which were to enable the vessel to return to her home space. He built them. She returned.
Twenty-odd years ago, when the Dauntless and her crew were ejected from a hyperspatial tube into that mysterious nth space, LaVerne Thorndyke was a Chief Technician. The Mentor of Arisia found them and implanted the knowledge in Sir Austin Cardynge, an extraordinary mathematician, on how to find the way back to normal space. Thorndyke, working under intense pressure, was in charge of constructing the machines that would allow the ship to return to her home space. He built them. She made it back.
He was now again in charge, and every man of his present crew had been a member of his former one. He did not command the spaceship or her regular crew, of course, but they did not count. Not one of these kids would be allowed to set foot on the fantastically dangerous planet to which the inertialess Space Laboratory XII was anchored with tractors and pressors.
He was in charge again, and every member of his current crew had been part of his previous one. He didn’t command the spaceship or its regular crew, but that didn’t matter. Not one of these kids would be allowed to step foot on the incredibly dangerous planet where the inertialess Space Laboratory XII was anchored with tractors and pressors.
Older, leaner, grayer, he was now, even more than then, Civilization's Past Master of Mechanism. If anything could be built, "Thorny" Thorndyke could build it. If it couldn't be built, he could build something that would do the work.
Older, leaner, grayer, he was now, even more than before, Civilization's expert on mechanics. If anything could be constructed, "Thorny" Thorndyke could make it. If it couldn't be made, he could create something that would get the job done.
As soon as the Gray Lensman and his son left the vessel, Chief Technician Thorndyke—not the vice admiral of the same name—lined his crew up for inspection; men who, although many of them had as much rank and had had as many years of as much authority as their present boss, had been working for days to forget as completely as possible their executive positions and responsibilities. Each man wore not one, but three personal neutralizers, one inside and two outside of his spacesuit. Thorndyke, walking down the line, applied his test-kit to each individual neutralizer. He then tested his own. QX—all were at max.
As soon as the Gray Lensman and his son stepped off the ship, Chief Technician Thorndyke—not to be confused with the vice admiral of the same name—lined up his crew for inspection; these men, many of whom held equal rank and had years of authority just like their current boss, had been working for days to completely forget their previous positions and responsibilities. Each man wore not just one, but three personal neutralizers, one inside and two outside his spacesuit. As Thorndyke walked down the line, he used his test kit on each individual neutralizer. He then tested his own. QX—all were at max.
"Fellows," he said then, "you all remember what it was like last time. This is going to be the same, except more so and for a longer time. How we did it before without any casualties I'll never know. If we can do it again, it'll be a major miracle—no less. Before, all we had to do was to build a couple of small generators and some controls out of stuff native to the planet, and we didn't find that any too easy a job. This time, for a starter, we've got to build a Bergenholm big enough to free the whole planet; after which we install the Bergs, tube generators, atomic blasts, and other stuff we brought along.
"Fellows," he said, "you all remember what it was like last time. This is going to be the same, but more intense and for a longer duration. How we managed it before without any casualties, I'll never understand. If we can pull it off again, it’ll be a huge miracle—no doubt about it. Last time, all we had to do was build a couple of small generators and some controls from materials native to the planet, and that was no easy task. This time, to start off, we need to build a Bergenholm big enough to free the whole planet; after that, we'll install the Bergs, tube generators, atomic blasts, and the other equipment we brought with us."
"But that native Berg is going to be a Class A Prime headache, and until we get it running it's going to be hell on wheels. The only way we can get away with it is to check and re-check every thing and every step. Check, check, double-check; then go back and double-check again.
"But that local Berg is going to be a major headache, and until we get it running, it’s going to be a nightmare. The only way we can manage it is to check and re-check everything and every step. Check, check, double-check; then go back and double-check again."
"Remember that the fundamental characteristics of this nth space are such that inert matter can travel faster than light; and remember, every second of the time, that our intrinsic velocity is something like fifteen lights relative to anything solid in this space. I want every one of you to picture himself going inert accidentally. You might take a tangent course or higher—but you might not, too. And it wouldn't only kill the one who did it. It wouldn't only spoil our record. It could very easily kill us all and make a crater full of boiling metal out of our whole installation. So BE CAREFUL! Also bear in mind that one piece, however small, of this planet's material, accidentally brought aboard might wreck the Dauntless. Any questions?"
"Remember that the basic features of this nth space are such that inert matter can travel faster than light; and keep in mind, every second that our inherent speed is something like fifteen times the speed of light relative to anything solid in this space. I want each of you to imagine accidentally going inert. You might take a different course or go higher—but you might not, either. And it wouldn’t just harm the person who did it. It wouldn’t just tarnish our record. It could easily kill us all and turn our entire facility into a crater of boiling metal. So BE CAREFUL! Also, remember that even a small piece of this planet’s material, brought on board accidentally, could ruin the Dauntless. Any questions?"
"If the fundamental characteristics—constants—of this space are so different, how do you know that the stuff will work here?"
"If the basic features—constants—of this space are so different, how can you be sure that things will work here?"
"Well, the stuff we built here before worked. The Arisians told Kit Kinnison that two of the fundamentals, mass and length, are about normal. Time is a lot different, so that we can't compute power-to-mass ratios and so on, but we'll have enough power, anyway, to get any speed that we can use."
"Well, the stuff we built here before worked. The Arisians told Kit Kinnison that two of the basics, mass and length, are pretty normal. Time is really different, so we can't calculate power-to-mass ratios and such, but we'll have enough power to reach any speed we need to use."
"I see. We miss the really fancy stuff?"
"I get it. We miss out on the really fancy things?"
"Yes. Well, the quicker we get started the quicker we'll get done. Let's go."
"Yes. Well, the sooner we start, the sooner we'll finish. Let's go."
The planet was airless, waterless, desolate; a chaotic jumble of huge and jagged fragments of various metals in a nonmetallic continuous phase. It was as though some playful child-giant of space had poured dipperfuls of silver, of iron, of copper, and of other granulated pure metals into a tank of something else—and then, tired of play, had thrown the whole mess away!
The planet was without air, without water, and desolate; a chaotic mix of large, jagged pieces of different metals in a nonmetallic background. It was like some playful giant kid from space had dumped loads of silver, iron, copper, and other pure metals into a tank of something else—and then, bored with the game, had just tossed the entire mess aside!
Neither the metals nor the nonmetallic substances were either hot or cold. They had no apparent temperature, to thermometers or to the "feelers" of the suits. The machines which these men had built so long before had not changed in any particular. They still functioned perfectly; no spot of rust or corrosion or erosion marred any part. This, at least, was good news.
Neither the metals nor the nonmetallic substances were hot or cold. They had no noticeable temperature, according to thermometers or the "feelers" of the suits. The machines that these men had built so long ago had not changed in any way. They still worked perfectly; not a speck of rust, corrosion, or erosion damaged any part. This, at least, was good news.
Inertialess machines, extravagantly equipped with devices to keep them inertialess, were taken "ashore"; nor were any of these ever to be returned to the ship. Kinnison had ordered and reiterated that no unnecessary chances were to be taken of getting any particle of nth-space stuff aboard Space Laboratory XII, and none were taken.
Inertialess machines, loaded with gadgets to keep them inertialess, were brought "ashore"; none of these were ever returned to the ship. Kinnison had ordered and emphasized that no unnecessary risks were to be taken in getting any particles of nth-space material aboard Space Laboratory XII, and none were taken.
Since men cannot work indefinitely in spacesuits, each man had periodically to be relieved; but each such relief amounted almost to an operation. Before he left the planet his suit was scrubbed, rinsed, and dried. In the vessel's air lock it was air-blasted again before the outer port was closed. He unshelled in the lock and left his suit there—everything which had come into contact with nth-space matter either would be left on the planet's surface or would be jettisoned before the vessel was again inerted. Unnecessary precautions? Perhaps—but Thorndyke and his crew returned unharmed to normal space in undamaged ships.
Since men can't work in spacesuits forever, each one had to be relieved periodically; but each relief was almost like a procedure. Before he left the planet, his suit was scrubbed, rinsed, and dried. In the vessel’s airlock, it was air-blasted again before the outer port was closed. He took off his suit in the lock and left it there—anything that had come into contact with nth-space matter would either be left on the planet’s surface or jettisoned before the vessel was inerted again. Unnecessary precautions? Maybe—but Thorndyke and his crew returned safely to normal space in undamaged ships.
Finally the Bergenholm was done—by dint of what improvisation, substitution, and artifice only "Thorny" Thorndyke ever knew; at what strain and cost was evidenced by the gaunt bodies and haggard faces of his overworked and under-slept crew. To those experts, and particularly to Thorndyke, the thing was not a good job. It was not quiet, nor smooth. It was not in balance, statically, dynamically, or electrically. The chief technician, to whom a meter jump of one and a half thousandths had always been a matter of grave concern, swore feelingly in all the planetary languages he knew when he saw what those meters were doing.
Finally, the Bergenholm was finished—thanks to the improvisation, substitution, and tricks that only "Thorny" Thorndyke understood; the strain and toll were clear in the exhausted bodies and worn-out faces of his overworked and sleep-deprived crew. For those experts, especially Thorndyke, the job wasn't well done. It wasn't quiet or smooth. It was out of balance, both statically and dynamically, as well as electrically. The chief technician, who always fretted over a meter jump of one and a half thousandths, cursed passionately in every planetary language he knew when he saw what those meters were doing.
He scowled morosely. There might have been poorer machines built sometime, somewhere, he supposed—but if so he had never seen any!
He frowned sadly. There might have been worse machines made at some point, somewhere, he thought—but if there were, he had never seen them!
But the improvised Berg ran, and kept on running. The planet became inertialess and remained that way. For hours, then, Thorndyke climbed over and around and through the Brobdingnagian fabrication, testing and checking the operation of every part. Finally he climbed down and reported to his waiting crew.
But the makeshift Berg kept running and didn't stop. The planet became weightless and stayed that way. For hours, Thorndyke climbed over, around, and through the massive structure, testing and checking how every part worked. Finally, he climbed down and reported back to his waiting crew.
"QX, fellows, a nice job. A good job, in fact, considering—even though we all know that it isn't what any of us would call a good machine. Part of that meter jump, of course, is due to the fact that nothing about the heap is true or balanced, but most of it must be due to this cockeyed ether. Anyway, none of it is due to the usual causes—loose bars and faulty insulation. So my best guess is that she'll keep on doing her stuff while we do ours. One sure thing, she isn't going to fall apart, even under that ungodly knocking; and I don't think that she's going to shake herself off of the planet."
"QX, guys, great job. A solid job, actually, considering—even though we all know it’s not what we’d call a good machine. Part of that meter jump, of course, is because nothing about this pile is correct or balanced, but most of it has to be because of this crazy ether. Anyway, none of it is caused by the usual issues—loose rods and bad insulation. So my best guess is that it’ll keep doing its thing while we do ours. One thing's for sure, it’s not going to fall apart, even with that insane knocking; and I don't think it’s going to shake itself off the planet."
After Thorndyke's somewhat less than enthusiastic approval of his brain-child, the adventurers into that fantastic region attacked the second phase of their project. Two Patrol Bergenholms were landed and were installed. Their meters jumped, too, but the engineers were no longer worried about that. Those machines would run indefinitely; and a concerted sigh of relief arose when the improvised generator was shut down. Pits were dug. Atomic blasts and other engines were installed, as were many exceedingly complex instruments and mechanisms. A few tons of foreign matter on the planet's surface would now make no difference, but there was no relaxation of the extreme precautions against the transfer of any matter whatever from the planet to the spaceship.
After Thorndyke's less than enthusiastic approval of his creation, the adventurers in that fantastic region moved on to the next phase of their project. They landed two Patrol Bergenholms and got them set up. Their meters registered activity too, but the engineers weren't concerned anymore. Those machines would run endlessly, and a collective sigh of relief was heard when the makeshift generator was turned off. Pits were dug. Atomic blasts and other engines were installed, along with many highly complex instruments and mechanisms. A few tons of foreign material on the planet's surface wouldn’t make any difference now, but strict precautions remained in place to prevent any material from being transferred from the planet to the spaceship.
When the job was done, but before the clean-up, Thorndyke called his crew into conference.
When the job was finished, but before the cleanup, Thorndyke gathered his team for a meeting.
"Fellows, I know just what a beating you've been taking. We all feel as though we had been on a Delgonian clambake. Nevertheless, I've got to tell you something. Kinnison said that if we could get this one fixed up without too much trouble, it'd be a mighty good idea to have two of them. What do you say? Did we have too much trouble?"
"Guys, I know exactly how rough you've had it. We all feel like we've been through a crazy party. Still, I need to share something with you. Kinnison mentioned that if we could get this one sorted out without too much hassle, it’d be a great idea to have two of them. What do you think? Did we have too much hassle?"
He got exactly the reaction he had expected.
He got the exact reaction he expected.
"Lead us to it!"
"Show us the way!"
"Pick out the one you want!"
"Pick the one you want!"
"Trouble? It's all over—we can tow this scrap heap on a space line, match intrinsics with clamp-on drivers, and plant it anywhere!"
"Trouble? It's everywhere—we can tow this junk on a space line, match its properties with clamp-on drivers, and set it down anywhere!"
Another metal-studded, barren, lifeless world was therefore found and prepared, and no real argument arose until Thorndyke broached the matter of selecting the two men who were to stay with him and Henderson in the two lifeboats which were to remain for a time near the two loose planets after Space Laboratory XII had returned to normal space. Everybody wanted to stay. Each one was going to stay, too, by all the gods of space, if he had to pull rank to do it!
Another metal-studded, barren, lifeless world was found and set up, and no real disagreement came up until Thorndyke brought up who would join him and Henderson in the two lifeboats that would stay for a while near the two loose planets after Space Laboratory XII returned to normal space. Everyone wanted to stay. Each person was determined to stay, too, by all the gods of space, if they had to use their rank to make it happen!
"Hold it!" Thorndyke commanded. "We'll do the same as we did before, then, by drawing lots. Quartermaster Allerdyce—"
"Hold on!" Thorndyke ordered. "We'll do it the same way we did before, by drawing lots. Quartermaster Allerdyce—"
"No!" Uhlenhuth, formerly Atomic Technician 1/c, objected vigorously, and was supported by several others. "He's too clever with his fingers—look what he did to the original draw! We're not squawking about that one, you understand—a little fixing was QX back there—but we want this one to be honest."
"No!" Uhlenhuth, formerly Atomic Technician 1/c, protested strongly, and several others backed him up. "He's too skilled with his hands—look what he did to the original draw! We're not complaining about that one, you get it—a little fixing was fine back then—but we want this one to be legit."
"Now that you mention it, I do remember hearing that things were not left entirely to chance." Thorndyke grinned broadly. "So you hold the pot yourself, Uhly, and Hank and I will each pull out one name."
"Now that you mention it, I do remember hearing that things weren't completely left to chance." Thorndyke grinned widely. "So you’re holding the pot yourself, Uhly, and Hank and I will each draw one name."
So it was. Henderson drew Uhlenhuth, to that burly admiral's loud delight, and Thorndyke drew Nelson, the erstwhile chief communications officer. The two lifeboats disembarked, each near one of the newly "loosened" planets. Two men would stay on or near each of those planets, to be sure that all the machinery functioned perfectly. They would stay there until the atomic blasts functioned perfectly. They would stay there until the atomic blasts went into action and it became clear that the Arisians would need no help in navigating those tremendous globes through nth space to the points at which two hyperspatial tubes were soon to appear.
So it was. Henderson drew Uhlenhuth, much to the loud delight of the burly admiral, and Thorndyke got Nelson, the former chief communications officer. The two lifeboats launched, each near one of the newly "loosened" planets. Two men would remain on or near each of those planets to ensure that all the machinery worked perfectly. They would stay there until the atomic blasts operated flawlessly. They would remain until the atomic blasts were triggered and it was clear that the Arisians wouldn’t need any help navigating those massive globes through nth space to where two hyperspatial tubes would soon appear.
Long before the advance scouts of the Grand Fleet were within surveying distance of Ploor, Kit and his sisters had spread a completely detailed chart of its defenses in the tactical tank. A white star represented Ploor's sun; a white sphere the planet itself; white Ryerson string lights marked a portion of the planetary orbit. Points of white light, practically all of which were connected to the white sphere by red string lights, marked the directions of neighboring stars and the existence of sunbeams, installed and ready. Pink globes were loose planets; purple ones negaspheres; red points of light were, as before, Boskonian task-force fleets. Blues were mobile fortresses; bands of canary yellow and amber luminescence showed the locations and emplacements of sunbeam grids and deflectors.
Long before the advance scouts of the Grand Fleet were close enough to survey Ploor, Kit and his sisters had laid out a detailed chart of its defenses in the tactical tank. A white star represented Ploor's sun; a white sphere indicated the planet itself; white Ryerson string lights marked part of the planetary orbit. Points of white light, almost all connected to the white sphere by red string lights, showed the directions of neighboring stars and the presence of sunbeams, all set up and ready. Pink globes represented loose planets; purple ones were negaspheres; red points of light indicated, as before, Boskonian task-force fleets. Blue ones were mobile fortresses; bands of canary yellow and amber light displayed the locations and setups of sunbeam grids and deflectors.
Layer after layer of pinks, purples, and blues almost hid the brilliant white sphere from sight. More layers of the same colors, not quite as dense, surrounded the entire solar system. Yellow and amber bands were everywhere.
Layer after layer of pinks, purples, and blues nearly concealed the brilliant white sphere from view. More layers of the same colors, not quite as thick, enveloped the entire solar system. Yellow and amber bands were all around.
Kinnison studied the thing briefly, whistling unmelodiously through his teeth. The picture was familiar enough, since it duplicated in practically every respect the chart of the neighborhood of the Patrol's own Ultra Prime, around Klovia. It did not require much study to make it clear that that defense could not be cracked by any concentration possible of any mobile devices theretofore employed in war.
Kinnison looked at the thing for a moment, whistling tunelessly through his teeth. The image was familiar, as it closely resembled the map of the area around the Patrol's own Ultra Prime, near Klovia. It didn't take long to realize that this defense couldn't be breached by any combination of mobile devices previously used in warfare.
"Just about what we expected," Kinnison thought to the group at large. "Some new stuff, but not much. What I want to know, Kit and the rest of you, is there anything there that looks as though it was supposed to handle our new baby? Don't see anything, myself."
"Pretty much what we expected," Kinnison thought to the group as a whole. "A few new things, but not a lot. What I want to know, Kit and all of you, is there anything here that seems like it was meant to deal with our new addition? I don’t see anything myself."
"There is not," Kit stated definitely. "We looked. There couldn't be, anyway. It can't be handled. Looking backwards at it, they will probably be able to reconstruct how it was done, but in advance? No. Even Mentor couldn't—he had to call in a fellow who has studied ultra-high mathematics for Klono-only-knows-how-many-millions of years to compute the resultant vectors."
"There isn't," Kit said firmly. "We searched. There can't be, anyway. It can't be managed. Looking back, they will probably figure out how it was done, but beforehand? No way. Even Mentor couldn't do it—he had to bring in someone who's been studying ultra-high mathematics for who knows how many millions of years to calculate the resulting vectors."
Kit's use of the word "they," which, of course, meant Ploorans to everyone except his sisters, concealed his knowledge of the fact that the Eddorians had taken over the defense of Ploor. Eddorians were handling those screens. Eddorians were directing and correlating those far-flung task forces, with a precision which Kinnison soon noticed.
Kit's use of the word "they," which, of course, referred to Ploorans for everyone except his sisters, hid his awareness that the Eddorians were now in charge of Ploor's defense. Eddorians were managing those screens. Eddorians were coordinating those distant task forces with a precision that Kinnison quickly observed.
"Much smoother work than I ever saw them do before," he commented. "Suppose they have developed a Z9M9Z?"
"Much smoother work than I've ever seen them do before," he said. "What if they've developed a Z9M9Z?"
"Could be. They copied everything else you invented, why not that?" Again the highly ambiguous "they." "No sign of it around Arisia, though—but maybe they didn't think they'd need it there."
"Could be. They took everything else you created, so why not that?" Again, the very vague "they." "No evidence of it around Arisia, though—but maybe they figured they wouldn't need it there."
"Or, more likely, they didn't want to risk it so far from home. We can tell better after the mopping-up starts—if the widget performs as per specs. But if your dope is right, this is about close enough. You might tip the boys off, and I'll call Mentor." Kinnison could not reach nth space, but it was no secret that Kit could.
"Or, more likely, they didn't want to take the chance so far from home. We’ll have a clearer idea once the cleanup starts—if the widget works as it should. But if your info is correct, this is pretty close. You might want to let the guys know, and I’ll call Mentor." Kinnison couldn’t access nth space, but it was well known that Kit could.
The terminus of one of the Patrol's hyperspatial tubes erupted into space close to Ploor. That such phenomena were expected was evident—a Boskonian fleet moved promptly and smoothly to englobe it. But this was an Arisian tube; computed, installed, and handled by Arisians. It would be in existence only three seconds; the nearest defending task force could not possibly get there in time.
The end of one of the Patrol's hyperspatial tubes opened into space near Ploor. It was clear that such events were anticipated—a Boskonian fleet quickly and efficiently surrounded it. But this was an Arisian tube; designed, installed, and operated by Arisians. It would only exist for three seconds; the closest defending task force wouldn’t be able to arrive in time.
To the observers in the Z9M9Z those three seconds stretched endlessly. What would happen when that utterly foreign planet, with its absolutely impossible intrinsic velocity of over fifteen times that of light, erupted into normal space and went inert? Nobody, not even the Arisians, knew.
To the watchers in the Z9M9Z, those three seconds felt like an eternity. What would happen when that completely alien planet, with its totally impossible speed of over fifteen times the speed of light, burst into regular space and became still? Nobody knew, not even the Arisians.
Everybody there had seen pictures of what happened when the insignificant mass of a spaceship, traveling at only a hundredth of the velocity of light, collided with a planetoid. That was bad enough. This projectile, however, had a mass of about eight times ten to the twenty-first power—an eight followed by twenty-one zeros—metric tons; would tend to travel fifteen hundred times as fast; and kinetic energy equals mass times velocity squared.
Everybody there had seen images of what happened when a tiny spaceship, moving at just one hundredth the speed of light, crashed into a planetoid. That was already pretty bad. This projectile, though, weighed about eight times ten to the twenty-first power—an eight followed by twenty-one zeros—metric tons; would likely travel fifteen hundred times faster; and kinetic energy equals mass times the square of the velocity.
There seemed to be a theoretical possibility, since the mass would instantaneously become some higher order of infinity, that all the matter in normal space would coalesce with it in zero time; but Mentor had assured Kit that operators would come into effect to prevent such an occurrence, and that untoward events would be limited to a radius of ten or fifteen parsecs. Mentor could solve the problem in detail, but since the solution would require some two hundred Klovian years and the event was due to occur in two weeks—
There seemed to be a theoretical possibility that the mass would instantly turn into a higher order of infinity, causing all the matter in normal space to merge with it in no time. However, Mentor had assured Kit that operators would kick in to prevent that from happening, and any unfortunate events would be contained within a radius of ten or fifteen parsecs. Mentor could work out the details of the problem, but since the solution would take about two hundred Klovian years and the event was set to happen in two weeks—
"How about the big computer at Ultra Prime?" Kinnison had asked, innocently. "You know how fast that works."
"How about the huge computer at Ultra Prime?" Kinnison had asked, casually. "You know how quickly that runs."
"Roughly two thousand years—if it could take that kind of math, which it can't," Kit had replied, and the subject had been dropped.
"About two thousand years—if you could even do that kind of math, which you can’t," Kit had replied, and the topic was dropped.
Finally it happened. What happened? Even after the fact none of the observers knew; nor did any except the L3's ever find out. The fuses of all the recorder and analyzer circuits blew at once. Needles jumped instantly to maximum and wrapped themselves around their stops. Charts and ultraphotographic films showed only straight or curved lines running from the origin to and through the limits in zero time. Ploor and everything around it disappeared in an utterly indescribable and completely incomprehensible blast of pure, wild, raw, uncontrolled and uncontrollable energy. The infinitesimal fraction of that energy which was visible, heterodyned upon the ultra as it was and screened as it was, blazed so savagely upon the plates that it seared the eyes.
Finally, it happened. What happened? Even after it took place, none of the observers knew; nor did anyone except the L3's ever find out. The fuses of all the recorder and analyzer circuits blew simultaneously. The needles shot straight to the maximum and wrapped around their stops. Charts and ultraphotographic films showed only straight or curved lines going from the origin and beyond the limits in zero time. Ploor and everything around it vanished in an utterly indescribable and completely incomprehensible explosion of pure, wild, raw, uncontrolled, and uncontrollable energy. The tiny fraction of that energy that was visible, heterodyned upon the ultra as it was and screened as it was, blazed so fiercely on the plates that it burned the eyes.
And if the events caused by the planet aimed at Ploor were indescribable, what can be said of those initiated by the one directed against Ploor's sun?
And if the events caused by the planet aimed at Ploor were beyond words, what can be said about those triggered by the one aimed at Ploor's sun?
When the heat generated in the interior of a sun becomes greater than its effective surface is able to radiate, that surface expands. If the expansion is not fast enough, a more or less insignificant amount of the sun's material explodes, thus enlarging by force the radiant surface to whatever extent is necessary to restore equilibrium. Thus come into being the ordinary novae; suns which may for a few days or for a few weeks radiate energy at a rate a few hundreds of thousands of times greater than normal. Since ordinary novae can be produced at will by the collision of a planet with a sun, the scientists of the Patrol had long since completed their studies of all the phenomena involved.
When the heat generated in the interior of a sun becomes greater than what its surface can radiate, that surface expands. If the expansion isn't quick enough, a small amount of the sun's material explodes, forcefully increasing the radiant surface to restore balance. This is how regular novae form; suns that can radiate energy at a rate hundreds of thousands of times greater than normal for a few days or weeks. Since regular novae can be created at will by a planet colliding with a sun, the scientists of the Patrol had long ago finished their studies of all the related phenomena.
The mechanisms of supernovae, however, remained obscure. No adequate instrumentation had been developed to study conclusively the occasional supernova which occurred naturally. No supernova had ever been produced artificially—with all its resources of mass, atomic energy, cosmic energy, and sunbeams. Civilization could neither assemble nor concentrate enough power.
The processes behind supernovae, however, were still unclear. No suitable tools had been created to definitively study the rare supernovae that happened in nature. No supernova had ever been artificially generated—with all its resources of mass, atomic energy, cosmic energy, and sunlight. Society couldn't gather or focus enough power.
At the impact of the second loose planet, accompanied by the excess energy of its impossible and unattainable intrinsic velocity, Ploor's sun became a supernova. How deeply the intruding thing penetrated, how much of the sun's mass exploded, never was and perhaps never will be determined. The violence of the explosion was such, however, that Klovian astronomers reported—a few years later—that it was radiating energy at the rate of some five hundred and fifty million suns.
At the moment the second loose planet hit, fueled by the overwhelming energy of its unbelievable speed, Ploor's sun went supernova. How deeply the foreign object penetrated and how much of the sun's mass exploded was never fully determined, and probably never will be. However, the explosion was so intense that Klovian astronomers reported—years later—that it was emitting energy equivalent to about five hundred and fifty million suns.
Thus no attempt will be made to describe what happened when the planet from nth space struck the Boskonians' sun.
Thus, no attempt will be made to describe what happened when the planet from nth space hit the Boskonians' sun.
It was indescribably cubed.
It was incredibly cubed.
XXVII.
XXVII.
The Boskonian fleets defending Ploor were not all destroyed, of course. The vessels were inertialess. None of the phenomena accompanying the coming into being of the supernova were propagated at a velocity above that of light; a speed which to any spaceship is scarcely a crawl.
The Boskonian fleets protecting Ploor weren't completely destroyed, of course. The ships were inertialess. None of the events related to the formation of the supernova traveled faster than the speed of light; a speed that is barely a crawl for any spaceship.
The survivors were, however, disorganized. They had lost their morale when Ploor was wiped out in such a spectacularly nerve-shattering fashion. Also, they had lost practically all of their High Command; for the Ploorans, instead of riding the ether as did Patrol commanders, remained in their supposedly secure headquarters and directed matters from afar. Mentor and his fellows had removed from this plane of existence the Eddorians who had been present in the flesh on Ploor. The Arisians had cut all communications between Eddore and the remnants of the Boskonian defensive force.
The survivors were, however, disorganized. They had lost their morale when Ploor was taken out in such a shockingly intense way. Additionally, they had lost nearly all of their High Command; because the Ploorans, instead of navigating the ether like Patrol commanders, stayed in their supposedly safe headquarters and directed things from a distance. Mentor and his associates had eliminated the Eddorians who had been physically present on Ploor. The Arisians had severed all communications between Eddore and the remaining Boskonian forces.
Grand Fleet, then, moved in for the kill; and for a time the action near Arisia was repeated. Following definite flight-and-course orders from the Z9M9Z, ten or more Patrol fleets would make short hops. At the end of those assigned courses they would discover that they had englobed a task force of the enemy. Bomb and beam!
Grand Fleet, then, moved in for the attack; and for a while, the battle near Arisia repeated itself. Following clear flight and course orders from the Z9M9Z, ten or more Patrol fleets would make quick maneuvers. By the end of their assigned routes, they would find themselves surrounding an enemy task force. Bomb and beam!
Over and over—flit, bomb, and beam!
Over and over—zip, blast, and shine!
One Boskonian high officer, however, had both the time and the authority to act. A full thousand fleets massed together, their heaviest units outward, packed together screen to screen in a close-order globe of defense.
One high-ranking Boskonian officer, however, had both the time and the authority to take action. A total of a thousand fleets gathered together, their heaviest units on the outside, tightly packed shoulder to shoulder in a close-knit sphere of defense.
"According to Haynes, that was good strategy in the old days," Kinnison commented, "but it's no good against loose planets and negaspheres."
"According to Haynes, that was a good strategy back in the day," Kinnison commented, "but it's useless against loose planets and negaspheres."
Six loose planets were so placed and so released that their inert masses would crash together at the center of the Boskonian globe; then, a few minutes later, ten negaspheres of high antimass were similarly launched. After those sixteen missiles had done their work and the resultant had attained an equilibrium of sorts, very little mopping-up was found necessary.
Six loose planets were positioned and released in such a way that their inactive masses would collide at the center of the Boskonian globe; then, a few minutes later, ten negaspheres of high antimass were also launched. After those sixteen projectiles completed their task and the outcome reached a kind of balance, there was very little cleanup needed.
The Boskonian observers were competent. The Boskonian commanders now knew that they had no chance whatever of success; that to stay was to be annihilated; that the only possibility of life lay in flight. Therefore each remaining Boskonian vice admiral, after perhaps a moment of consultation with a few others, ordered his fleet to drive at maximum blast for his home planet.
The Boskonian observers were skilled. The Boskonian commanders now realized they had no chance of winning; staying meant certain destruction; the only chance for survival was to escape. So, each remaining Boskonian vice admiral, after a brief discussion with a few others, ordered his fleet to race at full speed toward their home planet.
"No use chasing them individually, is there, Kit?" Kinnison asked, when it became clear in the tank that the real battle was over; that all resistance had ended. "They can't do anything, and this kind of killing makes me sick at the stomach. Besides, I've got something else to do."
"No point in going after them one by one, right, Kit?" Kinnison asked when it was clear in the tank that the real fight was over; that all resistance had stopped. "They can't do anything, and this kind of killing makes me feel nauseous. Plus, I've got other things to take care of."
"No. Me, too. So have I." Kit agreed with his father in full.
"No. Me, too. I have as well." Kit fully agreed with his father.
As soon as the last Boskonian fleet was beyond detector range Grand Fleet broke up, its component fleets setting out for their respective worlds.
As soon as the last Boskonian fleet was out of detector range, the Grand Fleet dispersed, with its individual fleets heading towards their respective worlds.
"The Hell Hole is still there, Kit," the Gray Lensman said, soberly. "If Ploor was the top—I'm beginning to think there is no top—it leads either to an automatic mechanism set up by the Ploorans or to Ploorans who are still alive somewhere. If Ploor was not the top, this seems to be the only lead we have toward that top. In either case I've got to take it. Check?"
"The Hell Hole is still there, Kit," the Gray Lensman said seriously. "If Ploor was the top—I’m starting to think there really isn’t a top—it either leads to some kind of automatic system created by the Ploorans or to Ploorans who are still alive somewhere. If Ploor wasn’t the top, this looks like the only clue we have pointing to that top. In either case, I have to pursue it. Got it?"
"Well, I—" Kit tried to duck, but couldn't. "Yes, Dad, I'm afraid it's check."
"Well, I—" Kit tried to dodge, but couldn't. "Yeah, Dad, I'm afraid it's check."
Two big hands met and gripped; and Kinnison went to take leave of his wife.
Two large hands came together and gripped tightly; then Kinnison went to say goodbye to his wife.
There is no need to go into detail as to what those two strong souls said or did. He knew that he was going into danger; that he might not return. That is, he knew empirically or academically, as a nongermane sort of fact, that he might die. He did not, however, really believe that he would. No man who is not an arrant coward really believes, ever, that any given event will or can kill him. In his own mind he goes on living indefinitely.
There’s no need to get into the specifics of what those two strong individuals said or did. He was aware that he was heading into a dangerous situation; that he might not come back. He understood, in a factual way, that he could die. However, deep down, he didn’t truly believe that would happen. No man who isn’t a complete coward ever genuinely believes that any specific event will or can take his life. In his own mind, he continues to live on indefinitely.
Kinnison expected to be captured, imprisoned, questioned, and perhaps tortured. He could understand all of those things, and he did not like any one of them. That he was more than a trifle afraid and that he hated to leave her now more than he ever had before were both natural enough—he had nothing whatever to hide from her.
Kinnison anticipated being caught, locked up, interrogated, and possibly tortured. He understood all of this, and he didn’t like any of it. It was natural for him to be more than a little scared and to hate leaving her now more than he ever had before—he had nothing at all to hide from her.
She, on the other hand, knew starkly that he would never come back. She knew that he would die in that trap. She knew that she would have to live a lifetime of emptiness, alone. Hence she had much to conceal from him. She must be just as scared and as apprehensive as he was, but no more; just as anxious for their continued happiness as he was, but no more; just as intensely loving, but no more and in exactly the same sense. Here lay the test. She must kiss him good-by as though he were going into mere danger. She must not give way to the almost irresistible urge to act in accordance with what she so starkly, chillingly knew to be the truth, that she would never—never—NEVER kiss her Kim again!
She knew clearly that he would never come back. She knew he would die in that trap. She understood she would have to live a lifetime of emptiness, alone. So, she had a lot to hide from him. She had to be just as scared and anxious as he was, but no more; just as hopeful for their continued happiness as he was, but no more; just as deeply in love, but no more and in exactly the same way. This was the challenge. She had to kiss him goodbye as if he were just going into a dangerous situation. She must not give in to the almost overwhelming urge to act according to what she knew so clearly, chillingly—that she would never—never—NEVER kiss her Kim again!
She succeeded. It is a measure of the Red Lensman's quality that she did not weaken, even when her husband approached the boundary of the Hell Hole and sent what she knew would be his last message.
She succeeded. It's a testament to the Red Lensman's strength that she didn't falter, even when her husband neared the edge of the Hell Hole and sent what she knew would be his final message.
"Here it is—about a second now. Don't worry—I'll be back very shortly. Clear ether, Chris!"
"Here it is—about a second now. Don't worry—I'll be back really soon. Clear the air, Chris!"
"Of course you will, dear. Clear ether, Kim!"
"Of course you will, dear. Clear skies, Kim!"
His speedster did not mount any special generators. He had not thought that they would be necessary. Nor were they. He and his ship were sucked into that trap as though it had been a maelstrom.
His speedster didn’t have any special generators. He hadn’t thought they would be needed. And they weren’t. He and his ship were pulled into that trap as if it were a whirlpool.
He felt again the commingled agonies of interdimensional acceleration. He perceived again the formless, textureless, spaceless void of blankly gray nothingness which was the three-dimensionally-impossible substance of the tube. A moment later, he felt a new and different acceleration—he was speeding up inside the tube! Then, very shortly, he felt nothing at all. Startled, he tried to jump up to investigate, and discovered that he could not move. Even by the utmost exertion of his will he could not stir a finger or an eyelid. He was completely immobilized. Nor could he feel. His body was as devoid of sensation as though it belonged to somebody else. Worse, for his heart was not beating. He was not breathing. He could not see. It was as though his every nerve, motor and sensory, voluntary and involuntary, had been separately anaesthetized. He could still think, but that was all. His sense of perception still worked.
He felt again the mixed pains of traveling through dimensions. He sensed once more the formless, textureless, spaceless void of dull gray nothingness that was the impossibly three-dimensional essence of the tube. A moment later, he experienced a new and different acceleration—he was speeding up inside the tube! Then, very soon after, he felt nothing at all. Surprised, he tried to jump up to check things out and realized he couldn't move. Even with all his effort, he couldn’t budge a finger or an eyelid. He was completely stuck. He couldn’t feel anything either. His body was so devoid of sensation it was like it belonged to someone else. Worse, his heart wasn’t beating. He wasn’t breathing. He couldn’t see. It was as if every nerve, both voluntary and involuntary, had been separately numbed. He could still think, but that was it. His ability to perceive was still intact.

He wondered whether he was still accelerating or not, and tried to find out. He could not. He could not determine whether he was moving or stationary. There were no reference points. Every infinitesimal volume of that enigmatic grayness was like each and every other.
He wondered if he was still speeding up and tried to figure it out. He couldn't. He couldn't tell if he was moving or standing still. There were no reference points. Every tiny bit of that puzzling grayness looked just like every other.
Mathematically, perhaps, he was not moving at all; since he was in a continuum in which mass, length and time, and hence inertia and inertialessness, velocity and acceleration, are meaningless terms. He was outside of space and beyond time. Effectively, however, he was moving; moving with an acceleration which nothing material had ever before approached. He and his vessel were being driven along that tube by every watt of power generable by one entire Eddorian atomic power plant. His velocity, long since unthinkable, became incalculable.
Mathematically, maybe he wasn’t moving at all; he was in a continuum where mass, length, and time—along with inertia, inertialessness, velocity, and acceleration—didn’t mean anything. He was outside of space and beyond time. But in reality, he was moving; moving with an acceleration that no material object had ever experienced before. He and his vessel were being propelled through that tube by every watt of power generated by a whole Eddorian atomic power plant. His speed, which had long become unimaginable, was now beyond calculation.
All things end—even Eddorian atomic power was not infinite. At the very peak of power and pace, then, all the force, all the momentum, all the kinetic energy of the speedster's mass and velocity were concentrated in and applied to Kinnison's physical body. He sensed something, and tried to flinch, but could not. In a fleeting instant of what he thought was time he went past, not through, his clothing and his Lens; past, not through, his armor; and past, not through, the hard beryllium-alloy structure of his vessel. He even went past but not through the N-dimensional interface of the hyperspatial tube.
All things come to an end—even Eddorian atomic power wasn’t limitless. At the very height of strength and speed, all the force, all the momentum, all the kinetic energy of the speedster’s mass and velocity were focused on Kinnison’s physical body. He felt something and tried to flinch, but couldn’t. In a brief moment of what he thought was time, he went past, not through, his clothes and his Lens; past, not through, his armor; and past, not through, the tough beryllium-alloy structure of his ship. He even went past but not through the N-dimensional interface of the hyperspatial tube.
This, although Kinnison did not know it, was the Eddorian's climactic effort. He had taken his prisoner as far as he could possibly reach; then, assembling and concentrating all available power, he had given him a catapultic shove into the absolutely unknown and utterly unknowable. The Eddorian did not know any vector of the Lensman's naked flight; he did not care where he went. He did not know and could not compute or even guess at his victim's probable destination.
This, though Kinnison was unaware, was the Eddorian's final attempt. He had pushed his prisoner as far as he could possibly go; then, gathering and focusing all available power, he had given him a powerful shove into the completely unknown and entirely unknowable. The Eddorian had no idea of the direction of the Lensman's bare flight; he didn't care where he ended up. He didn't know and couldn't calculate or even guess his victim's likely destination.
In what his spacehound's time sense told him was one second, Kinnison passed exactly two hundred million foreign spaces. He did not know how he knew the precise number, but he did. Hence, in the Patrol's measured cadence, he began to count groups of spaces of one hundred million each. After a few days, his velocity decreased to such a value that he could count groups of single millions. Then thousands—hundreds—tens—until finally he could perceive the salient features of each space before it was blotted out by the next.
In what his spacehound's time sense told him was just one second, Kinnison traveled through exactly two hundred million foreign spaces. He wasn't sure how he knew the exact number, but he just did. So, in the Patrol's steady rhythm, he started counting groups of spaces of one hundred million each. After a few days, his speed dropped to the point where he could count groups of single millions. Then thousands—hundreds—tens—until eventually, he could see the key features of each space before it was obscured by the next.
How could this be? He wondered, but not foggily; his mind was as clear and as strong as it had ever been. Spaces were coexistent, not spread out like this. In the fourth dimension they were flat together, like pages in a book, except thinner. This was all wrong. It was impossible. Since it could not happen, it was not happening. He had not been and could not be drugged. Therefore some Plooran must have him in a zone of compulsion. What a zone! What an operator the ape must be!
How could this be? He wondered, but not vaguely; his mind was as clear and strong as ever. Spaces existed together, not spread out like this. In the fourth dimension, they were flat next to each other, like pages in a book, only thinner. This was all wrong. It was impossible. Since it couldn't happen, it wasn't happening. He hadn't been and couldn't be drugged. So some Plooran must have him in a zone of compulsion. What a zone! What an operator the ape must be!
It was, however, real—all of it. What Kinnison did not know, then or ever, was that he was actually outside the boundaries of space; actually beyond the confines of time. He was going past, not through, those spaces and those times.
It was, however, real—all of it. What Kinnison didn't know, at that moment or ever, was that he was actually outside the limits of space; actually beyond the boundaries of time. He was going beyond, not through, those spaces and those times.
He was now in each space long enough to study it in some detail. He was an immense distance above this one; at such a distance that he could perceive many globular super-universes; each of which in turn was composed of billions of lenticular galaxies.
He was now in each space long enough to examine it in detail. He was an enormous distance above this one; so far that he could see many spherical super-universes, each made up of billions of lens-shaped galaxies.
Through it. Closer now. Galaxies only; the familiar random masses whose apparent lack of symmetrical grouping is due to the limitations of Civilization's observers. He was still going too fast to stop.
Through it. Closer now. Galaxies only; the familiar random clusters whose apparent lack of symmetrical arrangement is due to the limitations of Civilization's observers. He was still moving too quickly to stop.
In the next space Kinnison found himself within the limits of a solar system and tried with all the force of his mind to get in touch with some intelligent entity upon one—any one—of its planets. Before he could succeed, the system vanished and he was dropping, from a height of a few thousand kilometers, toward the surface of a warm and verdant world, so much like Tellus that he thought for an instant that he must have circumnavigated total space. The aspect, the ice-caps, the cloud-effects, were identical. The oceans, however, while similar, were different; as were the continents. The mountains were larger and rougher and harder.
In the next moment, Kinnison found himself within a solar system and concentrated hard to connect with some intelligent being on one—any—of its planets. Before he could succeed, the system disappeared and he was falling from a few thousand kilometers up toward the surface of a warm, lush world, so much like Earth that he briefly thought he had traveled through all of space. The appearance, the ice caps, the cloud formations were the same. However, while the oceans were similar, they were also different; the continents were too. The mountains were larger, rougher, and tougher.
He was falling much too fast. A free fall from infinity wouldn't give him this much speed!
He was dropping way too quickly. A free fall from infinity wouldn't give him this much speed!
This whole affair was, as he had decided once before, absolutely impossible. It was simply preposterous to believe that a naked man, especially one without blood circulation or breath, could still be alive after spending as many weeks in open space as he had just spent. He knew that he was alive. Therefore none of this was happening; even though, as surely as he knew that he was alive, he knew that he was falling.
This whole situation was, as he had concluded before, completely impossible. It was utterly ridiculous to think that a naked man, especially one without blood circulation or breath, could still be alive after spending as many weeks in open space as he just had. He knew he was alive. So none of this was real; even though, just as he knew he was alive, he also knew he was falling.
"Jet back, Lensman!" he thought viciously to himself; tried to shout it aloud.
"Get lost, Lensman!" he thought angrily to himself; he tried to shout it out loud.
For this could be deadly stuff, if he let himself believe it. If he believed that he was falling from any such height, he would die in the instant of landing. He would not actually crash; his body would not move from wherever it was that it was. Nevertheless the shock of that wholly imaginary crash would kill him just as dead and just as instantaneously as though all his flesh had been actually smashed into a crimson smear upon one of the neighboring mountain's huge, flat rocks.
For this could be dangerous if he let himself think it was real. If he believed he was falling from that height, he would die the moment he landed. He wouldn't actually hit the ground; his body would stay exactly where it was. But the shock of that completely imagined fall would kill him just as surely and just as quickly as if all his flesh had been smashed into a red smear on one of the nearby mountain’s large, flat rocks.
"Pretty close, my bright young Plooran friend, but you didn't quite ring the bell," he thought savagely, trying with all the power of his mind to break through the zone of compulsion. "I admit that you're good, but I'm telling you that, if you want to kill me, you'll have to do it physically, and I don't believe that you carry jets enough to swing the job. You might as well cut your zone, because this kind of stuff has been pulled on me by experts, and it hasn't worked yet."
"Pretty close, my clever young Plooran friend, but you didn't quite hit the mark," he thought fiercely, trying with all his mental strength to break through the zone of control. "I admit that you're skilled, but I’m telling you, if you want to kill me, you'll have to do it physically, and I don't think you have enough power to get the job done. You might as well give up, because this kind of thing has been tried on me by experts, and it hasn't worked yet."
He was apparently falling, feet downward, toward an open, grassy mountain meadow, surrounded by forests, through which meandered a small stream. He was so close now that he could perceive the individual blades of grass in the meadow and the small fishes in the stream, and he was still apparently at terminal velocity.
He was obviously falling, feet first, toward an open, grassy mountain meadow, surrounded by forests where a small stream flowed. He was so close now that he could see the individual blades of grass in the meadow and the small fish in the stream, and he was still seemingly at terminal velocity.
Without his years of spacehound's training in inertialess maneuvering, he might have died even before he landed, but speed as speed did not affect him at all. He was used to instantaneous stops from light-speeds. The only thing that worried him was the matter of inertia. Was he inert or free?
Without his years of training as a spacehound in inertialess maneuvering, he might have died even before landing, but speed didn't affect him at all. He was used to stopping instantly from light speeds. The only thing that concerned him was the issue of inertia. Was he inert or free?
He declared to himself that he was free. Or, rather, that he had been, was, and would continue to be motionless. It was physically, mathematically, intrinsically impossible that any of this stuff had actually occurred. It was all compulsion, pure and simple, and he—Kimball Kinnison, Gray Lensman—would not let it get him down. He clenched his mental teeth upon that belief and held it doggedly. One bare foot struck the tip of a blade of grass and his entire body came to a shockless halt. He grinned in relief—this was what he had wanted, but had not quite dared wholly to expect. There followed immediately, however, other events which he had not expected at all.
He told himself that he was free. Or, more accurately, that he had been, was, and would remain motionless. It was physically, mathematically, and fundamentally impossible for any of this to have actually happened. Everything was just compulsion, plain and simple, and he—Kimball Kinnison, Gray Lensman—refused to let it affect him. He gritted his mental teeth on that belief and held it tightly. One bare foot touched the tip of a blade of grass, and his entire body came to a smooth stop. He smiled in relief—this was what he had wanted, but hadn’t truly dared to expect. However, immediately after, other events unfolded that he hadn’t anticipated at all.
His halt was less than momentary; in the instant of its accomplishment he began to fall normally the remaining eight or ten inches to the ground. Automatically he sprung his space-trained knees, to take the otherwise disconcerting jar; automatically his left hand snapped up to the place where his controls should have been. Legs and arms worked!
His stop was barely a second; as soon as he completed it, he started to drop the last eight or ten inches to the ground. Instinctively, he bent his space-trained knees to absorb the potentially jarring impact; instinctively, his left hand shot up to where his controls should have been. Legs and arms worked!
He could see with his eyes. He could feel with his skin. He was drawing a breath, the first time he had breathed since leaving normal space. Nor was it an unduly deep breath—he felt no lack of oxygen. His heart was beating as normally as though it had never missed a beat. He was not unusually hungry or thirsty. But all that stuff could wait—where was that Plooran?
He could see with his eyes. He could feel with his skin. He was taking a breath, the first time he had breathed since leaving normal space. It wasn’t an overly deep breath—he felt no lack of oxygen. His heart was beating as normally as if it had never skipped a beat. He wasn’t unusually hungry or thirsty. But all that could wait—where was that Plooran?
Kinnison had landed in complete readiness for strife. There were no rocks or clubs handy, but he had his fists, feet, and teeth; and they would do until he could find or make something better. But there was nothing to fight. Drive his sense of perception as he would, he could find nothing larger or more intelligent than a deer.
Kinnison was fully prepared for a fight. There were no rocks or clubs available, but he had his fists, feet, and teeth, and those would suffice until he could find or create something better. However, there was nothing to fight. No matter how hard he strained his senses, he couldn’t find anything larger or smarter than a deer.
The farther this thing went along the less sense it made. A compulsion, to be any good at all, ought to be logical and coherent. It should fit into every corner and cranny of the subject's experience and knowledge. This one did not fit anything or anywhere. It didn't even come close. Yet, technically, it was a marvelous job. He couldn't detect a trace of it. This grass looked and felt real. The pebbles hurt his tender feet so much that he had to wince as he walked gingerly to the water's edge. He drank deeply. The water, real or not, was cold, clear, and eminently satisfying.
The further this thing went on, the less sense it made. A drive to be any good at all should be logical and coherent. It should fit into every nook and cranny of the person's experience and knowledge. This one didn’t fit anything or anywhere. It didn’t even come close. Still, technically, it was an impressive job. He couldn’t find a hint of it. This grass looked and felt real. The pebbles hurt his sensitive feet so much that he had to wince as he carefully walked to the water's edge. He drank deeply. The water, real or not, was cold, clear, and incredibly satisfying.
"Listen, you misguided what-is-it," he thought probingly, "you might as well open up now as later whatever you've got in mind. If this performance is supposed to be nonfiction, it's a flat bust. If it is supposed to be science-fiction, it isn't much better. If it's a space-opera, even, you're violating all the fundamentals. I've written better stuff myself—Qadgop and Cynthia were a lot more convincing." He waited a moment, then went on:
"Listen, you confused whatever-you-are," he thought critically, "you might as well spill the beans now rather than later about whatever you're planning. If this show is meant to be real, it’s a complete failure. If it’s supposed to be sci-fi, it’s not any better. Even if it’s a space opera, you’re breaking all the basic rules. I've written better stuff myself—Qadgop and Cynthia were way more believable." He paused for a moment, then continued:
"Whoever heard of the intrepid hero of a space-opera as big as this one started out to be getting stranded on a completely Earth-like planet and then having nothing happen? No action at all? How about a couple of indescribable monsters of superhuman strength and agility, for me to tear apart with my steel-thewed fingers?"
"Whoever heard of the bold hero in a space opera this big starting out by getting stuck on a planet just like Earth and then nothing happening? No action at all? How about a few indescribable monsters with superhuman strength and agility for me to rip apart with my powerful hands?"
He glanced around expectantly. No monster appeared.
He looked around eagerly. No monster showed up.
"Well, then, how about a damsel in distress for me to rescue from a fate worse than death? Better make it two of them—safety in numbers, you know—a blonde and a brunette. No redheads. I'll play along with you part way on that oldie—up to the point of falling for either of them."
"Well, how about a damsel in distress for me to save from a fate worse than death? Better make it two—safety in numbers, right? A blonde and a brunette. No redheads. I'll go along with you to a point on that classic—up until the moment I start falling for either of them."
He waited again.
He waited once more.
"QX, sport, no woman. Suits me perfectly. But I hope you haven't forgotten about the tasty viands. I can eat fish if I have to, but if you want to keep your hero happy, let's see you lay down here, on a platter, a one-kilogram steak, three centimeters thick, medium rare, fried in Tellurian butter and smothered in Venusian superla mushrooms."
"QX, sports, no woman. That suits me just fine. But I hope you haven't forgotten about the delicious food. I can eat fish if I need to, but if you want to keep your hero happy, let’s see you serve up a one-kilogram steak, three centimeters thick, medium rare, cooked in Tellurian butter and topped with Venusian superlative mushrooms."
No steak appeared, and the Gray Lensman recalled and studied intensively every detail of what had apparently happened. It still could not have occurred. He could not have imagined it. It could not have been compulsion or hypnosis. None of it made any kind of sense.
No steak showed up, and the Gray Lensman remembered and analyzed every detail of what seemed to have happened. It still shouldn’t have happened. He couldn’t have imagined it. It couldn’t have been compulsion or hypnosis. None of it made any sense.
As a matter of plain fact, however, Kinnison's first and most positive conclusion was wrong. His memories were factual records of actual events and things. He would eat well during his stay upon that nameless planet, but he would have to procure his own food. Nothing would attack him, or even annoy him. For the Eddorian's binding—this is perhaps as good a word for it as any, since "geas" implies a curse—was such that the Gray Lensman could return to space and time only under such conditions and to such an environment as would not do him any iota of physical harm. He must continue alive and in good health for at least fifty more of his years.
As a matter of fact, though, Kinnison's first and strongest conclusion was wrong. His memories were accurate records of real events and things. He would eat well during his time on that unnamed planet, but he would need to find his own food. Nothing would attack him or even bother him. The Eddorian's binding—which is probably the best term for it since "geas" suggests a curse—was such that the Gray Lensman could return to space and time only under conditions and in environments that wouldn’t harm him in any way. He had to stay alive and healthy for at least fifty more years.
And Clarrissa Kinnison, tense and strained, waited in her room for the instant of her husband's death. They two were one, with a oneness no other man and woman had ever known. If one died, from any cause whatever, the other would feel it.
And Clarrissa Kinnison, tense and anxious, waited in her room for the moment of her husband's death. They were united in a way that no other man and woman had ever experienced. If one of them died, for any reason at all, the other would sense it.
She waited. Five minutes—ten—fifteen—half an hour—an hour. She began to relax. Her fists unclenched, her shallow breathing grew deeper.
She waited. Five minutes—ten—fifteen—half an hour—an hour. She started to relax. Her fists unclenched, and her shallow breathing became deeper.
Two hours. Kim was still alive! A wave of happy, buoyant relief swept through her; her eyes flashed and sparkled. If they hadn't been able to kill him in two hours, they never could. Her Kim had plenty of jets.
Two hours. Kim was still alive! A wave of joyful, uplifting relief washed over her; her eyes sparkled and shone. If they hadn’t managed to kill him in two hours, they never would. Her Kim had plenty of fight left.
Even the top minds of Boskonia could not kill her Kim!
Even the smartest people in Boskonia couldn't stop her Kim!
XXVIII.
XXVIII.
The Arisians and the Children of the Lens had known that Eddore must be attacked as soon as possible after the fall of Ploor. They were fairly certain that the interspatial use of planets as projectiles was new; but they were completely certain that the Eddorians would be able to deduce in a short time the principles and the concepts, the fundamental equations, and the essential operators involved in the process. They would find nth space or one like it in one day; certainly not more than two. Their slaves would duplicate the weapon in approximately three weeks. Shortly thereafter both Ultra Prime and Prime Base, both Klovia and Tellus, would be blown out of the ether. So would Arisia—perhaps Arisia would go first. The Eddorians would probably not be able to aim such planets as accurately as the Arisians had, but they would keep on trying and they would learn fast.
The Arisians and the Children of the Lens knew they had to attack Eddore as soon as possible after Ploor fell. They were pretty sure that using planets as weapons in interspatial warfare was a new idea, but they knew for sure that the Eddorians would quickly figure out the principles, concepts, fundamental equations, and essential operations involved in this process. They would find nth space or something like it in a day, definitely not more than two. Their slaves would replicate the weapon in about three weeks. Soon after, both Ultra Prime and Prime Base, as well as Klovia and Tellus, would be taken out. So would Arisia—maybe Arisia would go first. The Eddorians might not be able to aim the planets as precisely as the Arisians had, but they would keep trying, and they would learn quickly.
This weapon was the sheer ultimate in destructiveness. No defense against it was possible. There was no theory which applied to it or which could be stretched to cover it. Even the Arisian Masters of Mathematics had not as yet been able to invent symbologies and techniques to handle the quantities and magnitudes involved when those interloping masses of foreign matter struck normal space.
This weapon was the ultimate in destruction. There was no defense against it. No theory could apply to it or be stretched to cover it. Even the Arisian Masters of Mathematics had not yet been able to create symbols and techniques to manage the amounts and sizes involved when those invading masses of foreign matter hit normal space.
Thus Kit did not have to follow up his announced intention of making the Arisians hurry up. They did not hurry, of course, but they did not lose or waste a minute. Each Arisian, from the youngest guardian up to the oldest philosopher, tuned a part of his mind to Mentor, another part to some one of the millions of Lensmen upon his list, and flashed a message.
Thus, Kit didn’t have to follow through on his plan to make the Arisians speed up. They didn’t rush, of course, but they also didn’t waste a second. Each Arisian, from the youngest guardian to the oldest philosopher, focused part of their mind on Mentor, another part on one of the millions of Lensmen on their list, and sent a message.
"Lensman, attend—keep your mind sensitized to this, the pattern of Mentor of Arisia, who will speak to you as soon as all have been alerted."
"Lensman, listen—stay tuned to this, the voice of Mentor of Arisia, who will talk to you as soon as everyone is notified."
That message went throughout the First Galaxy, throughout intergalactic space, and throughout what part of the Second Galaxy had felt the touch of Civilization. It went to Alsakan and Vandemar and Klovia, to Thrale and Tellus and Rigel IV, to Mars and Velantia and Palain VII, to Medon and Venus and Centralia. It went to flitters, battleships, and loose planets. It went to asteroids and moonlets, to planets large and small. It went to newly graduated Lensmen and to Lensmen long since retired; to Lensmen at work and at play. It went to every living wearer of the First-Stage Lens of the Galactic Patrol.
That message spread across the First Galaxy, through intergalactic space, and to every part of the Second Galaxy that had experienced Civilization. It reached Alsakan and Vandemar and Klovia, Thrale and Tellus and Rigel IV, Mars and Velantia and Palain VII, Medon and Venus and Centralia. It was sent to flitters, battleships, and uncharted planets. It traveled to asteroids and moons, to both large and small planets. It reached newly graduated Lensmen and those who had long since retired; to Lensmen both working and enjoying leisure time. It went to every living wearer of the First-Stage Lens of the Galactic Patrol.
Wherever the message went, turmoil followed. Lensmen everywhere flashed questions at all the other Lensmen they knew or had ever met.
Wherever the message spread, chaos ensued. Lensmen everywhere shot questions at all the other Lensmen they knew or had ever encountered.
"What do you make of it, Fred?"
"What do you think of it, Fred?"
"Did you get the same thing I did?"
"Did you get what I got?"
"Mentor! Grinning Noshabkeming, what's up?"
"Hey, Mentor! Grinning Noshabkeming, what's up?"
"Must be big for Mentor to be handling it."
"Must be a big deal for Mentor to be dealing with it."
"Big! It's immense! Whoever heard of Arisia stepping in before?"
"Big! It's huge! Who ever heard of Arisia stepping in before?"
"Big! Colossal! Mentor never talked to anybody except Kinnison before, did he?"
"Big! Huge! Mentor never spoke to anyone except Kinnison before, right?"
Millions of Lensed questions flooded every base and every office of the Patrol. Nobody, not even the vice co-ordinator, knew a thing.
Millions of Lensed questions flooded every base and every office of the Patrol. Nobody, not even the vice coordinator, knew anything.
"You might as well stop sending in questions as to what this is all about, because none of us knows any more about it than you do," Maitland finally sent out a general notice. "Apparently everybody with a Lens is getting the same message, no more and no less. All I can say is that it must be a Class A Prime emergency, and everyone who is not actually tied up in a life-and-death matter will please drop everything and stand by."
"You might as well stop sending in questions about what this is all about, because none of us knows any more than you do," Maitland finally sent out a general notice. "Apparently, everyone with a Lens is getting the same message—nothing more, nothing less. All I can say is that it must be a Class A Prime emergency, and everyone who isn’t actually involved in a life-and-death situation should drop everything and stand by."
Mentor wanted, and had to have, high tension. He got it. Tension mounted higher and higher as eventless hours passed and as, for the first time in history, Patrol business slowed down almost to a stop.
Mentor wanted, and needed, high tension. He got it. Tension climbed higher and higher as uneventful hours passed and, for the first time ever, Patrol business slowed down almost to a halt.
And in a small cruiser, manned by four red-headed girls and one red-headed youth, tension was also building up. The problem of the mechanical screens had long since been solved. Atomic powered counter-generators were in place, ready at the touch of a button to neutralize the mechanically-generated screens of the enemy and thus to make the engagement a mind-to-mind combat. They were as close to Eddore's star-cluster as they could be without giving alarm. They had had nothing to do for hours except wait. They were probably keyed up higher than any other five Lensmen in all of space.
And in a small cruiser, crewed by four red-haired girls and one red-haired guy, the tension was building up as well. The issue with the mechanical screens had long been resolved. Atomic-powered counter-generators were ready, just a button away from neutralizing the enemy's mechanical screens and turning the fight into a battle of minds. They were as close to Eddore's star cluster as they could get without raising any alarms. They had been waiting for hours with nothing to do. They were likely more anxious than any other five Lensmen in all of space.

Kit, son of his father, was pacing the floor, chain-smoking. Constance was alternately getting up and sitting down—up—down—up. She, too, was smoking; or, rather, she was lighting cigarettes and throwing them away. Kathryn was sitting, stiffly still, manufacturing Lenses which, starting at her wrists, raced up both bare arms to her shoulders and disappeared. Karen was meticulously sticking holes in a piece of blank paper with a pin, making an intricate and meaningless design. Only Camilla made any pretense of calmness, and the others knew that she was bluffing. She was pretending to read a novel; but instead of absorbing its full content at the rate of one glance per page, she had read half of it word by word and still had no idea of what the story was about.
Kit, his father's son, was pacing the floor, chain-smoking. Constance was getting up and sitting down repeatedly—up—down—up. She was also smoking; or rather, she was lighting cigarettes and tossing them aside. Kathryn sat rigidly, creating patterns with Lenses that started at her wrists, raced up her bare arms to her shoulders, and then vanished. Karen was carefully poking holes in a blank piece of paper with a pin, making a complicated and pointless design. Only Camilla pretended to be calm, and the others knew she was faking it. She was pretending to read a novel; but instead of taking in the whole story at a glance per page, she had read half of it word by word and still had no clue what the plot was about.
"Are you ready, Children?" Mentor's thought came in at last.
"Are you ready, kids?" Mentor's thought finally came through.
"Ready!" Without knowing how they got there, the Five found themselves standing in the middle of the room, packed tight.
"Ready!" Without knowing how they got there, the Five found themselves standing in the middle of the room, packed tight.
"Oh Kit, I'm shaking like a fool!" Constance wailed. "I just know I'm going to louse up this whole war!"
"Oh Kit, I'm shaking like an idiot!" Constance cried. "I just know I'm going to mess up this whole war!"
"QX, baby, we're all in the same fix. Can't you hear my teeth chatter? Doesn't mean a thing. Good teams—champions—all feel the same way before a big game starts. And this is the capital IT.
"QX, baby, we're all in the same situation. Can't you hear my teeth chattering? Doesn't mean a thing. Strong teams—champions—all feel this way before a big game kicks off. And this is the real deal."
"Steady down, kids. We'll be QX as soon as the whistle blows—I hope."
"Alright, kids. We'll be good to go as soon as the whistle blows—I hope."
"P-s-s-t!" Kathryn hissed. "Listen!"
"Psst!" Kathryn hissed. "Listen!"
"Lensmen of the Galactic Patrol!" Mentor's resonant pseudovoice filled all space. "I, Mentor of Arisia, am calling upon you because of a crisis in which no lesser force can be of use. You have been informed upon the matter of Ploor. It is true that Ploor has been destroyed; that the Ploorans, physically, are no more. You of the Lens, however, already know dimly that the physical is not the all. Know now that there is a residuum of nonmaterial malignancy against which all the physical weapons of all the Universe would be completely impotent. That evil effluvium, intrinsically vicious, is implacably opposed to every basic concept and idea of your Patrol. It has been on the move ever since the destruction of the planet Ploor. Unaided, we of Arisia are not strong enough to handle it, but the massed and directed force of your collective mind will be able to destroy it completely. If you wish me to do so, I will supervise the work of so directing your mental force as to encompass the complete destruction of this menace, which I tell you most solemnly is the last weapon of power with which Boskonia will be able to threaten Civilization. Lensmen of the Galactic Patrol, met as one for the first time in Civilization's long history, what is your wish?"
"Lensmen of the Galactic Patrol!" Mentor's deep voice echoed throughout space. "I, Mentor of Arisia, am calling on you because of a crisis that no lesser force can handle. You’ve been briefed on the situation with Ploor. It’s true that Ploor has been destroyed; the Ploorans are no more, physically speaking. However, you of the Lens already sense that the physical realm isn’t everything. Know now that there is a remnant of nonmaterial evil against which all the physical weapons in the Universe would be utterly helpless. This malevolent force, inherently wicked, directly opposes every fundamental concept and principle of your Patrol. It has been in motion ever since Ploor was destroyed. Alone, we of Arisia lack the strength to confront it, but the combined and focused force of your collective minds will be able to eliminate it entirely. If you want me to, I will guide the effort to channel your mental power to achieve the complete destruction of this threat, which I solemnly assure you is the last weapon of power Boskonia will have to threaten Civilization. Lensmen of the Galactic Patrol, united for the first time in Civilization's long history, what is your decision?"
A tremendous wave of thought, expressed in millions of variant phraseologies, made the wish of the Lensmen very clear indeed. They did not know how such a thing could be done, but they were supremely eager to have Mentor of Arisia lead them against the Boskonians, whoever and wherever they might be.
A huge wave of sentiment, expressed in countless different ways, made the Lensmen's desire very clear. They had no idea how it could be accomplished, but they were extremely eager for Mentor of Arisia to lead them against the Boskonians, no matter who or where they might be.
"Your verdict is unanimous, as I had hoped and believed that it would be. It is well. The part of each of you will be simple, but not easy. You will all of you, individually, think of two things, and of only two. First, of your love for and your pride in and your loyalty to your Patrol. Second, of the clear fact that Boskonia must not and shall not triumph over Civilization. Think these thoughts, each of you with all the strength that in him lies.
"Your decision is unanimous, just as I hoped and believed it would be. That's great. Each of you has a straightforward yet challenging role. You will each think of two things, and only two. First, your love for, pride in, and loyalty to your Patrol. Second, the undeniable fact that Boskonia must not and cannot win over Civilization. Focus on these thoughts, each of you, with all the strength you have."
"You need not consciously direct those thoughts. Being attuned to my pattern, the force will flow at my direction. As it passes from you, you will replenish it, each according to his strength. You will find it the hardest labor you have ever performed, but it will be of permanent harm to none and it will not be of long duration. One hour will suffice. Are you ready?"
"You don’t have to consciously control those thoughts. By being in sync with my pattern, the energy will flow under my guidance. As it moves from you, you will replenish it, each as per your ability. You will find it to be the toughest work you’ve ever done, but it will not harm anyone permanently, and it won’t take long. One hour will be enough. Are you ready?"
"WE ARE READY!" The crescendo roar of thought must have bulged the Galaxy to its poles.
"WE ARE READY!" The loud roar of thought must have stretched the Galaxy to its limits.
"Children—strike!"
"Kids—strike!"
The Unit struck. The outermost Eddorian screen went down. It struck again, almost instantly. Down went the second. The third. The fourth.
The Unit attacked. The outermost Eddorian shield collapsed. It hit again, almost immediately. The second one went down. Then the third. Then the fourth.
It was that flawless Unit, not Camilla, who detected and analyzed and precisely located the Eddorian guardsman handling each of those far-flung screens. It was the Unit, not Kathryn and Kit, who drilled the pilot hole through each Eddorian's hard-held block and enlarged it into a working orifice. It was the Unit, not Karen, whose impenetrable shield held stubbornly every circular mil of advantage gained in making such ingress. It was the Unit, not Constance, who assembled and drove home the blasts of mental force in which the Eddorians died. No time whatever was lost in consultation or decision. Action was not only instantaneous, but simultaneous with perception. The Children of the Lens were not now five, but one. The UNIT.
It was that perfect Unit, not Camilla, who detected, analyzed, and precisely located the Eddorian guardsman handling each of those distant screens. It was the Unit, not Kathryn and Kit, who drilled the pilot hole through each Eddorian's tightly held block and expanded it into a functioning opening. It was the Unit, not Karen, whose impenetrable shield retained every bit of advantage gained in making such an entry. It was the Unit, not Constance, who gathered and unleashed the blasts of mental force that led to the Eddorians' deaths. No time was wasted in consultation or decision-making. Action was not only immediate but also simultaneous with perception. The Children of the Lens were not five anymore, but one. The UNIT.
"Come in, Mentor!" Kit snapped then. "All you Arisians and all the Lensmen. Nothing specialized—just a general slam at the whole screen. This fifth screen is the works—they've got twenty men on it instead of one, and they're top-notchers. Best strategy now is for us five to lay off for a second or two and show 'em what we've got in the line of defense, while the rest of you fellows give 'em hell!"
"Come in, Mentor!" Kit said sharply. "All you Arisians and all the Lensmen. No specifics—just a general shot at the whole screen. This fifth screen is the real deal—they have twenty men on it instead of one, and they're the best. The best strategy now is for us five to hold back for a moment and show them what we've got in defense, while the rest of you guys give them everything you've got!"
Arisia and the massed Lensmen struck, a tidal wave of such tremendous weight and power that under its impact the fifth screen sagged flat against the planet's surface. Any one Lensman's power was small, of course, in comparison with that of any Eddorian, but every First-Stage Lensman of the Galactic Patrol was giving, each according to his strength, and the output of one Lensman, multiplied by the countless millions which was the number of Lensmen then at work, made itself tellingly felt.
Arisia and the gathered Lensmen attacked, a massive force so heavy and powerful that it pushed the fifth screen flat against the planet's surface. Although one Lensman’s power was minor compared to an Eddorian’s, every First-Stage Lensman of the Galactic Patrol was contributing, each according to his ability, and the impact of one Lensman, multiplied by the countless millions of Lensmen working together, was very significant.
Countless? Yes. No one not of Arisia ever knew how many minds contributed to that stupendous flood of force. Bear in mind that in the First Galaxy alone there are over two thousand million suns: that each sun has, on the average, something over one and thirty-seven hundredths planets inhabited by intelligent life; that about one-half of these planets adhere to Civilization; and that Tellus, an average planet, graduates approximately one hundred Lensmen every year.
Countless? Absolutely. No one outside of Arisia ever knew how many minds added to that incredible surge of power. Keep in mind that in the First Galaxy alone there are over two billion suns: that each sun has, on average, about 1.37 planets inhabited by intelligent life; that roughly half of these planets belong to Civilization; and that Earth, a typical planet, produces around one hundred Lensmen each year.
"So far, Kit, so good," Constance panted. Although she was no longer trembling, she was still highly excited. "But I don't know how many more shots like that I've ... we've ... got left in the locker."
"So far, so good, Kit," Constance panted. Although she was no longer trembling, she was still really excited. "But I don't know how many more shots like that I've ... we've ... got left in the locker."
"You're doing fine, Connie," Camilla soothed.
"You're doing great, Connie," Camilla comforted.
"Sure you are, baby. You've got plenty of jets," Kit agreed. Except in moments of supreme stress these personal, individual exchanges of by-thoughts did not interfere with the smooth functioning of the Unit. "Fine work, all of you, kids. I knew that we'd get over the shakes as soon as—"
"Of course you are, babe. You've got tons of energy," Kit agreed. Except in times of extreme stress, these personal, individual exchanges of side thoughts didn't disrupt the smooth operation of the Unit. "Great job, everyone. I knew we'd get past the nerves as soon as—"
"Watch it!" Camilla snapped. "Here comes the shock wave. Brace yourself, Kay. Hold us together, Kit!"
"Watch out!" Camilla snapped. "Here comes the shock wave. Get ready, Kay. Hold us together, Kit!"
The wave came. Everything that the Eddorians could send. The Unit's barrier did not waver. After a full second of it—a time comparable to days of continuous atomic bombing in ordinary warfare—Karen, who had been standing stiff and still, began to relax.
The wave hit. Everything the Eddorians could throw at them. The Unit's barrier held firm. After a whole second of it—a duration similar to days of nonstop atomic bombing in regular warfare—Karen, who had been standing rigid and motionless, started to loosen up.
"This is too, too easy," she declared. "Who is helping me? I can't feel anything, but I simply know that I haven't got this much stuff. You, Cam—or is it all of you?" Not one of the Five was as yet thoroughly familiar with the operating characteristics of the Unit.
"This is so, so easy," she said. "Who’s helping me? I can’t feel anything, but I just know I don’t have this much stuff. You, Cam—or is it all of you?" Not one of the Five was completely familiar with how the Unit operated yet.
"All of us, more or less, but mostly Kit," Camilla decided after a moment's thought. "He's got the weight of an inert planet."
"All of us, to some extent, but mostly Kit," Camilla concluded after thinking for a moment. "He's carrying the weight of a lifeless planet."
"Not me," Kit denied, vigorously. "Must be you other kids. Feels to me like Kat, mostly. All I'm doing is just sort of leaning up against you a little—just in case. I haven't done a thing so far."
"Not me," Kit said firmly. "It must be you other kids. It seems to me like it's mostly Kat. All I'm doing is just leaning against you a bit—just in case. I haven't done anything so far."
"Oh, no? Sure not!" Kathryn giggled, an infectious chuckle inherited or copied directly from her mother. "We know it, and that you're going to keep on loafing all the rest of the day. You wouldn't think of doing anything, even if you could. Just the same, we're all mighty glad that our big brother is here!"
"Oh, no? Really not!" Kathryn laughed, a contagious giggle she got from her mom. "We know it, and that you’re just going to lounge around for the rest of the day. You wouldn't even think about doing anything, even if you could. Still, we're all super happy our big brother is here!"
"QX, kids, seal the chatter. We've had time to learn that they can't crack us—so have they, by the way—so let's get to work."
"Alright, kids, quiet down. We've figured out that they can't break us— and they've realized it too—so let’s get to work."
Since the Unit was now under continuous attack, its technique would have to be entirely different from that used previously. Its barrier must vanish for an infinitesimal period of time, during which it must simultaneously detect and blast. Or, rather, the blast would have to be directed in mid-flight, while the Unit's own block was open. Nor could that block be open for more than the barest possible instant before or after the passage of the bolt. It is true that the attack of the Eddorians compared with that of the Unit very much as the steady pressure of burning propellant powder compares with the disruptive force of detonating duodec; even so it would have wrought much damage to the minds of the Five had any of it been allowed to reach them.
Since the Unit was now under constant attack, its strategy needed to change completely. Its barrier had to disappear for a tiny fraction of time, during which it needed to detect and attack simultaneously. Or, more accurately, the attack would have to be aimed while the Unit's own protection was down. Additionally, that protection couldn't be down for more than the smallest moment before or after the bolt passed through. It’s true that the Eddorians' attack was much more relentless compared to the Unit, just like the steady force of burning propellant powder is compared to the explosive impact of detonating duodec; still, it would have caused significant damage to the minds of the Five if any of it had reached them.
Also, like parachute-jumping, this technique could not be practiced. Since the timing had to be so nearly absolute, the first two shots missed their targets completely; but the Unit learned fast. Eddorian after Eddorian died.
Also, like parachute jumping, this technique couldn't be practiced. Since the timing had to be so precise, the first two shots completely missed their targets; but the Unit learned quickly. Eddorian after Eddorian died.
"Help, All-Highest, help!" a high Eddorian appealed, finally.
"Help, All-Highest, help!" a high Eddorian called out at last.
"What is it?" His Ultimate Supremacy, knowing that only utter desperation could be back of such intrusion, wasted no time.
"What is it?" His Ultimate Supremacy, aware that only complete desperation could drive such an intrusion, wasted no time.
"It is this new Arisian entity—"
"It is this new Arisian entity—"
"It is not an entity, fool, but a fusion," came curt reprimand. "We decided that point long ago."
"It’s not an entity, idiot, but a fusion," came the blunt reply. "We decided that long ago."
"An entity, I say!" In his urgency the operator committed the unpardonable by omitting the titles of address. "No possible fusion can attain such perfection of timing, of synchronization. Our best fusions have attempted to match it, and have failed. Its screens are impenetrable. Its thrusts cannot be blocked. My message is this: Solve for us, and quickly, the problem of this entity. If you do not or cannot do so, we perish all of us, even to you of the Innermost Circle."
"An entity, I tell you!" In his urgency, the operator made the mistake of skipping the proper titles of address. "No fusion can reach such perfect timing and synchronization. Our best attempts to replicate it have fallen short. Its defenses are impenetrable. Its strikes can't be blocked. My message is clear: Solve the issue of this entity for us, and do it fast. If you can’t or don’t, we’re all doomed, even you from the Innermost Circle."
"Think you so?" The thought was a sneer. "If your fusions cannot match those of the Arisians you should die, and the loss will be small."
"Do you really think that?" The thought was a sneer. "If your fusions can't match those of the Arisians, you should just die, and it won't matter much."
The fifth screen went down. For the first time in untold ages the planet of Eddore lay bare to the Arisian mind. There were inner defenses, of course, but Kit knew every one; their strengths and their weaknesses. He had long since spread in Mentor's mind an exact and completely detailed chart; they had long since drawn up a completely detailed plan of campaign. Nevertheless, Kit could not keep from advising Mentor:
The fifth screen shut down. For the first time in countless ages, the planet Eddore was exposed to the Arisian mind. There were inner defenses, of course, but Kit knew them all—both their strengths and weaknesses. He had long ago created an exact and fully detailed map in Mentor's mind; they had also thoroughly prepared a complete campaign plan. Still, Kit couldn't help but advise Mentor:
"Pick off any who may try to get away. Start on Area B and work up. Be sure, though, to lay off of Area K or you'll get your beard singed off."
"Take out anyone who might try to escape. Begin in Area B and move up from there. Just make sure to avoid Area K or you'll get burned."
"The plan is being followed," Mentor assured him. "Children, you have done very well indeed. Rest now, and recuperate your powers against that which is yet to come."
"The plan is in motion," Mentor assured him. "Kids, you’ve done really well. Now, take a break and recharge your energy for what’s still ahead."
"QX. Unlace yourselves, kids. Loosen up. Unlax. I'll break out a few beakers of fayalin, and all of us—you especially, Con—had better eat ten or fifteen of these candy bars."
"QX. Unlace yourselves, kids. Relax. Chill out. I’ll pull out a few beakers of fayalin, and all of us—you especially, Con—had better eat ten or fifteen of these candy bars."
"Eat! Why, I couldn't—" Kit insisted, and Constance took an experimental bite. "But say, I am hungry, at that!"
"Eat! I just can't—" Kit insisted, and Constance took an experimental bite. "But you know what? I am hungry after all!"
"Of course you are. We've been putting out some stuff, and there's more and worse coming. Now rest, all of you."
"Of course you are. We've released some things, and there’s more— and it’s going to get worse. Now, everyone rest."
They rested. Somewhat to their surprise, they were now seasoned enough campaigners so that they could rest; even Constance. But the respite was short. Area K, the headquarters and the citadel of His Ultimate Supremacy and the Innermost Circle of the Boskonian Empire, contained all that remained of Eddorian life.
They took a break. To their surprise, they had become experienced enough as campaigners to actually rest; even Constance. But the break didn’t last long. Area K, the headquarters and fortress of His Ultimate Supremacy and the Inner Circle of the Boskonian Empire, held everything that was left of Eddorian life.
"No tight linkage yet, kids," Kit the Organizer went smoothly to work. "Individual effort—a flash of fusion, perhaps, now and then, if any of us call for it, but no Unit until I give the word. Then give it everything you've got. Cam, analyze that screen and set us up a pattern for it—you'll find that it'll take some doing. See whether it's absolutely homogenous—hunt for weak spots, if any. Con, narrow down to the sharpest needle you can possibly make and start pecking. Not too hard—don't tire yourself—just to get acquainted with the texture of the thing and keep them awake. Kay, take over our guard so that Eukonidor can join the other Arisians. Kat, come along with me—you'll have to help with the Arisians until I call you into the Unit.
"No close coordination yet, everyone," Kit the Organizer smoothly got to work. "Individual effort—a quick moment of teamwork here and there, if any of us need it, but no full collaboration until I give the go-ahead. Then give it everything you've got. Cam, analyze that screen and create a pattern for us—you'll find it's going to take some effort. Check if it's completely uniform—look for any weaknesses. Con, focus on creating the sharpest point possible and start testing it gently. Not too hard—don’t wear yourself out—just get familiar with the texture and keep them alert. Kay, take over our watch so that Eukonidor can join the other Arisians. Kat, come with me—you'll need to assist with the Arisians until I call you into the team."
"You Arisians, except Mentor, blanket this dome. Thinner than that—solider, harder—there. A trifle off-balance yet—give me just a little more, here on this side. QX—hold it right there! SQUEEZE! Kat, watch 'em. Hold them right there and in balance until you're sure that the Eddorians aren't going to be able to put any bulges up through the blanket.
"You Arisians, except Mentor, cover this dome. Thinner than that—denser, tougher—there. A bit off-balance still—just a little more, here on this side. QX—keep it right there! SQUEEZE! Kat, keep an eye on them. Hold them steady and balanced until you’re sure that the Eddorians can’t push any bulges through the blanket."
"Now, Mentor, you and the Lensmen. Tell them to give us, for the next five seconds, absolutely everything that they can deliver. When they're at absolute peak, hit us with it all. Hit us dead center, and don't pull your punch. We'll be ready.
"Now, Mentor, you and the Lensmen. Tell them to give us, for the next five seconds, everything they’ve got. When they're at their absolute best, unleash it all on us. Hit us right in the center, and don’t hold back. We’ll be ready."
"Con, get ready to stick that needle there—they'll think it's just another peck, I hope—and prepare to blast as you never blasted before. Kay, get ready to drop that screen and stiffen the needle—when those Lensmen hit us even you will know that you're not just being patted on the back. The rest of us will brace you and keep the shock from killing us all. Here it comes. Make Unit! GO!"
"Con, get ready to stick that needle in—hopefully, they’ll just think it’s another poke—and get ready to blast like you’ve never blasted before. Kay, get ready to drop that screen and steady the needle—when those Lensmen come at us, even you will feel that it's not just a friendly tap. The rest of us will brace you and prevent the shock from wiping us all out. Here it comes. Make Unit! GO!"
The Unit struck. The needle of pure force drove against the Eddorians' supposedly absolutely impenetrable shield. The Unit's thrust was, of itself, like nothing ever before known. The Lensmen's pile-driver blow—the integrated sum total of the top effort of every First-Stage Lensman of the entire Galactic Patrol—was of itself irresistible. Something had to give way.
The Unit attacked. The pure force needle slammed into the Eddorians' supposedly impenetrable shield. The Unit's strike was unlike anything ever experienced before. The Lensmen's powerful blow—the combined strength of every First-Stage Lensman in the entire Galactic Patrol—was unstoppable. Something had to break.
For an instant it seemed as though nothing were happening or ever would happen. Strong young arms laced the straining Five into a group as motionless and as sculpturesque as statuary, while between their bodies and around them there came into being a gigantic Lens—a Lens whose splendor filled the entire room with radiance.
For a moment, it felt like nothing was happening or ever would. Strong young arms linked the struggling Five into a group that was as still and as sculptural as a statue, while a huge Lens formed between their bodies and around them—a Lens whose brilliance lit up the entire room with radiance.
Under that awful concentration of force something had to give way. The Unit held. The Arisians held. The Lensmen held. The needle of force, superlatively braced, neither bent nor broke. Therefore the Eddorians' screen was punctured; and in the instant of its puncturing it disappeared as does a bubble when it breaks.
Under that intense pressure, something had to give way. The Unit held strong. The Arisians held their ground. The Lensmen stood firm. The force, incredibly reinforced, neither bent nor broke. As a result, the Eddorians' shield was breached; and at the moment of its breach, it vanished like a bubble popping.
There was no mopping-up to do. Such was the torrent of force cascading into that citadel that within a moment after its shield went down all life within it was snuffed out.
There was no cleaning up to do. The sheer power crashing into that fortress was so overwhelming that just a moment after its shield fell, all life inside was extinguished.
The Boskonian War was over.
The Boskonian War is over.
XXIX.
XXIX.
"Did you kids come through QX?" The frightful combat over, the dreadful tension a thing of the past, Kit's first thought was for his sisters.
"Did you kids come through QX?" With the terrifying battle behind them and the awful tension gone, Kit's first thought was for his sisters.
They were unharmed. None of the Five had suffered anything except mental exhaustion. Recuperation was rapid.
They were unharmed. None of the Five had experienced anything except mental exhaustion. Recovery was quick.
"Better we hunt that tube up and get Dad out of it, don't you think?" Kit suggested.
"Don't you think we should track down that tube and get Dad out of it?" Kit suggested.
"Have you got a story arranged that will hold together under examination?" Camilla asked.
"Do you have a story prepared that will stand up to scrutiny?" Camilla asked.
"Everything except a few minor details, which we can polish up later."
"Everything except a few small details that we can fine-tune later."
Smoothly the four girls linked their minds with their brother's; effortlessly the Unit's thought surveyed all nearby space. No hyperspatial tube, nor any trace of one, was there. Tuned to Kinnison's pattern, the Unit then scanned not only normal space and the then present time, but also millions upon millions of other spaces and past and future times; all without finding the Gray Lensman.
Smoothly, the four girls connected their minds with their brother's; effortlessly, the Unit's thoughts scanned all nearby space. There was no hyperspatial tube or any sign of one. Tuned to Kinnison's pattern, the Unit then examined not only normal space and the current time, but also millions upon millions of other spaces and past and future times; all without locating the Gray Lensman.
Again and again the Unit reached out, farther and farther; out to the extreme limit of even its extraordinary range. Every space and every time was empty. The Children of the Lens broke their linkage and stared at each other, aghast.
Again and again, the Unit reached out, farther and farther; to the very edge of its incredible range. Every space and every moment was empty. The Children of the Lens disconnected and looked at each other in shock.
They knew starkly what it must mean, but that conclusion was unthinkable. Kinnison—their Dad—the hub of the universe—the unshakable, immutable Rock of Civilization—he couldn't be dead. They simply could not accept the logical explanations as the true one.
They clearly understood what it meant, but that conclusion was unimaginable. Kinnison—their Dad—the center of everything—the unmovable, constant Rock of Civilization—he couldn't be dead. They just couldn't accept the logical explanations as the real truth.
And while they pondered, shaken, a call from their Red Lensman mother impinged upon their consciousness.
And as they thought about it, feeling unsettled, a call from their Red Lensman mother broke through their awareness.
"You are together? Good! I have been so worried about Kim going into that trap. I have been trying to get in touch with him, but I cannot reach him. You children, with your greater power—"
"You two are together? Great! I've been so worried about Kim walking into that trap. I've been trying to contact him, but I can't get through. You kids, with your bigger power—"
She broke off as the dread import of the Five's surface thoughts became clear to her. At first she, too, was shaken, but she rallied magnificently.
She paused as the terrifying significance of the Five's surface thoughts became clear to her. At first, she was also shaken, but she bounced back remarkably.
"Nonsense!" she snapped; not in denial of an unwelcome fact, but in sure knowledge that the supposition was not and could not be a fact. "Kimball Kinnison is alive. He is lost, I know—I last heard from him just before he went into that hyperspatial tube—but I did not feel him die. And if he died, no matter where or when or how, I would most certainly have felt it. So don't be idiots, children, please. Think—really think! I am going to do something—somehow—but what? Mentor the Arisian? I've never called him and I'm terribly afraid that he might not be willing to do anything. I could go there and make him do something, but that would take so long—tell me, what shall I—what can I do?"
"That’s ridiculous!" she snapped; not because she was denying an unwelcome truth, but because she was certain that the assumption was not, and could not be, true. "Kimball Kinnison is alive. He’s lost, I know—I last heard from him right before he went into that hyperspatial tube—but I didn’t feel him die. And if he had died, no matter where or when or how, I definitely would have sensed it. So please, don’t be fools, you guys. Think—really think! I’m going to do something—somehow—but what? Should I reach out to the Arisian? I’ve never called him and I’m really worried that he might not be willing to help. I could go there and make him do something, but that would take too long—help me, what should I—what can I do?"
"Mentor, by all means," Kit decided. "The most logical, the only possible solution. I am sure that in this case he will act. It is neither necessary nor desirable to go to Arisia." Now that the Eddorians had ceased to exist, intergalactic space presented no barrier to Arisian thought, but Kit did not enlighten his mother upon that point. "Link your mind with ours." She did so.
"Go ahead and mentor," Kit concluded. "It's the most logical and the only possible solution. I'm confident that he will take action in this situation. It's neither necessary nor wise to go to Arisia." Now that the Eddorians were gone, intergalactic space was no obstacle for Arisian thoughts, but Kit didn’t share that with his mother. "Connect your mind with ours." She complied.
"Mentor of Arisia!" the clear-cut thought flashed out. "Kimball Kinnison of Klovia is not present in this, his normal space and time, nor in any other continuum which we can reach. We ask assistance."
"Mentor of Arisia!" the clear thought shot out. "Kimball Kinnison of Klovia isn't here in this usual space and time, or in any other continuum we can access. We request help."
"Ah, 'tis Lensman Clarrissa and the Five." Imperturbably, Mentor's mind joined theirs on the instant. "I have given the matter no attention, nor have I scanned my visualization of the Cosmic All. It may be that Kimball Kinnison has passed on from this plane of exist—"
"Ah, it’s Lensman Clarrissa and the Five." Calmly, Mentor’s mind connected with theirs immediately. "I have not paid attention to the matter, nor have I looked at my vision of the Cosmic All. It’s possible that Kimball Kinnison has moved on from this plane of existence—"
"He has NOT!" the Red Lensman interrupted violently, so violently that her thought had the impact of a physical blow. Mentor and the Five alike could see her eyes flash and sparkle; could hear her voice crackle as she spoke aloud, the better to drive home her passionate conviction. "Kim is ALIVE! I told the children so and I now tell you so. No matter where or when he might be, in whatever possible extra-dimensional nook or cranny of the entire macrocosmic universe or in any possible aisle of time between plus and minus eternity, he could not die—he could not possibly die—without my knowing it. So find him, please—please find him, Mentor—or, if you can't or won't, just give me the littlest, tiniest hint as to how to go about it and I will find him myself!"
"He has NOT!" the Red Lensman interrupted fiercely, so fiercely that her words felt like a physical blow. Mentor and the Five could see her eyes flashing and sparkling; they could hear her voice crackle as she spoke loudly to emphasize her intense belief. "Kim is ALIVE! I told the kids so and I’m telling you now. No matter where or when he might be, in any possible extra-dimensional space in the whole universe or in any possible moment of time between infinity and eternity, he couldn’t die—he couldn’t possibly die—without me knowing it. So find him, please—please find him, Mentor—or, if you can’t or won’t, just give me the smallest, tiniest hint about how to do it, and I’ll find him myself!"
The Five were appalled. Especially Kit, who knew, as the others did not, just how much afraid of Mentor his mother had always been. To direct such a thought as that to any Arisian was unthinkable; but Mentor's only reaction was one of pleased interest.
The Five were shocked. Especially Kit, who understood, unlike the others, just how afraid of Mentor his mother had always been. It was unimaginable to direct such a thought toward any Arisian; however, Mentor's only response was one of intrigued satisfaction.
"There is much of truth, daughter, in your thought," he replied, slowly. "Human love, in its highest manifestation, can be a mighty, a really tremendous thing. The force, the power, the capability of such a love as yours is a sector of the truth which has not been fully examined. Allow me, please, a moment in which to consider the various aspects of this matter."
"There’s a lot of truth in what you’re saying, my daughter," he replied slowly. "Human love, at its highest form, can be incredibly powerful, even truly amazing. The strength, the intensity, and the potential of a love like yours is a part of the truth that hasn’t been fully explored. Please give me a moment to think about the different sides of this issue."
It took more than a moment. It took more than the twenty-nine seconds which the Arisian had needed to solve an earlier and supposedly similar Kinnison problem. In fact, a full half hour elapsed before Mentor resumed communication; and then he did so, not to the group as a whole, but only to the Five; using an ultrafrequency to which the Red Lensman's mind could not be attuned.
It took longer than just a moment. It took more than the twenty-nine seconds that the Arisian had needed to solve a similar Kinnison problem earlier. In fact, a full half hour passed before Mentor got back in touch; and even then, he communicated not with the entire group, but only with the Five, using a frequency that the Red Lensman's mind couldn't pick up.
"I have not been able to reach him. Since you could not do so I knew that the problem would not be simple, but I have found that it is difficult indeed. As I have intimated previously, my visualization is not entirely clear upon any matter touching the Eddorians directly, since their minds were of great power. On the other hand, their visualizations of us were probably even more hazy. Therefore none of our analyses of each other were or could be much better than approximations.
"I haven't been able to contact him. Since you couldn't either, I realized the issue wouldn't be straightforward, but I've discovered it's actually quite complicated. As I hinted before, my understanding isn't entirely clear on any matter involving the Eddorians, as their minds were very powerful. On the flip side, their understanding of us was likely even murkier. So, none of our analyses of each other were or could be much better than just rough estimates."
"It is certain, however, that you were correct in assuming that it was the Ploorans who set up the hyperspatial tube as a trap for your father. The fact that the lower and middle operating echelons of Boskonia could not kill him established in the Ploorans' minds the necessity of taking him alive. The fact gave us no concern, for you, Kathryn, were on guard. Moreover, even if she alone should slip, it was manifestly impossible for them to accomplish anything against the combined powers of you Five. However, at some undetermined point in time the Eddorians took over, as is shown by the fact that you are all at a loss: it being scarcely necessary to point out to you that the Ploorans could neither transport your father to any location which you could not reach nor pose any problem, including his death, which you could not solve. It is thus certain that it was one or more of the Eddorians who either killed Kinnison or sent him where he was sent. It is also certain that, after the easy fashion in which he escaped from the Ploorans after they had captured him and had him all but in their hands, the Eddorians did not care to have the Ploorans come to grips with Kimball Kinnison; fearing, and rightly, that instead of gaining information, they would lose everything."
"It’s clear, though, that you were right to think the Ploorans set up the hyperspatial tube as a trap for your dad. The fact that the lower and middle levels of Boskonia couldn’t kill him made the Ploorans realize they needed to capture him alive. This didn’t worry us, because you, Kathryn, were on high alert. Plus, even if she slipped up, it was obviously impossible for them to do anything against the combined strength of the Five. However, at some unknown point, the Eddorians took over, as shown by the fact that you’re all confused: it hardly needs to be said that the Ploorans couldn’t transport your father anywhere you couldn’t follow or create any problems, including his death, that you couldn’t handle. It’s therefore clear that one or more of the Eddorians either killed Kinnison or sent him where he ended up. It’s also certain that after how easily he got away from the Ploorans when they captured him, the Eddorians didn’t want the Ploorans to actually confront Kimball Kinnison; fearing, and rightly so, that instead of gaining information, they would end up losing everything."
"Did they know that I was in that tube?" Kathryn asked. "Did they deduce us, or did they think that Dad was a superman?"
"Did they know I was in that tube?" Kathryn asked. "Did they figure us out, or did they think Dad was some kind of superman?"
"That is one of the many points which are obscure. But it made no difference, before or after the event, to them or to us, as you should perceive."
"That is one of the many points that are unclear. But it didn't matter, before or after the event, to them or to us, as you should realize."
"Of course. They knew that there was at least one third-level mind at work in the field. They must have deduced that it was Arisian work. Whether it was Dad himself, or whether it was coming to his aid at need, would make no difference. They knew very well that he was the keystone of Civilization, and that to do away with him would be the shrewdest move they could make. Therefore, we still do not understand why they didn't kill him out-right and be done with it—if they didn't."
"Of course. They were aware that there was at least one third-level mind operating in the area. They must have figured out that it was Arisian work. Whether it was Dad himself or someone helping him in his time of need wouldn’t change anything. They clearly understood that he was the key to Civilization, and getting rid of him would be their smartest move. So, we still don’t grasp why they didn’t just kill him outright and be done with it—if they didn’t."
"In exactness, neither do I—that point is the least clear of all. Nor is it at all certain that he still lives. It is sheerest folly to assume that the Eddorians either thought or acted illogically, even occasionally. Therefore, if Kinnison is not dead, whatever was done was calculated to be even more final than death itself. This premise, if adopted, forces the conclusion that they considered the possibility of our knowing enough about the next cycle of existence to be able to reach him there."
"In reality, neither do I—that point is the least clear of all. It's also uncertain if he's still alive. It's complete madness to assume that the Eddorians ever thought or acted irrationally, even once in a while. So, if Kinnison isn't dead, whatever they did was intended to be even more conclusive than death itself. This assumption, if accepted, leads to the conclusion that they believed we might know enough about the next stage of existence to reach him there."
Kit frowned. "You still harp on the possibility of his death. Does not your visualization cover that?"
Kit frowned. "You keep going on about the chance of his death. Doesn’t your visualization take that into account?"
"Not since the Eddorians took control. I have not consciously emphasized the probability of your father's death; I have merely considered it—in the case of two mutually exclusive events, neither of which can be shown to have happened, both must be studied with care. Assume for the moment that your mother's theory is the truth, that your father is still alive. In that case, what was done and how it was done are eminently clear."
"Not since the Eddorians took control. I haven’t directly focused on the likelihood of your father’s death; I’ve just thought about it—in the case of two events that can’t both be true, it’s important to consider both carefully. Let’s assume for a moment that your mom’s theory is right, that your father is still alive. In that case, what happened and how it happened are completely straightforward."
"Clear? Not to us!" the Five chorused.
"Clear? Not to us!" the Five shouted together.
"While they did not know at all exactly the power of our minds, they could establish limits beyond which neither they nor we could go. Being mechanically inclined, it is reasonable to assume that they had at their disposal sufficient energy to transport Kinnison and his vessel to some point well beyond those limits. They would have given control to a director-by-chance, so that his ultimate destination would be unknown and unknowable. He would of course land safely—"
"Although they didn't fully understand the extent of our mental abilities, they could set boundaries that neither they nor we could cross. Given their mechanical expertise, it makes sense that they had enough energy to move Kinnison and his ship to a location far beyond those limits. They would have let a random director take control, making his final destination unpredictable and impossible to know. He would, of course, land safely—"
"How? How could they, possibly—?"
"How? How could they, even—?"
"In time that knowledge will be yours. Not now. Whether or not the hypothesis just stated is true, the fact confronting us is that Kimball Kinnison is not now in any region which I am at present able to scan."
"In time, that knowledge will be yours. Not right now. Whether or not the hypothesis just stated is true, the fact we’re facing is that Kimball Kinnison is not currently in any area that I can scan."
Gloom descended palpably upon the Five.
Gloom clearly settled over the Five.
"I am not saying or implying that the problem is insoluble. Since Eddorian minds were involved, however, you already realize that its solution will require the evaluation of many millions of factors and will consume a not inconsiderable number of your years."
"I’m not saying or implying that the problem can’t be solved. However, since Eddorian minds are involved, you already understand that finding a solution will require considering millions of factors and will take a significant amount of your time."
"You mean lifetimes!" an impetuous young thought broke in. "Why, long before that—"
"You mean lifetimes!" an impulsive young thought interrupted. "Well, well before that—"
"Contain yourself, daughter Constance," Mentor reproved, gently. "I realize quite fully all the connotations and implications involved. I was about to say that it may prove desirable to assist your mother in the application of powers which may very well transcend in some respects those of either Arisia or Eddore." He shifted the band of thought to include the Red Lensman and went on as though he were just emerging from contemplation:
"Calm down, daughter Constance," Mentor gently chided. "I completely understand all the meanings and implications at play. I was going to suggest that it might be wise to help your mother with powers that could very well surpass those of either Arisia or Eddore." He adjusted his train of thought to include the Red Lensman and continued as if he were just coming out of deep reflection:
"Children, it appears that the solution of this problem by ordinary processes will require more time than can conveniently be spared. Moreover, it affords a priceless and perhaps a unique opportunity of increasing our store of knowledge. Be informed, however, that the probability is exceedingly great that in this project you, Clarrissa, will lose your life."
"Kids, it looks like solving this problem using regular methods is going to take more time than we can really afford. Plus, it gives us a priceless and possibly one-of-a-kind chance to broaden our knowledge. However, you should know that there’s a very high chance that in this project, you, Clarrissa, might lose your life."
"Better not, mother. When Mentor says anything like that, it means suicide. We don't want to lose you, too." Kit pleaded, and the four girls added their pleas to his.
"Better not, Mom. When Mentor says stuff like that, it basically means death. We don't want to lose you, too." Kit pleaded, and the four girls chimed in with their pleas.
Clarrissa knew that suicide was against the Code—but she also knew that, as long as there was any chance at all, Lensmen always went in.
Clarrissa knew that suicide was against the Code—but she also understood that, as long as there was even a slight chance, Lensmen always stepped in.
"Exactly how great?" she demanded, vibrantly. "It isn't absolutely certain—it can't be!"
"How great exactly?" she asked, energetically. "It isn't totally certain—it can't be!"
"No, daughter, it is not absolutely certain."
"No, daughter, it's not completely certain."
"QX, then, I'm going in. Nothing can stop me."
"QX, I’m heading in now. Nothing can hold me back."
"Very well. Tighten your linkage, Clarrissa, with me. Yours will be the task of sending your thought to your husband, wherever and whenever in total space and in total time he may be. If it can be done, you can do it. You alone of all the entities in existence can do it. I can neither help you nor guide you in your quest; but by virtue of your relationship to him whom we are seeking, your oneness with him, you will require neither help nor guidance. My part will be to follow you and to construct the means of his return, but the real labor is and must be yours alone. Take a moment, therefore, to prepare yourself against the effort, for it will not be small. Gather your resources, daughter; assemble all your forces and your every power."
"Alright. Strengthen your connection, Clarrissa, with me. Your task will be to send your thoughts to your husband, no matter where or when he is in all of time and space. If it can be done, you’re the one who can do it. You alone, of everyone that exists, can achieve this. I can’t help you or guide you in your endeavor; but because of your bond with him whom we're looking for, your unity with him, you won’t need help or guidance. My role will be to follow you and create the means for his return, but the real work is and must be yours alone. So take a moment to get ready for the effort, as it won’t be small. Gather your resources, daughter; gather all your strength and every ounce of your power."
They watched Clarrissa, in her distant room, throw herself prone upon her bed. She closed her eyes, buried her nose in the counterpane, and gripped a side rail fiercely in each hand.
They watched Clarrissa, in her distant room, throw herself down onto her bed. She closed her eyes, buried her nose in the blanket, and gripped a side rail tightly with both hands.
"Can't we help, too?" The Five implored, as one.
"Can't we help, too?" the Five pleaded in unison.
"I do not know." Mentor's thought was as passionless as the voice of Fate. "I know of no force at your disposal which can affect in any way that which is to happen. Since I do not know the full measure of your powers, however, it would be well for you to accompany us, keeping yourselves alert to take instant advantage of any opportunity to be of aid. Are you ready, daughter Clarrissa?"
"I don’t know." The Mentor's mind was as emotionless as Fate's voice. "I’m not aware of any power you have that can change what’s about to happen. However, since I’m not fully aware of what you’re capable of, it would be wise for you to come with us, staying alert to quickly seize any chance to help. Are you ready, daughter Clarrissa?"
"I am ready," and the Red Lensman launched her thought.
"I’m ready," and the Red Lensman sent out her thought.
Clarrissa Kinnison did not know, then or ever, did not have even the faintest inkling of what she did or of how she did it. Nor, tied to her by bonds of heritage, love, and sympathy though they were and of immense powers of mind though they were, did any of the Five succeed, until after many years had passed, in elucidating the many complex phenomena involved. Even Mentor, the ancient Arisian sage, never did understand.
Clarrissa Kinnison didn’t know, now or ever, not even a little, what she did or how she did it. And despite the deep connections of heritage, love, and sympathy, as well as their immense mental abilities, none of the Five managed to figure it out until many years later. Even Mentor, the old Arisian sage, never understood.
All that any of them knew was that an infinitely loving and intensely suffering woman, stretched rigidly upon a bed, hurled out through space and time a passionately questing thought—a thought behind which she put everything she had.
All any of them knew was that a woman, full of love yet deeply suffering, lay stiff on a bed, sending out into the universe a desperate, searching thought—a thought she invested everything she had in.
Clarrissa Kinnison, Red Lensman, had much—and every iota of that impressive sum total ached for, yearned for, and insistently demanded her Kim—her one and only Kim. Kim her husband; Kim the father of her children; Kim her lover; Kim her other half; Kim her all in all for so many perfect years.
Clarrissa Kinnison, Red Lensman, had so much—and every bit of that impressive total ached for, yearned for, and insistently demanded her Kim—her one and only Kim. Kim her husband; Kim the father of her children; Kim her lover; Kim her other half; Kim her everything for so many perfect years.
"Kim! KIM! Wherever you are, Kim, or whenever, listen! Listen and answer! Hear me—you must hear me calling—I need you, Kim, from the bottom of my soul. Kim! My Kim! KIM!!"
"Kim! KIM! No matter where you are, Kim, or when, please listen! Listen and respond! You have to hear me calling—I need you, Kim, from the depths of my soul. Kim! My Kim! KIM!!"
Through countless spaces and through untellable times that poignant thought sped; driven by a woman's fears, a woman's hopes, a woman's all-surpassing love; urged ever onward and ever outward by the irresistible force of a magnificent woman's frankly bared soul.
Through countless places and untold times, that deep thought raced on; fueled by a woman's fears, a woman's hopes, a woman's overwhelming love; pushed ever forward and ever outward by the undeniable strength of a remarkable woman's openly revealed soul.
Outward ... farther ... farther out ... farther—
Outward ... farther ... farther out ... farther—
Clarrissa's body went limp upon her bed. Her heart slowed; her breathing almost stopped. Kit probed quickly, finding that those secret cells into which he had scarcely dared to glance were now empty and bare. Even the Red Lensman's tremendous reserves of vital force were exhausted.
Clarrissa's body went slack on her bed. Her heart rate decreased; her breathing nearly halted. Kit hurriedly checked, discovering that those hidden areas he had barely dared to look at were now empty and desolate. Even the Red Lensman's vast reserves of energy were depleted.
"Mother, come back!"
"Mom, come back!"
"Come back to us!"
"Come back to us!"
"Please, please, Mums, come back!"
"Please, Mums, come back!"
"Know you, children, your mother so little?"
"Do you even know your mother, children?"
They knew her. They knew starkly that she would not come back. Regardless of any danger to herself, regardless of life itself, she would not return until she had found her Kim.
They knew her. They knew clearly that she wouldn’t come back. No matter the danger to herself, no matter about life itself, she wouldn’t return until she found her Kim.
"But do something, Mentor—DO SOMETHING!"
"But do something, Mentor—DO SOMETHING!"
"What? Nothing can be done. It was simply a question of which was the greater; the volume of the required hypersphere or her remarkable store of vitality."
"What? There's nothing that can be done. It was just a matter of which was greater; the size of the needed hypersphere or her impressive reserve of energy."
"Shut up!" Kit blazed. "We'll do something! Come on, kids, and we'll try."
"Be quiet!" Kit shot back. "We'll do something! Come on, kids, let’s give it a try."
"The Unit!" Kathryn shrieked. "Link up, quick! Cam, make mother's pattern, all of it—hurry! Now, Unit, grab it—make her one of us, a six-ply Unit—make her come in, and snap it up! There! Now, Kit, drive us. DRIVE US!"
"The Unit!" Kathryn yelled. "Link up, fast! Cam, create mother’s pattern, all of it—hurry! Now, Unit, grab it—turn her into one of us, a six-ply Unit—bring her in, and collect it! There! Now, Kit, take us. DRIVE US!"
Kit drove. As the surging life-force of the Unit pushed a measure of vitality back into Clarrissa's inert body, she gained a little strength and did not grow weaker. The children, however, did; and Mentor, who had been entirely unmoved by the woman's imminent death, became highly concerned.
Kit drove. As the powerful energy of the Unit infused some vitality back into Clarrissa's lifeless body, she gained a bit of strength and managed to hold on. The children, however, were getting weaker; and Mentor, who had shown no concern for the woman's impending death, became very worried.
"Children, return!" He first ordered, then entreated. "You are throwing away not only your lives, but also long lifetimes of intensive labor and study!"
"Kids, come back!" He first commanded, then pleaded. "You're not just wasting your lives; you're also throwing away years of hard work and study!"
They paid no attention. He had known that they would not. No more than their mother would those children abandon such a mission unaccomplished. Seven Kinnisons would come back or none.
They ignored it. He had known they would. Just like their mother, those kids wouldn’t give up on that mission. Seven Kinnisons would come back, or none would.
The Arisian pondered—and brightened. Now that a theretofore impossible linkage had been made, the outlook changed. The odds shifted. The Unit's delicacy of web, its driving force, had not been enough; or, rather, it would have taken too long. Adding the Red Lensman's affinity for her husband, however—Yes, definitely, this Unit of his should now succeed.
The Arisian thought and then smiled. Now that a previously impossible connection had been established, everything changed. The odds shifted. The Unit's delicate structure and its driving force hadn’t been enough; or, rather, it would have taken too long. However, considering the Red Lensman's bond with her husband—Yes, definitely, this Unit of his should now succeed.
It did. Before any of the Five weakened to the danger point the Unit, again five-fold, snapped back. Clarrissa's life-force, which had tried so valiantly to fill all of space and all of time, was flowing back into her. A tight, hard beam ran, it seemed, to infinity and vanished. Mentor had been unable to follow the Unit, but he could and did follow that beam to Kimball Kinnison. Abruptly the trace was hidden by the walls of a hyperspatial tube.
It did. Before any of the Five got too weak to handle the danger, the Unit, still five-fold, snapped back. Clarrissa's life-force, which had fought so hard to fill all of space and time, was returning to her. A tight, strong beam seemed to stretch out to infinity and then disappeared. Mentor hadn't been able to track the Unit, but he could and did follow that beam to Kimball Kinnison. Suddenly, the trace was blocked by the walls of a hyperspatial tube.

"A right scholarly bit of work, children," Mentor approved. "I could not follow you, but I have arranged the means of his return."
"A truly scholarly piece of work, kids," Mentor said with approval. "I couldn't keep up with you, but I've set up a way for him to come back."
"Thanks, children. Thanks, Mentor." Instead of fainting, Clarrissa sprang from her bed and stood erect. Flushed and panting, eyes flamingly alight, she was more intensely vital than any of her children had ever seen her. Reaction might—would—come later, but she was now all buoyantly vibrant woman. "Where will he come into our space, and when?"
"Thanks, kids. Thanks, Mentor." Instead of fainting, Clarrissa jumped out of bed and stood straight up. Her face was flushed and she was breathing heavily, her eyes shining brightly. She was more full of life than any of her kids had ever seen her. Reaction might—would—come later, but right now she was just a completely energetic woman. "Where is he going to enter our space, and when?"
"In your room before you. Now."
"In your room at the moment."
Kinnison materialized; and as the Red Lensman and the Gray went hungrily into each other's arms, Mentor and the Five turned their attention toward the future.
Kinnison appeared; and as the Red Lensman and the Gray eagerly embraced, Mentor and the Five focused on what was to come.
"First, the hyperspatial tube which was called the 'Hell Hole in Space,'" Kit began. "We must establish as fact in the minds of all Civilization that the Ploorans were actually at the top of Boskone. The story as we have arranged it is that Ploor was the top, and—which happens to be the truth—that it was destroyed through the efforts of the Second-Stage Lensmen. The 'Hell Hole' is to be explained as being operated by the Plooran 'residuum' which every Lensman knows all about and which he will never forget. The problem of Dad's whereabouts was different from the previous one in degree only, not in kind. To all except us, there never were any Eddorians. Any objections? Will that version hold?"
"First, the hyperspatial tube known as the 'Hell Hole in Space,'” Kit began. “We need to make it clear to everyone in Civilization that the Ploorans were actually at the top of Boskone. The story we’ve put together is that Ploor was the top, and—what happens to be the truth—is that it was destroyed by the efforts of the Second-Stage Lensmen. The 'Hell Hole' will be explained as being operated by the Plooran 'residuum,' which every Lensman is well aware of and will never forget. The issue of Dad's location was different from the previous one only in degree, not in kind. To everyone else, there never were any Eddorians. Any objections? Will that version hold?"
The consensus was that the story was sound and tight.
The general agreement was that the story was solid and well-structured.
"The time has come, then," Karen thought, "to go into the very important matter of our reason for being and our purpose in life. You have intimated repeatedly that you Arisians are resigning your Guardianship of Civilization and that we are to take over; and I have just perceived the terribly shocking fact that you four are now alone, that all the other Arisians have already gone. We are not ready, Mentor; you know that we are not—this scares me through and through."
"The time has come," Karen thought, "to get into the crucial issue of why we exist and what our purpose in life is. You've hinted several times that you Arisians are stepping down from your Guardianship of Civilization and that we’re supposed to take over; and I’ve just realized the incredibly shocking truth that you four are now alone, that all the other Arisians have already left. We aren’t ready, Mentor; you know we aren’t—this terrifies me completely."
"You are ready, children, for everything that will have to be done. You have not come to your full maturity and power, of course; that stage will come only with time. It is best for you, however, that we leave you now. Your race is potentially vastly stronger and abler than ours. We reached some time ago the highest point attainable to us: we could no longer adapt ourselves to the ever-increasing complexity of life. You, a young new race amply equipped for any emergency within reckonable time, will be able to do so. In capability and in equipment you begin where we leave off."
"You’re ready, kids, for everything that needs to be done. You haven’t reached your full maturity and power yet, and that will come with time. It’s best for you that we leave you now. Your generation has the potential to be much stronger and more capable than ours. We’ve already hit our peak: we can’t adapt to the growing complexities of life anymore. But you, as a young new generation fully equipped to handle any situation in a reasonable timeframe, will be able to manage it. You start where we’re leaving off."
"But we know—you've taught us—scarcely anything!" Constance protested.
"But we know—you've taught us—barely anything!" Constance protested.
"I have taught you exactly enough. That we do not know exactly what changes to anticipate is implicit in the fact that our race is out of date. Further Arisian teaching would tend to set you in the out-dated Arisian mold and thereby defeat our every purpose. As I have informed you repeatedly, we ourselves do not know what extra qualities you possess. Hence we are in no sense competent to instruct you in the natures or in the uses of them. It is certain, however, that you have those extra qualities. It is equally certain that you possess the abilities to develop them to the full. I have set your feet on the sure way to the full development of those abilities."
"I’ve taught you just enough. The fact that we don’t know exactly what changes to expect shows that our approach is out of date. Teaching you more in the old Arisian way would only set you back and go against everything we want to achieve. As I’ve mentioned many times, we don’t know what additional qualities you have. So, we aren't qualified to teach you about their nature or how to use them. However, it’s clear that you do have those extra qualities. It’s also clear that you have the ability to fully develop them. I’ve put you on the right path to develop those abilities completely."
"But that will take much time, sir," Kit thought, "and if you leave us now we won't have it."
"But that's going to take a long time, sir," Kit thought, "and if you leave us now, we won't have any time left."
"You will have time enough and to spare."
"You will have plenty of time."
"Oh—then we won't have to do it right away?" Constance broke in. "Good!"
"Oh—so we don't have to do it immediately?" Constance interrupted. "Great!"
"We are all glad of that," Camilla added. "We're too full of our own lives, too eager for experiences, to enjoy the prospect of living such lives as you Arisians have lived. I am right in assuming, am I not, that our own development will in time force us into the same or a similar existence?"
"We're all happy about that," Camilla added. "We're too caught up in our own lives, too excited for new experiences, to appreciate the idea of living the way you Arisians have lived. I'm correct in assuming, right, that our own development will eventually push us into the same or a similar way of life?"
"Your muddy thinking has again distorted the truth," Mentor reproved her. "There will be no force involved. You will gain everything, lose nothing. You have no conception of the depth and breadth of the vistas now just beginning to open to you. Your lives will be immeasurably fuller, higher, greater than any heretofore known to this universe. As your capabilities increase, you will find that you will no longer care for the society of entities less able than your own kind."
"Your muddy thinking has once again twisted the truth," Mentor told her. "There won’t be any force involved. You will gain everything and lose nothing. You have no idea how deep and wide the opportunities are that are just starting to open up for you. Your lives will be unimaginably fuller, more elevated, and greater than anything previously known in this universe. As your abilities grow, you’ll find that you won’t care about the company of beings less capable than your own kind."
"But I don't want to live forever!" Constance wailed.
"But I don't want to live forever!" Constance cried out.
"More muddy thinking." Mentor's thought was—for him—somewhat testy. "Perhaps, in the present instance, barely excusable. You know that you are not immortal. You should know that an infinity of time is necessary for the acquirement of infinite knowledge; and that your span of life will be just as short, in comparison with your capacity to live and to learn, as that of Homo sapiens. When the time comes you will want to—you will need to—change your manner of living."
"More unclear thinking." Mentor thought, feeling somewhat irritated. "Maybe, in this case, it's barely justifiable. You know you’re not immortal. You should realize that it takes an eternity to gain infinite knowledge; and that your life will be just as short, compared to your potential to live and learn, as that of Homo sapiens. When the time comes, you'll want to—you’ll need to—change how you live."
"Tell us when?" Kat suggested. "It would be nice to know, so that we could get ready."
"Let us know when?" Kat suggested. "It would be great to know, so we can prepare."
"I could tell you, since in that way my visualization is clear, but I will not. Fifty years—a hundred—a million—what matters it? Live your lives to the fullest, year by year, developing your every obvious, latent, and nascent capability; calmly assured that long before any need for your services shall arise, you shall have established yourselves upon some planet of your choice and shall be in every respect ready for whatever may come to pass."
"I could tell you, since that would make my vision clear, but I won't. Fifty years—a hundred—a million—what does it matter? Live your lives to the fullest, year by year, developing every obvious, hidden, and emerging talent; confidently knowing that long before you need to offer your skills, you will have made your home on some planet of your choice and will be fully prepared for whatever happens."
"You are—you must be—right," Kit conceded. "In view of what has just happened, however, and the chaotic condition of both galaxies, it seems a poor time to vacate all Guardianship."
"You are—you must be—right," Kit admitted. "Considering what just happened and the messy state of both galaxies, it doesn’t seem like a good time to leave all Guardianship behind."
"All inimical activity is now completely disorganized. Kinnison and the Patrol can handle it easily enough. The real conflict is finished. Think nothing of a few years of vacancy. The Lensmakers, as you know, are fully automatic, requiring neither maintenance nor attention; what little time you may wish to devote to the special training of selected Lensmen can be taken at odd moments from your serious work of developing yourselves for Guardianship."
"All hostile activity is now totally disorganized. Kinnison and the Patrol can manage it without any trouble. The real conflict is over. Don’t worry about a few years of downtime. The Lensmakers, as you know, are fully automated, needing no maintenance or care; any time you want to spend on the special training of selected Lensmen can easily be taken from your main focus on developing yourselves for Guardianship."
"We still feel incompetent," the Five insisted. "Are you sure that you have given us all the instruction we need?"
"We still feel incompetent," the Five insisted. "Are you sure you've given us all the instruction we need?"
"I am sure. I perceive doubt in your minds as to my own competence, based upon the fact that in this supreme emergency my visualization was faulty and my actions almost too late. Observe, however, that my visualization was clear upon every essential factor and that we were not actually too late. The truth is that our timing was precisely right—no lesser stress could possibly have prepared you as you are now prepared.
"I’m certain. I can sense your doubts about my abilities, especially since my planning was off and my actions came close to being too late during this critical moment. But, notice that I had a clear understanding of all the key factors, and we weren't actually late. The reality is that our timing was perfect—no lesser pressure could have prepared you as well as you are now."
"I am about to go. The time may come when your descendants will realize, as we did, their inadequacy for continued Guardianship. Their visualizations, as did ours, may become imperfect and incomplete. If so, they will then know that the time will have come for them to develop, from the highest race then existing, new and more competent Guardians. Then they, as my fellows have done and as I am about to do, will of their own accord pass on. But that is for the remote future. As to you children, doubtful now and hesitant as is only natural, you may believe implicitly what I now tell you is the truth, that even though we Arisians are no longer here, all shalt be well; with us, with you, and with all Civilization."
"I’m about to leave. There may come a time when your descendants realize, like we did, that they're not fit for continued Guardianship. Their visions, like ours, might become flawed and incomplete. If that happens, they will understand that it’s time to create new and more capable Guardians from the best race that exists then. They will, just like my peers have done and as I’m about to do, willingly move on. But that’s for a distant future. As for you kids, feeling unsure and hesitant, which is completely natural, you can trust what I’m telling you is true: even though we Arisians won’t be here anymore, everything will be alright; with us, with you, and with all of Civilization."
The deeply resonant pseudovoice ceased; the Kinnisons knew that Mentor, the last of the Arisians, was gone.
The powerful pseudovoice stopped; the Kinnisons understood that Mentor, the last of the Arisians, was gone.
EPILOGUE
EPILOGUE
To you who have scanned this report, further greetings:
To you who have read this report, more greetings:
Since I, who compiled it, am only a youth, a Guardian only by title, and hence unable to visualize even approximately either the time of nor the necessity for the opening of this flask of force, I have no idea as to the bodily shape or the mental attainments of you, the entity to whom it has now been made available.
Since I, the one who put this together, am just a young person, a Guardian in name only, and therefore unable to imagine even roughly when or why this flask of power should be opened, I have no clue about your physical form or your level of understanding, you, the being to whom this is now accessible.
You already know that Civilization is again threatened seriously. You probably know something of the basic nature of that threat. While studying this tape you have become informed that the situation is sufficiently grave to have made it again necessary to force certain selected minds prematurely into the third-level of Lensmanship.
You already know that civilization is seriously threatened again. You probably have some understanding of the nature of that threat. While studying this tape, you've learned that the situation is serious enough to require pushing certain chosen individuals prematurely into the third level of Lensmanship.
You have already learned that in ancient time Civilization after Civilization fell before it could rise much above the level of barbarism. You know that we and the previous race of Guardians saw to it that this, OUR Civilization, has not yet fallen. Know now that the task of your race, so soon to replace us, will be to see to it that it does not fall.
You already know that in ancient times, civilization after civilization collapsed before they could elevate themselves much above the state of barbarism. You understand that we and the former Guardians made sure that this, OUR Civilization, hasn't fallen yet. Now understand that the responsibility of your generation, which will soon take our place, will be to ensure that it doesn't fall.
One of us will become en rapport with you as soon as you have assimilated the facts, the connotations, and the implications of this material. Prepare your mind for contact.
One of us will connect with you as soon as you’ve absorbed the facts, the meanings, and the implications of this material. Get your mind ready for contact.
Kit Kinnison.
Kit Kinnison.
THE END.
THE END.
Download ePUB
If you like this ebook, consider a donation!